summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/61340-0.txt9458
-rw-r--r--old/61340-0.zipbin169035 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61340-h.zipbin621332 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61340-h/61340-h.htm11961
-rw-r--r--old/61340-h/images/cover.jpgbin99058 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61340-h/images/i_back.jpgbin97557 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61340-h/images/i_cover.jpgbin100860 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/61340-h/images/i_title.jpgbin140172 -> 0 bytes
11 files changed, 17 insertions, 21419 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..08c7f9a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #61340 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/61340)
diff --git a/old/61340-0.txt b/old/61340-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 4df4d90..0000000
--- a/old/61340-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9458 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Art of Story-Telling, by Marie L. Shedlock
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Art of Story-Telling
-
-Author: Marie L. Shedlock
-
-Commentator: Professor John Adams
-
-Release Date: February 8, 2020 [EBook #61340]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ART OF STORY-TELLING ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by MFR, Eleni Christofaki and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Note.
-
-A list of the changes made can be found at the end of the book.
-Formatting and special characters are indicated as follows:
-
- _italic_
- =bold=
-
-
-
-
-THE ART OF STORY-TELLING
-
-
-
-
- THE ART
- OF STORY-TELLING
-
- BY MARIE L. SHEDLOCK
-
- WITH A PREFACE BY
- PROFESSOR JOHN ADAMS
- CHAIR OF EDUCATION, UNIVERSITY OF LONDON
-
- LONDON
- JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET, W.
- 1915
-
-
-
-
-ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- PAGE
-
- PREFACE vii
-
- INTRODUCTION 1
-
- Chapter I. THE DIFFICULTIES OF STORY-TELLING CONNECTED WITH LIBRARIES
- AND CLUBS 6
-
- ” II. THE ESSENTIALS OF STORY-TELLING 25
-
- ” III. THE ARTIFICES OF STORY-TELLING 32
-
- ” IV. ELEMENTS TO AVOID 42
-
- ” V. ELEMENTS TO SEEK 61
-
- ” VI. HOW TO OBTAIN AND MAINTAIN THE EFFECT 89
-
- ” VII. QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS 117
-
- ” VIII. LIST OF STORIES TOLD IN FULL 138
-
- LIST OF TITLES OF INDIVIDUAL STORIES AND OF COLLECTIONS OF STORIES 210
-
- INDEX 235
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-By PROFESSOR JOHN ADAMS,
-
-_Chair of Education, University of London_.
-
-
-THOSE who do not love schoolmasters tell us that the man who can do
-something supremely well contents himself with doing it, while the man
-who cannot do it very well must needs set about showing other people
-how it should be done. The masters in any craft are prone to magnify
-their gifts by maintaining that the poet--or the stove-pipe maker--is
-born, not made. Teachers will accordingly be gratified to find in the
-following pages the work of a lady who is at the same time a brilliant
-executant and an admirable expositor. Miss Shedlock stands in the very
-first rank of story-tellers. No one can claim with greater justice that
-the gift of Scheherazade is hers by birthright. Yet she has recognised
-that even the highest natural gifts may be well or ill manipulated:
-that in short the poet, not to speak of the stove-pipe maker, must take
-a little more trouble than to be merely born.
-
-It is well when the master of a craft begins to take thought and to
-discover what underlies his method. It does not, of course, happen
-that every master is able to analyse the processes that secure him
-success in his art. For after all the expositor has to be born as well
-as the executant; and it is perhaps one of the main causes of the
-popularity of the born-not-made theory that so few people are born both
-good artists and good expositors. Miss Shedlock has had this rare
-good fortune, as all those who have both read her book and heard her
-exemplify her principles on the platform will readily admit.
-
-Let no one who lacks the gift of story-telling hope that the following
-pages will confer it. Like Comenius and like the schoolmaster in
-Shakespeare, Miss Shedlock is entitled to claim a certain capacity or
-ingenuity in her pupils, before she can promise effective help. But
-on the other hand let no successful story-teller form the impression
-that he has nothing to learn from the exposition here given. The best
-craftsmen are those who are not only most able but most willing to
-learn from a fellow master. The most inexperienced story-teller who has
-the love of the art in his soul will gather a full harvest from Miss
-Shedlock's teaching, while the most experienced and skilful will not go
-empty away.
-
-The reader will discover that the authoress is first and last an
-artist. “Dramatic joy” is put in the forefront when she is enumerating
-the aims of the story-teller. But her innate gifts as a teacher will
-not be suppressed. She objects to “didactic emphasis” and yet cannot
-say too much in favour of the moral effect that may be produced by the
-use of the story. She raises here the whole problem of direct _versus_
-indirect moral instruction, and decides in no uncertain sound in
-favour of the indirect form. There is a great deal to be said on the
-other side, but this is not the place to say it. On the wide question
-Miss Shedlock has on her side the great body of public opinion among
-professional teachers. The orthodox master proclaims that he is, of
-course, a moral instructor, but adds that in the schoolroom the less
-_said_ about the matter the better. Like the authoress, the orthodox
-teacher has much greater faith in example than in precept: so much
-faith indeed that in many schools precept does not get the place it
-deserves. But in the matter of story-telling the artistic element
-introduces something that is not necessarily involved in ordinary
-school work. For better or for worse modern opinion is against the
-explicitly stated lesson to be drawn from any tale that is told. Most
-people agree with Mark Twain's condemnation of “the moral that wags its
-crippled tail at the end of most school-girls' essays.”
-
-The justification of the old-fashioned “moral” was not artistic but
-didactic. It embodied the determination of the story-teller to see
-that his pupils got the full benefit of the lesson involved. If the
-moral is to be cut out, the story-teller must be sure that the lesson
-is so clearly conveyed in the text that any further elaboration would
-be felt as an impertinent addition. Whately assures us that men
-prefer metaphors to similes because in the simile the point is baldly
-stated, whereas in the metaphor the reader or hearer has to be his own
-interpreter. All education is in the last resort self-education, and
-Miss Shedlock sees to it that her stories compel her hearers to make
-the application she desires.
-
-In two other points modern opinion is prepared to give our authoress
-rein where our forefathers would have been inclined to restrain
-her. The sense of humour has come to its proper place in our
-schoolrooms--pupils' humour, be it understood, for there always was
-scope enough claimed for the humour of the teacher. So with the
-imagination. The time is past when this “mode of being conscious” was
-looked at askance in school. Parents and teachers no longer speak
-contemptuously about “the busy faculty,” and quote Genesis in its
-condemnation.
-
-Miss Shedlock has been well advised to keep to her legitimate subject
-instead of wandering afield in a Teutonic excursion into the realms of
-folk-lore. What parents and teachers want is the story as here and now
-existing and an account of how best to manipulate it. This want the
-book now before us admirably meets.
-
- JOHN ADAMS.
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION.
-
-
-STORY-TELLING is almost the oldest Art in the world--the first
-conscious form of literary communication. In the East it still
-survives, and it is not an uncommon thing to see a crowd at a
-street-corner held by the simple narration of a story. There are signs
-in the West of a growing interest in this ancient art, and we may yet
-live to see the renaissance of the troubadours and the minstrels whose
-appeal will then rival that of the mob orator or itinerant politician.
-One of the surest signs of a belief in the educational power of the
-story is its introduction into the curriculum of the Training-College
-and the classes of the Elementary and Secondary Schools. It is just at
-the time when the imagination is most keen--the mind being unhampered
-by accumulation of facts--that stories appeal most vividly and are
-retained for all time.
-
-It is to be hoped that some day stories will only be told to school
-groups by experts who have devoted special time and preparation
-to the art of telling them. It is a great fallacy to suppose that
-the systematic study of story-telling destroys the spontaneity of
-narrative. After a long experience, I find the exact converse to be
-true, namely, that it is only when one has overcome the mechanical
-difficulties that one can “let oneself go” in the dramatic interest of
-the story.
-
-By the expert story-teller I do not mean the professional elocutionist.
-The name--wrongly enough--has become associated in the mind of the
-public with persons who beat their breast, tear their hair, and
-declaim blood-curdling episodes. A decade or more ago, the drawing-room
-reciter was of this type, and was rapidly becoming the bugbear of
-social gatherings. The difference between the stilted reciter and
-the simple story-teller is perhaps best illustrated by an episode in
-Hans C. Andersen's immortal story of the Nightingale.[1] The real
-Nightingale and the artificial Nightingale have been bidden by the
-Emperor to unite their forces and to sing a duet at a Court function.
-The duet turns out most disastrously, and whilst the artificial
-Nightingale is singing his one solo for the thirty-third time, the
-real Nightingale flies out of the window back to the green wood--a
-true artist, instinctively choosing his right atmosphere. But the
-bandmaster--symbol of the pompous pedagogue--in trying to soothe
-the outraged feelings of the courtiers, says, “Because, you see,
-Ladies and Gentlemen, and, above all, Your Imperial Majesty, with the
-real nightingale you never can tell what you will hear, but in the
-artificial nightingale everything is decided beforehand. So it is, and
-so it must remain. It cannot be otherwise.”
-
-And as in the case of the two nightingales, so it is with the stilted
-reciter and the simple narrator: one is busy displaying the machinery,
-showing “how the tunes go”--the other is anxious to conceal the art.
-Simplicity should be the keynote of story-telling, but (and here the
-comparison with the Nightingale breaks down) it is a simplicity which
-comes after much training in self-control, and much hard work in
-overcoming the difficulties which beset the presentation.
-
-I do not mean that there are not born story-tellers who _could_ hold
-an audience without preparation, but they are so rare in number that
-we can afford to neglect them in our general consideration; for this
-work is dedicated to the average story-tellers anxious to make the
-best use of their dramatic ability, and it is to them that I present
-my plea for special study and preparation before telling a story to a
-group of children--that is, if they wish for the far-reaching effects
-I shall speak of later on. Only the preparation must be of a much less
-stereotyped nature than that by which the ordinary reciters are trained
-for their career.
-
-Some years ago, when I was in the States, I was asked to put into
-the form of lectures my views upon the educational value of telling
-stories. A sudden inspiration seized me. I began to cherish a dream of
-long hours to be spent in the British Museum, the Congressional Library
-in Washington and the Public Library at Boston--and this is the only
-portion of the dream which has been realized. I planned an elaborate
-scheme of research work which was to result in a magnificent (if musty)
-philological treatise. I thought of trying to discover by long and
-patient researches what species of lullaby were crooned by Egyptian
-mothers to their babes, and what were the elementary dramatic poems in
-vogue among Assyrian nursemaids which were the prototypes of “Little
-Jack Horner,” “Dickory, Dickory Dock,” and other nursery classics. I
-intended to follow up the study of these ancient documents by making
-an appendix of modern variants, showing what progress we had made--if
-any--among modern nations.
-
-But there came to me suddenly one day the remembrance of a scene from
-Racine's “Plaideurs” in which the counsel for the defence, eager to
-show how fundamental is his knowledge, begins his speech:--
-
-“Before the Creation of the World”--And the Judge (with a touch of
-weariness tempered by humour) suggests:--
-
-“Let us pass on to the Deluge.”
-
-And thus I, too, have “passed on to the Deluge.” I have abandoned an
-account of the origin and past of stories which at the best would
-only have displayed a little recently-acquired book-knowledge. When
-I thought of the number of scholars who could treat this part of the
-question so infinitely better than myself, I realized how much wiser
-it would be--though the task is much more humdrum--to deal with the
-present possibilities of story-telling for our generation of parents
-and teachers, and, leaving out the folk-lore side, devote myself to the
-story itself.
-
-My objects in urging the use of stories in the education of children
-are at least five-fold:
-
-_First_, to give them dramatic joy, for which they have a natural
-craving. _Secondly_, to develop a sense of humour, which is really
-a sense of proportion. _Thirdly_, to correct certain tendencies by
-showing the consequences in the career of the hero in the story. (Of
-this motive the children must be quite unconscious, and there must be
-no didactic emphasis.) _Fourthly_, by means of example, not precept,
-to present such ideals as will sooner or later (I care not which) be
-translated into action. _Fifthly_, to develop the imagination, which
-really takes in all the other points.
-
-So much for the purely educational side of the book. But the art of
-story-telling, quite apart from the subject, appeals not only to the
-educational world or to parents as parents, but also to a wider outside
-public, who may be interested in the purely human point of view.
-
-In great contrast to the lofty scheme I had originally proposed to
-myself, I now simply place before all those who are interested in
-the Art of Story-telling in any form the practical experience I have
-had in my travels across the United States and through England; and,
-because I am confining myself to personal experience which must of
-necessity be limited, I am very anxious not to appear dogmatic or to
-give the impression that I wish to lay down the law on the subject. But
-I hope my readers may profit by my errors, improve on my methods, and
-thus help to bring about the revival of an almost lost art--one which
-appeals more directly and more stirringly than any other method to the
-majority of listeners.
-
-In Sir Philip Sidney's “Defence of Poesy” we find these words:
-
- “Forsooth he cometh to you with a tale, which holdeth children from
- play, and old men from the chimney-corner, and pretending no more,
- doth intend the winning of the mind from wickedness to virtue even
- as the child is often brought to take most wholesome things by
- hiding them in such other as have a pleasant taste.”
-
- MARIE L. SHEDLOCK.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] See p. 138.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-THE DIFFICULTIES OF THE STORY.
-
-
-I PROPOSE to deal in this chapter with the difficulties or dangers
-which beset the path of the Story-teller, because, until we have
-overcome these, we cannot hope for the finished and artistic
-presentation which is to bring out the full value of the story.
-
-The difficulties are many, and yet they ought not to discourage the
-would-be narrators, but only show them how all-important is the
-preparation for the story, if it is to have the desired effect.
-
-I propose to illustrate by concrete examples, thereby hoping to achieve
-a two-fold result: one to fix the subject more clearly in the mind
-of the student--the other to use the Art of Story-telling to explain
-itself.
-
-I have chosen one or two instances from my own personal experience. The
-grave mistakes made in my own case may serve as a warning to others,
-who will find, however, that experience is the best teacher. For
-positive work, in the long run, we generally find out our own method.
-On the negative side, however, it is useful to have certain pitfalls
-pointed out to us, in order that we may save time by avoiding them: it
-is for this reason that I sound a note of warning. These are:--
-
-I.--_The danger of side issues._ An inexperienced story-teller is
-exposed to the temptation of breaking off from the main dramatic
-interest in a short exciting story, in order to introduce a side issue,
-which is often interesting and helpful, but should be reserved for a
-longer and less dramatic story. If the interest turns on some dramatic
-moment, the action must be quick and uninterrupted, or it will lose
-half its effect.
-
-I had been telling a class of young children the story of Polyphemus
-and Ulysses, and, just at the most dramatic moment in it, some impulse
-prompted me to go off on a side issue to describe the personal
-appearance of Ulysses.
-
-The children were visibly bored, but with polite indifference they
-listened to my elaborate description of the hero. If I had given them
-an actual description from Homer, I believe that the strength of
-the language would have appealed to their imagination (all the more
-strongly because they might not have understood the individual words)
-and have lessened their disappointment at the dramatic issue being
-postponed; but I trusted to my own lame verbal efforts, and signally
-failed. Attention flagged, fidgeting began, the atmosphere was rapidly
-becoming spoiled, in spite of the patience and toleration still shown
-by the children. At last, however, one little girl in the front row, as
-spokeswoman for the class, suddenly said: “If you please, before you go
-any further, do you mind telling us whether, after all, that Poly ...
-(slight pause) that (final attempt) _Polyanthus_ died?”
-
-Now, the remembrance of this question has been of extreme use to me in
-my career as a story-teller. I have realized that in a short dramatic
-story the mind of the listeners must be set at ease with regard to the
-ultimate fate of the special “Polyanthus” who takes the centre of the
-stage.
-
-I remember too the despair of a little boy at a dramatic representation
-of “Little Red Riding-Hood,” when that little person delayed the
-thrilling catastrophe with the Wolf, by singing a pleasant song on her
-way through the wood. “Oh, why,” said the little boy, “does she not
-get on?” And I quite shared his impatience.
-
-This warning is only necessary in connection with the short dramatic
-narrative. There are occasions when we can well afford to offer short
-descriptions for the sake of literary style, and for the purpose of
-enlarging the vocabulary of the child. I have found, however, in these
-cases, it is well to take the children into your confidence--warning
-them that they are to expect nothing particularly exciting in the way
-of dramatic event: they will then settle down with a freer mind (though
-the mood may include a touch of resignation) to the description you are
-about to offer them.[2]
-
-II.--_The danger of altering the story to suit special occasions._
-This is done sometimes from extreme conscientiousness, sometimes from
-sheer ignorance of the ways of children; it is the desire to protect
-them from knowledge which they already possess and with which they
-(equally conscientious) are apt to “turn and rend” the narrator. I
-remember once when I was telling the story of the siege of Troy to
-very young children, I suddenly felt anxious lest there should be
-anything in the story of the Rape of Helen not altogether suitable for
-the average age of the class--namely, nine years. I threw therefore, a
-domestic colouring over the whole subject, and presented an imaginary
-conversation between Paris and Helen, in which Paris tried to persuade
-Helen that she was a strong-minded woman, thrown away on a limited
-society in Sparta, and that she should come away and visit some of
-the institutions of the world with him, which would doubtless prove
-a mutually instructive journey.[3] I then gave the children the view
-taken by Herodotus that Helen never went to Troy, but was detained in
-Egypt. The children were much thrilled by the story, and responded most
-eagerly when, in my inexperience, I invited them to reproduce for the
-next day the tale I had just told them.
-
-A small child in the class presented me, as you will see, with the
-ethical problem from which I had so laboriously protected _her_. The
-essay ran:
-
- “Once upon a time the King of Troy's son was called Paris. And he
- went over to _Greace_ to see what it was like. And here he saw the
- beautiful Helen_er_, and likewise her husband Menela_yus_. And
- one day, Menelayus went out hunting, and left Paris and Helener
- alone, and Paris said: ‘Do you not feel _dul_ in this _palis_?’ And
- Helener said: ‘I feel very dull in this _pallice_,[4] and Paris
- said: 'Come away and see the world with me.’ So they _sliped_ off
- together, and they came to the King of Egypt, and _he_ said: ‘Who
- _is_ the young lady?’ So Paris told him. ‘But,’ said the King, ‘it
- is not _propper_ for you to go off with other people's _wifes_. So
- _Helener_ shall stop here.’ Paris stamped his foot. When Menelayus
- got home, _he_ stamped his foot. And he called round him all his
- soldiers, and they stood round Troy for eleven years. At last they
- thought it was no use _standing_ any longer, so they built a wooden
- horse in memory of Helener and the Trojans and it was taken into
- the town.”
-
-Now the mistake I made in my presentation was to lay particular stress
-on the reason for elopement by my careful readjustment, which really
-called more attention to the episode than was necessary for the age of
-my audience; and evidently caused confusion in the minds of some of the
-children who knew the story in its more accurate original form.
-
-Whilst travelling in the States, I was provided with a delightful
-appendix to this story. I had been telling Miss Longfellow and her
-sister the little girl's version of the Siege of Troy, and Mrs. Thorpe
-made the following comment, with the American humour whose dryness adds
-so much to its value:
-
-“I never realised before,” she said, “how glad the Greeks must have
-been to sit down even inside a horse, when they had been _standing_ for
-eleven years.”
-
-III.--_The danger of introducing unfamiliar words._ This is the very
-opposite danger of the one to which I have just alluded; it is the
-taking for granted that children are acquainted with the meaning of
-certain words upon which turns some important point in the story. We
-must not introduce (without at least a passing explanation) words
-which, if not rightly understood, would entirely alter the picture we
-wish to present.
-
-I had once promised to tell stories to an audience of Irish peasants,
-and I should like to state here that, though my travels have brought
-me into touch with almost every kind of audience, I have never found
-one where the atmosphere is so “self-prepared” as in that of a group
-of Irish peasants. To speak to them (especially on the subject of
-Fairy-tales) is like playing on a delicate harp: the response is so
-quick and the sympathy is so keen. Of course the subject of Fairy-tales
-is one which is completely familiar to them and comes into their
-every-day life. They have a feeling of awe with regard to fairies,
-which in some parts of Ireland is very deep.[5]
-
-On this particular occasion I had been warned by an artist friend
-who had kindly promised to sing songs between the stories, that my
-audience would be of varying age and almost entirely illiterate. Many
-of the older men and women, who could neither read nor write, had
-never been beyond their native village. I was warned to be very simple
-in my language and to explain any difficult words which might occur
-in the particular Indian story I had chosen for that night, namely,
-“The Tiger, The Jackal and the Brahman.”[6] It happened that the older
-portion of the audience had scarcely ever seen even the picture of wild
-animals. I profited by the advice, and offered a word of explanation
-with regard to the Tiger and the Jackal. I also explained the meaning
-of the word Brahman--at a proper distance, however, lest the audience
-should class him with wild animals. I then went on with my story, in
-the course of which I mentioned the Buffalo. In spite of the warning
-I had received, I found it impossible not to believe that the name of
-this animal would be familiar to any audience. I therefore went on with
-the sentence containing this word, and ended it thus: “And then the
-Brahman went a little further and met an old Buffalo turning a wheel.”
-
-The next day, whilst walking down the village street, I entered into
-conversation with a thirteen-year-old girl who had been in my audience
-the night before, and who began at once to repeat in her own words the
-Indian story in question. When she came to the particular sentence I
-have just quoted, I was greatly startled to hear _her_ version, which
-ran thus: “And the priest went on a little further, and he met another
-old gentleman pushing a wheelbarrow.” I stopped her at once, and not
-being able to identify the sentence as part of the story I had told, I
-questioned her a little more closely. I found that the word Buffalo had
-evidently conveyed to her mind an old “_buffer_” whose name was “Lo”
-(probably taken to be an Indian form of appellation, to be treated with
-tolerance though it might not be Irish in sound). Then, not knowing of
-any wheel more familiarly than that attached to a barrow, the young
-narrator completed the picture in her own mind--which, doubtless, was a
-vivid one--but one must admit that it had lost something of the Indian
-atmosphere which I had intended to gather about it.
-
-IV.--_The danger of claiming the co-operation of the class by means of
-questions._ The danger in this case is more serious for the teacher
-than the child, who rather enjoys the process and displays a fatal
-readiness to give any sort of answer if only he can play a part in the
-conversation. If we could depend on the children giving the kind of
-answer we expect, all might go well, and the danger would be lessened;
-but children have a perpetual way of frustrating our hopes in this
-direction, and of landing us in unexpected bypaths from which it is not
-always easy to return to the main road without a very violent reaction.
-As illustrative of this, I quote from “The Madness of Philip,” by
-Josephine Dodge Daskam Bacon, a truly delightful essay on Child
-Psychology, in the guise of the lightest of stories.
-
-The scene takes place in a Kindergarten--where a bold and fearless
-visitor has undertaken to tell a story on the spur of the moment to a
-group of restless children.
-
-She opens thus: “Yesterday, children, as I came out of my yard, what do
-you think I saw?”
-
-The elaborately concealed surprise in store was so obvious that
-Marantha rose to the occasion and suggested “an el'phunt.”
-
-“Why, no. Why should I see an elephant in my yard? It was not _nearly_
-so big as that--it was a little thing.”
-
-“A fish,” ventured Eddy Brown, whose eye fell upon the aquarium in the
-corner. The raconteuse smiled patiently.
-
-“Now, how could a fish, a live fish, get into my front yard?”
-
-“A dead fish,” says Eddy. He had never been known to relinquish
-voluntarily an idea.
-
-“No; it was a little kitten,” said the story-teller decidedly. “A
-little white kitten. She was standing right near a big puddle of water.
-Now, what else do you think I saw?”
-
-“Another kitten,” suggests Marantha, conservatively.
-
-“No; it was a big Newfoundland dog. He saw the little kitten near the
-water. Now, cats don't like water, do they? What do they like?”
-
-“Mice,” said Joseph Zukoffsky abruptly.
-
-“Well, yes, they do; but there were no mice in my yard. I'm sure you
-know what I mean. If they don't like _water_, _what_ do they like?”
-
-“Milk,” cried Sarah Fuller confidently.
-
-“They like a dry place,” said Mrs. R. B. Smith. “Now, what do you
-suppose the dog did?”
-
-It may be that successive failures had disheartened the listeners. It
-may be that the very range of choice presented to them and the dog
-alike dazzled their imagination. At all events, they made no answer.
-
-“Nobody knows what the dog did?” repeated the story-teller
-encouragingly. “What would you do if you saw a little kitten like that?”
-
-And Philip remarked gloomily:
-
-“I'd pull its tail.”
-
-“And what do the rest of you think? I hope you are not as cruel as that
-little boy.”
-
-A jealous desire to share Philip's success prompted the quick response:
-
-“I'd pull it too.”
-
-Now, the reason of the total failure of this story was the inability
-to draw any real response from the children, partly because of the
-hopeless vagueness of the questions, partly because, there being no
-time for reflection, the children said the first thing that comes into
-their head without any reference to their real thoughts on the subject.
-
-I cannot imagine anything less like the enlightened methods of the best
-Kindergarten teaching. Had Mrs. R. B. Smith been a real, and not a
-fictional, person, it would certainly have been her last appearance as
-a _raconteuse_ in this educational institution.
-
-V.--_The difficulty of gauging the effect of a story upon the
-audience._ This rises from lack of observation and experience; it
-is the want of these qualities which leads to the adoption of such
-a method as I have just presented. We learn in time that want of
-expression on the faces of the audience and want of any kind of
-external response does not always mean either lack of interest or
-attention. There is often real interest deep down, but no power, or
-perhaps no wish, to display that interest, which is deliberately
-concealed at times so as to protect oneself from questions which may be
-put.
-
-I was speaking on one occasion in Davenport in the State of Iowa. I had
-been engaged to deliver a lecture to adults on the “Fun and Philosophy”
-of Hans C. Andersen's Fairy Tales. When I arrived at the Hall, I was
-surprised and somewhat annoyed to find four small boys sitting in
-the front row. They seemed to be about ten years old, and, knowing
-pretty well from experience what boys of that age usually like, I felt
-rather anxious as to what would happen, and I must confess that for
-once I wished children had the useful faculty, developed in adults,
-of successfully concealing their feelings. Any hopes I had conceived
-on this point were speedily shattered. After listening to the first
-few sentences, two of the boys evidently recognised the futility of
-bestowing any further attention on the subject, and consoled themselves
-for the dulness of the occasion by starting a “scrap.” I watched this
-proceeding for a minute with great interest, but soon recalled the
-fact that I had not been engaged in the capacity of spectator, so,
-addressing the antagonists in as severe a manner as I could assume, I
-said: “Boys, I shall have to ask you to go to the back of the hall.”
-They responded with much alacrity, and evident gratitude, and even
-exceeded my instructions by leaving the hall altogether.
-
-My sympathy was now transferred to the two remaining boys, who sat
-motionless, and one of them never took his eyes off me during the whole
-lecture. I feared lest they might be simply cowed by the treatment
-meted out to their companions, whose joy in their release had been
-somewhat tempered by the disgrace of ejection. I felt sorry that I
-could not provide these model boys with a less ignominious retreat,
-and I cast about in my mind how I could make it up to them. At the end
-of the lecture, I addressed them personally and, congratulating them
-on their quiet behaviour, said that, as I feared the main part of the
-lecture could scarcely have interested them, I should conclude, not
-with the story I had intended for the adults, but with a special story
-for them, as a reward for their good behaviour. I then told Hans C.
-Andersen's “Jack the Dullard,” which I have always found to be a great
-favourite with boys. These particular youths smiled very faintly, and
-left any expression of enthusiasm to the adult portion of the audience.
-My hostess, who was eager to know what the boys thought, enquired of
-them how they liked the lecture. The elder one said guardedly: “I liked
-it very well, but I was _piqued_ at her underrating my appreciation of
-Hans Andersen.”
-
-I was struck with the entirely erroneous impression I had received of
-the effect I was producing upon the boys. I was thankful at least that
-a passing allusion to Schopenhauer in my lecture possibly provided some
-interest for this “young old” child.
-
-I felt somewhat in the position of a Doctor of Divinity in Canada to
-whom a small child confided the fact that she had written a parody on
-“The Three Fishers,” but that it had dropped into the fire. The Doctor
-made some facetious rejoinder about the impertinence of the flames in
-consuming her manuscript. The child reproved him in these grave words:
-“Nature, you know, _is_ Nature, and her laws are inviolable.”
-
-VI.--_The danger of over illustration._ After long experience, and
-after considering the effect produced on children when pictures are
-shown to them during the narration, I have come to the conclusion
-that the appeal to the eye and the ear at the same time is of
-doubtful value, and has, generally speaking, a distracting effect;
-the concentration on one channel of communication attracts and holds
-the attention more completely. I was confirmed in this theory when I
-addressed an audience of blind people for the first time, and noticed
-how closely they attended, and how much easier it seemed to them,
-because they were so completely “undistracted by the sights around
-them.”[7]
-
-I have often suggested to young teachers two experiments in support
-of this theory. They are not practical experiments, nor could they
-be repeated often with the same audience, but they are intensely
-interesting and they serve to show the _actual_ effect of appealing to
-one sense at a time. The first of these experiments is to take a small
-group of children and suggest that they should close their eyes whilst
-you tell them a story. You will then notice how much more attention
-is given to the intonation and inflection of the voice. The reason
-is obvious: because there is nothing to distract the attention, it
-is concentrated on the only thing offered to the listeners (that is,
-sound), to enable them to seize the dramatic interest of the story.
-
-We find an example of the dramatic power of the voice in its appeal
-to the imagination, in one of the tributes brought by an old pupil to
-Thomas Edward Brown (Master at Clifton College):
-
- “My earliest recollection is that his was the most vivid teaching I
- ever received: great width of view and poetical, almost passionate,
- power of presentment. We were reading Froude's History, and I shall
- never forget how it was Brown's words, Brown's voice, not the
- historian's, that made me feel the great democratic function which
- the monasteries performed in England: the view became alive in his
- mouth.”
-
-And in another passage:
-
- “All set forth with such dramatic force and aided by such a
- splendid voice, left an indelible impression on my mind.” (_Letters
- of T. E. Brown_, p. 55.)
-
-A second experiment, and a much more subtle and difficult one, is to
-take the same group of children on another occasion, telling them a
-story in pantomime form, giving them first the briefest outline of
-it. In this case this must be of the simplest construction, until
-the children are able (if you continue the experiment) to look for
-something more subtle.
-
-I have never forgotten the marvellous performance of a play given
-in London, many years ago, entirely in pantomime form. The play was
-called _L'Enfant Prodigue_, and was presented by a company of French
-artists. It would be almost impossible to exaggerate the strength of
-that “silent appeal” to the public. One was so unaccustomed to reading
-meaning and development of character into gesture and facial expression
-that it was really a revelation to most present--certainly to all
-Anglo-Saxons.
-
-I cannot touch on this subject without admitting the enormous dramatic
-value connected with the kinematograph. Though it can never take
-the place of an actual performance, whether in story form or on
-the stage, it has a real educational value in its possibilities of
-representation which it is difficult to over-estimate, and I believe
-that its introduction into the school curriculum, under the strictest
-supervision, will be of extraordinary benefit. The movement, in its
-present chaotic condition, and in the hands of a commercial management,
-is more likely to stifle than to awaken or stimulate the imagination,
-but the educational world is fully alive to the danger, and I am
-convinced that in the future of the movement good will predominate.
-
-The real value of the cinematograph in connection with stories is that
-it provides the background that is wanting to the inner vision of the
-average child, and does not prevent its imagination from filling in
-the details later. For instance, it would be quite impossible for the
-average child to get an idea from mere word-painting of the atmosphere
-of the Polar regions, as represented lately on the film in connection
-with Captain Scott's expedition; but any stories told later on about
-these regions would have an infinitely greater interest.
-
-There is, however, a real danger in using pictures to illustrate the
-story--especially if it be one which contains a direct appeal to the
-imagination of the child (as quite distinct from the stories which deal
-with facts)--which is that you force the whole audience of children
-to see the same picture, instead of giving each individual child the
-chance of making his own mental picture, which is of far greater joy,
-and of much greater educational value, since by this process the child
-co-operates with you instead of having all the work done for it.
-
-Queyrat, in his work on “La Logique chez l'Enfant” quotes Madame
-Necker de Saussure:[8] “To children and animals actual objects present
-themselves, not the terms of their manifestations. For them thinking
-is seeing over again, it is going through the sensations that the real
-object would have produced. Everything which goes on within them is
-in the form of pictures, or rather, inanimate scenes in which Life is
-partially reproduced.... Since the child has, as yet, no capacity for
-abstraction, he finds a stimulating power in words and a suggestive
-inspiration which holds him enchanted. They awaken vividly-coloured
-images, pictures far more brilliant than would be called into being by
-the objects themselves.”
-
-Surely, if this be true, we are taking from children that rare power of
-mental visualisation by offering to their outward vision an _actual_
-picture.
-
-I was struck with the following note by a critic of the “Outlook,”
-referring to a Japanese play but bearing directly on the subject in
-hand.
-
-“First, we should be inclined to put insistence upon appeal by
-_imagination_. Nothing is built up by lath and canvas; everything has
-to be created by the poet's speech.”
-
-He alludes to the decoration of one of the scenes, which consists
-of three pines, showing what can be conjured up in the mind of the
-spectator.
-
- Ah, yes. Unfolding now before my eyes
- The views I know: the Forest, River, Sea
- And Mist--the scenes of Ono now expand.
-
-I have often heard objections raised to this theory by teachers dealing
-with children whose knowledge of objects outside their own little
-limited circle is so scanty that words we use without a suspicion that
-they are unfamiliar are really foreign expressions to them. Such words
-as sea, woods, fields, mountains would mean nothing to them, unless
-some explanation were offered. To these objections I have replied that
-where we are dealing with objects that can actually be seen with the
-bodily eyes, then it is quite legitimate to show pictures of those
-objects before you begin the story, so that the distraction between the
-actual and mental presentation may not cause confusion; but, as the
-foregoing example shows, we should endeavour to accustom the children
-to seeing much more than the mere objects themselves, and in dealing
-with abstract qualities we must rely solely on the power and choice of
-words and dramatic qualities of presentation, nor need we feel anxious
-if the response is not immediate, or even if it is not quick and
-eager.[9]
-
-VII.--_The danger of obscuring the point of the story with too many
-details._ This is not peculiar to teachers, nor is it only shown in
-the narrative form. I have often heard really brilliant after-dinner
-stories marred by this defect. One remembers the attempt made by Sancho
-Panza to tell a story to Don Quixote, and I have always felt a keen
-sympathy with the latter in his impatience over the recital.
-
- “‘In a village of Estramadura there was a shepherd--no, I mean
- a goatherd--which shepherd--or goatherd--as my story says, was
- called Lope Ruiz--and this Lope Ruiz was in love with a shepherdess
- called Torralva, who was daughter to a rich herdsman, and this rich
- herdsman----’
-
- ‘If this be thy story, Sancho,’ said Don Quixote, ‘thou wilt not
- have done these two days. Tell it concisely like a man of sense, or
- else say no more.’
-
- ‘I tell it in the manner they tell all stories in my country,’
- answered Sancho, ‘and I cannot tell it otherwise, nor ought your
- Worship to require me to make new customs.’
-
- ‘Tell it as thou wilt, then,’ said Don Quixote; ‘since it is the
- will of fate that I should hear it, go on.’
-
- Sancho continued:
-
- ‘He looked about him until he espied a fisherman with a boat
- near him, but so small that it could only hold one person and
- one goat. The fisherman got into the boat and carried over one
- goat; he returned and carried another; he came back again and
- carried another. Pray, sir, keep an account of the goats which the
- fisherman is carrying over, for if you lose count of a single one,
- the story ends, and it will be impossible to tell a word more....
- I go on, then.... He returned for another goat, and another, and
- another and another----’
-
- ‘_Suppose_ them all carried over,’ said Don Quixote, ‘or thou wilt
- not have finished carrying them this twelve months.’
-
- ‘Tell me, how many have passed already?’ said Sancho.
-
- ‘How should I know?’ answered Don Quixote.
-
- ‘See there, now! Did I not tell thee to keep an exact account?
- There is an end of the story. I can go no further.’
-
- ‘How can this be?’ said Don Quixote. ‘Is it so essential to the
- story to know the exact number of goats that passed over, that if
- one error be made the story can proceed no further?’
-
- ‘Even so,’ said Sancho Panza.”
-
-VIII.--_The danger of over-explanation._ Again, another danger lurks in
-the temptation to offer over much explanation of the story, which is
-common to most story-tellers. This is fatal to the artistic success of
-any story, but it is even more serious in connection with stories told
-from an educational point of view, because it hampers the imagination
-of the listener; and since the development of that faculty is one of
-our chief aims in telling these stories, we must let it have free play,
-nor must we test the effect, as I have said before, by the material
-method of asking questions. My own experience is that the fewer
-explanations you offer (provided you have been careful with the choice
-of your material and artistic in the presentation) the more readily the
-child will supplement by his own thinking power what is necessary for
-the understanding of the story.
-
-Queyrat says: “A child has no need of seizing on the exact meaning of
-words; on the contrary, a certain lack of precision seems to stimulate
-his imagination only the more vigorously, since it gives it a broader
-liberty and firmer independence.”[10]
-
-IX.--One special danger lies in the _lowering of the standard of the
-story_ in order to cater to the undeveloped taste of the child. I am
-alluding here only to the story which is presented from the educational
-point of view. There are moments of relaxation in a child's life, as in
-that of an adult, when a lighter taste can be gratified. I am alluding
-now to the standard of story for school purposes.
-
-There is one development of the subject which seems to have been very
-little considered either in the United States or in our own country,
-namely, the telling of stories to _old_ people, and that not only in
-institutions or in quiet country villages, but in the heart of the
-busy cities and in the homes of these old people. How often, when the
-young people are able to enjoy outside amusements, the old people,
-necessarily confined to the chimney-corner and many unable to read
-much for themselves, might return to the joy of their childhood by
-hearing some of the old stories told them in dramatic form. Here is
-a delightful occupation for those of the leisured class who have the
-gift, and a much more effective way of capturing attention than the
-more usual form of reading aloud.
-
-Lady Gregory, in talking to the workhouse folk in Ireland, was moved
-by the strange contrast between the poverty of the tellers and the
-splendours of the tale.
-
-She says: “The stories they love are of quite visionary things; of
-swans that turn into kings' daughters, and of castles with crowns
-over the doors, and of lovers' flight on the backs of eagles, and
-music-loving witches, and journeys to the other world, and sleeps that
-last for 700 years.”
-
-I fear it is only the Celtic imagination that will glory in such
-romantic material; but I am sure the men and women of the poorhouse are
-much more interested than we are apt to think in stories outside the
-small circle of their lives.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[2] With regard to the right moment for choosing this kind of story, I
-shall return to the subject in a later chapter.
-
-[3] I venture to hope (at this long distance of years) that my language
-in telling the story was more simple than appears from this account.
-
-[4] This difference of spelling in the same essay will be much
-appreciated by those who know how gladly children offer an
-orthographical alternative, in hopes that one if not the other may
-satisfy the exigency of the situation.
-
-[5] I refer, of course, to the Irish in their native atmosphere.
-
-[6] See List of Stories.
-
-[7] This was at the Congressional Library at Washington.
-
-[8] Page 55.
-
-[9] In further illustration of this point see “When Burbage played”
-(Austin Dobson) and “In the Nursery” (Hans C. Andersen).
-
-[10] From “Les Jeux des Enfants,” page 16.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-THE ESSENTIALS OF THE STORY.
-
-
-IT would be a truism to suggest that dramatic instinct and dramatic
-power of expression are naturally the first essentials for success in
-the Art of Story-telling, and that, without these, no story-teller
-would go very far; but I maintain that, even with these gifts, no
-high standard of performance will be reached without certain other
-qualities--among the first of which I place _apparent_ simplicity,
-which is really the _art_ of _concealing_ the art.
-
-I am speaking here of the public story-teller, or of the teachers with
-a group of children--not the spontaneous (and most rare) power of
-telling stories at the fireside by some gifted village grandmother,
-such as Béranger gives us in his poem, _Souvenirs du Peuple_:
-
- Mes enfants, dans ce village,
- Suivi de rois, il passa;
- Voilà bien longtemps de ça;
- Je venais d'entrer en ménage.
- A pied grimpant le côteau,
- Où pour voir je m'étais mise.
- Il avait petit chapeau
- Avec redingote grise.
- Près de lui je me troublai!
- Il me dit: Bonjour, ma chère,
- Bonjour, ma chère.
- Il vous a parlé, grand'mère?
- Il vous a parlé?
-
-I am sceptical enough to think that it is not the spontaneity of the
-grandmother but the art of Béranger which enhances the effect of the
-story told in the poem.
-
-This intimate form of narration, which is delightful in its special
-surroundings, would fail to _reach_, much less _hold_, a large
-audience, _not_ because of its simplicity but often because of the want
-of skill in arranging material and of the artistic sense of selection
-which brings the interest to a focus and arranges the sidelights. In
-short, the simplicity we need for the ordinary purpose is that which
-comes from ease and produces a sense of being able to let ourselves go,
-because we have thought out our effects: it is when we translate our
-instinct into art that the story becomes finished and complete.
-
-I find it necessary to emphasise this point because people are apt
-to confuse simplicity of delivery with carelessness of utterance,
-loose stringing of sentences of which the only connections seem to be
-the ever-recurring use of “and” and “so,” and “er ...”--this latter
-inarticulate sound has done more to ruin a story and distract the
-audience than many more glaring errors of dramatic form.
-
-The real simplicity holds the audience because the lack of apparent
-effort in the artist has the most comforting effect upon the listener.
-It is like turning from the whirring machinery of process to the
-finished article, bearing no trace of manufacture except in the harmony
-and beauty of the whole, from which we realise that the individual
-parts have received all proper attention.
-
-And what really brings about this apparent simplicity which ensures the
-success of the story? It has been admirably expressed in a passage from
-Henry James's lecture on Balzac:
-
-“The fault in the Artist which amounts most completely to a failure of
-dignity is the absence of _saturation with his idea_. When saturation
-fails, no other real presence avails, as when, on the other hand, it
-operates, no failure of method fatally interferes.”
-
-I now offer two illustrations of the effect of this saturation, one to
-show that the failure of method does not prevent successful effect, the
-other to show that when it is combined with the necessary secondary
-qualities the perfection of art is reached.
-
-In illustration of the first point, I recall an experience in the North
-of England when the Head Mistress of an elementary school asked me to
-hear a young, inexperienced girl tell a story to a group of very small
-children.
-
-When she began, I felt somewhat hopeless, because of the complete
-failure of method. She seemed to have all the faults most damaging to
-the success of a speaker. Her voice was harsh, her gestures awkward,
-her manner was restless and melodramatic; but as she went on, I soon
-began to discount all these faults and, in truth, I soon forgot
-about them, for so absorbed was she in her story, so saturated with
-her subject, that she quickly communicated her own interest to her
-audience, and the children were absolutely spellbound.
-
-The other illustration is connected with a memorable peep behind the
-stage, when the late M. Coquelin had invited me to see him in the
-green-room between the first and second Acts of “L'Abbé Constantin,”
-one of the plays given during his last season in London, the year
-before his death. The last time I had met M. Coquelin was at a
-dinner-party, where I had been dazzled by the brilliant conversation
-of this great artist in the rôle of a man of the world. But on this
-occasion, I met the simple, kindly priest, so absorbed in his rôle
-that he inspired me with the wish to offer a donation for his poor,
-and on taking leave to ask for his blessing for myself. Whilst
-talking to him, I had felt puzzled: it was only when I had left him
-that I realised what had happened--namely, that he was too thoroughly
-saturated with his subject to be able to drop his rôle during the
-interval, in order to assume the more ordinary one of host and man of
-the world.
-
-Now, it is this spirit I would wish to inculcate into the would-be
-story-tellers. If they would apply themselves in this manner to their
-work, it would bring about a revolution in the art of presentation,
-that is, in the art of teaching. The difficulty of the practical
-application of this theory is the constant plea, on the part of the
-teachers, that there is not the time to work for such a standard in an
-art which is so apparently simple that the work expended on it would
-never be appreciated.
-
-My answer to this objection is that, though the counsel of perfection
-would be to devote a great deal of time to the story, so as to prepare
-the atmosphere quite as much as the mere action of the little drama
-(just as photographers use time exposure to obtain sky effects, as well
-as the more definite objects in the picture), yet it is not so much a
-question of time as concentration on the subject which is one of the
-chief factors in the preparation of the story.
-
-So many story-tellers are satisfied with cheap results, and most
-audiences are not critical enough to encourage a high standard.[11] The
-method of “showing the machinery” has more immediate results, and it is
-easy to become discouraged over the drudgery which is not necessary to
-secure the approbation of the largest number. But, since I am dealing
-with the essentials of really good story-telling, I may be pardoned for
-suggesting the highest standard and the means for reaching it.
-
-Therefore I maintain that capacity for work, and even drudgery, is
-among the essentials of story work. Personally I know of nothing more
-interesting than to watch the story grow gradually from mere outline
-into a dramatic whole. It is the same pleasure, I imagine, which is
-felt over the gradual development of a beautiful design on a loom.
-I do not mean machine-made work, which has to be done under adverse
-conditions, in a certain time, and is similar to thousands of other
-pieces of work; but that work upon which we can bestow unlimited time
-and concentrated thought.
-
-The special joy in the slowly-prepared story comes in the exciting
-moment when the persons, or even the inanimate objects, become alive
-and move as of themselves.
-
-I remember spending two or three discouraging weeks with Andersen's
-story of the “Adventures of a Beetle.” I passed through times of
-great depression, because all the little creatures--beetles, earwigs,
-frogs, etc.--behaved in such a conventional, stilted way (instead of
-displaying the strong individuality which Andersen had bestowed upon
-them) that I began to despair of presenting a live company at all.
-
-But one day the Beetle, so to speak, “took the stage,” and at once
-there was life and animation among the minor characters. Then the main
-work was done, and there remained only the comparatively easy task of
-guiding the movement of the little drama, suggesting side issues and
-polishing the details, always keeping a careful eye on the Beetle,
-that he might “gang his ain gait” and preserve to the full his own
-individuality.
-
-There is a tendency in preparing stories to begin with detail work
-(often a gesture or side issue which one has remembered from hearing
-a story told), but if this is done before the contemplative period,
-only scrappy, jerky and ineffective results are obtained, on which one
-cannot count for dramatic effects. This kind of preparation reminds one
-of a young peasant woman who was taken to see a performance of _Wilhelm
-Tell_, and when questioned as to the plot, could only sum it up by
-saying, “I know some fruit was shot at.”[12]
-
-I realise the extreme difficulty for teachers to devote the necessary
-time to the perfecting of the stories they tell in school, because
-this is only one of the subjects they have to take in an already
-over-crowded curriculum. To them I would offer this practical advice:
-_Do not be afraid to repeat your stories_.[13] If you did not undertake
-more than seven stories a year (chosen with infinite care), and if you
-repeated these stories six times during the year of forty-two weeks,
-you would be able to do artistic (and therefore lasting) work; you
-would give a very great deal of pleasure to the children, who delight
-in hearing a story many times. You would be able to avoid the direct
-moral application (to which subject I shall return later on); for
-each time a child hears a story artistically told, a little more of
-the meaning underlying the simple story will come to him without any
-explanation on your part. The habit of doing one's best, instead of
-one's second-best, means, in the long run, that one has no interest
-except in the preparation of the best, and the stories, few in number,
-polished and finished in style, will have an effect of which one can
-scarcely over-state the importance.
-
-In the story of the Swineherd,[14] Hans Andersen says:
-
-“On the grave of the Prince's father there grew a rose-tree. It only
-bloomed once in five years, and only bore one rose. But what a rose!
-Its perfume was so exquisite that whoever smelt it forgot at once all
-his cares and sorrows.”
-
-Lafcadio Hearn says: “Time weeds out the errors and stupidities of
-cheap success, and presents the Truth. It takes, like the aloe, a
-long time to flower, but the blossom is all the more precious when it
-appears.”
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[11] A noted Greek gymnast struck his pupil, though he was applauded
-by the whole assembly. “You did it clumsily, and not as you ought, for
-these people would never have praised you for anything really artistic.”
-
-[12] For further details on the question of preparation of the story,
-see chapter on “Questions asked by Teachers.”
-
-[13] Sully says that children love exact repetition because of the
-intense enjoyment bound up with the process of imaginative realisation.
-
-[14] See p. 150.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-
-THE ARTIFICES OF STORY-TELLING.
-
-
-BY this term I do not mean anything against the gospel of simplicity
-which I am so constantly preaching, but, for want of a better term,
-I use the word “artifice” to express the mechanical devices by which
-we endeavour to attract and hold the attention of the audience. The
-art of telling stories is, in truth, much more difficult than acting
-a part on the stage: first, because the narrator is responsible for
-the whole drama and the whole atmosphere which surrounds it. He has to
-live the life of each character and understand the relation which each
-bears to the whole. Secondly, because the stage is a miniature one,
-gestures and movements must all be so adjusted as not to destroy the
-sense of proportion. I have often noticed that actors, accustomed to
-the more roomy public stage, are apt to be too broad in their gestures
-and movements when they tell a story. The special training for the
-Story-teller should consist not only in the training of the voice and
-in choice of language, but above all in power of _delicate_ suggestion,
-which cannot always be used on the stage because this is hampered by
-the presence of _actual things_. The Story-teller has to present these
-things to the more delicate organism of the “inward eye.”
-
-So deeply convinced am I of the miniature character of the
-Story-telling Art that I do not believe you can ever get a perfectly
-artistic presentation of this kind in a very large hall or before a
-very large audience.
-
-I have made experiments along this line, having twice told a story to
-an audience exceeding five thousand, in the States,[15] but on both
-occasions, though the dramatic reaction upon oneself from the response
-of so large an audience was both gratifying and stimulating, I was
-forced to sacrifice the delicacy of the story and to take from its
-artistic value by the necessity of emphasis, in order to be heard by
-all present.
-
-Emphasis is the bane of all story-telling, for it destroys the
-delicacy, and the whole performance suggests a struggle in conveying
-the message; the indecision of the victory leaves the audience restless
-and unsatisfied.
-
-Then, again, as compared with acting on the stage, in telling a story
-you miss the help of effective entrances and exits, the footlights, the
-costume, the facial expression of your fellow-actor which interprets
-so much of what you yourself say without further elaboration on your
-part; for, in the story, in case of a dialogue which necessitates great
-subtlety and quickness in facial expression and gesture, you have to be
-both speaker and listener.
-
-Now, of what artifices can we make use to take the place of all the
-extraneous help offered to actors on the stage?
-
-First and foremost, as a means of suddenly pulling up the attention of
-the audience, is the judicious Art of Pausing.
-
-For those who have not actually had experience in the matter, this
-advice will seem trite and unnecessary, but those who have even a
-little experience will realise with me the extraordinary efficacy of
-this very simple means. It is really what Coquelin spoke of as a “high
-light,” where the interest is focussed, as it were, to a point.
-
-I have tried this simple art of _pausing_ with every kind of audience,
-and I have very rarely known it to fail. It is very difficult to
-offer a concrete example of this, unless one is giving a “live”
-representation; but I shall make an attempt, and at least I shall hope
-to make myself understood by those who have heard me tell stories.
-
-In Hans C. Andersen's “Princess and the Pea,”[16] the King goes down to
-open the door himself. Now, you may make this point in two ways. You
-may either say: “And then the King went to the door, and at the door
-there stood a real Princess,” or, “And then the King went to the door,
-and at the door there stood--(pause)--a real Princess.”
-
-It is difficult to exaggerate the difference of effect produced
-by so slight a cause.[17] With children it means an unconscious
-curiosity which expresses itself in a sudden muscular tension--there
-is just time, during that instant's pause, to _feel_, though not
-to _formulate_, the question: “What is standing at the door?” By
-this means half your work of holding the attention is accomplished.
-It is not necessary for me to enter into the psychological reason
-of this, but I strongly recommend those who are interested in the
-question to read the chapter in Ribot's work on this subject, _Essai
-sur l'Imagination créatrice_, as well as Mr. Keatinge's work on
-“Suggestion.”
-
-I would advise all teachers to revise their stories with a view to
-introducing the judicious Pause, and to vary its use according to the
-age, the number and, above all, the mood of the audience. Experience
-alone can ensure success in this matter. It has taken me many years to
-realise the importance of this artifice.
-
-Among other means of holding the attention of the audience and helping
-to bring out the points of the story is the use of gesture. I consider,
-however, it must be a sparing use, and not of a broad or definite
-character. We shall never improve on the advice given by Hamlet to
-the actors on this subject: “See that ye o'erstep not the modesty of
-Nature.”
-
-And yet, perhaps, it is not necessary to warn Story-tellers against
-_abuse_ of gesture: it is more helpful to encourage them in the use
-of it, especially in Anglo-Saxon countries, where we are fearful of
-expressing ourselves in this way, and, when we do, the gesture often
-lacks subtlety. The Anglo-Saxon, when he does move at all, moves in
-solid blocks--a whole arm, a whole leg, the whole body--but if you
-watch a Frenchman or an Italian in conversation, you suddenly realise
-how varied and subtle are the things which can be suggested by the mere
-turn of the wrist or the movement of a finger. The power of the hand
-has been so wonderfully summed up in a passage from Quintilian that I
-am justified in offering it to all those who wish to realise what can
-be done by gesture:
-
-“As to the hands, without the aid of which all delivery would be
-deficient and weak, it can scarcely be told of what a variety of
-motions they are susceptible, since they almost equal in expression
-the power of language itself. For other parts of the body assist the
-speaker, but these, I may almost say, speak themselves. With our hands
-we ask, promise, call persons to us and send them away, threaten,
-supplicate, intimate dislike or fear; with our hands we signify
-joy, grief, doubt, acknowledgment, penitence, and indicate measure,
-quantity, number and time. Have not our hands the power of inciting,
-of restraining, or beseeching, of testifying approbation.... So that
-amidst the great diversity of tongues pervading all nations and
-peoples, the language of the hands appears to be a language common to
-all men.” (From “Education of an Orator,” Book II, Chap. 3.)
-
-One of the most effective artifices in telling stories to young
-children is the use of mimicry--the imitation of animals' voices and
-sounds in general is of never-ending joy to the listeners. Only, I
-should wish to introduce a note of grave warning in connection with
-this subject. This special artifice can only be used by such narrators
-as have special aptitude and gifts in this direction. There are many
-people with good imaginative power but wholly lacking in the power of
-mimicry, whose efforts in this direction, however painstaking, would
-remain grotesque and therefore ineffective. When listening to such
-performances (of which children are strangely critical) one is reminded
-of the French story in which the amateur animal painter is showing her
-picture to an undiscriminating friend:
-
-“Ah!” says the friend, “this is surely meant for a lion?”
-
-“No,” says the artist, with some slight show of temper; “it is my
-little lap-dog.”
-
-Another artifice which is particularly successful with very small
-children is to ensure their attention by inviting their co-operation
-before you actually begin the story. The following has proved quite
-effective as a short introduction to my stories when I was addressing
-large audiences of children:
-
-“Do you know that last night I had a very strange dream, which I am
-going to tell you before I begin the stories. I dreamed that I was
-walking along the streets of---- (here would follow the town in which
-I happened to be speaking), with a large bundle on my shoulders, and
-this bundle was full of stories which I had been collecting all over
-the world in different countries; and I was shouting at the top of my
-voice: ‘Stories! Stories! Stories! Who will listen to my stories?’
-And the children came flocking round me in my dream, saying: ‘Tell
-_us_ your stories. _We_ will listen to your stories.’ So I pulled out
-a story from my big bundle and I began in a most excited way, ‘Once
-upon a time there lived a King and a Queen who had no children, and
-they----’ Here a little boy, _very_ much like that little boy I see
-sitting in the front row, stopped me, saying: ‘Oh! I know _that_ old
-story; it's Sleeping Beauty.’
-
-“So I pulled out a second story, and began: ‘Once upon a time there was
-a little girl who was sent by her mother to visit her grandmother----’
-Then a little girl, so much like the one sitting at the end of the
-second row, said: 'Oh! everybody knows that story! It's----’”
-
-Here I would make a judicious pause, and then the children in the
-audience would shout in chorus, with joyful superiority: “Little Red
-Riding-Hood!” (before I had time to explain that the children in my
-dream had done the same).
-
-This method I repeated two or three times, being careful to choose very
-well-known stories. By this time the children were all encouraged and
-stimulated. I usually finished with congratulations on the number of
-stories they knew, expressing a hope that some of those I was going to
-tell that afternoon would be new to them.
-
-I have rarely found this plan fail for establishing a friendly relation
-between oneself and the juvenile audience.
-
-It is often a matter of great difficulty, not to _win_ the attention of
-an audience but to _keep_ it, and one of the most subtle artifices is
-to let the audience down (without their perceiving it) after a dramatic
-situation, so that the reaction may prepare them for the interest of
-the next situation.
-
-An excellent instance of this is to be found in Rudyard Kipling's story
-of “The Cat that walked ...” where the repetition of words acts as a
-sort of sedative until you realise the beginning of a fresh situation.
-
-The great point is never to let the audience quite down, that is, in
-stories which depend on dramatic situations. It is just a question
-of shade and colour in the language. If you are telling a story in
-sections, and spread over two or three occasions, you should always
-stop at an exciting moment. It encourages speculation between whiles in
-the children's minds, which increases their interest when the story is
-taken up again.
-
-Another very necessary quality in the mere artifice of story-telling is
-to watch your audience, so as to be able to know whether its mood is
-for action or reaction, and to alter your story accordingly. The moods
-of reaction are rarer, and you must use them for presenting a different
-kind of material. Here is your opportunity for introducing a piece of
-poetic description, given in beautiful language, to which the children
-cannot listen when they are eager for action and dramatic excitement.
-
-Perhaps one of the greatest artifices is to take a quick hold of your
-audience by a striking beginning which will enlist their attention from
-the start; you can then relax somewhat, but you must be careful also
-of the end, because that is what remains most vivid for the children.
-If you question them as to which story they like best in a programme,
-you will constantly find it to be the last one you have told, which has
-for the moment blurred out the others.
-
-Here are a few specimens of beginnings which seldom fail to arrest the
-attention of the child:
-
- “There was once a giant ogre, and he lived in a cave by himself.”
- --_From_ “_The Giant and the Jackstraws_,” Starr Jordan.
-
- “There were once twenty-five tin soldiers, who were all brothers,
- for they had been made out of the same old tin spoon.”
- --_From_ “_The Tin Soldier_,” Hans C. Andersen.
-
- “There was once an Emperor who had a horse shod with gold.”
- --_From_ “_The Beetle_,” Hans C. Andersen.
-
- “There was once a merchant who was so rich that he could have paved
- the whole street with gold, and even then he would have had enough
- for a small alley.”
- --_From_ “_The Flying Trunk_,” Hans C. Andersen.
-
- “There was once a shilling which came forth from the mint springing
- and shouting, 'Hurrah! Now I am going out into the wide world.'”
- --_From_ “_The Silver Shilling_,” Hans C. Andersen.
-
- “In the High and Far Off Times the Elephant, O Best Beloved, had no
- trunk.”
- --_From_ “_The Elephant's Child_”: _Just So Stories_, Rudyard
- Kipling.
-
- “Not always was the Kangaroo as now we behold him, but a Different
- Animal with four short legs.”
- --_From_ “_Old Man Kangaroo_”: _Just So Stories_, Rudyard Kipling.
-
- “Whichever way I turn,” said the weather-cock on a high steeple,
- “no one is satisfied.”
- --_From_ “_Fireside Fables_,” Edwin Barrow.
-
- “A set of chessmen, left standing on their board, resolved to alter
- the rules of the game.”
- --_From the same source._
-
- “The Pink Parasol had tender whalebone ribs and a slender stick of
- cherry-wood.”
- --_From_ “_Very Short Stories_,” Mrs. W. K. Clifford.
-
- “There was once a poor little Donkey on Wheels; it had never wagged
- its tail, or tossed its head, or said ‘Hee-haw,’ or tasted a tender
- thistle.”
- --_From the same source._
-
-Now, some of these beginnings are, of course, for very young children,
-but they all have the same advantage, that of plunging _in medias res_,
-and therefore are able to arrest attention at once, as distinct from
-the stories which open on a leisurely note of description.
-
-In the same way we must be careful about the endings of the stories;
-in some way or other they must impress themselves either in a very
-dramatic climax to which the whole story has worked up, such as we have
-in the following:
-
- “Then he goes out to the Wet Wild Woods, or up the Wet Wild Trees,
- or on the Wet Wild Roofs, waving his Wild Tail, and walking by his
- Wild Lone.”
- --_From_ “_Just So Stories_,” Rudyard Kipling.
-
-Or by an anti-climax for effect:
-
- “We have all this straight out of the alderman's newspaper, but it
- is not to be depended on.”
- --_From_ “_Jack the Dullard_,” Hans C. Andersen.
-
-Or by evading the point:
-
- “Whoever does not believe this must buy shares in the Tanner's
- yard.”
- --_From_ “_A Great Grief_,” Hans C. Andersen.
-
-Or by some striking general comment:
-
- “He has never caught up with the three days he missed at the
- beginning of the world, and he has never learnt how to behave.”
- --_From_ “_How the Camel got his Hump_”: _Just So Stories_,
- Rudyard Kipling.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[15] Once at the Summer School at Chatauqua, New York, and once in
-Lincoln Park, Chicago.
-
-[16] See p. 156.
-
-[17] There must be no more emphasis in the second manner than the first.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-
-ELEMENTS TO AVOID IN SELECTION OF MATERIAL.
-
-
-I AM confronted, in this portion of my work, with a great difficulty,
-because I cannot afford to be as catholic as I could wish (this
-rejection or selection of material being primarily intended for those
-story-tellers dealing with normal children); but I wish from the outset
-to distinguish between a story told to an individual child in the
-home circle or by a personal friend, and a story told to a group of
-children as part of the school curriculum. And if I seem to reiterate
-this difference, it is because I wish to show very clearly that the
-recital of parents and friends may be quite separate in content and
-manner from that offered by the teaching world. In the former case,
-almost any subject can be treated, because, knowing the individual
-temperament of the child, a wise parent or friend knows also what can
-be presented or _not_ presented to the child; but in dealing with a
-group of normal children in school, much has to be eliminated that
-could be given fearlessly to the abnormal child: I mean the child who,
-by circumstances or temperament, is developed beyond its years.
-
-I shall now mention some of the elements which experience has shown me
-to be unsuitable for class stories.
-
-I.--_Stories dealing with analysis of motive and feeling._
-
-This warning is specially necessary to-day, because this is above all
-an age of introspection and analysis. We have only to glance at the
-principal novels and plays during the last quarter of a century--most
-especially during the last ten years--to see how this spirit has crept
-into our literature and life.
-
-Now, this tendency to analyse is obviously more dangerous for children
-than for adults, because, from lack of experience and knowledge of
-psychology, the child's analysis is incomplete. He cannot see all the
-causes of the action, nor can he make that philosophical allowance for
-mood which brings the adult to truer conclusions.
-
-Therefore we should discourage children who show a tendency to analyse
-too closely the motives of their actions, and refrain from presenting
-in our stories any example which might encourage them to persist in
-this course.
-
-I remember, on one occasion, when I went to say good-night to a little
-girl of my acquaintance, I found her sitting up in bed, very wide
-awake. Her eyes were shining, her cheeks were flushed, and when I asked
-her what had excited her so much, she said:
-
-“I _know_ I have done something wrong to-day, but I cannot quite
-remember what it was.”
-
-I said: “But Phyllis, if you put your hand, which is really quite
-small, in front of your eyes, you could not see the shape of anything
-else, however large it might be. Now, what you have done to-day appears
-very large because it is so close, but when it is a little further off,
-you will be able to see better and know more about it. So let us wait
-till to-morrow morning.”
-
-I am happy to say that she took my advice. She was soon fast asleep,
-and the next morning she had forgotten the wrong over which she had
-been unhealthily brooding the night before.[18]
-
-II.--_Stories dealing too much with sarcasm and satire._ These are
-weapons which are too sharply polished, and therefore too dangerous,
-to place in the hands of children. For here again, as in the case
-of analysis, they can only have a very incomplete conception of the
-case. They do not know the real cause which produces the apparently
-ridiculous situation: it is experience and knowledge which lead to the
-discovery of the pathos and sadness which often underlie the ridiculous
-appearance, and it is only the abnormally gifted child or grown-up
-person who discovers this by instinct. It takes a lifetime to arrive at
-the position described in Sterne's words: “I would not have let fallen
-an unseasonable pleasantry in the venerable presence of misery to be
-entitled to all the Wit which Rabelais has ever scattered.”
-
-I will hasten to add that I should not wish children to have their
-sympathy too much drawn out, or their emotions kindled too much to
-pity, because this would be neither healthy nor helpful to themselves
-or others. I only want to protect the children from the dangerous
-critical attitude induced by the use of satire: it sacrifices too much
-of the atmosphere of trust and belief in human beings which ought to
-be an essential of child-life. If we indulge in satire, the sense of
-kindness in children tends to become perverted, their sympathy cramped,
-and they themselves to become old before their time. We have an
-excellent example of this in Hans C. Andersen's “Snow Queen.”
-
-When Kay gets the piece of broken mirror into his eye, he no longer
-sees the world from the normal child's point of view: he can no longer
-see anything but the foibles of those about him--a condition usually
-only reached by a course of pessimistic experience.
-
-Andersen sums up the unnatural point of view in these words:
-
-“When Kay tried to repeat the Lord's Prayer, he could only remember the
-multiplication table.” Now, without taking these words in any literal
-sense, we can admit that they represent the development of the head at
-the expense of the heart.
-
-An example of this kind of story to avoid is Andersen's “Story of the
-Butterfly.” The bitterness of the Anemones, the sentimentality of the
-Violets, the schoolgirlishness of the Snowdrops, the domesticity of
-the Sweet-peas--all this tickles the palate of the adult, but does
-not belong to the plane of the normal child. Again I repeat that
-the unusual child may take all this in and even preserve its kindly
-attitude towards the world, but it is a dangerous atmosphere for the
-ordinary child.
-
-III.--_Stories of a sentimental kind._ Strange to say, this element of
-sentimentality often appeals more to the young teachers than to the
-children themselves. It is difficult to define the difference between
-sentiment and sentimentality, but the healthy normal boy or girl
-of--let us say ten or eleven years old seems to feel it unconsciously,
-though the distinction is not so clear a few years later.
-
-Mrs. Elizabeth McKracken contributed an excellent article some years
-ago to the American _Outlook_ on the subject of literature for
-the young, in which we find a good illustration of this power of
-discrimination on the part of a child.
-
-A young teacher was telling her pupils the story of the emotional lady
-who, to put her lover to the test, bade him pick up the glove which
-she had thrown down into the arena between the tiger and the lion. The
-lover does her bidding, in order to vindicate his character as a brave
-knight. One boy, after hearing the story, at once states his contempt
-for the knight's acquiescence, which he declares to be unworthy.
-
-“But,” says the teacher, “you see he really did it to show the lady how
-foolish she was.” The answer of the boy sums up what I have been trying
-to show: “There was no sense in _his_ being sillier than _she_ was, to
-show her _she_ was silly.”
-
-If the boy had stopped there, we might have concluded that he was
-lacking in imagination or romance, but his next remark proves what a
-balanced and discriminating person he was, for he added: “Now, if _she_
-had fallen in, and he had leapt after her to rescue her, that would
-have been splendid and of some use.” Given the character of the lady,
-we might, as adults, question the last part of the boy's statement, but
-this is pure cynicism and fortunately does not enter into the child's
-calculations.
-
-In my own personal experience (and I have told this story often in the
-German ballad form to girls of ten and twelve in the High Schools in
-England) I have never found one girl who sympathised with the lady or
-who failed to appreciate the poetic justice meted out to her in the end
-by the dignified renunciation of the knight.
-
-Chesterton defines sentimentality as “a tame, cold, or small and
-inadequate manner of speaking about certain matters which demand very
-large and beautiful expression.”
-
-I would strongly urge upon young teachers to revise, by this
-definition, some of the stories they have included in their repertory,
-and see whether they would stand the test or not.
-
-IV.--_Stories containing strong sensational episodes._ The danger is
-all the greater because many children delight in it, and some crave for
-it in the abstract, but fear it in the concrete.[19]
-
-An affectionate aunt, on one occasion, anxious to curry favour with
-a four-year-old nephew, was taxing her imagination to find a story
-suitable for his tender years. She was greatly startled when he
-suddenly said, in a most imperative tone: “Tell me the story of a
-_bear_ eating a small boy.” This was so remote from her own choice
-of subject that she hesitated at first, but coming to the conclusion
-that as the child had chosen the situation he would feel no terror
-in the working up of its details, she began a most thrilling and
-blood-curdling story, leading up to the final catastrophe. But just as
-she had reached the great dramatic moment, the child raised his hands
-in terror and said: “Oh! Auntie, don't let the bear _really_ eat the
-boy!”
-
-“Don't you know,” said an impatient boy who had been listening to a
-mild adventure story considered suitable to his years, “that I don't
-take any interest in the story until the decks are dripping with gore?”
-Here we have no opportunity of deciding whether or not the actual
-description demanded would be more alarming than the listener had
-realised.
-
-Here is a poem of James Stephens, showing a child's taste for
-sensational things:--
-
- A man was sitting underneath a tree
- Outside the village, and he asked me
- What name was upon this place, and said he
- Was never here before. He told a
- Lot of stories to me too. His nose was flat.
- I asked him how it happened, and he said,
- The first mate of the “Mary Ann” done that,
- With a marling-spike one day, but he was dead,
- And a jolly job too, but he'd have gone a long way to have
- killed him.
- A gold ring in one ear, and the other was bit off by a crocodile,
- bedad,
- That's what he said: He taught me how to chew.
- He was a real nice man. He liked me too.
-
-The taste that is fed by the sensational contents of the newspapers
-and the dramatic excitement of street life, and some of the lurid
-representations of the Kinematograph, is so much stimulated that the
-interest in normal stories is difficult to rouse. I will not here dwell
-on the deleterious effects of over dramatic stimulation, which has been
-known to lead to crime, since I am keener to prevent the telling of too
-many sensational stories than to suggest a cure when the mischief is
-done. Kate Douglas Wiggin has said:
-
-“Let us be realistic, by all means, but beware, O Story-teller, of
-being too realistic. Avoid the shuddering tale of ‘the wicked boy who
-stoned the birds,’ lest some hearer should be inspired to try the
-dreadful experiment and see if it really does kill.”
-
-I must emphasise the fact, however, that it is only the excess of
-this dramatic element which I deplore. A certain amount of excitement
-is necessary; but this question belongs to the positive side of the
-subject, and I shall deal with it later on.
-
-V.--_Stories presenting matters quite outside the plane of the child_
-(unless they are wrapped in mystery, which is of great educational
-value).
-
-The element I wish to eliminate is the one which would make children
-world-wise and old before their time.
-
-A small American child who had entertained a guest in her mother's
-absence, when questioned as to whether she had shown all the
-hospitality the mother would have considered necessary, said: “Oh! yes.
-And I talked to her in the kind of ‘dressy’ tone _you_ use on your ‘At
-Home’ days.”
-
-On one occasion I was lecturing in the town of Cleveland, and was to
-stay in the house of a lady whom I had met only once, in New York, but
-with true American hospitality she had begged me to make her house my
-home during the whole of my stay in Cleveland. In writing to invite
-me, she mentioned the pleasure it would afford her little ten-year-old
-daughter to make my acquaintance, and added this somewhat enigmatic
-sentence: “Mignon has asked permission to dedicate her _last_ work to
-you.” I was alarmed at the word _last_, given the age of the author,
-and felt sorry that the literary faculty had developed quite so early,
-lest the unfettered and irresponsible years of childhood should have
-been sacrificed. I was still more troubled when, upon my arrival,
-I learned that the title of the book which was to be dedicated to
-me was “The Two Army Girls,” and contained the elaborate history of
-a double courtship. But, as the story was read to me, I was soon
-disarmed. A more innocent recital I never heard--and it was all the
-quainter because of certain little grown-up sentences gathered from the
-conversation of elders in unguarded moments, which evidently conveyed
-but slight meaning to the youthful authoress. The final scene between
-two of the lovers is so characteristic that I cannot refrain from
-quoting the actual words. Said John: “I love you, and I wish you to be
-my wife.” “That I will,” said Mary, without any hesitation. “That's all
-right,” said John. “And now let us _get back to the Golf Links_.”
-
-Oh, that modern writers of fiction would “get back to the Golf Links”
-sooner than they do, realising with this little unconscious philosopher
-that there are some reactions from love-making which show a healthy and
-balanced constitution.
-
-Experience with children ought to teach us to avoid stories which
-contain too much _allusion_ to matters of which the hearers are
-entirely ignorant; but, judging from the written stories of to-day,
-supposed to be for children, it is still a matter of difficulty to
-realise that this form of allusion to “foreign” matters, or making a
-joke the appreciation of which depends solely on a special and “inside”
-knowledge, is always bewildering and fatal to sustained dramatic
-interest.
-
-It is a matter of intense regret that so very few people have
-sufficiently clear remembrance of their own childhood to help them to
-understand the taste and point of view of the _normal_ child. There
-is a passage in the “Brownies” (by Mrs. Ewing) which illustrates the
-confusion created in the child mind by a facetious allusion in a
-dramatic moment which needed a more direct treatment.
-
-When the nursery toys have all gone astray, one little child exclaims
-joyfully:
-
-“Why, the old Rocking-Horse's nose has turned up in the oven!”
-
-“It couldn't” remarks a tiresome, facetious doctor, far more anxious
-to be funny than to sympathise with the joy of the child; “it was the
-purest Grecian, modelled from the Elgin marbles.”
-
-Now, for grown-up people this is an excellent joke, but for a child
-who has not yet become acquainted with these Grecian masterpieces, the
-whole remark is pointless and hampering.[20]
-
-VI.--_Stories which appeal to fear or priggishness._ This is a class of
-story to be avoided which scarcely counts to-day and against which the
-teacher does not need a warning; but I wish to make a passing allusion
-to it, partly to round off my subject and partly to show that we have
-made some improvement in choice of subject.
-
-When I study the evolution of the story from the crude recitals
-offered to our children within the last hundred years, I feel that,
-though our progress in intelligent mental catering may be slow, it
-is real and sure. One has only to take some examples from the Chap
-Books of the beginning of last century to realise the difference of
-appeal. Everything offered then was either an appeal to fear or to
-priggishness, and one wonders how it is that our grandparents and their
-parents ever recovered from the effects of such stories as were offered
-to them. But there is the consoling thought that no lasting impression
-was made upon them, such as I believe _may_ be possible by the right
-kind of story.
-
-I offer a few examples of the old type of story:
-
-Here is an encouraging address offered by a certain Mr. Janeway to
-children about the year 1828:
-
-“Dare you do anything which your parents forbid you, and neglect to
-do what they command? Dare you to run up and down on the Lord's Day,
-or do you keep in to read your book, and learn what your good parents
-command?”
-
-Such an address would have almost tempted children to envy the lot of
-orphans, except that the guardians and less close relations might have
-been equally, if not more, severe.
-
-From “The Curious Girl,” published about 1809: “Oh! papa, I hope you
-will have no reason to be dissatisfied with me, for I love my studies
-very much, and I am never so happy at my play as when I have been
-assiduous at my lessons all day.”
-
-“Adolphus: How strange it is, papa, you should believe it possible for
-me to act so like a child, now that I am twelve years old!”
-
-Here is a specimen taken from a Chap-book about 1825:
-
-Edward refuses hot bread at breakfast. His hostess asks whether he
-likes it. “Yes, I am extremely fond of it.” “Why did you refuse it?”
-“Because I know that my papa does not approve of my eating it. Am I to
-disobey a Father and Mother I love so well, and forget my duty, because
-they are a long way off? I would not touch the cake, were I sure nobody
-could see me. I myself should know it, and that would be sufficient.”
-
-“Nobly replied!” exclaimed Mrs. C. “Act always thus, and you must be
-happy, for although the whole world should refuse the praise that is
-due, you must enjoy the approbation of your conscience, which is beyond
-anything else.”
-
-Here is a quotation of the same kind from Mrs. Sherwood:
-
-“Tender-souled little creatures, desolated by a sense of sin, if
-they did but eat a spoonful of cupboard jam without Mamma's express
-permission.... Would a modern Lucy, jealous of her sister Emily's doll,
-break out thus easily into tearful apology for her guilt?--‘I know
-it is wicked in me to be sorry that Emily is happy, but I feel that
-I cannot help it.’ And would a modern mother retort with heartfelt
-joy?--'My dear child, I am glad you have confessed. Now I shall tell
-you why you feel this wicked sorrow'--proceeding to an account of the
-depravity of human nature so unredeemed by comfort for a childish mind
-of common intelligence that one can scarcely imagine the interview
-ending in anything less tragic than a fit of juvenile hysteria.”
-
-Description of a Good Boy. “A good boy is dutiful to his Father and
-Mother, obedient to his master and loving to his playfellows. He is
-diligent in learning his book, and takes a pleasure in improving
-himself in everything that is worthy of praise. He rises early in
-the morning, makes himself clean and decent, and says his prayers.
-He loves to hear good advice, is thankful to those who give it and
-always follows it. He never swears[21] or calls names or uses ill words
-to companions. He is never peevish and fretful, always cheerful and
-good-tempered.”
-
-VII.--_Stories of exaggerated and coarse fun._ In the chapter on the
-positive side of this subject I shall speak more in detail of the
-educational value of robust and virile representation of fun and of
-sheer nonsense, but as a representation to these statements, I should
-like to strike a note of warning about the element of exaggerated and
-coarse fun being encouraged in our school stories, partly because of
-the lack of humour in such presentations--a natural product of stifling
-imagination--and partly because the train of the abnormal has the same
-effect as the too frequent use of the melodramatic.
-
-You have only to read the adventures of Buster Brown, which for years
-formed the Sunday reading of millions of children in the United States,
-to realise what would be the effect of coarse fun and entire absence
-of humour upon the normal child in its everyday experience, an effect
-all the greater because of the real skill with which the illustrations
-are drawn. It is only fair to state that this series was not originally
-prepared or intended for the young, but it is a matter of regret
-(shared by most educationists in the States) that they should ever have
-been given to children at all.
-
-In an article in _Macmillan's Magazine_, Dec. 1869, Miss Yonge writes:
-“A taste for buffoonery is much to be discouraged, an exclusive taste
-for extravagance most unwholesome and even perverting. It becomes
-destructive of reverence and soon degenerates into coarseness. It
-permits nothing poetical or imaginative, nothing sweet or pathetic to
-exist, and there is a certain self-satisfaction and superiority in
-making game of what others regard with enthusiasm and sentiment which
-absolutely bars the way against a higher or softer tone.”
-
-Although these words were written nearly half a century ago, they are
-so specially applicable to-day that they seem quite “up-to-date”:
-indeed, I think they will hold equally good fifty years hence.
-
-In spite of a strong taste on the part of children for what is ugly
-and brutal, I am sure that we ought to eliminate this element as far
-as possible from the school stories--especially among poor children.
-Not because I think children should be protected from all knowledge
-of evil, but because so much of this knowledge comes into their life
-outside school that we can well afford to ignore it during school
-hours. At the same time, however, as I shall show by example when I
-come to the positive side, it would be well to show children by story
-illustration the difference between brute ugliness without anything
-to redeem it and surface ugliness, which may be only a veil over the
-beauty that lies underneath. It might be possible, for instance, to
-show children the difference between the real ugliness of a brutal
-story of crime and an illustration of it in the sensational papers,
-and the apparent ugliness in the priest's face of the “Laocoon” group,
-because of the motive of courage and endurance behind the suffering.
-Many stories in everyday life could be found to illustrate this.
-
-VIII.--_Stories of infant piety and death-bed scenes._ The stories
-for children forty years ago contained much of this element, and the
-following examples will illustrate this point:
-
-Notes from poems written by a child between six and eight years of age,
-by name Philip Freeman, afterwards Archdeacon of Exeter:
-
- Poor Robin, thou canst fly no more,
- Thy joys and sorrows all are o'er.
- Through Life's tempestuous storms thou'st trod,
- But now art sunk beneath the sod.
- Here lost and gone poor Robin lies,
- He trembles, lingers, falls and dies.
- He's gone, he's gone, forever lost,
- No more of him they now can boast.
- Poor Robin's dangers all are past,
- He struggled to the very last.
- Perhaps he spent a happy Life,
- Without much struggle and much strife.
-
- _Published by John Loder, bookseller, Woodbridge, in 1829._
-
-The prolonged gloom of the main theme is somewhat lightened by the
-speculative optimism of the last verse.
-
- Life, transient Life, is but a dream,
- Like Sleep which short doth lengthened seem
- Till dawn of day, when the bird's lay
- Doth charm the soul's first peeping gleam.
-
- Then farewell to the parting year,
- Another's come to Nature dear.
- In every place, thy brightening face
- Does welcome winter's snowy drear.
-
- Alas! our time is much mis-spent.
- Then we must haste and now repent.
- We have a book in which to look,
- For we on Wisdom should be bent.
-
- Should God, the Almighty, King of all,
- Before His judgment-seat now call
- Us to that place of Joy and Grace
- Prepared for us since Adam's fall.
-
-I think there is no doubt that we have made considerable progress in
-this matter. Not only do we refrain from telling these highly moral
-(_sic_) stories but we have reached the point of parodying them,
-in sign of ridicule, as, for instance, in such writing as Belloc's
-“Cautionary Tales.” These would be a trifle too grim for a timid child,
-but excellent fun for adults.
-
-It should be our study to-day to prove to children that the immediate
-importance to them is not to think of dying and going to Heaven, but
-of living and--shall we say?--going to College, which is a far better
-preparation for a life to come than the morbid dwelling upon the
-possibility of an early death.
-
-In an article signed “Muriel Harris,” I think, from a copy of the
-_Tribune_, appeared a delightful article on Sunday Books, from which I
-quote the following:
-
-“All very good little children died young in the story-books, so that
-unusual goodness must have been the source of considerable anxiety to
-affectionate parents. I came across a little old book the other day
-called ‘Examples for Youth.’ On the yellow fly-leaf was written in
-childish, carefully sloping hand: ‘Presented to Mary Palmer Junior, by
-her sister, to be read on Sundays,’ and was dated 1828. The accounts
-are taken from a work on _Piety Promoted_, and all of them begin with
-unusual piety in early youth and end with the death-bed of the little
-paragon, and his or her dying words.”
-
-IX.--_Stories containing a mixture of Fairy Tale and Science._ By this
-combination you lose what is essential to each, namely, the fantastic
-on the one side, and accuracy on the other. The true Fairy Tale should
-be unhampered by any compromise of probability even--the scientific
-representation should be sufficiently marvellous along its own lines to
-need no supernatural aid. Both appeal to the imagination in different
-ways.
-
-As an exception to this kind of mixture, I should quote “The Honey Bee,
-and Other Stories,” translated from the Danish of Evald by C. G. Moore
-Smith. There is a certain robustness in these stories dealing with the
-inexorable laws of Nature, though some of them will appear hard to the
-child; but they will be of interest to all teachers.
-
-Perhaps the worst element in choice of stories is that which insists
-upon the moral detaching itself and explaining the story. In “Alice in
-Wonderland” the Duchess says, “‘And the moral of _that_ is: Take care
-of the sense and the sounds will take care of themselves.’ ‘How fond
-she is of finding morals in things,’ thought Alice to herself.” (This
-gives the point of view of the child.)
-
-The following is a case in point, found in a rare old print in the
-British Museum:
-
-“Jane S. came home with her clothes soiled and hands badly torn. ‘Where
-have you been?’ asked her mother. ‘I fell down the bank near the mill,’
-said Jane, ‘and I should have been drowned if Mr. M. had not seen me
-and pulled me out.’ 'Why did you go so near the edge of the brink?‘
-'There was a pretty flower there that I wanted, and I only meant to
-take one step, but I slipped and fell down.’ Moral: Young people often
-take but one step in sinful indulgence (Poor Jane!), but they fall
-into soul-destroying sins. There is a sinful pleasure which they wish
-to enjoy. They can do it by a single act of sin (the heinous act of
-picking a flower!). They do it; but that act leads to another, and they
-fall into the Gulf of Perdition, unless God interposes.”
-
-Now, apart from the folly of this story, we must condemn it on moral
-grounds. Could we imagine a lower standard of a Deity than that
-presented here to the child?
-
-To-day the teacher would commend Jane for a laudable interest in
-botany, but might add a word of caution about choosing inclined planes
-as a hunting-ground for specimens and a popular, lucid explanation of
-the inexorable law of gravity.
-
-Here we have an instance of applying a moral when we have finished our
-story, but there are many stories where nothing is left to chance in
-this matter, and where there is no means for the child to use ingenuity
-or imagination in making out the meaning for himself.
-
-Henry Morley has condemned the use of this method as applied to Fairy
-Stories. He says: “Moralising in a Fairy Story is like the snoring of
-Bottom in Titania's lap.”
-
-But I think this applies to all stories, and most especially to those
-by which we do wish to teach something.
-
-John Burroughs says in his article,[22] “Thou shalt not preach”:
-
-“Didactic fiction can never rank high. Thou shalt not preach or teach;
-though shalt pourtray and create, and have ends as universal as
-nature.... What Art demands is that the Artist's personal convictions
-and notions, his likes and dislikes, do not obtrude themselves at all;
-that good and evil stand judged in his work by the logic of events,
-as they do in nature, and not by any special pleading on his part. He
-does not hold a brief for either side; he exemplifies the working of
-the creative energy.... The great artist works _in_ and _through_ and
-_from_ moral ideas; his works are indirectly a criticism of life. He
-is moral without having a moral. The moment a moral obtrudes itself,
-that moment he begins to fall from grace as an artist.... The great
-distinction of Art is that it aims to see life steadily and to see it
-whole.... It affords the one point of view whence the world appears
-harmonious and complete.”
-
-It would seem, then, from this passage, that it is of _moral_
-importance to put things dramatically.
-
-In Froebel's “Mother Play” he demonstrates the educational value of
-stories, emphasising that their highest use consists in their ability
-to enable the child, through _suggestion_, to form a pure and noble
-idea of what a man may be or do. The sensitiveness of a child's mind
-is offended if the moral is forced upon him, but if he absorbs it
-unconsciously, he has received its influence for all time.
-
-To me the idea of pointing out the moral of the story has always seemed
-as futile as tying a flower on to a stalk instead of letting the flower
-_grow out_ of the stalk, as Nature intended. In the first case, the
-flower, showy and bright for the moment, soon fades away. In the second
-instance, it develops slowly, coming to perfection in fulness of time
-because of the life within.
-
-X.--Lastly, the element to avoid is _that which rouses emotions which
-cannot be translated into action_.
-
-Mr. Earl Barnes, to whom all teachers owe a debt of gratitude for the
-inspiration of his education views, insists strongly on this point.
-The sole effect of such stories is to produce a form of hysteria,
-fortunately short-lived, but a waste of force which might be directed
-into a better channel.[23] Such stories are so easy to recognise that
-it would be useless to make a formal list, but I shall make further
-allusion to this in dealing with stories from the lives of the saints.
-
-These, then, are the main elements to avoid in the selection of
-material suitable for normal children. Much might be added in the way
-of detail, and the special tendency of the day may make it necessary to
-avoid one class of story more than another; but this care belongs to
-another generation of teachers and parents.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[18] Such works as “Ministering Children,” “The Wide, Wide World,”
-“The Fairchild Family,” are instances of the kind of story I mean, as
-containing too much analysis of emotion.
-
-[19] One child's favourite book bore the exciting title of “Birth, Life
-and Death of Crazy Jane.”
-
-[20] This does not imply that the child would not appreciate in the
-right context the thrilling and romantic story in connection with the
-finding of the Elgin marbles.
-
-[21] One is almost inclined to prefer Marjorie Fleming's little
-innocent oaths. “But she was more than usual calm. She did not give a
-single dam.”
-
-[22] From “Literary Values.”
-
-[23] A story is told of Confucius, that having attended a funeral he
-presented his horse to the chief mourner. When asked why he bestowed
-this gift, he replied: “I wept with the man, so I feel I ought to _do_
-something for him.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-
-ELEMENTS TO SEEK IN CHOICE OF MATERIAL.
-
-
-IN “The Choice of Books” Frederic Harrison has said: “The most useful
-help to reading is to know what we shall _not_ read, ... what we
-shall keep from that small cleared spot in the overgrown jungle of
-information which we can call our ordered patch of fruit-bearing
-knowledge.”[24]
-
-Now, the same statement applies to our stories, and, having busied
-myself, during the last chapter, with “clearing my small spot” by
-cutting away a mass of unfruitful growth, I am now going to suggest
-what would be the best kind of seed to sow in the patch which I have
-“reclaimed from the Jungle.”
-
-Again I repeat that I have no wish to be dogmatic, and that in offering
-suggestions as to the stories to be told, I am only catering for a
-group of normal school-children. My list of subjects does not pretend
-to cover the whole ground of children's needs, and just as I exclude
-the abnormal or unusual child from the scope of my warning in subjects
-to avoid, so do I also exclude that child from the limitation in choice
-of subjects to be sought, because you can offer almost any subject to
-the unusual child, especially if you stand in close relation to him and
-know his powers of apprehension. In this matter, _age_ has very little
-to say: it is a question of the stage of development.
-
-Experience has taught me that for the group of normal children, almost
-irrespective of age, the first kind of story suitable will contain an
-appeal to conditions to which they are accustomed. The reason of this
-is obvious: the child, having limited experience, can only be reached
-by this experience, until his imagination is awakened and he is enabled
-to grasp through this faculty what he has not actually passed through.
-Before this awakening has taken place he enters the realm of fiction
-(represented in the story) by comparison with his personal experience.
-Every story and every point in the story mean more as that experience
-widens, and the interest varies, of course, with temperament, quickness
-of perception, power of visualising and of concentration.
-
-In “The Marsh King's Daughter,” H. C. Andersen says:
-
-“The Storks have a great many stories which they tell their little
-ones, all about the bogs and marshes. They suit them to their age and
-capacity. The young ones are quite satisfied with Kribble, Krabble,
-or some such nonsense, and find it charming; but the elder ones want
-something with more meaning.”
-
-One of the most interesting experiments to be made in connection with
-this subject is to tell the same story at intervals of a year or six
-months to some individual child.[25] The different incidents in the
-story which appeal to it (and you must watch it closely, to be sure the
-interest is real, and not artificially stimulated by any suggestion on
-your part) will mark its mental development and the gradual awakening
-of its imagination. This experiment is a very delicate one, and will
-not be infallible, because children are secretive and the appreciation
-is often (unconsciously) simulated, or concealed through shyness or
-want of articulation. But it is, in spite of this, a deeply interesting
-and helpful experiment.
-
-To take a concrete example: let us suppose the story of Andersen's Tin
-Soldier told to a child of five or six years. At the first recital, the
-point which will interest the child most will be the setting up of the
-tin soldiers on the table, because he can understand this by means of
-his own experience, in his own nursery: it is an appeal to conditions
-to which he is accustomed and for which no exercise of the imagination
-is needed, unless we take the effect of memory to be, according to
-Queyrat, retrospective imagination.
-
-The next incident that appeals is the unfamiliar behaviour of the toys,
-but still in familiar surroundings; that is to say, the _unusual_
-activities are carried on in the safe precincts of the nursery--in the
-_usual_ atmosphere of the child.
-
-I quote from the text:
-
-“Late in the evening the other soldiers were put in their box, and the
-people of the house went to bed. Now was the time for the toys to play;
-they amused themselves with paying visits, fighting battles and giving
-balls. The tin soldiers rustled about in their box, for they wanted to
-join the games, but they could not get the lid off. The nut-crackers
-turned somersaults, and the pencil scribbled nonsense on the slate.”
-
-Now, from this point onwards in the story, the events will be quite
-outside the personal experience of the child, and there will have
-to be a real stretch of imagination to appreciate the thrilling and
-blood-curdling adventures of the little tin soldier, namely, the
-terrible sailing down the gutter under the bridge, the meeting with
-the fierce rat who demands the soldier's passport, the horrible
-sensation in the fish's body, etc. Last of all, perhaps, will come
-the appreciation of the best qualities of the hero: his modesty, his
-dignity, his reticence, his courage and his constancy: he seems to
-combine all the qualities of the best soldier with those of the best
-civilian, without the more obvious qualities which generally attract
-first. As for the love-story, we must not _expect_ any child to see
-its tenderness and beauty, though the individual child may intuitively
-appreciate these qualities, but it is not what we wish for or work for
-at this period of child-life.
-
-This method could be applied to various stories. I have chosen the _Tin
-Soldier_ because of its dramatic qualities and because it is marked off
-(probably quite unconsciously on the part of Andersen) into periods
-which correspond to the child's development.
-
-In Eugene Field's exquisite little poem of “The Dinkey Bird” we find
-the objects familiar to the child in _unusual_ places, so that some
-imagination is needed to realise that “big red sugar-plums are clinging
-to the cliffs beside that sea”; but the introduction of the fantastic
-bird and the soothing sound of the Amfalula Tree are new and delightful
-sensations, quite out of the child's personal experience.
-
-Another such instance is to be found in Mrs. W. K. Clifford's story of
-Master Willie. The abnormal behaviour of familiar objects, such as a
-doll, leads from the ordinary routine to the paths of adventure. This
-story is to be found in a little book called “Very Short Stories,” a
-most interesting collection for teachers and children.
-
-We now come to the second element we should seek in material--namely,
-the element of the unusual, which we have already anticipated in the
-story of the Tin Soldier.
-
-This element is necessary in response to the demand of the child who
-expressed the needs of his fellow-playmates when he said: “I want to go
-to the place where the shadows are real.” This is the true definition
-of “Faerie” lands, and is the first sign of real mental development
-in the child when he is no longer content with the stories of his own
-little deeds and experiences, when his ear begins to appreciate sounds
-different from the words in his own everyday language, and when he
-begins to separate his own personality from the action of the story.
-
-George Goschen says[26]:
-
-“What I want for the young are books and stories which do not simply
-deal with our daily life. I like the fancy (even) of little children
-to have some larger food than images of their own little lives, and
-I confess I am sorry for the children whose imaginations are not
-sometimes stimulated by beautiful Fairy Tales which carry them to
-worlds different from those in which their future will be passed....
-I hold that what removes them more or less from their daily life is
-better than what reminds them of it at every step.”
-
-It is because of the great value of leading children to something
-beyond the limited circle of their own lives that I deplore the
-twaddling boarding-school stories written for girls and the
-artificially-prepared Public School stories for boys. Why not give them
-the dramatic interest of a larger stage? No account of a cricket match,
-or a football triumph, could present a finer appeal to boys and girls
-than the description of the Peacestead in the “Heroes of Asgaard”:
-
-“This was the playground of the Æsir, where they practised trials of
-skill one with another and held tournaments and sham fights. These last
-were always conducted in the gentlest and most honourable manner; for
-the strongest law of the Peacestead was, that no angry blow should be
-struck, or spiteful word spoken upon the sacred field.”
-
-For my part, I would unhesitatingly give to boys and girls an element
-of strong romance in the stories which are told them even before they
-are twelve. Miss Sewell says:
-
-“The system that keeps girls in the schoolroom reading simple stories,
-without reading Scott and Shakespeare and Spenser, and then hands them
-over to the unexplored recesses of the Circulating Library, has been
-shown to be the most frivolizing that can be devised.” She sets forward
-the result of her experience that a good novel, especially a romantic
-one, read at twelve or fourteen, is really a beneficial thing.
-
-At present many of the children from the elementary schools get their
-first idea of love (if one can give it such a name) from vulgar
-pictures displayed in the shop windows, or jokes on marriage culled
-from the lowest type of paper, or the proceedings of a divorce-court.
-
-What an antidote to such representation might be found in the story of
-
- Hector and Andromache,
- Siegfreid and Brunhild,
- Dido and Æneas,
- Orpheus and Eurydice,
- St. Francis and St. Clare.
-
-One of the strongest elements we should introduce into our stories for
-children of all ages is that which calls forth love of beauty. And the
-beauty should stand out, not necessarily only in delineation of noble
-qualities in our heroes and heroines, but in beauty and strength of
-language and form.
-
-In this latter respect the Bible stories are of such inestimable
-value--all the greater because a child is familiar with the subject,
-and the stories gain fresh significance from the spoken or winged word
-as compared with the mere reading. Whether we should keep to the actual
-text is a matter of individual experience. Professor R. G. Moulton,
-whose interpretations of the Bible Stories are so well known both in
-England and the States, does not always confine himself to the actual
-text, but draws the dramatic elements together, rejecting what seems to
-him to break the narrative, but introducing the actual language where
-it is the most effective. Those who have heard him will realise the
-success of his method.
-
-There is one Bible story which can be told with scarcely any deviation,
-and that is the story of Nebuchadnezzar and the Golden Image. Thus, I
-think it wise, if the children are to succeed in partially visualizing
-the story, that they should have some idea of the dimensions of the
-Golden Image as it would stand out in a vast plain. It might be well
-to compare those dimensions with some building with which the child is
-familiar. In London the matter is easy, as the height will compare,
-roughly speaking, with that of Westminster Abbey. The only change in
-the text I should adopt is to avoid the constant enumeration of the
-list of rulers and the musical instruments. In doing this, I am aware
-that I am sacrificing something of beauty in the rhythm,--on the other
-hand, for narrative purpose, the interest is not broken. The first time
-the announcement is made, that is, by the Herald, it should be in a
-perfectly loud, clear and toneless voice, such as you would naturally
-use when shouting through a trumpet to a vast concourse of people
-scattered over a wide plain; reserving all the dramatic tone of voice
-for the passage where Nebuchadnezzar is making the announcement to the
-three men by themselves. I can remember Professor Moulton saying that
-all the dramatic interest of the story is summed up in the words “But
-if Not....” This suggestion is a very helpful one, for it enables us to
-work up gradually to this point, and then, as it were, _unwind_, until
-we reach the words of Nebuchadnezzar's dramatic recantation.
-
-In this connection, it is a good plan occasionally during the story
-hour to introduce really good poetry which, delivered in a dramatic
-manner (far removed, of course, from the melodramatic), might give
-children their first love of beautiful form in verse. And I do not
-think it necessary to wait for this. Even the normal child of seven
-(though there is nothing arbitrary in the suggestion of this age) will
-appreciate the effect--if only on the ear--of beautiful lines well
-spoken. Mahomet has said, in his teaching advice: “Teach your children
-poetry: it opens the mind, lends grace to wisdom and makes heroic
-virtues hereditary.”
-
-To begin with the youngest children of all, here is a poem which
-contains a thread of story, just enough to give a human interest:
-
-MILKING-TIME.
-
- When the cows come home, the milk is coming,
- Honey's made when the bees are humming.
- Duck, Drake on the rushy lake,
- And the deer live safe in the breezy brake,
- And timid, funny, pert little bunny
- Winks his nose, and sits all sunny.
- _Christina Rossetti._
-
-Now, in comparing this poem with some of the doggerel verse offered
-to small children, one is struck with the literary superiority in the
-choice of words. Here, in spite of the simplicity of the poem, there
-is not the ordinary limited vocabulary, nor the forced rhyme, nor the
-application of a moral, by which the artist falls from grace.
-
-Again, in Eugene Field's “Hushaby Lady,” the language of which is most
-simple, the child is carried away by the beauty of the sound.
-
-I remember hearing some poetry repeated by the children in one of
-the elementary schools in Sheffield which made me feel that they had
-realised romantic possibilities which would prevent their lives from
-ever becoming quite prosaic again, and I wish that this practice
-were more usual. There is little difficulty with the children. I can
-remember, in my own experience as a teacher in London, making the
-experiment of reading or repeating passages from Milton and Shakespeare
-to children from nine to eleven years of age, and the enthusiastic
-way they responded by learning those passages by heart. I have taken,
-with several sets of children, such passages from Milton as “Echo
-Song,” “Sabrina,” “By the rushy fringed Bank,” “Back, shepherds, back,”
-from _Comus_, “May Morning,” “Ode to Shakespeare,” “Samson on his
-blindness,” etc. I even ventured on several passages from _Paradise
-Lost_, and found “Now came still evening on” a particular favourite
-with the children.
-
-It seemed even easier to interest them in Shakespeare, and they learned
-quite readily and easily many passages from “As You Like It,” “Merchant
-of Venice,” “Julius Cæsar”; from “Richard II,” “Henry IV,” and “Henry
-V.”
-
-The method I should recommend in the introduction of both poets
-occasionally into the Story-hour would be threefold.
-
-First, to choose passages which appeal for beauty of sound or beauty
-of mental vision called up by those sounds: such as, “Tell me where is
-Fancy bred,” Titania's Lullaby, “How sweet the moonlight sleeps upon
-this bank.”
-
-Secondly, passages for sheer interest of content, such as the Trial
-Scene from “The Merchant of Venice,” or the Forest Scene in “As You
-Like It.”
-
-Thirdly, for dramatic and historical interest, such as, “Men at some
-time are masters of their fates,” the whole of Mark Antony's speech,
-and the scene with Imogen and her foster-brothers in the Forest.
-
-It may not be wholly out of place to add here that the children learned
-and repeated these passages themselves, and that I offered them the
-same advice as I do to all Story-tellers. I discussed quite openly
-with them the method I considered best, trying to make them see that
-simplicity of delivery was not only the most beautiful but the most
-effective means to use; and, by the end of a few months, when they
-had been allowed to experiment and express themselves, they began
-to see that mere ranting was not force, and that a sense of reserve
-power is infinitely more impressive and inspiring than mere external
-presentation.
-
-I encouraged them to criticise each other for the common good, and
-sometimes I read a few lines with over-emphasis and too much gesture,
-which they were at liberty to point out, so that they might avoid the
-same error.
-
-A very good collection of poems for this purpose of narrative is to be
-found in:
-
- Mrs. P. A. Barnett's series of _Song and Story_,
- Published by A. and C. Black.
-
-And for older children:
-
- _The Call of the Homeland_, Anthology.
- Edited by Dr. Scott and Miss Katharine Wallas, Published by
- Blackie and Son.
-
-Also in a collection published (I believe) in Boston by Miss Agnes
-Repplier.
-
- _Golden Numbers_.
- (K. D. Wiggin and N. A. Smith).
-
-It will be realised from the scanty number of examples offered in
-this section that it is only a side issue, a mere suggestion of an
-occasional alternative for the Story-hour, as likely to develop the
-imagination.
-
-I think it is well to have a good number of stories illustrating the
-importance of common sense and resourcefulness. For this reason I
-consider that stories treating of the ultimate success of the youngest
-son are very admirable for the purpose, because the youngest child,
-who begins by being considered inferior to the elder ones, triumphs in
-the end, either from resourcefulness, or from common sense, or from
-some high quality, such as kindness to animals, courage in overcoming
-difficulties, etc.[27]
-
-Thus we have the story of Cinderella. The cynic might imagine that it
-was the diminutive size of her foot that ensured her success: the child
-does not realise any advantage in this, but, though the matter need not
-be pressed, the story leaves us with the impression that Cinderella had
-been patient and industrious, forbearing with her sisters. We know that
-she was strictly obedient to her godmother, and in order to be this
-she makes her dramatic exit from the ball which is the beginning of
-her triumph. There are many who might say that these qualities do not
-meet with reward in life and that they end in establishing a habit of
-drudgery, but, after all, we must have poetic justice in a Fairy Story,
-occasionally, at any rate.
-
-Another such story is “Jesper and the Hares.” Here, however, it is
-not at first resourcefulness that helps the hero, but sheer kindness
-of heart, which prompts him first to help the ants, and then to
-show civility to the old woman, without for a moment expecting any
-material benefit from such actions. At the end, he does win by his own
-ingenuity and resourcefulness, and if we regret that his _trickery_
-has such wonderful results, we must remember that the aim was to win
-the princess for herself, and that there was little choice left him. I
-consider the end of this story to be one of the most remarkable I have
-found in my long years of browsing among Fairy Tales. I should suggest
-stopping at the words: “The Tub is full,” as any addition seems to
-destroy the subtlety of the story.[28]
-
-Another story of this kind, admirable for children from six years and
-upwards, is “What the Old Man does is always Right.” Here, perhaps,
-the entire lack of common sense on the part of the hero would serve
-rather as a warning than a stimulating example, but the conduct of
-the wife in excusing the errors of her foolish husband is a model of
-resourcefulness.
-
-In the story of “Hereafter--this”[29] we have just the converse: a
-perfectly foolish wife shielded by a most patient and forbearing
-husband, whose tolerance and common sense save the situation.
-
-One of the most important elements to seek in our choice of stories is
-that which tends to develop, eventually, a fine sense of humour in a
-child. I purposely use the word “eventually,” because I realise first
-that humour has various stages, and that seldom, if ever, can you
-expect an appreciation of fine humour from a normal child, that is,
-from an elemental mind. It seems as if the rough-and-tumble element
-were almost a necessary stage through which children must pass--a
-stage, moreover, which is normal and healthy; but up to now we have
-quite unnecessarily extended the period of elephantine fun, and though
-we cannot control the manner in which children are catered for along
-this line in their homes, we can restrict the folly of appealing too
-strongly or too long to this elemental faculty in our schools. Of
-course, the temptation is strong, because the appeal is so easy. But
-there is a tacit recognition that horse-play and practical jokes are
-no longer considered an essential part of a child's education. We note
-this in the changed attitude in the schools, taken by more advanced
-educationists, towards bullying, fagging, hazing, etc. As a reaction,
-then, from more obvious fun, there should be a certain number of
-stories which make appeal to a more subtle element, and in the chapter
-on the questions put to me by teachers on various occasions, I speak
-more in detail about the educational value of a finer humour in our
-stories.
-
-At some period there ought to be presented in our stories the
-superstitions connected with the primitive history of the race, dealing
-with the Fairy (proper), giants, dwarfs, gnomes, nixies, brownies
-and other elemental beings. Andrew Lang says: “Without our savage
-ancestors we should have had no poetry. Conceive the human race born
-into the world in its present advanced condition, weighing, analysing,
-examining everything. Such a race would have been destitute of poetry
-and flattened by common sense. Barbarians did the _dreaming_ of the
-world.”
-
-But it is a question of much debate among educationists what should
-be the period of the child's life in which these stories are to be
-presented. I myself was formerly of opinion that they belonged to
-the very primitive age of the individual, just as they belong to the
-primitive age of the race, but experience in telling stories has taught
-me to compromise.
-
-Some people maintain that little children, who take things with brutal
-logic, ought not to be allowed the Fairy Tale in its more limited
-form of the Supernatural; whereas, if presented to older children,
-this material can be criticised, catalogued and (alas!) rejected as
-worthless, or retained with flippant toleration.
-
-Now, whilst recognising a certain value in this point of view, I am
-bound to admit that if we regulate our stories entirely on this basis,
-we lose the real value of the Fairy Tale element--it is the one element
-which causes little children to _wonder_, simply because no scientific
-analysis of the story can be presented to them. It is somewhat
-heartrending to feel that Jack and the Bean-Stalk and stories of that
-ilk are to be handed over to the critical youth who will condemn the
-quick growth of the tree as being contrary to the order of nature, and
-wonder why Jack was not playing football in the school team instead of
-climbing trees in search of imaginary adventures.
-
-A wonderful plea for the telling of early superstitions to children is
-to be found in an old Indian Allegory called “The Blazing Mansion.”
-
- “An old man owned a large, rambling mansion--the pillars
- were rotten, the galleries tumbling down, the thatch dry and
- combustible, and there was only one door. Suddenly, one day, there
- was a smell of fire: the old man rushed out. To his horror he
- saw that the thatch was aflame, the rotten pillars were catching
- fire one by one, and the rafters were burning like tinder. But
- inside, the children went on amusing themselves quite happily. The
- distracted father said: ‘I will run in and save my children. I will
- seize them in my strong arms, I will bear them harmless through the
- falling rafters and the blazing beams.’ Then the sad thought came
- to him that the children were romping and ignorant. ‘If I say the
- house is on fire, they will not understand me. If I try to seize
- them, they will romp about and try to escape. Alas! not a moment to
- be lost!’ Suddenly a bright thought flashed across the old man's
- mind. ‘My children are ignorant,’ he said; ‘they love toys and
- glittering playthings. I will promise them playthings of unheard-of
- beauty. Then they will listen.’
-
- So the old man shouted: ‘Children, come out of the house and see
- these beautiful toys! Chariots with white oxen, all gold and
- tinsel. See these exquisite little antelopes. Whoever saw such
- goats as these? Children, children, come quickly, or they will all
- be gone!’
-
- Forth from the blazing ruin the children came in hot haste. The
- word ‘plaything’ was almost the only word they could understand.
-
- Then the Father, rejoiced that his offspring was freed from peril,
- procured for them one of the most beautiful chariots ever seen:
- the chariot had a canopy like a pagoda: it had tiny rails and
- balustrades and rows of jingling bells. Milk-white oxen drew the
- chariot. The children were astonished when they were placed inside.”
- (_From the “Thabagata.”_)
-
-Perhaps, as a compromise, one might give the gentler superstitions to
-very small children, and leave such a blood-curdling story as Bluebeard
-to a more robust age.
-
-There is one modern method which has always seemed to me much to be
-condemned, and that is the habit of changing the end of a story, for
-fear of alarming the child. This is quite indefensible. In doing this
-we are tampering with folk-lore and confusing stages of development.
-
-Now, I know that there are individual children that, at a tender
-age, might be alarmed at such a story, for instance, as Little Red
-Riding-Hood; in which case, it is better to sacrifice the “wonder
-stage” and present the story later on.
-
-I live in dread of finding one day a bowdlerized form of “Bluebeard”
-(prepared for a junior standard), in which, to produce a satisfactory
-finale, all the wives come to life again, and “live happily for ever
-after” with Bluebeard and each other!
-
-And from this point it seems an easy transition to the subject of
-legends of different kinds. Some of the old country legends in
-connection with flowers are very charming for children, and as long as
-we do not tread on the sacred ground of the Nature Students, we may
-indulge in a moderate use of such stories, of which a few will be found
-in the Story Lists.
-
-With regard to the introduction of legends connected with saints into
-the school curriculum, my chief plea is the element of the unusual
-which they contain, and an appeal to a sense of mysticism and wonder
-which is a wise antidote to the prosaic and commercial tendencies of
-to-day. Though many of the actions of the saints may be the result of
-a morbid strain of self-sacrifice, at least none of them were engaged
-in the sole occupation of becoming rich: their ideals were often lofty
-and unselfish; their courage high, and their deeds noble. We must be
-careful, in the choice of our legends, to show up the virile qualities
-rather than to dwell on the elements of horror in details of martyrdom,
-or on the too-constantly recurring miracles, lest we should defeat our
-own ends. For the children might think lightly of the dangers to which
-the saints were exposed if they find them too often preserved at the
-last moment from the punishment they were brave enough to undergo. For
-one or other of these reasons, I should avoid the detailed history of
-St. Juliana, St. Vincent, St. Quintin, St. Eustace, St. Winifred, St.
-Theodore, St. James the More, St. Katharine, St. Cuthbert, St. Alphage,
-St. Peter of Milan, St. Quirine and Juliet, St. Alban and others.
-
-The danger of telling children stories connected with sudden
-conversions is that they are apt to place too much emphasis on the
-process, rather than the goal to be reached. We should always insist on
-the splendid deeds performed after a real conversion--not the details
-of the conversion itself; as, for instance, the beautiful and poetical
-work done by St. Christopher when he realised what work he could do
-most effectively.
-
-On the other hand, there are many stories of the saints dealing with
-actions and motives which would appeal to the imagination and are not
-only worthy of imitation, but are not wholly outside the life and
-experience even of the child.[30]
-
-Having protested against the elephantine joke and the too-frequent
-use of exaggerated fun, I now endeavour to restore the balance by
-suggesting the introduction into the school curriculum of a few purely
-grotesque stories which serve as an antidote to sentimentality or
-utilitarianism. But they must be presented as nonsense, so that the
-children may use them for what they are intended, as pure relaxation.
-Such a story is that of “The Wolf and the Kids.” I have had serious
-objections offered to this story by several educational people, because
-of the revenge taken by the goat on the wolf, but I am inclined to
-think that if the story is to be taken as anything but sheer nonsense,
-it is surely sentimental to extend our sympathy towards a caller who
-has devoured six of his hostess' children. With regard to the wolf
-being cut open, there is not the slightest need to accentuate the
-physical side. Children accept the deed as they accept the cutting
-off of a giant's head, because they do not associate it with pain,
-especially if the deed is presented half-humorously. The moment in the
-story where their sympathy is aroused is the swallowing of the kids,
-because the children do realise the possibility of being disposed of
-in the mother's absence. (Needless to say, I never point out the moral
-of the kids' disobedience to the mother in opening the door.) I have
-always noticed a moment of breathlessness even in a grown-up audience
-when the wolf swallows the kids, and that the recovery of them “all
-safe and sound, all huddled together” is quite as much appreciated by
-the adult audience as by the children, and is worth the tremor caused
-by the wolf's summary action.
-
-I have not always been able to impress upon the teachers that this
-story _must_ be taken lightly. A very earnest young student came to
-me once after I had told it, and said in an awestruck voice: “Do you
-Correlate?” Having recovered from the effect of this word, which she
-carefully explained, I said that as a rule I preferred to keep the
-story apart from the other lessons, just an undivided whole, because
-it had effects of its own which were best brought about by not being
-connected with other lessons.[31] She frowned her disapproval and said:
-“I am sorry, because I thought I would take The Goat for my Nature
-Study lesson, and then tell your story at the end.” I thought of the
-terrible struggle in the child's mind between his conscientious wish to
-be accurate and his dramatic enjoyment of the abnormal habits of a goat
-who went out with scissors, needle and thread; but I have been most
-careful since to repudiate any connection with Nature Study in this and
-a few other stories in my répertoire.
-
-One might occasionally introduce one of Edward Lear's “Book of
-Nonsense.” For instance:
-
- There was an Old Man of Cape Horn,
- Who wished he had never been born;
- So he sat in a chair till he died of despair,
- That dolorous Man of Cape Horn.
-
-Now, except in case of very young children, this could not possibly be
-taken seriously. The least observant normal boy or girl would recognise
-the hollowness of the pessimism that prevents a man from at least an
-attempt to rise from his chair.
-
-The following I have chosen as repeated with intense appreciation and
-much dramatic vigour by a little boy just five years old:
-
- There was an Old Man who said, “Hush!
- I perceive a young bird in this bush!”
- When they said, “Is it small?” he replied, “Not at all!
- It is four times as big as the bush!”[32]
-
-One of the most desirable of all elements to introduce into our stories
-is that which encourages kinship with animals. With very young children
-this is easy, because in those early years when the mind is not clogged
-with knowledge, the sympathetic imagination enables them to enter into
-the feelings of animals. Andersen has an illustration of this point in
-his “Ice Maiden”:
-
-“Children who cannot talk yet can understand the language of fowls and
-ducks quite well, and cats and dogs speak to them quite as plainly as
-Father and Mother; but that is only when the children are very small,
-and then even Grandpapa's stick will become a perfect horse to them
-that can neigh and, in their eyes, is furnished with legs and a tail.
-With some children this period ends later than with others, and of such
-we are accustomed to say that they are very backward, and that they
-have remained children for a long time. People are in the habit of
-saying strange things.”
-
-Felix Adler says: “Perhaps the chief attraction of Fairy Tales is due
-to their representing the child as living in brotherly friendship with
-nature and all creatures. Trees, flowers, animals, wild and tame, even
-the stars are represented as comrades of children. That animals are
-only human beings in disguise is an axiom in the Fairy Tales. Animals
-are humanised, that is, the kinship between animal and human life
-is still keenly felt; and this reminds us of those early animistic
-interpretations of nature which subsequently led to doctrines of
-metempsychosis.”[33]
-
-I think that beyond question the finest animal stories are to be found
-in the Indian Collections, of which I furnish a list in the Appendix.
-
-With regard to the development of the love of nature through the
-telling of the stories, we are confronted with a great difficult in the
-elementary schools, because so many of the children have never been out
-of the towns, have never seen a daisy, a blade of grass and scarcely a
-tree, so that in giving, in form of a story, a beautiful description
-of scenery, you can make no appeal to the retrospective imagination,
-and only the rarely gifted child will be able to make pictures whilst
-listening to a style which is beyond his everyday use. Nevertheless,
-once in a way, when the children are in a quiet mood, not eager for
-action but able to give themselves up to the pure joy of sound, then
-it is possible to give them a beautiful piece of writing in praise of
-Nature, such as the following, taken from _The Divine Adventure_, by
-Fiona Macleod:
-
-“Then he remembered the ancient wisdom of the Gael and came out of the
-Forest Chapel and went into the woods. He put his lip to the earth,
-and lifted a green leaf to his brow, and held a branch to his ear,
-and because he was no longer heavy with the sweet clay of mortality,
-though yet of human clan he heard that which we do not hear, and saw
-that which we do not see, and knew that which we do not know. All the
-green life was his. In that new world, he saw the lives of trees, now
-pale green, now of woodsmoke blue, now of amethyst; the gray lives of
-stone; breaths of the grass and reed, creatures of the air, delicate
-and wild as fawns, or swift and fierce and terrible, tigers, of that
-undiscovered wilderness, with birds almost invisible but for their
-luminous wings, and opalescent crests.”
-
-The value of this particular passage is the mystery pervading the whole
-picture, which forms so beautiful an antidote to the eternal explaining
-of things. I think it of the highest importance for children to realise
-that the best and most beautiful things cannot be expressed in everyday
-language and that they must content themselves with a flash here and
-there of the beauty which may come later. One does not enhance the
-beauty of the mountain by pulling to pieces some of the earthy clogs:
-one does not increase the impression of a vast ocean by analysing the
-single drops of water. But at a reverent distance one gets a clear
-impression of the whole, and can afford to leave the details in the
-shadow.
-
-In presenting such passages (and it must be done very sparingly)
-experience has taught me that we should take the children into our
-confidence by telling them frankly that nothing exciting is going
-to happen, so that they will be free to listen to the mere words. A
-very interesting experiment might occasionally be made by asking the
-children some weeks afterwards to tell you in their own words what
-pictures were made on their minds. This is a very different thing from
-allowing the children to reproduce the passage at once, the danger of
-which proceeding I speak of later in detail. (See Chapter on Questions.)
-
-We now come to the question as to what proportion of _Dramatic
-Excitement_ we should present in the stories for a normal group of
-children. Personally, I should like, while the child is very young
-(I mean in mind, not in years) to exclude the element of dramatic
-excitement, but though this may be possible for the individual child,
-it is quite Utopian to hope we can keep the average child free from
-what is in the atmosphere. Children crave for excitement, and unless we
-give it to them in legitimate form, they will take it in any riotous
-form it presents itself, and if from our experience we can control
-their mental digestion by a moderate supply of what they demand, we
-may save them from devouring too eagerly the raw material they can so
-easily find for themselves.
-
-There is a humorous passage bearing on this question in the story of
-the small Scotch boy, when he asks leave of his parents to present the
-pious little book--a gift to himself from his Aunt--to a little sick
-friend, hoping probably that the friend's chastened condition will make
-him more lenient towards this mawkish form of literature. The parents
-expostulate, pointing out to their son how ungrateful he is, and how
-ungracious it would be to part with his Aunt's gift. Then the boy can
-contain himself no longer. He bursts out, unconsciously expressing the
-normal attitude of children at a certain stage of development: “It's
-a _daft_ book ony way; there's naebody gets kilt en't. I like stories
-about folk getting their heids cut off, or stabbit through and through,
-wi' swords an' spears. An' there's nae wile beasts. I like Stories
-about black men gettin' ate up, an' white men killin' lions and tigers
-an' bears an'----”
-
-Then, again, we have the passage from George Eliot's “Mill on the
-Floss”:
-
-“Oh, dear! I wish they would not fight at your school, Tom. Didn't it
-hurt you?”
-
-“Hurt me? No,” said Tom, putting up the hooks again, taking out a large
-pocket-knife, and slowly opening the largest blade, which he looked at
-meditatively as he rubbed his finger along it. Then he added:
-
-“I gave Spooner a black eye--that's what he got for wanting to leather
-me. I wasn't going to go halves because anybody leathered me.”
-
-“Oh! how brave you are, Tom. I think you are like Samson. If there came
-a lion roaring at me, I think you'd fight him, wouldn't you, Tom?”
-
-“How can a lion come roaring at you, you silly thing? There's no lions
-only in the shows.”
-
-“No, but if we were in the lion countries--I mean in Africa where it's
-very hot, the lions eat people there. I can show it you in the book
-where I read it.”
-
-“Well, I should get a gun and shoot him.”
-
-“But if you hadn't got a gun?--we might have gone out, you know, not
-thinking, just as we go out fishing, and then a great lion might come
-towards us roaring, and we could not get away from him. What should you
-do, Tom?”
-
-Tom paused, and at last turned away contemptuously, saying: “But the
-lion _isn't_ coming. What's the use of talking?”
-
-This passage illustrates also the difference between the
-highly-developed imagination of the one and the stodgy prosaical
-temperament of the other. Tom could enter into the elementary question
-of giving his school-fellow a black eye, but could not possibly enter
-into the drama of the imaginary arrival of a lion. He was sorely in
-need of Fairy Stories.
-
-It is for this element we have to cater, and we cannot shirk our
-responsibilities.
-
-William James says: “Living things, moving things or things that
-savour of danger or blood, that have a dramatic quality, these are
-the things natively interesting to childhood, to the exclusion of
-almost everything else, and the teacher of young children (until more
-artificial interests have grown up) will keep in touch with his pupils
-by constant appeal to such matters as those.”[34]
-
-Of course the savour of danger and blood is only _one_ of the things to
-which we should appeal, but I give the whole passage to make the point
-clearer.
-
-This is one of the most difficult parts of our selection, namely, how
-to present enough excitement for the child and yet include enough
-constructive element which will satisfy him when the thirst for
-“blugginess” is slaked.
-
-And here I should like to say that, whilst wishing to encourage in
-children great admiration and reverence for the courage and other fine
-qualities which have been displayed in times of war, and which have
-mitigated its horrors, I think we should show that some of the finest
-moments in these heroes' lives had nothing to do with their profession
-as soldiers. Thus we have the well-known story of Sir Philip Sidney and
-the soldier; the wonderful scene where Roland drags the bodies of his
-dead friends to receive the blessing of the archbishop after the battle
-of Roncevalles[35]; and of Napoleon sending the sailor back to England.
-There is a moment in the story of Gunnar when he pauses in the midst of
-the slaughter of his enemies, and says, “I wonder if I am less brave
-than others, because I kill men less willingly than they.”
-
-And in the “Njal's Burning” from Andrew Lang's “Book of Romance” we
-have the words of the boy Thord when his grandmother, Bergthora, urges
-him to go out of the burning house.
-
-“You promised me when I was little, grandmother, that I never should go
-from you till I wished it of myself. And I would rather die with you
-than live after you.”
-
-Here the moral courage is so splendidly shown; none of these heroes
-feared to die in battle or in open single fight, but to face a death by
-fire for higher considerations is a point of view worth presenting to
-the child.
-
-In spite of all the dramatic excitement roused by the conduct of our
-soldiers and sailors,[36] should we not try to offer also in our
-stories the romance and excitement of saving as well as _taking_ life?
-
-I would have quite a collection dealing with the thrilling adventures
-of the Life-Boat and the Fire Brigade, of which I hope to present
-examples in the final Story List.
-
-Finally, we ought to include a certain number of stories dealing with
-Death, especially with children who are of an age to realise that it
-must come to all, and that this is not a calamity but a perfectly
-natural and simple thing. At present the child in the street invariably
-connects death with sordid accidents. I think they should have stories
-of Death coming in heroic form, as when a man or woman dies for a great
-cause, in which he has opportunity of admiring courage, devotion and
-unselfishness; or of Death coming as a result of treachery, such as
-we find in the death of Baldur, of Siegfried, and of others, so that
-children may learn to abhor such deeds; but also a fair proportion of
-stories dealing with death that comes naturally, when our work is done
-and our strength gone, which has no more tragedy than the falling of
-a leaf from the tree. In this way we can give children the first idea
-that the individual is so much less than the whole.
-
-Quite small children often take Death very naturally. A boy of five
-met two of his older companions at the school door. They said sadly
-and solemnly: “We have just seen a dead man!” “Well,” said the little
-philosopher, “that's all right. We've _all_ got to die when our work's
-done.”
-
-In one of the Buddha stories which I reproduce at the end of this book,
-the little Hare (who is, I think, a symbol of nervous Individualism)
-constantly says: “Suppose the Earth were to fall in, what would become
-of me?”
-
-As an antidote to the ordinary attitude towards death, I commend an
-episode from a German folk-lore story called “Unlucky John,” which is
-included in the list of stories recommended at the end of this book.
-
-The following sums up in poetic form some of the material necessary for
-the wants of a child:
-
-
-THE CHILD.
-
- The little new soul has come to Earth,
- He has taken his staff for the Pilgrim's way.
- His sandals are girt on his tender feet,
- And he carries his scrip for what gifts he may.
-
- What will you give to him, Fate Divine?
- What for his scrip on the winding road?
- A crown for his head, or a laurel wreath?
- A sword to wield, or is gold his load?
-
- What will you give him for weal or woe?
- What for the journey through day and night?
- Give or withhold from him power and fame,
- But give to him love of the earth's delight.
-
- Let him be lover of wind and sun
- And of falling rain; and the friend of trees;
- With a singing heart for the pride of noon,
- And a tender heart for what twilight sees.
-
- Let him be lover of you and yours--
- The Child and Mary; but also Pan,
- And the sylvan gods of the woods and hills,
- And the god that is hid in his fellow-man.
-
- Love and a song and the joy of earth,
- These be the gifts for his scrip to keep
- Till, the journey ended, he stands at last
- In the gathering dark, at the gate of sleep.
- _Ethel Clifford._
-
-And so our stories should contain all the essentials for the child's
-scrip on the road of life, providing the essentials and holding or
-withholding the non-essentials. But, above all, let us fill the scrip
-with gifts that the child need never reject, even when he passes
-through “the gate of sleep.”
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[24] Chapter I, page 3.
-
-[25] This experiment cannot be made with a group of children, for
-obvious reasons.
-
-[26] From an address on the “Cultivation of the Imagination.”
-
-[27] “The House in the Wood” (Grimm) is a good instance of triumph for
-the youngest child.
-
-[28] To be found in Andrew Lang's Collection. See list of Stories.
-
-[29] To be found in Jacob's “More English Tales.”
-
-[30] For selection of suitable stories among legends of the Saints, see
-Story Lists.
-
-[31] I believe that I am quite in a minority among Educationists in
-this matter. Possibly my constantly specialising in the stories may
-have formed my opinion.
-
-[32] These words have been set most effectively to music by Miss
-Margaret Ruthven Lang. (Boston.)
-
-[33] From “Moral Instruction of Children,” page 66. “The Use of Fairy
-Tales.”
-
-[34] From “Talks to Teachers,” page 93.
-
-[35] An excellent account of this is to be found in “The Song of
-Roland,” by Arthur Way and Frederic Spender.
-
-[36] This passage was written before the Great War.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-
-HOW TO OBTAIN AND MAINTAIN THE EFFECT OF THE STORY.
-
-
-WE are now coming to the most important part of the question of
-Story-Telling, to which all the foregoing remarks have been gradually
-leading, and that is the Effects of these stories upon the child, apart
-from the dramatic joy he experiences in listening to them, which would
-in itself be quite enough to justify us in the telling. But, since I
-have urged upon teachers the extreme importance of giving so much time
-to the manner of telling and of bestowing so much care on the selection
-of the material, it is right that they should expect some permanent
-results, or else those who are not satisfied with the mere enjoyment of
-the children will seek other methods of appeal--and it is to them that
-I most specially dedicate this chapter.
-
-I think we are on the threshold of the re-discovery of an old truth,
-that the Dramatic Presentation is the quickest and surest, because
-it is the only one with which memory plays no tricks. If a thing has
-appeared before us in a vital form, nothing can really destroy it; it
-is because things are often given in a blurred, faint light that they
-gradually fade out of our memory. A very keen scientist was deploring
-to me, on one occasion, the fact that stories were told so much in the
-schools, to the detriment of science, for which she claimed the same
-indestructible element that I recognise in the best-told stories.
-Being very much interested in her point of view, I asked her to tell
-me, looking back on her school days, what she could remember as
-standing out from other less clear information. After thinking some
-little time over the matter, she said with some embarrassment, but with
-a candour that did her much honour:
-
-“Well, now I come to think of it, it was the story of Cinderella.”
-
-Now, I am not holding any brief for this story in particular. I think
-the reason it was remembered was because of the dramatic form in which
-it was presented to her, which fired her imagination and kept the
-memory alight. I quite realise that a scientific fact might also have
-been easily remembered if it was presented in the form of a successful
-chemical experiment: but this also has something of the dramatic appeal
-and will be remembered on that account.
-
-Sully says: “We cannot understand the fascination of a story for
-children save in remembering that for their young minds, quick to
-imagine, and unversed in abstract reflection, words are not dead things
-but _winged_, as the old Greeks called them.”[37]
-
-The Red Queen (in “Through the Looking-Glass”) was more psychological
-than she knew when she made the memorable statement: “When once you've
-_said_ a thing that _fixes_ it, and you must take the consequences.”
-
-In Curtin's Introduction to “Myths and Folk Tales of the Russians,” he
-says:
-
-“I remember well the feeling roused in my mind at the mention or sight
-of the name _Lucifer_ during the early years of my life. It stood for
-me as the name of a being stupendous, dreadful in moral deformity,
-lurid, hideous and mighty. I remember the surprise which, when I had
-grown somewhat older and began to study Latin, I came upon the name in
-Virgil where it means _light-bringer_--the herald of the Sun.”
-
-Plato has said: “That the End of Education should be the training by
-suitable habits of the Instincts of Virtue in the Child.”
-
-About two thousand years later, Sir Philip Sidney, in his “Defence of
-Poesy,” says: “The final end of learning is to draw and lead us to so
-high a perfection as our degenerate souls, made worse by their clay
-lodgings, can be capable of.”
-
-And yet it is neither the Greek philosopher nor the Elizabethan poet
-that makes the every-day application of these principles; but we have
-a hint of this application from the Pueblo tribe of Indians, of whom
-Lummis tells us the following:
-
-“There is no duty to which a Pueblo child is trained in which he has
-to be content with a bare command: Do this. For each he learns a
-fairy-tale designed to explain how children first came to know that
-it was right to ‘do this,’ and detailing the sad results that befell
-those who did otherwise. Some tribes have regular story-tellers, men
-who have devoted a great deal of time to learning the myths and stories
-of their people and who possess, in addition to a good memory, a vivid
-imagination. The mother sends for one of these, and having prepared a
-feast for him, she and her little brood, who are curled up near her,
-await the Fairy Stories of the dreamer, who after his feast and smoke
-entertains the company for hours.”
-
-In modern times, the nurse, who is now receiving such complete
-training for her duties with the children, should be ready to
-imitate the “dreamer” of the Indian tribe. I rejoice to find that
-regular instruction in Story-telling is being given in many of the
-institutions where the nurses are trained.
-
-Some years ago there appeared a book by Dion Calthrop called “King
-Peter,” which illustrates very fully the effect of story-telling. It
-is the account of the education of a young prince which is carried on
-at first by means of stories, and later he is taken out into the arena
-of Life to be shown what is happening there--the dramatic appeal being
-always the means used to awaken his imagination. The fact that only
-_one_ story a year is told him prevents our seeing the effect from day
-to day, but the time matters little. We only need faith to believe that
-the growth, though slow, was very sure.
-
-There is something of the same idea in the “Adventures of Telemachus,”
-written by Fénélon for his royal pupil, the young Duke of Burgundy; but
-whereas Calthrop trusts to the results of indirect teaching by means of
-dramatic stories, Fénélon, on the contrary, makes use of the somewhat
-heavy, didactic method, so that one would think the attention of the
-young prince must have wandered at times; and I imagine Telemachus was
-in the same condition when he was addressed at some length by Mentor,
-who, being Minerva (though in disguise), should occasionally have
-displayed that sense of humour which must always temper true wisdom:
-
-Take, for instance, the heavy reproof conveyed in the following
-passage:
-
-“Death and shipwreck are less dreadful than the pleasures that attack
-Virtue.... Youth is full of presumption and arrogance, though nothing
-in the world is so frail: it fears nothing, and vainly relies on its
-own strength, believing everything with the utmost levity and without
-any precaution.”
-
-And on another occasion, when Calypso hospitably provides clothes for
-the shipwrecked men, and Telemachus is handling a tunic of the finest
-wool and white as snow, with a vest of purple embroidered with gold,
-and displaying much pleasure in the magnificence of the clothes, Mentor
-addresses him in a severe voice, saying: “Are these, O Telemachus, the
-thoughts that ought to occupy the heart of the son of Ulysses? A young
-man who loves to dress vainly, as a woman does, is unworthy of wisdom
-or glory.”
-
-I remember, as a schoolgirl of thirteen, having to commit to memory
-several books of these adventures, so as to become familiar with the
-style. Far from being impressed by the wisdom of Mentor, I was simply
-bored, and wondered why Telemachus did not escape from him. The only
-part in the book that really interested me was Calypso's unrequited
-love for Telemachus, but this was always the point where we ceased to
-learn by heart, which surprised me greatly, for it was here that the
-real human interest seemed to begin.
-
-Of all the effects which I hope for from the telling of stories in the
-schools, personally I place first the dramatic joy we bring to the
-children and to ourselves. But there are many who would consider this
-result as fantastic, if not frivolous, and not to be classed among the
-educational values concocted with the introduction of stories into the
-school curriculum. I therefore propose to speak of other effects of
-story-telling which may seem of more practical value.
-
-The first, which is of a purely negative character, is that through
-means of a dramatic story we can counteract some of the sights and
-sounds of the streets which appeal to the melodramatic instinct in
-children. I am sure that all teachers whose work lies in the crowded
-cities must have realised the effect produced on children by what they
-see and hear on their way to and from school. If we merely consider
-the hoardings, with their realistic representations, quite apart from
-the actual dramatic happenings in the street, we at once perceive
-that the ordinary school interests pale before such lurid appeals as
-these. How can we expect the child who has stood open-mouthed before
-a poster representing a woman chloroformed by a burglar, whilst that
-hero escapes in safety with her jewels, to display any interest in the
-arid monotony of the multiplication-table? The illegitimate excitement
-created by the sight of the depraved burglar can only be counteracted
-by something equally exciting along the realistic but legitimate side;
-and this is where the story of the right kind becomes so valuable, and
-why the teacher who is artistic enough to undertake the task can find
-the short path to results which theorists seek for so long in vain. It
-is not even necessary to have an exceedingly exciting story; sometimes
-one which will bring about pure reaction may be just as suitable.
-
-I remember in my personal experience an instance of this kind. I had
-been reading with some children of about ten years old the story from
-Cymbeline, of Imogen in the forest scene, when the brothers strew
-flowers upon her, and sing the funeral dirge,
-
- “Fear no more the heat of the sun.”
-
-Just as we had all taken on this tender, gentle mood, the door opened
-and one of the prefects announced in a loud voice the news of the
-relief of Mafeking. The children were on their feet at once, cheering
-lustily, and for the moment the joy over the relief of the brave
-garrison was the predominant feeling. Then, before the Jingo spirit
-had time to assert itself, I took advantage of a momentary reaction and
-said: “Now, children, don't you think we can pay England the tribute
-of going back to England's greatest poet?” In a few minutes we were
-back in the heart of the Forest, and I can still hear the delightful
-intonation of those subdued voices repeating:
-
- Golden lads and girls all must
- Like chimney-sweepers come to dust.
-
-It is interesting to note that the same problem that is exercising
-us to-day was a source of difficulty to people in remote times. The
-following is taken from an old Chinese document, and has particular
-interest for us to-day.
-
-“The Philosopher Mentius (born 371 B.C.) was left fatherless at a very
-tender age and brought up by his mother Changsi. The care of this
-prudent and attentive mother has been cited as a model for all virtuous
-parents. The house she occupied was near that of a butcher: she
-observed at the first cry of the animals that were being slaughtered,
-the little Mentius ran to be present at the sight, and that, on his
-return, he sought to imitate what he had seen. Fearful lest his heart
-might become hardened, and accustomed to the sights of blood, she
-removed to another house which was in the neighbourhood of a cemetery.
-The relations of those who were buried there came often to weep upon
-their graves, and make their customary libations. The lad soon took
-pleasure in their ceremonies and amused himself by imitating them.
-This was a new subject of uneasiness to his mother: she feared her
-son might come to consider as a jest what is of all things the most
-serious, and that he might acquire a habit of performing with levity,
-and as a matter of routine merely, ceremonies which demand the most
-exact attention and respect. Again therefore she anxiously changed the
-dwelling, and went to live in the city, opposite to a school, where her
-son found examples the most worthy of imitation, and began to profit
-by them. This anecdote has become incorporated by the Chinese into a
-proverb, which they constantly quote: The Mother of Mentius seeks a
-neighbourhood.”
-
-Another influence we have to counteract is that of newspaper headings
-which catch the eye of children in the streets and appeal so powerfully
-to their imagination.
-
-Shakespeare has said:
-
- Tell me where is Fancy bred,
- Or in the heart, or in the head?
- How begot, how nourished?
- Reply, reply.
- It is engendered in the eyes
- With gazing fed: and Fancy dies
- In the cradle where it lies.
- Let us all ring Fancy's knell.
- I'll begin it--ding, dong, bell.
- “_Merchant of Venice._”
-
-If this be true, it is of importance to decide what our children shall
-look upon as far as we can control the vision, so that we can form some
-idea of the effect upon their imagination.
-
-Having alluded to the dangerous influence of the street, I should
-hasten to say that this influence is very far from being altogether
-bad. There are possibilities of romance in street life which may have
-just the same kind of effect on children as the telling of exciting
-stories. I am indebted to Mrs. Arnold Glover (Hon. Sec. of the National
-Organisation of Girls' Clubs), one of the most widely informed people
-on this subject, for the two following experiences gathered from the
-streets which bear indirectly on the subject of story-telling:
-
-Mrs. Glover was visiting a sick woman in a very poor neighbourhood,
-and found, sitting on the doorstep of the house, two children, holding
-something tightly grasped in their little hands, and gazing with much
-expectancy towards the top of the street. She longed to know what they
-were doing, but not being one of those unimaginative and tactless
-folk who rush headlong into the mysteries of children's doings, she
-passed them at first in silence. It was only when she found them still
-in the same silent and expectant posture half-an-hour later that
-she said tentatively: “I wonder whether you would tell me what you
-are doing here?” After some hesitation, one of them said, in a shy
-voice: “We're waitin' for the barrer.” It then transpired that, once a
-week, a vegetable-and flower-cart was driven through this particular
-street, on its way to a more prosperous neighbourhood, and on a few
-red-letter days, a flower, or a sprig, or even a root sometimes fell
-out of the back of the cart; and those two little children were waiting
-there in hope, with their hands full of soil, ready to plant anything
-which might by golden chance fall that way, in their secret garden of
-oyster-shells.
-
-This seems to me as charming a fairy-tale as any that our books can
-supply.
-
-Another time Mrs. Glover was collecting the pennies for the Holiday
-Fund Savings Bank from the children who came weekly to her house. She
-noticed on three consecutive Mondays that one little lad deliberately
-helped himself to a new envelope from her table. Not wishing to
-frighten or startle him, she allowed this to continue for some weeks,
-and then one day, having dismissed the other children, she asked him
-quite quietly why he was taking the envelopes. At first he was very
-sulky, and said: “I need them better than you do.” She quite agreed
-this might be, but reminded him that, after all, they belonged to her.
-She promised, however, that if he would tell her for what purpose he
-wanted the envelopes, she would endeavour to help him in the matter.
-Then came the astonishing announcement: “I am building a navy.” After
-a little more gradual questioning, Mrs. Glover drew from the boy the
-information that the Borough Water Carts passed through the side
-street once a week, flushing the gutter; that then the Envelope Ships
-were made to sail on the water and pass under the covered ways which
-formed bridges for wayfarers and tunnels for the “navy.” Great was the
-excitement when the ships passed out of sight and were recognised as
-they arrived safely at the other end. Of course the expenses in raw
-material were greatly diminished by the illicit acquisition of Mrs.
-Glover's property, and in this way she had unconsciously provided the
-neighbourhood with a navy and a Commander. Her first instinct, after
-becoming acquainted with the whole story, was to present the boy with a
-real boat, but on second thought she collected and gave him a number of
-old envelopes with names and addresses upon them, which added greatly
-to the excitement of the sailing, because they could be more easily
-identified as they came out of the other side of the tunnel, and had
-their respective reputations as to speed.
-
-Here is indeed food for romance, and I give both instances to prove
-that the advantages of street life are to be taken into consideration
-as well as the disadvantages; though I think we are bound to admit that
-the latter outweigh the former.
-
-One of the immediate results of dramatic stories is the escape from
-the commonplace, to which I have already alluded in quoting Mr.
-Goschen's words. The desire for this escape is a healthy one, common to
-adults and children. When we wish to get away from our own surroundings
-and interests, we do for ourselves what I maintain we ought to do for
-children; we step into the land of fiction. It has always been a source
-of astonishment to me that, in trying to escape from our own every-day
-surroundings, we do not step more boldly into the land of pure romance,
-which would form a real contrast to our every-day life, but in nine
-cases out of ten the fiction which is sought after deals with the
-subjects of our ordinary existence--namely, frenzied finance, sordid
-poverty, political corruption, fast society, and religious doubts.
-
-There is the same danger in the selection of fiction for children:
-namely, a tendency to choose very utilitarian stories, both in form and
-substance, so that we do not lift the children out of the commonplace.
-I remember once seeing the titles of two little books, the contents of
-which were being read or told to small children of the poorer class:
-one was called “Tom the Boot-black,” the other, “Dan the News-boy.”
-My chief objection to these stories was the fact that neither of
-the heroes rejoiced in their work for the work's sake. Had Tom even
-invented a new kind of blacking, or if Dan had started a splendid
-newspaper, it might have been encouraging for those among the listeners
-who were thinking of engaging in similar professions. It is true, both
-gentlemen amassed large fortunes, but surely the school age is not to
-be limited to such dreams and aspirations as these! One wearies of the
-tales of boys who arrive in a town with one cent in their pockets, and
-leave it as millionaires, with the added importance of a Mayoralty, not
-to speak of a Knighthood. It is true that the romantic prototype of
-these boys is Dick Whittington, for whom we unconsciously cherish the
-affection which we often bestow on a far-off personage. Perhaps--who
-knows?--it is the picturesque adjunct of the cat--lacking to modern
-millionaires.[38]
-
-I do not think it Utopian to present to children a fair share of
-stories which deal with the importance of things “untouched by hand.”
-They too can learn at an early age that “the things which are seen are
-temporal, but the things which are unseen are spiritual.” To those who
-wish to try the effect of such stories on children, I present for their
-encouragement the following lines from Whitcomb Riley:
-
-
-THE TREASURE OF THE WISE MAN.[39]
-
- Oh, the night was dark and the night was late,
- When the robbers came to rob him;
- And they picked the lock of his palace-gate,
- The robbers who came to rob him--
- They picked the lock of the palace-gate,
- Seized his jewels and gems of State
- His coffers of gold and his priceless plate,--
- The robbers that came to rob him.
-
- But loud laughed he in the morning red!--
- For of what had the robbers robbed him?
- Ho! hidden safe, as he slept in bed,
- When the robbers came to rob him,--
- They robbed him not of a golden shred
- Of the childish dreams in his wise old head--
- “And they're welcome to all things else,” he said,
- When the robbers came to rob him.
-
-There is a great deal of this romantic spirit, combined with a
-delightful sense of irresponsibility, which I claim above all things
-for small children, to be found in our old Nursery Rhymes. I quote from
-the following article written by the Rev. R. L. Gales for the _Nation_.
-
-After speaking on the subject of Fairy Stories being eliminated from
-the school curriculum, the writer adds:
-
-“This would be lessening the joy of the world and taking from
-generations yet unborn the capacity for wonder, the power to take a
-large unselfish interest in the spectacle of things, and putting them
-forever at the mercy of small private cares.
-
-A Nursery Rhyme is the most sane, the most unselfish thing in the
-world. It calls up some delightful image,--a little nut-tree with a
-silver walnut and a golden pear; some romantic adventure only for the
-child's delight and liberation from the bondage of unseeing dulness: it
-brings before the mind the quintessence of some good thing:
-
-'The little dog laughed to see such sport'--there is the soul of
-good humour, of sanity, of health in the laughter of that innocently
-wicked little dog. It is the laughter of pure frolic without
-unkindness. To have laughed with the little dog as a child is the best
-preservative against mirthless laughter in later years--the horse
-laughter of brutality, the ugly laughter of spite, the acrid laughter
-of fanaticism. The world of Nursery Rhymes, the old world of Mrs.
-Slipper-Slopper, is the world of natural things, of quick, healthy
-motion, of the joy of living.
-
-In Nursery Rhymes the child is entertained with all the pageant of
-the world. It walks in Fairy Gardens, and for it the singing birds
-pass. All the King's horses and all the King's men pass before it in
-their glorious array. Craftsmen of all sorts, bakers, confectioners,
-silversmiths, blacksmiths are busy for it with all their arts and
-mysteries, as at the court of an Eastern King.”
-
-In insisting on the value of this escape from the commonplace, I cannot
-prove the importance of it more clearly than by showing what may happen
-to a child who is deprived of his birthright by having none of the
-Fairy Tale element presented to him. In “Father and Son,” Mr. Edmund
-Gosse says:
-
-“Meanwhile, capable as I was of reading, I found my greatest pleasure
-in the pages of books. The range of these was limited, for story-books
-of every description were sternly excluded. No fiction of any kind,
-religious or secular, was admitted into the house. In this it was to
-my Mother, not to my Father, that the prohibition was due. She had a
-remarkable, I confess, to me somewhat unaccountable impression that to
-‘tell a story,’ that is, to compose fictitious narrative of any kind,
-was a sin.... Nor would she read the chivalrous tales in the verse of
-Sir Walter Scott, obstinately alleging that they were not true. She
-would read nothing but lyrical and subjective poetry.... As a child,
-however, she had possessed a passion for making up stories, and so
-considerable a skill in it, that she was constantly being begged to
-indulge others with its exercise.... ‘When I was a very little child,’
-she says, ‘I used to amuse myself and my brothers with inventing
-stories such as I had read. Having, as I suppose, naturally a restless
-mind and busy imagination, this soon became the chief pleasure of
-my life. Unfortunately, my brothers were always fond of encouraging
-this propensity, and I found in Taylor, my maid, a still greater
-tempter. I had not known there was any harm in it, until Miss Shore (a
-Calvinistic governess), finding it out, lectured me severely and told
-me it was wicked. From that time forth I considered that to invent
-a story of any kind was a sin.... But the longing to invent stories
-grew with violence. The simplicity of Truth was not enough for me. I
-must needs embroider imagination upon it, and the folly and wickedness
-which disgraced my heart are more than I am able to express....’ This
-(the Author, her son, adds) is surely a very painful instance of the
-repression of an instinct.”
-
-In contrast to the stifling of the imagination, it is good to recall
-the story of the great Hermits who, having listened to the discussion
-of the Monday sitting at the Académie des Sciences (Institut de France)
-as to the best way to teach the young how to shoot in the direction
-of mathematical genius, said: “_Cultivez l'imagination, messieurs.
-Tout est là. Si vous voulez des mathématiciens, donnez à vos enfants à
-lire--des Contes de Fées._”
-
-Another important effect of the story is to develop at an early
-age sympathy for children of other countries where conditions are
-different from our own. There is a book used in American schools
-called “Little Citizens of other Lands,” dealing with the clothes,
-the games and occupations of those little citizens. Stories of this
-kind are particularly necessary to prevent the development of insular
-notions, and are a check on that robust form of Philistinism, only
-too prevalent, alas! among grown-ups, which looks askance at new
-suggestions and makes the withering remark: “How un-English! How
-queer!”--the second comment being, it would seem, a natural corollary
-to the first.[40]
-
-I have so constantly to deal with the question of confusion between
-Truth and Fiction in the mind of children that it might be useful
-to offer here an example of the way they make the distinction for
-themselves.
-
-Mrs. Ewing says on this subject:
-
-“If there are young intellects so imperfect as to be incapable of
-distinguishing between Fancy and Falsehood, it is most desirable to
-develop in them the power to do so, but, as a rule, in childhood,
-we appreciate the distinction with a vivacity which as elders our
-care-clogged memories fail to recall.”
-
-Mr. P. A. Barnett, in his book on the “Commonsense of Education,” says,
-alluding to Fairy Tales:
-
-“Children will _act_ them but not act _upon_ them, and they will
-not accept the incidents as part of their effectual belief. They
-will imagine, to be sure, grotesque worlds, full of admirable and
-interesting personages to whom strange things might have happened.
-So much the better; this largeness of imagination is one of the
-possessions that distinguish the better nurtured child from others less
-fortunate.”
-
-The following passage from Stevenson's essay on _Child Play_[41] will
-furnish an instance of children's aptitude for creating their own
-dramatic atmosphere:
-
-“When my cousin and I took our porridge of a morning, we had a device
-to enliven the course of a meal. He ate his with sugar, and explained
-it to be a country continually buried under snow. I took mine with
-milk, and explained it to be a country suffering gradual inundation.
-You can imagine us exchanging bulletins; how here was an island still
-unsubmerged, here a valley not yet covered with snow; what inventions
-were made; how his population lived in cabins on perches and travelled
-on stilts, and how mine was always in boats; how the interest grew
-furious as the last corner of safe ground was cut off on all sides and
-grew smaller every moment; and how, in fine, the food was of altogether
-secondary importance, and might even have been nauseous, so long as we
-seasoned it with these dreams. But perhaps the most exciting moments I
-ever had over a meal, were in the case of calves' feet jelly. It was
-hardly possible not to believe, and you may be quite sure, so far from
-trying it, I did all I could to favour the illusion--that some part of
-it was hollow, and that sooner or later my spoon would lay open the
-secret tabernacle of that golden rock. There, might some Red-Beard
-await this hour; there might one find the treasures of the Forty
-Thieves. And so I quarried on slowly, with bated breath, savouring
-the interest. Believe me, I had little palate left for the jelly; and
-though I preferred the taste when I took cream with it, I used often to
-go without because the cream dimmed the transparent fractures.”
-
-In his work on Imagination, Ribot says: “The free initiative of
-children is always superior to the imitations we pretend to make for
-them.”
-
-The passage from Robert Stevenson becomes more clear from a scientific
-point of view when taken in connection with one from Karl Groos' book
-on the “Psychology of Animal Play”:
-
-“The Child is wholly absorbed in his play, and yet under the ebb and
-flow of thought and feeling like still water under wind-swept waves, he
-has the knowledge that it is pretence after all. Behind the sham ‘I’
-that takes part in the game, stands the unchanged ‘I’ which regards the
-sham ‘I’ with quiet superiority.”
-
-Queyrat speaks of play as one of the distinct phases of a child's
-imagination; it is “essentially a metamorphosis of reality, a
-transformation of places and things.”
-
-Now to return to the point which Mrs. Ewing makes, namely, that we
-should develop in normal children the power of distinguishing between
-Truth and Falsehood.
-
-I should suggest including two or three stories which would test that
-power in children, and if they fail to realise the difference between
-romancing and telling lies then it is evident that they need special
-attention and help along this line. I give the titles of two stories of
-this kind in the collection at the end of the book.[42]
-
-So far we have dealt only with the negative results of stories, but
-there are more important effects, and I am persuaded that if we are
-careful in our choice of stories, and artistic in our presentation
-(so that the truth is framed, so to speak, in the memory), we can
-unconsciously correct evil tendencies in children which they only
-recognise in themselves when they have already criticised them in
-the characters of the story. I have sometimes been misunderstood on
-this point, therefore I should like to make it quite clear. I do
-_not_ mean that stories should take the place entirely of moral or
-direct teaching, but that on many occasions they could supplement
-and strengthen moral teaching, because the dramatic appeal to the
-imagination is quicker than the moral appeal to the conscience. A child
-will often resist the latter lest it should make him uncomfortable
-or appeal to his personal sense of responsibility: it is often not in
-his power to resist the former, because it has taken possession of him
-before he is aware of it.
-
-As a concrete example, I offer three verses from a poem entitled “A
-Ballad for a Boy,” written some twelve years ago by W. Cory, an Eton
-master. The whole poem is to be found in a book of poems known as
-“Ionica” (published by George Allen and Co.).
-
-The poem describes a fight between two ships, the French ship
-_Téméraire_ and the English ship _Quebec_. The English ship was
-destroyed by fire. Farmer, the captain, was killed, and the officers
-taken prisoners:
-
- “They dealt with us as brethren, they mourned for Farmer dead;
- And as the wounded captives passed, each Breton bowed the head.
- Then spoke the French lieutenant, 'Twas the fire that won, not we:
- You never struck your flag to _us_; you'll go to England free.'[43]
-
- 'Twas the sixth day of October, Seventeen-hundred-seventy-nine,
- A year when nations ventured against us to combine,
- _Quebec_ was burned and Farmer slain, by us remembered not;
- But thanks be to the French book wherein they're not forgot.
-
- And you, if you've to fight the French, my youngster, bear in mind
- Those seamen of King Louis so chivalrous and kind;
- Think of the Breton gentlemen who took our lads to Brest,
- And treat some rescued Breton as a comrade and a guest.”
-
-This poem is specially to be commended because it is another example of
-the finer qualities which are developed in war.[44]
-
-Now, such a ballad as this, which, being pure narrative, could
-easily be introduced into the story-hour, would do as much to foster
-“_L'entente cordiale_” as any processions or civic demonstrations,
-or lavish international exchange of hospitality. It has also a great
-practical application now that we are encouraging visits between
-English and foreign children. Let us hope the _entente cordiale_ will
-not stop at France. There must be many such instances of magnanimity
-and generosity displayed to us by other nations, and it might be
-well to collect them and include them among stories for the school
-curriculum.
-
-But in all our stories, in order to produce desired effects we must
-refrain from holding, as Burroughs says, “a brief for either side,” and
-we must leave the decision of the children free in this matter.[45]
-
-In a review of Ladd's _Psychology_ in the “Academy,” we find a passage
-which refers as much to the story as to the novel:
-
- “The psychological novelist girds up his loins and sets himself
- to write little essays on each of his characters. If he have the
- gift of the thing he may analyse motives with a subtlety which is
- more than their desert, and exhibit simple folk passing through the
- most dazzling rotations. If he be a novice, he is reduced to mere
- crude invention--the result in both cases is quite beyond the true
- purpose of Art. Art--when all is said and done--is a suggestion,
- and it refuses to be explained. Make it obvious, unfold it in
- detail, and you reduce it to a dead letter.”
-
-Again there is a sentence by Schopenhauer applied to novels which would
-apply equally well to stories:
-
-“Skill consists in setting the inner life in motion with the smallest
-possible array of circumstances, for it is this inner life that excites
-our interest.”
-
-Now, in order to produce an encouraging and lasting effect by means
-of our stories, we should be careful to introduce a certain number
-from fiction where virtue is rewarded and vice punished, because
-to appreciate the fact that “virtue is its own reward” calls for a
-developed and philosophic mind, or a born saint, of whom there will
-not, I think, be many among normal children: a comforting fact, on the
-whole, as the normal teacher is apt to confuse them with prigs.
-
-A _grande dame_ visiting an elementary school listened to the telling
-of an exciting story from fiction, and was impressed by the thrill
-of delight which passed through the children. But when the story was
-finished, she said: “But _oh!_ what a pity the story was not taken from
-actual history!”
-
-Now, not only was this comment quite beside the mark, but the lady
-in question did not realise that pure fiction has one quality which
-history cannot have. The historian, bound by fact and accuracy, must
-often let his hero come to grief. The poet (or, in this case, we may
-call him, in the Greek sense, the “maker” of stories) strives to show
-_ideal_ justice.
-
-What encouragement to virtue (except for the abnormal child) can be
-offered by the stories of good men coming to grief, such as we find in
-Miltiades, Phocion, Socrates, Severus, Cicero, Cato and Cæsar?
-
-Sir Philip Sidney says in his “Defence of Poesy”:
-
-“Only the Poet declining to be held by the limitations of the lawyer,
-the _historian_, the grammarian, the rhetorician, the logician, the
-physician, the metaphysician, if lifted up with the vigour of his own
-imagination; doth grow in effect into another nature in making things
-either better than Nature bringeth forth or quite anew, as the Heroes,
-Demi-gods, Cyclops, Furies and such like, so as he goeth hand in hand
-with Nature not enclosed in the narrow range of her gifts but freely
-ranging within the Zodiac of his own art--_her_ world is brazen; the
-poet only delivers a golden one.”
-
-The effect of the story need not stop at the negative task of
-correcting evil tendencies. There is the positive effect of translating
-the abstract ideal of the story into concrete action.
-
-I was told by Lady Henry Somerset that when the first set of slum
-children came down for a fortnight's holiday in the country, she was
-much startled and shocked by the obscenity of the games they played
-amongst themselves. Being a sound psychologist, Lady Henry wisely
-refrained from appearing surprised or from attempting any direct method
-of reproof. “I saw,” she said, “that the ‘goody’ element would have no
-effect, so I changed the whole atmosphere by reading to them or telling
-them the most thrilling mediæval tales without any commentary. By the
-end of the fortnight the activities had all changed. The boys were
-performing astonishing deeds of prowess, and the girls were allowing
-themselves to be rescued from burning towers and fetid dungeons.”
-Now, if these deeds of chivalry appear somewhat stilted to us, we can
-at least realise that, having changed the whole atmosphere of the
-filthy games, it is easier to translate the deeds into something a
-little more in accordance with the spirit of the age, and boys will
-more readily wish later on to save their sisters from dangers more
-sordid and commonplace than fiery towers and dark dungeons, if they
-have once performed the deeds in which they had to court danger and
-self-sacrifice for themselves.
-
-And now we come to the question as to how these effects are to be
-maintained. In what has already been stated about the danger of
-introducing the dogmatic and direct appeal into the story, it is
-evident that the avoidance of this element is the first means of
-preserving the story in all its artistic force in the memory of the
-child, and we must be careful, as I point out in the chapter on
-Questions, not to interfere by comment or question with the atmosphere
-we have made round the story, or else, in the future, that story will
-become blurred and overlaid with the remembrance, not of the artistic
-whole, as presented by the teller of the story, but by some unimportant
-small side issue raised by an irrelevant question or a superfluous
-comment.
-
-Many people think that the dramatisation of the story by the children
-themselves helps to maintain the effect produced. Personally, I fear
-there is the same danger as in the immediate reproduction of the story,
-namely, that the general dramatic effect may be weakened.
-
-If, however, there is to be dramatisation (and I do not wish to
-dogmatise on the subject), I think it should be confined to facts
-and not fancies, and this is why I realise the futility of the
-dramatisation of Fairy Tales.
-
-Horace Scudder says on this subject:
-
-“Nothing has done more to vulgarise the Fairy than its introduction
-on the stage. The charm of the Fairy Tale is its divorce from human
-experience; the charm of the stage is its realisation in miniature of
-Human Life. If a frog is heard to speak, if a dog is changed before
-our eyes into a prince by having cold water dashed over it, the charm
-of the Fairy Tale has fled, and, in its place, we have the perplexing
-pleasure of _leger de main_. Since the real life of a Fairy is in the
-imagination, a wrong is committed when it is dragged from its shadowy
-hiding-place and made to turn into ashes under the calcium light of the
-understanding.”[46]
-
-I am bound to confess that the teachers have a case when they plead for
-this re-producing of the story, and there are three arguments they use
-whose validity I admit, but which have nevertheless not converted me,
-because the loss, to my mind, would exceed the gain.
-
-The first argument they put forward is that the reproduction of the
-story enables the child to enlarge and improve his vocabulary. Now
-I greatly sympathise with this point of view, only, as I regard the
-story-hour as a very precious and special one, which I think may have a
-lasting effect on the character of a child, I do not think it important
-that, during this hour, a child should be called upon to improve his
-vocabulary at the expense of the dramatic whole, and at the expense
-of the literary form in which the story has been presented. It would
-be like using the Bible for parsing or paraphrase or pronunciation.
-So far, I believe, the line has been drawn here, though there are
-blasphemers who have laid impious hands on Milton or Shakespeare for
-this purpose.
-
-There are surely other lessons (as I have already said in dealing with
-the reproduction of the story quite apart from the dramatisation),
-lessons more utilitarian in character, which can be used for this
-purpose: the facts of history (I mean the mere facts as compared with
-the deep truths) and those of geography, above all, the grammar lessons
-are those in which the vocabulary can be enlarged and improved. But
-I am anxious to keep the story-hour apart as dedicated to something
-higher than these excellent but utilitarian considerations.
-
-The second argument used by the teachers is the joy felt by the
-children in being allowed to dramatise the stories. This, too, appeals
-very strongly to me, but there is a means of satisfying their desire
-and yet protecting the dramatic whole, and that is occasionally to
-allow children to act out their own dramatic inventions; this, to my
-mind, has great educational significance: it is original and creative
-work and, apart from the joy of the immediate performance, there is
-the interesting process of comparison which can be presented to the
-children, showing them the difference between their elementary attempts
-and the finished product of the experienced artist, which they can be
-led to recognise by their own powers of observation if the teachers are
-not in too great a hurry to point it out themselves.
-
-Here is a short original story (quoted by the French psychologist,
-Queyrat, in his “Jeux de l'enfance”) written by a child of five:
-
-“One day I went to sea in a life-boat--all at once I saw an enormous
-whale, and I jumped out of the boat to catch him, but he was so big
-that I climbed on his back and rode astride, and all the little fishes
-laughed to see.”
-
-Here is a complete and exciting drama, making a wonderful picture
-and teeming with adventure. We could scarcely offer anything to so
-small a child for reproduction that would be a greater stimulus to the
-imagination.
-
-Here is another, offered by Loti, but the age of the child is not given:
-
-“Once upon a time, a little girl out in the Colonies cut open a huge
-melon, and out popped a green beast and stung her, and the little child
-died.”
-
-Loti adds: “The phrases ‘out in the Colonies’ and ‘a huge melon’
-were enough to plunge me suddenly into a dream. As by an apparition,
-I beheld tropical trees, forests alive with marvellous birds. Oh!
-the simple magic of the words 'the Colonies'! In my childhood they
-stood for a multitude of distant sun-scorched countries, with their
-palm-trees, their enormous flowers, their black natives, their wild
-beasts, their endless possibilities of adventure.”
-
-I quote this in full because it shows so clearly the magic force of
-words to evoke pictures, without any material representation. It is
-just the opposite effect of the pictures presented to the bodily eye
-without the splendid educational opportunity for the child to form his
-own mental image.
-
-I am more and more convinced that the rare power of visualization is
-accounted for by the lack of mental practice afforded along these lines.
-
-The third argument used by the teachers in favour of the dramatisation
-of the stories is that it is a means of discovering how much the child
-has really learnt from the story. Now this argument makes absolutely no
-appeal to me.
-
-My experience, in the first place, has taught me that a child very
-seldom gives out any account of a deep impression made upon him: it
-is too sacred and personal. But he very soon learns to know what is
-expected of him, and he keeps a set of stock sentences which he has
-found out are acceptable to the teacher. How can we possibly gauge the
-deep effects of a story in this way, or how can a child, by acting
-out a story, describe the subtle elements which you have tried to
-introduce? You might as well try to show with a pint measure how the
-sun and rain have affected a plant, instead of rejoicing in the beauty
-of the sure, if slow, growth.
-
-Then, again, why are we in such a hurry to find out what effects have
-been produced by our stories? Does it matter whether we know to-day or
-to-morrow how much a child has understood? For my part, so sure do I
-feel of the effect that I am willing to wait indefinitely. Only I must
-make sure that the first presentation is truly dramatic and artistic.
-
-The teachers of general subjects have a much easier and more simple
-task. Those who teach science, mathematics, even, to a certain extent,
-history and literature, are able to gauge with a fair amount of
-accuracy, by means of examination, what their pupils have learnt. The
-teaching carried on by means of stories can never be gauged in the
-same manner. We must be content, though we have nothing to place in
-our “shop window,” content to know of the possessions behind, and make
-up our mind that we can show the education authorities little or no
-results from our teaching, but that the real fruit will be seen by the
-next generation; and we can take courage, for, if our story be “a thing
-of beauty,” it will never “pass into nothingness.”
-
-Carlyle has said:[47]
-
-“Of this thing be certain: wouldst thou plant for Eternity, then plant
-into the deep infinite faculties of man, his Fantasy and Heart. Wouldst
-thou plant for Year and Day, then plant into his shallow superficial
-faculties, his self-love and arithmetical understanding, what will grow
-there.”
-
-If we use this marvellous Art of Story-Telling in the way I have tried
-to show, then the children who have been confided to our care will one
-day be able to bring to us the tribute which Björnson brought to Hans
-C. Andersen:
-
- Wings you give to my Imagination,
- Me uplifting to the strange and great;
- Gave my heart the poet's revelation,
- Glorifying things of low estate.
-
- When my child-soul hungered all-unknowing,
- With great truths its needs you satisfied:
- Now, a world-worn man, to you is owing
- That the child in me has never died.
- (_Translated from the Danish by Emilie Poulson._)
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[37] From “Studies of Childhood,” page 55.
-
-[38] I always remember the witty jibe of a chairman at my expense on
-this subject, who, when proposing a vote of thanks to me, asked whether
-I seriously approved of the idea of providing “wild-cat schemes” in
-order to bring romance into the lives of millionaires.
-
-[39] From The Lockerbie Book, by James Whitcomb Riley. Copyright 1911.
-Used by special permission of the publishers, the Bobbs-Merrill Company.
-
-[40] See Little Cousin Series in American collection of tales at the
-end of book.
-
-[41] From “Virginibus Puerisque and other Essays.”
-
-[42] See Longbow story, “John and the Pig.”
-
-[43] This is even a higher spirit than that shown in the advice given
-in the _Agamemnon_ (speaking of the victor's attitude after the taking
-of Troy):
-
- “Yea, let no craving for forbidden gain
- Bid conquerors yield before the darts of greed.”
-
-[44] The great war in which we have become involved since this book was
-written has furnished brilliant examples of these finer qualities.
-
-[45] It is curious to find that the story of “Puss-in-Boots” in its
-variants is sometimes presented with a moral, sometimes without. In the
-valley of the Ganges it has _none_. In Cashmere it has one moral, in
-Zanzibar another.
-
-[46] From “Childhood in Literature and Art.” Study of Hans C. Andersen,
-page 201.
-
-[47] “Sartor Resartus,” Book III, page 218.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-
-ON QUESTIONS ASKED BY TEACHERS.
-
-
-THE following questions have been put to me so often by teachers, in my
-own country and the States, that I have thought it might be useful to
-give in my book some of the attempts I have made to answer them; and
-I wish to record here an expression of gratitude to the teachers who
-have asked these questions at the close of my lectures. It has enabled
-me to formulate my views on the subject and to clear up, by means of
-research and thought, the reason for certain things which I had more or
-less taken for granted. It has also constantly modified my own point of
-view, and has prevented me from becoming too dogmatic in dealing with
-other people's methods.
-
- _Question I._ Why do I consider it necessary to spend so many years
- on the Art of Story-Telling, which takes in, after all, such a
- restricted portion of literature?
-
-Just in the same way that an actor thinks it worth while to go through
-so many years' training to fit him for the stage, although dramatic
-literature is also only one branch of general literature. The region of
-Storyland is the legitimate stage for children. They crave for drama
-as we do, and because there are comparatively few good story-tellers,
-children do not have their dramatic needs satisfied. What is the
-result? We either take them to dramatic performances for grown-up
-people, or we have children's theatres where the pieces, charming as
-they may be, are of necessity deprived of the essential elements which
-constitute a drama--or they are shrivelled up to suit the capacity of
-the child. Therefore it would seem wiser, whilst the children are quite
-young, to keep them to the simple presentation of stories, because,
-their imagination being keener at that period, they have the delight
-of the inner vision and they do not need, as we do, the artificial
-stimulus provided by the machinery of the stage.[48]
-
- _Question II._ What is to be done if a child asks you: Is a story
- true?
-
-I hope I shall not be considered Utopian in my ideas if I say that it
-is quite easy, even with small children, to teach them that the seeing
-of truth is a relative matter which depends on the eyes of the seer.
-If we were not afraid to tell our children that all through life there
-are grown-up people who do not see things that others see, their own
-difficulties would be helped.
-
-In his _Imagination Créatrice_, Queyrat says: “To get down into the
-recesses of a child's mind, one would have to become even as he is; we
-are reduced to interpreting that child in the terms of an adult. The
-children we observe live and grow in a civilised community, and the
-result of this is that the development of their imagination is rarely
-free or complete, for as soon as it rises beyond the average level, the
-rationalistic education of parents and schoolmasters at once endeavours
-to curb it. It is restrained in its flight by an antagonistic power
-which treats it as a kind of incipient madness.”
-
-It is quite easy to show children that if you keep things where they
-belong they are true with regard to each other, but that if you drag
-these things out of the shadowy atmosphere of the “make-believe,” and
-force them into the land of actual facts, the whole thing is out of
-gear.
-
-To take a concrete example: The arrival of the coach made from a
-pumpkin and driven by mice is entirely in harmony with the Cinderella
-surroundings, and I have never heard one child raise any question of
-the difficulty of travelling in such a coach or of the uncertainty
-of mice in drawing it. But suggest to the child that this diminutive
-vehicle could be driven among the cars of Broadway, or amongst the
-motor omnibuses in the Strand, and you would bring confusion at once
-into his mind.
-
-Having once grasped this, the children will lose the idea that Fairy
-Stories are just for them, and not for their elders, and from this they
-will go on to see that it is the child-like mind of the Poet and Seer
-that continues to appreciate these things: that it is the dull, heavy
-person whose eyes so soon become dim and unable to see any more the
-visions which were once his own.
-
-In his essay on _Poetry and Life_ (Glasgow, 1889), Professor Bradley
-says:
-
-“It is the effect of poetry, not only by expressing emotion but in
-other ways also, to bring life into the dead mass of our experience,
-and to make the world significant.”
-
-This applies to children as well as to adults. There may come to the
-child in the story-hour, by some stirring poem or dramatic narration,
-a sudden flash of the possibilities of Life which he had not hitherto
-realised in the even course of school experience.
-
-“Poetry,” says Professor Bradley, “is a way of representing truth;
-but there is in it, as its detractors have always insisted, a certain
-untruth or illusion. We need not deny this, so long as we remember
-that the illusion is conscious, that no one wishes to deceive, and
-that no one is deceived. But it would be better to say that poetry is
-false to literal fact for the sake of obtaining a higher truth. First,
-in order to represent the connection between a more significant part
-of experience and a less significant, poetry, instead of linking them
-together by a chain which touches one by one the intermediate objects
-that connect them, leaps from one to the other. It thus falls at once
-into conflict with commonsense.”
-
-Now, the whole of this passage bears as much on the question of the
-truth embodied in a Fairy Tale as a poem, and it would be interesting
-to take some of these tales and try to discover where they are false to
-actual fact for the sake of a higher truth.
-
-Let us take, for instance, the story of Cinderella: The coach and
-pumpkins to which we have alluded, and all the magic part of the story,
-are false to actual facts as we meet them in our every-day life; but
-is it not a higher truth that Cinderella could escape from her chimney
-corner by thinking of the brightness outside? In this sense we all
-travel in pumpkin coaches.
-
-Take the story of Psyche, in any one of the many forms it is presented
-to us in folk-story. The magic transformation of the lover is false
-to actual fact; but is it not a higher truth that we are often
-transformed by Circumstance, and that love and courage can overcome
-most difficulties?
-
-Take the story of the Three Bears. It is not in accordance with
-established fact that bears should extend hospitality to children
-who invade their territory. Is it not true, in a higher sense, that
-fearlessness often lessens or averts danger?
-
-Take the story of Jack and the Bean-Stalk. The rapid growth of the
-bean-stalk and the encounter with the Giant are false to literal fact;
-but is it not a higher truth that the spirit of courage and high
-adventure leads us straight out of the commonplace and often sordid
-facts of Life?
-
-Now, all these considerations are too subtle for the child, and, if
-offered in explanation, would destroy the excitement and interest
-of the story; but they are good for those of us who are presenting
-such stories: they not only provide an argument against the objection
-raised by unimaginative people as to the futility, if not immorality,
-of presenting these primitive tales, but clear up our own doubt and
-justify us in the use of them, if we need such justification.
-
-For myself, I am perfectly satisfied that, being part of the history
-of primitive people, it would be foolish to ignore them from an
-evolutionary point of view, which constitutes their chief importance;
-and it is only from the point of view of expediency that I mention the
-potential truths they contain.
-
- _Question III._ What are you to do if a child says he does not like
- Fairy Tales?
-
-This is not an uncommon case. What we have first to determine, under
-these circumstances, is whether this dislike springs from a stolid,
-prosaic nature, whether it springs from a real inability to visualize
-such pictures as the Fairy, or marvellous element in the story,
-presents, or whether (and this is often the real reason) it is from a
-fear of being asked to believe what his judgment resents as untrue, or
-whether he thinks it is “grown-up” to reject such pleasure as unworthy
-of his years.
-
-In the first case, it is wise to persevere, in hopes of developing the
-dormant imagination. If the child resents the apparent want of truth,
-we can teach him how many-sided truth is, as I suggested in my answer
-to the first question. In the other cases, we must try to make it
-clear that the delight he may venture to take now will increase, not
-decrease, with years; that the more you bring _to_ a thing (in the way
-of experience and knowledge) the more you will draw _out_ of it.
-
-Let us take as a concrete example the question of Santa Claus. This
-joy has almost disappeared, for we have torn away the last shred of
-mystery about that personage by allowing him to be materialised in the
-Christmas shops and bazaars.
-
-But the original myth need never have disappeared; the link could
-easily have been kept by gradually telling the child that the Santa
-Claus they worshipped as a mysterious and invisible power is nothing
-but the Spirit of Charity and Kindness that makes us remember others,
-and that this spirit often takes the form of material gifts. We can
-also lead them a step higher and show them that this spirit of kindness
-can do more than provide material things; so that the old nursery tale
-has laid a beautiful foundation which need never be pulled up: we can
-build upon it and add to it all through our lives.
-
-Is not _one_ of the reasons that children reject Fairy Tales because
-such very _poor_ material is offered them? There is a dreary flatness
-about all except the very best which revolts the child of literary
-appreciation and would fail to strike a spark in the more prosaic.
-
- _Question IV._ Do I recommend learning a story by heart, or telling
- it in one's own words?
-
-This would largely depend on the kind of story. If the style is classic
-or if the interest of the story is closely connected with the style,
-as in Andersen, Kipling or Stevenson, then it is better to commit it
-absolutely to memory. But if this process should take too long (I mean
-for those who cannot afford the time to specialise), or if it produces
-a stilted effect, then it is wiser to read the story many times over,
-let it soak in, taking notes of certain passages which would add to the
-dramatic interest of the story, and not trouble about the word accuracy
-of the whole.
-
-For instance, for very young children the story of Pandora, as told
-in the Wonder-Book, could be shortened so as to leave principally the
-dramatic dialogue between the two children, which would be easily
-committed to memory by the narrator and would appeal most directly
-to the children. Again, for older children: in taking a beautiful
-mediæval story such as “Our Lady's Tumbler,” the original text could
-hardly be presented so as to hold an audience; but whilst giving up a
-great deal of the elaborate material, we should try to present many of
-the characteristic passages which seem to sum up the situation. For
-instance, before his performance, the Tumbler cries: “What am I doing?
-For there is none here so caitiff but who vies with all the rest in
-serving God after his trade.” And after his act of devotion: “Lady,
-this is a choice performance. I do it for no other but for you; so aid
-me God, I do not--for you and for your Son. And this I dare avouch and
-boast, that for me it is no play-work. But I am serving you, and that
-pays me.”
-
-On the other hand, there are some very gifted narrators who can only
-tell the story in their own words. I consider that both methods are
-necessary to the all-round story-teller.
-
- _Question V._ How do I set about preparing a story?
-
-Here again the preparation depends a great deal on the kind of story:
-whether it has to be committed to memory or re-arranged to suit a
-certain age of child, or told entirely in one's own words. But there
-is one kind of preparation which is the same for any story, that is,
-living with it for a long time, until you have really obtained the
-right atmosphere, and then bringing the characters actually to life
-in this atmosphere, most especially in the case of inanimate objects.
-This is where Hans C. Andersen reigns supreme. Horace Scudder says of
-him: “By some transmigration, souls have passed into tin soldiers,
-balls, tops, money-pigs, coins, shoes and even such attenuated things
-as darning-needles, and when, in forming these apparent dead and stupid
-bodies, they begin to make manifestations, it is always in perfect
-consistency with the ordinary conditions of the bodies they occupy,
-though the several objects become, by the endowment of souls, suddenly
-expanded in their capacity.”[49]
-
-Now, my test of being ready with such stories is whether I have ceased
-to look upon such objects _as_ inanimate. Let us take some of those
-quoted from Andersen. First, the Tin Soldier. To me, since I have lived
-in the story, he is a real live hero, holding his own with some of the
-bravest fighting heroes in history or fiction. As for his being merely
-of tin, I entirely forget it, except when I realise against what odds
-he fights, or when I stop to admire the wonderful way Andersen carries
-out his simile of the old tin spoon--the stiffness of the musket, and
-the tears of tin.
-
-Take the Top and the Ball, and, except for the delightful way they
-discuss the respective merits of _cork_ and _mahogany_ in their
-ancestors, you would completely forget that they are not real human
-beings with the live passions and frailties common to youth.
-
-As for the Beetle--who ever thinks of him as a mere entomological
-specimen? Is he not the symbol of the self-satisfied traveller who
-learns nothing _en route_ but the importance of his own personality?
-And the Darning-Needle? It is impossible to divorce human interest from
-the ambition of this little piece of steel.
-
-And this same method applied to the preparation of any story shows that
-you can sometimes rise from the rôle of mere interpreter to that of
-creator--that is to say, the objects live afresh for you in response to
-the appeal you make in recognising their possibilities of vitality.
-
-As a mere practical suggestion, I would advise that, as soon as you
-have overcome the difficulties of the text (if actually learning by
-heart, there is nothing but the drudgery of constant repetition), and
-as you begin to work the story into true dramatic form, always say the
-words aloud, and many times aloud, before you try them even on one
-person. More suggestions come to one in the way of effects from hearing
-the sounds of the words, and more complete mental pictures, in this
-way than any other ... it is a sort of testing period, the results of
-which may or may not have to be modified when produced in public....
-In case of committing to memory, I advise word perfection first, not
-trying dramatic effects before this is reached; but, on the other hand,
-if you are using your own words, you can think out the effects as you
-go along--I mean, during the preparation. Gestures, pauses, facial
-expression often help to fix the choice of words you decide to use,
-though here again the public performance will often modify the result.
-I should strongly advise that all gestures should be studied before the
-glass, because this most faithfully-recording friend, whose sincerity
-we dare not question, will prevent glaring errors, and also help by the
-correction of these to more satisfactory results along positive lines.
-If your gesture does not satisfy (and practice will make you more and
-more critical), it is generally because you have not made sufficient
-allowance for the power of imagination in your audience. Emphasis in
-gesture is just as inartistic--and therefore ineffective--as emphasis
-in tone or language.
-
-Before _deciding_, however, either on the facial expression or gesture,
-we must consider the chief characters in the story, and study how we
-can best--_not_ present them, but allow them to present themselves,
-which is a very different thing. The greatest tribute which can be
-paid to a story-teller, as to an actor, is that his own personality is
-temporarily forgotten, because he has so completely identified himself
-with his rôle.
-
-When we have decided what the chief characters really mean to do, we
-can let ourselves go in the impersonation....
-
-I shall now take a story as a concrete example--namely, the Buddhist
-legend of the Lion and the Hare,[50] which I give in the final story
-list.
-
-We have here the Lion and the Hare as types--the other animals are
-less individual and therefore display less salient qualities. The
-little hare's chief characteristics are nervousness, fussiness and
-misdirected imagination. We must bear this all in mind when she appears
-on the stage--fortunately these characteristics lend themselves easily
-to dramatic representation. The lion is not only large-hearted but
-broad-minded. It is good to have an opportunity of presenting to
-the children a lion who has other qualities than physical beauty or
-extraordinary strength. (Here again there will lurk the danger of
-alarming the Nature students!) He is even more interesting than the
-magnanimous lion whom we have sometimes been privileged to meet in
-fiction.
-
-Of course we grown-up people know that the lion is the Buddha in
-disguise. Children will not be able to realise this, nor is it the
-least necessary that they should do so; but they will grasp the
-idea that he is a very unusual lion, not to be met with in Paul du
-Chaillu's adventures, still less in the quasi-domestic atmosphere of
-the Zoological Gardens. If our presentation is life-like and sincere,
-we shall convey all we intend to the child. This is part of what I call
-the atmosphere of the story, which, as in a photograph, can only be
-obtained by long exposure, that is to say, in case of the preparation
-we must bestow much reflection and sympathy.
-
-Because these two animals are the chief characters, they must stand
-out in sharp outline: the other animals must be painted in fainter
-colours--they should be suggested rather than presented in detail.
-It might be as well to give a definite gesture to the Elephant--say,
-a characteristic movement with his trunk--a scowl to the Tiger, a
-supercilious and enigmatic smile to the Camel (suggested by Kipling's
-wonderful creation). But if a gesture were given to each of the
-animals, the effect would become monotonous, and the minor characters
-would crowd the foreground of the picture, impeding the action and
-leaving little to the imagination of the audience.... I personally have
-found it effective to repeat the gestures of these animals as they are
-leaving the stage, less markedly, as it is only a form of reminder.
-
-Now, what is the impression we wish to leave on the mind of the child,
-apart from the dramatic joy and interest we have endeavoured to
-provide? Surely it is that he may realise the danger of a panic. One
-method of doing this (alas! a favourite one still) is to say at the
-end of the story: “Now, children, what do we learn from this?” Of this
-method Lord Morley has said: “It is a commonplace to the wise, and an
-everlasting puzzle to the foolish, that direct inculcation of morals
-should invariably prove so powerless an instrument--so futile a method.”
-
-If this direct method were really effective, we might as well put the
-little drama aside, and say plainly: “It is foolish to be nervous; it
-is dangerous to make loose statements. Large-minded people understand
-things better than those who are narrow-minded.”
-
-Now, all these abstract statements would be as true and as tiresome as
-the multiplication-table. The child might or might not fix them in his
-mind, but he would not act upon them.
-
-But, put all the artistic warmth of which you are capable into the
-presentation of the story, and, without one word of comment from you,
-the children will feel the dramatic intensity of that vast concourse of
-animals brought together by the feeble utterance of one irresponsible
-little hare. Let them feel the dignity and calm of the Lion, which
-accounts for his authority; his tender but firm treatment of the
-foolish little Hare; and listen to the glorious finale when all
-the animals retire convinced of their folly; and you will find that
-you have adopted the same method as the Lion (who must have been an
-unconscious follower of Froebel), and that there is nothing to add to
-the picture.
-
- _Question VI._ Is it wise to talk over a story with children and to
- encourage them in the habit of asking questions about it?
-
-At the time, no! The effect produced is to be by dramatic means,
-and this would be destroyed by any attempts at analysis by means of
-questions.
-
-The medium that has been used in the telling of the story is (or ought
-to be) a purely artistic one which will reach the child through the
-medium of the emotions: the appeal to the intellect or the reason is
-a different method, which must be used at a different time. When you
-are enjoying the fragrance of a flower or the beauty of its colour, it
-is not the moment to be reminded of its botanical classification. Just
-as in the botany lesson it would be somewhat irrelevant to talk of the
-part that flowers play in the happiness of life.
-
-From a practical point of view, it is not wise to encourage questions
-on the part of the children, because they are apt to disturb the
-atmosphere by bringing in entirely irrelevant matter, so that in
-looking back on the telling of the story, the child often remembers the
-irrelevant conversation to the exclusion of the dramatic interest of
-the story itself.[51]
-
-I remember once making what I considered at the time a most effective
-appeal to some children who had been listening to the story of the
-Little Tin Soldier, and, unable to refrain from the cheap method of
-questioning, of which I have now recognised the futility, I asked:
-“Don't you think it was nice of the little dancer to rush down into the
-fire to join the brave little soldier?” “Well,” said a prosaic little
-lad of six: “I thought the draught carried her down.”
-
- _Question VII._ Is it wise to call upon children to repeat the
- story as soon as it has been told?
-
-My answer here is decidedly in the negative.
-
-Whilst fully appreciating the modern idea of children expressing
-themselves, I very much deprecate this so-called self-expression taking
-the form of mere reproduction. I have dealt with this matter in detail
-in another portion of my book. This is one of the occasions when
-children should be taking in, not giving out. (Even the most fanatic of
-moderns must agree that there are such moments.)
-
-When, after much careful preparation, an expert has told a story to the
-best of his ability, to encourage the children to reproduce this story
-with their imperfect vocabulary and with no special gift of speech (I
-am always alluding to the normal group of children) is as futile as
-if, after the performance of a musical piece by a great artist, some
-individual member of the audience were to be called upon to give his
-rendering of the original rendering. The result would be that the
-musical joy of the audience would be completely destroyed and the
-performer himself would share in the loss.[52]
-
-I have always maintained that five minutes of complete silence after
-the story would do more to fix the impression on the mind of the child
-than any amount of attempts at reproducing it. The general statement
-made in Dr. Montessori's wonderful chapter on Silence would seem to me
-of special application to the moments following on the telling of a
-story.
-
- _Question VIII._ Should children be encouraged to illustrate the
- stories which they have heard?
-
-As a dramatic interest to the teachers and the children, I think it
-is a very praiseworthy experiment, if used somewhat sparingly. But I
-seriously doubt whether these illustrations in any way indicate the
-impression made on the mind of the child. It is the same question
-that arises when that child is called upon (or expresses a wish) to
-reproduce the story in his own words: the unfamiliar medium in both
-instances makes it almost impossible for the child to convey his
-meaning, unless he be an artist in the one case or have real literary
-power of expression in the other.
-
-My own impression, which has been confirmed by many teachers who
-have made the experiment, is that a certain amount of disappointment
-is mixed up with the daring joy in the attempt, simply because the
-children can get nowhere near the ideal which has presented itself to
-the “inner eye.”
-
-I remember a Kindergarten mistress saying that on one occasion, when
-she had told to the class a thrilling story of a knight, one of the
-children immediately asked for permission to draw a picture of him
-on the blackboard. So spontaneous a request could not, of course, be
-refused, and, full of assurance, the would-be artist began to give his
-impression of the knight's appearance. When the picture was finished,
-the child stood back for a moment to judge for himself of the result.
-He put down the chalk and said sadly: “And I _thought_ he was so
-handsome.”
-
-Nevertheless, except for the drawback of the other children seeing a
-picture which might be inferior to their own mental vision, I should
-quite approve of such experiments as long as they are not taken as
-literal data of what the children have really received. It would,
-however, be better not to have the picture drawn on a blackboard but at
-the child's private desk, to be seen by the teacher and not, unless the
-picture were exceptionally good, to be shown to the other children.
-
-One of the best effects of such an experiment would be to show a child
-how difficult it is to give the impression he wishes to record, and
-which would enable him later on to appreciate the beauty of such work
-in the hands of a finished artist.
-
-I can anticipate the jeers with which such remarks would be received by
-the Futurist School, but, according to their own theory, I ought to be
-allowed to express the matter _as I see it_, however faulty the vision
-may appear to them.[53]
-
- _Question IX._ In what way can the dramatic method of story-telling
- be used in ordinary class teaching?
-
-This is too large a question to answer fully in so general a survey as
-this work, but I should like to give one or two concrete examples as to
-how the element of story-telling could be introduced.
-
-I have always thought that the only way in which we could make either a
-history or literature lesson live, so that it should take a real hold
-on the mind of the pupil at any age, would be that, instead of offering
-lists of events, crowded into the fictitious area of one reign, one
-should take a single event, say in one lesson out of five, and give
-it in the most splendid language and in the most dramatic (not to be
-confused with “melodramatic”) manner.
-
-To come to a concrete example: Supposing that you are talking to the
-class of Greece, either in connection with its history, its geography
-or its literature, could any mere accumulation of facts give a clearer
-idea of the life of the people than a dramatically told story from
-Homer, Æschylus, Sophocles or Euripides?
-
-What in the history of Iceland could give a more graphic idea of the
-whole character of the life and customs of the inhabitants than one
-of the famous sagas, such as “The Burning of Njal” or “The Death of
-Gunnar”?
-
-In teaching the history of Spain, what could make the pupils understand
-better the spirit of knight-errantry, its faults and its qualities,
-than a recital from “Don Quixote” or from the tale of “The Cid”?
-
-In a word, the stories must appeal so vividly to the imagination that
-they will light up the whole period of history which we wish them to
-illustrate, and keep it in the memory for all time.
-
-But apart from the dramatic presentation of history, there are great
-possibilities for introducing the short story into the portrait of
-some great personage: a story which, though it may be insignificant in
-itself, throws a sudden sidelight on his character, and reveals the
-mind behind the actual deeds; this is what I mean by using the dramatic
-method.
-
-To take a concrete example: Supposing, in giving an account of the
-life of Napoleon, after enlarging on his campaigns, his European
-policy, his indomitable will, you were suddenly to give an idea of his
-many-sidedness by relating how he actually found time to compile a
-catechism which was used for some years in the elementary schools in
-France!
-
-What sidelights might be thrown in this way on such characters as Nero,
-Cæsar, Henry VIII, Luther, Goethe!
-
-To take one example from these: Instead of making the whole career
-of Henry VIII centre round the fact that he was a much-married man,
-could we not present his artistic side and speak of his charming
-contributions to music?....
-
-So much for the history lessons. But could not the dramatic form and
-interest be introduced into our geography lessons? Think of the romance
-of the Panama Canal, the position of Constantinople as affecting
-the history of Europe, the shape of Greece, England as an Island,
-the position of Tibet, the interior of Africa--to what wonderful
-story-telling would these themes lend themselves!
-
- _Question X._ Which should predominate in the story--the dramatic
- or the poetic element?
-
-This is a much debated point. From experience, I have come to the
-conclusion that, though both should be found in the whole range of
-stories, the dramatic element should prevail from the very nature of
-the presentation, and also because it reaches the larger number of
-children (at least of normal children). Almost every child is dramatic,
-in the sense that he loves action (not necessarily an action in which
-he has to bear a part). It is the exceptional child who is reached by
-the poetic side, and just as on the stage the action must be quicker
-and more concentrated than in a poem--even than a dramatic poem--so
-it must be with the story. Children act out in their imagination the
-dramatic or actable part of the story--the poetical side, which must
-be painted in more delicate colours or presented in less obvious form,
-often escapes them. Of course the very reason why we must include the
-poetical element is that it is an unexpressed need of most children.
-Their need of the dramatic is more loudly proclaimed and more easily
-satisfied.
-
- _Question XI._ What is the educational value of Humour in the
- stories told to our children?
-
-My answer to this is that Humour means much more than is usually
-understood by this term. So many people seem to think that to have a
-sense of humour is merely to be tickled by a funny element in a story.
-It surely means something much more subtle than this. It is Thackeray
-who says: “If Humour only meant Laughter ... but the Humourist
-professes to awaken and direct your love, your pity, your kindness,
-your scorn for untruth and pretention, your tenderness for the weak,
-the poor, the oppressed, the unhappy.” So that, in our stories, the
-introduction of humour should not merely depend on the doubtful
-amusement that follows on a sense of incongruity. It should inculcate
-a sense of proportion brought about by an effort of imagination:
-it shows a child its real position in the Universe, and prevents
-an exaggerated idea of his own importance. It develops the logical
-faculty, and prevents hasty conclusions. It shortens the period of joy
-in horseplay and practical jokes. It brings about a clearer perception
-of all situations, enabling the child to get the point of view of
-another person. It is the first instilling of philosophy into the mind
-of a child, and prevents much suffering later on when the blows of life
-fall upon him; for a sense of humour teaches us at an early age not to
-expect too much; and this philosophy can be developed without cynicism
-or pessimism, without even destroying the _joie de vivre_....
-
-One cannot, however, sufficiently emphasize the fact that these
-far-reaching results can only be brought about by humour quite distinct
-from the broader fun and hilarity which have also their use in an
-educational scheme.
-
-From my own experience, I have learned that development of Humour
-is with most children extremely slow. It is quite natural and quite
-right that at first pure fun, obvious situations and elementary jokes
-should please them, but we can very gradually appeal to something more
-subtle, and if I were asked what story would educate our children most
-thoroughly in appreciation of Humour, I should say that “Alice in
-Wonderland” was the most effective.
-
-What better object-lesson could be given in humorous form of taking
-somebody else's point of view than that given to Alice by the Mock
-Turtle in speaking of the Whiting?:
-
-“‘You know what they're like?’
-
-‘I believe so,’ said Alice. ‘They have their tails in their mouths--and
-they're all over crumbs.’
-
-‘You're wrong about the crumbs,’ said the Mock Turtle. 'Crumbs would
-all wash off in the sea.'”
-
-Or when Alice is speaking to the Mouse of her Cat, and says: “She is
-such a dear quiet thing--and a capital one for catching mice----”
-and then suddenly realises the point of view of the Mouse, who was
-“trembling down to the end of its tail.”
-
-Then, as an instance of how a lack of humour leads to illogical
-conclusions (a condition common to most children), we have the
-conversation between Alice and the Pigeon:
-
-ALICE: “But little girls eat quite as much as serpents do, you know.”
-
-PIGEON: “I don't believe it. But if they do, why then they're a kind of
-serpent, that's all I can say.”
-
-Then, as an instance of how a sense of humour would prevent too much
-self-importance:
-
-“‘I have a right to think,’ said Alice sharply.
-
-‘Just about as much right,’ said the Duchess, 'as pigs have to fly.'”
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[48] I do not deny that there can be charming representations of this
-kind. Miss Netta Syrett has given a triplet of plays at the Court
-Theatre which were entirely on the plane of the child; but these
-performances were somewhat exceptional.
-
-[49] From “Study of Hans C. Andersen.”
-
-[50] See “Eastern Stories and Fables,” published by Routledge.
-
-[51] See Chapter I.
-
-[52] In this matter I have, in England, the support of Dr. Kimmins,
-Chief Inspector of the London County Council, who is strongly opposed
-to immediate reproduction of the stories.
-
-[53] Needless to say that these remarks only refer to the
-illustrations of stories told. Whether children should be encouraged to
-self-expression in drawing (quite apart from reproducing in one medium
-what has been conveyed to them in another), is too large a question to
-deal with in this special work on Story-Telling.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-
-STORIES IN FULL.
-
-
-THE following three stories have for so long formed a part of my
-repertory that I have been requested to include them in my book, and,
-in order to associate myself more completely with them, I am presenting
-a translation of my own from the original Danish version.
-
-
-THE NIGHTINGALE.
-
-You must know that in China the Emperor is a Chinaman, and all those
-around him are also Chinamen. It is many years since all this happened,
-and for that very reason it is worth hearing, before it is forgotten.
-
-There was no palace in the world more beautiful than the Emperor's;
-it was very costly, all of fine porcelain, but it was so delicate and
-brittle, that it was very difficult to touch, and you had to be very
-careful in doing so. The most wonderful flowers could be seen in the
-garden, and silver tinkling bells were tied on to the most beautiful
-of these, for fear people should pass by without noticing them. How
-well everything had been thought out in the Emperor's garden--which was
-so big, that even the gardener himself did not know how big. If you
-walked on and on you came to the most beautiful wood, with tall trees
-and deep lakes. This wood stretched right down to the sea, which was
-blue and deep; great ships could pass underneath the branches, and in
-these branches a nightingale had made its home, and its singing was so
-entrancing that the poor fisherman, though he had so many other things
-to do, would lie still and listen when he was out at night drawing in
-his nets.
-
-“Heavens! how lovely that is!” he said: but then he was forced to think
-about his own affairs, and the nightingale was forgotten; but the next
-day, when it sang again, the fisherman said the same thing: “Heavens!
-how lovely that is!”
-
-Travellers from all the countries of the world came to the Emperor's
-town, and expressed their admiration for the palace and the garden, but
-when they heard the nightingale, they all said in one breath: “That is
-the best of all!”
-
-Now, when these travellers came home, they told of what they had seen.
-The scholars wrote many books about the town, the palace and the
-garden, but nobody left the nightingale out: it was always spoken of as
-the most wonderful of all they had seen, and those who had the gift of
-the Poet wrote the most delightful poems all about the nightingale in
-the wood near the deep lake.
-
-The books went round the world, and in course of time some of them
-reached the Emperor. He sat in his golden chair, and read and read,
-nodding his head every minute; for it pleased him to read the beautiful
-descriptions of the town, the palace and the garden; and then he found
-in the book the following words: “But the Nightingale is the best of
-all.”
-
-“What is this?” said the Emperor. “The nightingale! I know nothing
-whatever about it. To think of there being such a bird in my
-Kingdom--nay, in my very garden--and I have never heard it! And one has
-to learn of such a thing for the first time from a book!”
-
-Then he summoned his Lord-in-Waiting, who was such a grand creature
-that if any one inferior in rank ventured to speak to him, or ask him
-about anything, he merely uttered the sound “P,” which meant nothing
-whatever.
-
-“There is said to be a most wonderful bird, called the Nightingale,”
-said the Emperor; “they say it is the best thing in my great Kingdom.
-Why have I been told nothing about it?”
-
-“I have never heard it mentioned before,” said the Lord-in-Waiting. “It
-has certainly never been presented at court.”
-
-“It is my good pleasure that it shall appear here to-night and sing
-before me!” said the Emperor. “The whole world knows what is mine, and
-I myself do not know it.”
-
-“I have never heard it mentioned before,” said the Lord-in-Waiting. “I
-will seek it, and I shall find it.”
-
-But where was it to be found? The Lord-in-Waiting ran up and down all
-the stairs, through the halls and the passages, but not one of all
-those whom he met had ever heard a word about the Nightingale. The
-Lord-in-Waiting ran back to the Emperor and told him that it must
-certainly be a fable invented by writers of books.
-
-“Your Majesty must not believe all that is written in books. It is pure
-invention, besides something which is called the Black Art.”
-
-“But,” said the Emperor, “the book in which I read this was sent to
-me by His Majesty the Emperor of Japan, and therefore this cannot be
-a falsehood. I insist on hearing the Nightingale: it must appear this
-evening. It has my gracious favour, and if it fails to appear, the
-court shall be trampled upon after the court has supped.”
-
-“Tsing-pe!” said the Lord-in-Waiting, and again he ran up and down all
-the stairs, through all the halls and passages, and half the court ran
-with him, for they had no wish to be trampled upon. And many questions
-were asked about the wonderful Nightingale of whom all had heard except
-those who lived at court.
-
-At last, they met a poor little girl in the kitchen. She said:
-“Heavens! The Nightingale! I know it well! Yes, how it can sing! Every
-evening I have permission to take the broken pieces from the table
-to my poor sick mother who lives near the seashore, and on my way
-back, when I feel tired and rest a while in the wood, then I hear the
-Nightingale sing, and my eyes are filled with tears: it is just as if
-my mother kissed me.”
-
-“Little kitchen-girl,” said the Lord-in-Waiting, “I will get a
-permanent position for you in the Court Kitchen and permission to see
-the Emperor dine, if you can lead us to the Nightingale; for it has
-received orders to appear at Court to-night.”
-
-So they started off all together for the wood where the bird was wont
-to sing: half the court went too. They were going along at a good pace
-when suddenly they heard a cow lowing.
-
-“Oh,” said a court-page. “There you have it. That is a wonderful power
-for so small a creature! I have certainly heard it before.”
-
-“No, those are the cows lowing,” said the little kitchen girl. “We are
-a long way from the place yet.”
-
-And then the frogs began to croak in the pond.
-
-“Beautiful,” said the Court Preacher. “Now, I hear it--it is just like
-little church bells.”
-
-“No, those are the frogs,” said the little Kitchen maid. “But now I
-think that we shall soon hear it.”
-
-And then the Nightingale began to sing.
-
-“There it is,” said the little girl. “Listen, listen--there it sits.”
-And she pointed to a little grey bird in the branches.
-
-“Is it possible!” said the Lord-in-Waiting. “I had never supposed it
-would look like that. How very plain it looks! It has certainly lost
-its colour from seeing so many grand folk around it.”
-
-“Little Nightingale,” called out the little Kitchen girl, “our gracious
-Emperor would be so glad if you would sing for him.”
-
-“With the greatest pleasure,” said the Nightingale. It sang, and it was
-a joy to hear it.
-
-“Just like little glass bells,” said the Lord-in-Waiting; “and just
-look at the little throat, how active it is! It is astonishing to think
-we have never heard it before! It will have a real _success_ at Court.”
-
-“Shall I sing for the Emperor again?” said the Nightingale, who thought
-that the Emperor was there in person.
-
-“Mine excellent little Nightingale,” said the Lord-in-Waiting, “I have
-the great pleasure of bidding you to a Court-Festival this night, when
-you will enchant His Imperial Majesty with your delightful warbling.”
-
-“My voice sounds better among the green trees,” said the Nightingale.
-But it came willingly when it knew that the Emperor wished it.
-
-There was a great deal of furbishing up at the Palace. The walls and
-ceiling, which were of porcelain, shone with a light of a thousand
-golden lamps. The most beautiful flowers of the tinkling kind were
-placed in the passages. There was running to and fro, and a thorough
-draught. But that is just what made the bells ring: one could not
-oneself. In the middle of the large hall where the Emperor sat, a
-golden rod had been set up on which the Nightingale was to perch. The
-whole Court was present, and the little Kitchen-maid was allowed to
-stand behind the door, for she had now the actual title of a Court
-Kitchen Maid. All were there in their smartest clothes, and they all
-looked towards the little grey bird to which the Emperor nodded.
-
-And the Nightingale sang so delightfully that tears sprang into the
-Emperor's eyes and rolled down his cheeks; and then the Nightingale
-sang even more beautifully. The song went straight to the heart, and
-the Emperor was so delighted that he declared that the Nightingale
-should have his golden slipper to hang round its neck. But the
-Nightingale declined. It had already had its reward.
-
-“I have seen tears in the Emperor's eyes. That to me is the richest
-tribute. An Emperor's tears have a wonderful power. God knows my reward
-is great enough,” and again its sweet, glorious voice was heard.
-
-“That is the most delightful coquetting I have ever known,” said the
-ladies sitting round, and they took water into their mouths, in order
-to gurgle when anyone spoke to them, and they really thought they were
-like the Nightingale. Even the footmen and the chambermaids sent word
-that they, too, were satisfied, and that means a great deal, for these
-are the people whom it is most difficult to please. There was no doubt
-as to the Nightingale's success. It was sure to stay at Court, and
-have its own cage, with liberty to go out twice in the daytime, and
-once at night. Twelve servants went out with it, and each held a silk
-ribbon which was tied to the bird's leg, and they held it very tightly.
-There was not much pleasure in going out under those conditions. The
-whole town was talking of the wonderful bird, and when two people met,
-one said: “Nightin-” and the other said “gale,” and they sighed and
-understood one another. Eleven cheese-mongers' children were called
-after the bird, though none of them had a note in his voice. One day
-a large parcel came for the Emperor. Outside was written the word:
-“Nightingale.”
-
-“Here we have a new book about our wonderful bird,” said the Emperor.
-But it was not a book; it was a little work of art which lay in a
-box--an artificial Nightingale, which was supposed to look like the
-real one, but it was set in diamonds, rubies and sapphires. As soon as
-you wound it up, it could sing one of the pieces which the real bird
-sang, and its tail moved up and down and glittered with silver and
-gold. Round its neck was a ribbon on which was written: “The Emperor of
-Japan's Nightingale is miserable compared with the Emperor of China's.”
-
-“That is delightful,” they all said, and on the messenger who had
-brought the artificial bird they bestowed the title of “Imperial
-Nightingale-Bringer-in-Chief.”
-
-“Let them sing together, and _what_ a duet that will be!”
-
-And so they had to sing, but the thing would not work, because the
-real Nightingale could only sing in its own way, and the artificial
-Nightingale could only play by clock-work.
-
-“That is not its fault,” said the Band Master. “Time is its strong
-point, and it has quite my method.”
-
-Then the artificial Nightingale had to sing alone. It had just as much
-success as the real bird, and then it was so much handsomer to look at:
-it glittered like bracelets and breast-pins. It sang the same tune
-three and thirty times, and it was still not tired: the people would
-willingly have listened to the whole performance over again from the
-start. But the Emperor suggested that the real Nightingale should sing
-for a while. But where was it? Nobody had noticed that it had flown out
-of the open window back to its green woods.
-
-“But what is the meaning of all this?” said the Emperor. All the
-courtiers upbraided the Nightingale and said that it was a most
-ungrateful creature.
-
-“We have the better of the two,” they said, and the artificial
-Nightingale had to sing again, and this was the thirty-fourth time
-they heard the same tune. But they did not know it properly even then,
-because it was so difficult, and the bandmaster praised the wonderful
-bird in the highest terms, and even asserted that it was superior to
-the real bird, not only as regarded the outside, with the many lovely
-diamonds, but also the inside as well.
-
-“You see, ladies and gentlemen, and above all your Imperial Majesty,
-that with the real Nightingale, you can never predict what may happen,
-but with the artificial bird, everything is settled upon beforehand; so
-it remains and it cannot be changed. One can account for it. One can
-rip it open and show the human ingenuity, explaining how the cylinders
-lie, how they work, and how one thing is the result of another.”
-
-“That is just what we think,” they all exclaimed, and the Bandmaster
-received permission to exhibit the bird to the people on the following
-Sunday. The Emperor said they were to hear it sing. They listened, and
-were as much delighted as if they had been drunk with tea, which is
-a thoroughly Chinese habit, and they all said “Oh!” and stuck their
-forefingers in the air, and nodded their heads. But the poor Fisherman
-who had heard the real Nightingale, said: “It sounds quite well, and a
-little like it, but there is something missing. I do not know what it
-is.”
-
-The real Nightingale was banished from the Kingdom. The artificial bird
-had its place on a silken cushion close to the Emperor's bed. All the
-presents it had received, the gold and precious stones, lay all round
-it, and it had been honoured with the title of High Imperial Bedroom
-Singer--in the first rank, on the left side, for even the Emperor
-considered that side the grander on which the heart is placed, and
-even an Emperor has his heart on the left side. The Bandmaster wrote
-twenty-five volumes about the wonderful artificial bird. The book was
-very learned and very long, filled with the most difficult words in the
-Chinese language, and everybody said that he had read it and understood
-it, for otherwise he would have been considered stupid, and would have
-been trampled upon.
-
-And thus a whole year passed away. The Emperor, the Court and all the
-other Chinese knew every little gurgle in the artificial bird's song,
-and just for this reason, they were all the better pleased with it.
-They could sing it themselves--which they did. The boys in the street
-sang “zizizi” and “cluck, cluck,” and even the Emperor sang it. Yes, it
-was certainly beautiful. But one evening, while the bird was singing,
-and the Emperor lay in bed listening to it, there was a whirring sound
-inside the bird, and something whizzed; all the wheels ran round, and
-the music stopped. The Emperor sprang out of bed and sent for the Court
-Physician, but what could he do? Then they sent for the watch-maker,
-and after much talk and examination, he patched the bird up, but he
-said it must be spared as much as possible, because the hammers were
-so worn out and he could not put new ones in so that the music could
-be counted on. This was a great grief. The bird could only be allowed
-to sing once a year, and even that was risky, but on these occasions
-the Bandmaster would make a little speech, introducing difficult words,
-saying the bird was as good as it ever had been: and that was true.
-
-Five years passed away, and a great sorrow had come over the land. The
-people all really cared for their Emperor: now he was ill and it was
-said he could not live. A new Emperor had been chosen, and the people
-stood about the streets, and questioned the Lord-in-Waiting about their
-Emperor's condition.
-
-“P!” he said, and shook his head.
-
-The Emperor lay pale and cold on his great, gorgeous bed: the whole
-Court believed that he was dead, and they all hastened to pay homage to
-the new Emperor. The footmen hurried off to discuss matters, and the
-chambermaids gave a great coffee party. Cloth had been laid down in
-all the rooms and passages, so that not a footstep should be heard and
-it was all fearfully quiet. But the Emperor was not yet dead. He lay
-stiff and pale in the sumptuous bed, with its long, velvet curtains,
-and the heavy gold tassels: just above was an open window, and the moon
-shone in upon the Emperor and the artificial bird. The poor Emperor
-could hardly breathe: it was as if something were weighing him down:
-he opened his eyes and saw it was Death, sitting on his chest, wearing
-his golden crown, holding in one hand the golden sword, and in the
-other the splendid banner: and from the folds of the velvet curtains
-strange faces peered forth, some terrible to look on, others mild and
-friendly: these were the Emperor's good and bad deeds, which gazed upon
-him now that Death sat upon his heart.
-
-“Do you remember this?” whispered one after the other. “Do you remember
-that?” They told him so much that the sweat poured down his face.
-
-“I never knew that,” said the Emperor. “Play music! music! Beat the
-great Chinese drum!” he called out, “so that I may not hear what they
-are saying!”
-
-But they kept on, and Death nodded his head, like a Chinaman, at
-everything they said.
-
-“Music, music,” cried the Emperor. “You little precious bird! Sing to
-me, ah! sing to me! I have given you gold and costly treasures. I have
-hung my golden slipper about your neck. Sing to me. Sing to me!”
-
-But the bird stood still: there was no one to wind him up, and
-therefore he could not sing. But Death went on, staring at the Emperor
-with his great hollow sockets, and it was terribly still.
-
-Then, suddenly, close to the window, came the sound of a lovely song.
-It was the little live Nightingale which perched on the branches
-outside. It had heard of its Emperor's plight, and had therefore flown
-hither to bring him comfort and hope, and as he sang, the faces became
-paler and the blood coursed more freely through the Emperor's weak
-body, and Death himself listened and said: “Go on, little Nightingale.
-Go on.”
-
-“And will you give me the splendid sword, and the rich banner and the
-Emperor's crown?”
-
-And Death gave all these treasures for a song. And still the
-Nightingale sang on. He sang of the quiet churchyard, where the white
-roses grow, where the Elder flowers bloom, and where the grass is kept
-moist by the tears of the survivors, and there came to Death such a
-longing to see his garden, that he floated out of the window, in the
-form of a white, cold mist.
-
-“Thank you, thank you,” said the Emperor. “You heavenly little bird, I
-know you well! I banished you from the land, and you have charmed away
-the evil spirits from my bed, and you have driven Death from my heart.
-How shall I reward you?”
-
-“You have rewarded me,” said the Nightingale. “I received tears from
-your eyes the first time I sang, and I never forget that. These are
-jewels which touch the heart of the singer. But sleep now, that you
-may wake fresh and strong. I will sing to you,” and it sang, and the
-Emperor fell into a sweet sleep. The sun shone in upon him through the
-window, and he woke feeling strong and healthy. None of his servants
-had come back, because they thought he was dead, but the Nightingale
-was still singing.
-
-“You will always stay with me,” said the Emperor. “You shall only sing
-when it pleases you, and I will break the artificial Nightingale into a
-thousand pieces.”
-
-“Do not do that,” said the Nightingale. “It has done the best it
-could. Keep it with you. I cannot build my nest in a palace, but let
-me come just as I please. I will sit on the branch near the window,
-and sing to you that you may be joyful and thoughtful too. I will sing
-to you of the happy folk, and of those that suffer; I will sing of
-the evil and of the good, which is being hidden from you. The little
-singing bird flies hither and thither, to the poor fisherman, to the
-peasant's hut, to many who live far from you and the Court. Your heart
-is dearer to me than your crown, and yet the crown has a breath of
-sanctity too. I will come; I will sing to you, but one thing you must
-promise.”
-
-“All that you ask,” said the Emperor and stood there in his imperial
-robes which he had put on himself, and held the heavy golden sword on
-his heart.
-
-“I beg you, let no one know that you have a little bird who tells you
-everything. It will be far better thus,” and the Nightingale flew away.
-
-The servants came to look upon their dead Emperor: they stood there and
-the Emperor said “Good morning.”
-
- (_From Hans. C. Andersen, translated from the Danish by Marie L.
- Shedlock._)
-
-
-THE SWINEHERD.
-
-There was once upon a time a needy prince. He owned a Kingdom--a very
-small one, but it was large enough to support a wife, and he made up
-his mind to marry. Now, it was really very bold on his part to say of
-the King's daughter: “Will you marry me?” But he dared to do so, for
-his name was known far and wide, and there were hundreds of princesses
-who would willingly have said: “Yes, with thanks.” But, whether she
-would say so, was another matter. We shall hear what happened.
-
-On the grave of the Prince's father there grew a rose-tree--such a
-wonderful rose-tree! It only bloomed once in five years, and then it
-only bore one rose--but what a rose! Its perfume was so sweet that
-whoever smelt it forgot all his cares and sorrows. The Prince had also
-a Nightingale which could sing as if all the delicious melodies in the
-world were contained in its little throat. The rose and the Nightingale
-were both to be given to the Princess and were therefore placed in two
-silver cases and sent to her. The Emperor had them carried before him
-into the great hall where the Princess was playing at “visiting” with
-her ladies-in-waiting. This was their chief occupation; and when she
-saw the great cases with the presents in them, she clapped her hands
-with joy.
-
-“If it were only a little pussy-cat,” she cried. But out came the
-beautiful rose.
-
-“How elegantly it is made,” said all the ladies of the Court.
-
-“It is more than elegant,” said the Emperor; “it is nice.”
-
-“Fie, papa,” she said, “it is not made at all; it is a natural rose.”
-
-“Fie,” said all the ladies of the court; “it is a natural rose.”
-
-“Let us see what the other case contains before we lose our temper,”
-said the Emperor, and then out came the little Nightingale and sang so
-sweetly that nobody right off could think of any bad thing to say of it.
-
-“Superbe, charmant,” cried the ladies of the Court, for they all
-chattered French, one worse than the other.
-
-“How the bird reminds me of the late Empress' musical-box!” said an old
-Lord-in-Waiting. “Ah me! The same tone, the same execution----”
-
-“The very same,” said the Emperor, and he cried like a little child.
-
-“I hope it is not a real bird,” said the Princess.
-
-“Oh yes; it is a real bird,” said those who had brought it.
-
-“Then let the bird fly away,” she said, and she would on no account
-allow the Prince to come in.
-
-But he was not to be discouraged. He smeared his face with black and
-brown, drew his cap over his forehead, and knocked at the Palace door.
-The Emperor opened it.
-
-“Good day, Emperor,” he said. “Could I not get some work at the Palace?”
-
-“There are so many who apply for positions here!” said the Emperor.
-“Now let me see: I am in want of a swineherd. I have a good many pigs
-to keep.”
-
-So the Prince was appointed as Imperial Swineherd. He had a wretched
-little room near the pig-sty and here he was obliged to stay. But the
-whole day he sat and worked, and by the evening he had made a neat
-little pipkin, and round it was a set of bells, and as soon as the pot
-began to boil, the bells fell to jingling most sweetly and played the
-old melody:
-
- “Ah, my dear Augustus,
- All is lost, all is lost;”
-
-but the most wonderful thing was that when you held your finger in
-the steam of the pipkin, you could immediately smell what dinner was
-cooking on every hearth in the town--that was something very different
-from a rose.
-
-The Princess was walking out with her ladies-in-Waiting, and when she
-heard the melody, she stopped short, and looked much rejoiced, for she
-could play “Ah, my dear Augustus.” That was the only tune she knew, but
-she could play it with one finger. “Why, that is what I can play,” she
-said. “What a cultivated swineherd he must be. Go down and ask him how
-much his instrument costs.”
-
-So one of the Ladies-in-Waiting was obliged to go down, but she put on
-pattens first.
-
-“What do you charge for your instrument?” asked the Lady-in-Waiting.
-
-“I will have ten kisses from the Princess,” said the Swineherd.
-
-“Good gracious!” said the Lady-in-Waiting.
-
-“I will not take less,” said the Swineherd.
-
-“Well, what did he say?” asked the Princess.
-
-“I really cannot tell you,” said the Lady-in-Waiting. “It is too
-dreadful.”
-
-“Then you can whisper it,” said the Princess.
-
-So she whispered it.
-
-“He is very rude,” said the Princess, and she walked away. But when she
-had walked a few steps the bells sounded so sweetly:
-
- “Ah, my dear Augustus,
- All is lost, all is lost.”
-
-“Listen,” said the Princess, “ask him whether he will have his kisses
-from my Ladies-in-Waiting.”
-
-“No, thank you,” said the Swineherd. “I will have ten kisses from the
-Princess, or I will keep my pipkin.”
-
-“How tiresome it is,” said the Princess; “but you must stand round me,
-so that nobody shall see.”
-
-So the Ladies-in-Waiting stood round her, and they spread out their
-dresses. The Swineherd got the kisses, and she got the pipkin.
-
-How delighted she was. All the evening, and the whole of the next day
-that pot was made to boil. And you might have known what everybody
-was cooking on every hearth in the town from the Chamberlain's to the
-shoemaker's. The court ladies danced and clapped their hands.
-
-“We know who is to have fruit, soup and pancakes. We know who is going
-to have porridge, and cutlets. How very interesting it is!”
-
-“Most, interesting, indeed,” said the first Lady-of-Honour.
-
-“Yes, but hold your tongues, because I am the Emperor's daughter.”
-
-“Of course we will,” they cried in one breath.
-
-The Swineherd, or rather the Prince, though they did not know but
-that he was a real swineherd, did not let the day pass without doing
-something, and he made a rattle which could play all the waltzes and
-the polkas and the hop-dances which had been known since the creation
-of the world.
-
-“But this is superb,” said the Princess, who was just passing: “I have
-never heard more beautiful composition. Go and ask him the cost of the
-instrument. But I will give no more kisses.”
-
-“He insists on a hundred kisses from the Princess,” said the
-Ladies-in-Waiting who had been down to ask.
-
-“I think he must be quite mad,” said the Princess, and she walked away.
-But when she had taken a few steps, she stopped short, and said: “One
-must encourage the fine arts, and I am the Emperor's daughter. Tell him
-he may have ten kisses, as before, and the rest he can take from my
-Ladies-in-Waiting.”
-
-“Yes, but we object to that,” said the Ladies-in-Waiting.
-
-“That is nonsense,” said the Princess. “If I can kiss him, surely you
-can do the same. Go down at once. Don't I pay you board and wages?”
-
-So the Ladies-in-Waiting were obliged to go down to the Swineherd again.
-
-“A hundred kisses from the Princess, or each keeps his own.”
-
-“Stand round me,” she said. And all the Ladies-in-Waiting stood round
-her, and the Swineherd began to kiss her.
-
-“What can all that crowd be down by the pigsty?” said the Emperor,
-stepping out on to the balcony. He rubbed his eyes and put on his
-spectacles. “It is the court-ladies up to some of their tricks. I must
-go down and look after them.” He pulled up his slippers (for they were
-shoes which he had trodden down at the heel).
-
-Heavens! How he hurried! As soon as he came into the garden he walked
-very softly, and the Ladies-in-Waiting had so much to do counting
-the kisses, so that everything should be done fairly, and that the
-Swineherd should neither get too many nor too few, that they never
-noticed the Emperor at all. He stood on tiptoe.
-
-“What is this all about?” he said, when he saw the kissing that was
-going on, and he hit them on the head with his slipper, just as the
-Swineherd was getting the eighty-sixth kiss. “Heraus,” said the
-Emperor, for he was angry, and both the Princess and the Swineherd were
-turned out of his Kingdom.
-
-The Princess wept, the Swineherd scolded, and the rain streamed down.
-
-“Ah! wretched creature that I am,” said the Princess. “If I had only
-taken the handsome Prince! Ah me, how unhappy I am!”
-
-Then the Swineherd went behind a tree, washed the black and brown off
-his face, threw off his ragged clothes, and stood forth in his royal
-apparel, looking so handsome that she was obliged to curtsey.
-
-“I have learned to despise you,” he said. “You would not have an
-honourable Prince. You could not appreciate a rose or a Nightingale,
-but to get a toy, you kissed the Swineherd. Now you have your reward.”
-
-So he went into his Kingdom, shut the door and bolted it, and she had
-to stand outside singing:
-
- “Ah, you dear Augustus,
- All, all is lost.”
-
- (_From the Danish of Hans C. Andersen, translated by Marie L.
- Shedlock._)
-
-
-THE PRINCESS AND THE PEA.
-
-There was once a Prince who wished to marry a Princess, but she must
-be a real Princess. He travelled all over the world to find such a
-one; but there was always something the matter. There were plenty of
-Princesses, but whether they were real or not, he could not be quite
-certain. There was always something that was not quite right. So he
-came home again, feeling very sad, for he was so anxious to have a real
-Princess.
-
-One evening a terrible storm came on: it lightened, and thundered and
-the rain came down in torrents. It was quite terrible. Then there
-came a knocking at the town-gate, and the old King went down to open
-it. There, outside, stood a Princess. But gracious! the rain and bad
-weather had made her look dreadful. The water was running out of her
-hair on to her clothes, into the tips of her shoes and out at the
-heels, and yet she said she was a real Princess.
-
-“We shall soon find out about that,” thought the old Queen. But
-she said never a word. She went into the bedroom, took off all the
-bed-clothes and put a pea on the bedstead. Then she took twenty
-mattresses and laid them on the pea and twenty eider-down quilts upon
-the mattresses. And the Princess was to sleep there at night.
-
-In the morning they came to her and asked her how she had slept.
-
-“Oh! dreadfully,” said the Princess. “I scarcely closed my eyes the
-whole night long. Heaven knows what could have been in the bed. I have
-lain upon something hard, so that my whole body is black and blue. It
-is quite dreadful.”
-
-So they could see now that she was a real Princess, because she had
-felt the pea through twenty mattresses and twenty eider-down quilts.
-Nobody but a real Princess could be so sensitive.
-
-So the Prince married her, for now he knew that he had found a real
-Princess, and the pea was sent to an Art Museum, where it can still be
-seen, if nobody has taken it away.
-
-Now, mark you: This is a true story.
-
-(_Translated from the Danish of Hans C. Andersen by Marie L. Shedlock._)
-
-
-I give the following story, quoted by Professor Ker in his Romanes
-Lecture, 1906, as an encouragement to those who develop the art of
-story-telling.
-
-
-THE STORY OF STURLA.
-
-Then Sturla got ready to sail away with the king, and his name was
-put on the list. He went on board before many men had come; he had
-a sleeping bag and a travelling chest, and took his place on the
-fore-deck. A little later the king came on to the quay, and a company
-of men with him. Sturla rose and bowed, and bade the king ‘hail,’
-but the king answered nothing, and went aft along the ship to the
-quarter-deck. They sailed that day to go south along the coast. But
-in the evening when men unpacked their provisions Sturla sat still,
-and no one invited him to mess. Then a servant of the king's came and
-asked Sturla if he had any meat and drink. Sturla said ‘No.’ Then the
-king's servant went to the king and spoke with him, out of hearing:
-and then went forward to Sturla and said: “You shall go to mess with
-Thorir Mouth and Erlend Maw.” They took him into their mess, but rather
-stiffly. When men were turning in to sleep, a sailor of the king's
-asked who should tell them stories. There was little answer. Then he
-said: “Sturla the Icelander, will you tell stories?” “As you will,”
-said Sturla. So he told them the story of Huld, better and fuller than
-any one there had ever heard it told before. Then many men pushed
-forward to the fore-deck, wanting to hear as clearly as might be, and
-there was a great crowd. The queen asked: “What is that crowd on deck
-there?” A man answered: “The men are listening to the story that the
-Icelander tells.” “What story is that?” said she. He answers: “It is
-about a great troll-wife, and it is a good story and well told.” The
-king bade her pay no heed to that, and go to sleep. She says: “I think
-this Icelander must be a good fellow, and less to blame than he is
-reported.” The king was silent.
-
-So the night passed, and the next morning there was no wind for them,
-and the king's ship lay in the same place. Later in the day, when men
-sat at their drink, the king sent dishes from his table to Sturla.
-Sturla's messmates were pleased with this: “You bring better luck than
-we thought, if this sort of thing goes on.” After dinner the queen sent
-for Sturla and asked him to come to her and bring the troll-wife story
-along with him. So Sturla went aft to the quarter-deck, and greeted
-the king and queen. The king answered little, the queen well and
-cheerfully. She asked him to tell the same story he had told overnight.
-He did so, for a great part of the day. When he had finished, the queen
-thanked him, and many others besides, and made him out in their minds
-to be a learned man and sensible. But the king said nothing; only he
-smiled a little. Sturla thought he saw that the king's whole frame of
-mind was brighter than the day before. So he said to the king that
-he had made a poem about him, and another about his father: “I would
-gladly get a hearing for them.” The queen said: “Let him recite his
-poem; I am told that he is the best of poets, and his poem will be
-excellent.” The king bade him say on, if he would, and repeat the poem
-he professed to have made about him. Sturla chanted it to the end. The
-queen said: “To my mind that is a good poem.” The king said to her:
-“Can you follow the poem clearly?” “I would be fain to have you think
-so, Sir,” said the queen. The king said: “I have learned that Sturla
-is good at verses.” Sturla took his leave of the king and queen and
-went to his place. There was no sailing for the king all that day. In
-the evening before he went to bed he sent for Sturla. And when he came
-he greeted the king and said: “What will you have me to do, Sir?” The
-king called for a silver goblet full of wine, and drank some and gave
-it to Sturla and said: “A health to a friend in wine!” (_Vin skal til
-vinar drekka._) Sturla said: “God be praised for it!” “Even so,” says
-the king, “and now I wish you to say the poem you have made about my
-father.” Sturla repeated it: and when it was finished men praised it
-much, and most of all the queen. The king said: “To my thinking, you
-are a better reciter than the Pope.”
-
- _Sturlunga Saga_, vol. ii, pp. 269 _sqq._
-
-
-A SAGA.
-
-In the grey beginnings of the world, or ever the flower of justice
-had rooted in the heart, there lived among the daughters of men two
-children, sisters, of one house.
-
-In childhood did they leap and climb and swim with the men children of
-their race, and were nurtured on the same stories of gods and heroes.
-
-In maidenhood they could do all that a maiden might and more--delve
-could they no less than spin, hunt no less than weave, brew pottage and
-helm ships, wake the harp and tell the stars, face all danger and laugh
-at all pain.
-
-Joyous in toil-time and rest-time were they as the days and years
-of their youth came and went. Death had spared their house, and
-unhappiness knew they none. Yet often as at falling day they sat before
-sleep round the hearth of red fire, listening with the household to the
-brave songs of gods and heroes, there would surely creep into their
-hearts a shadow--the thought that whatever the years of their lives,
-and whatever the generous deeds, there would for them, as women, be
-no escape at the last from the dire mists of Hela, the fogland beyond
-the grave for all such as die not in battle; no escape for them from
-Hela, and no place for ever for them or for their kind among the
-glory-crowned, sword-shriven heroes of echoing Valhalla.
-
-That shadow had first fallen in their lusty childhood, had slowly
-gathered darkness through the overflowing days of maidenhood, and now,
-in the strong tide of full womanhood, often lay upon their future as
-the moon in Odin's wrath lies upon the sun.
-
-But stout were they to face danger and laugh at pain, and for all the
-shadow upon their hope they lived brave and songful days--the one a
-homekeeper and in her turn a mother of men; the other unhusbanded,
-but gentle to ignorance and sickness and sorrow through the width and
-length of the land.
-
-And thus, facing life fearlessly and ever with a smile, those two women
-lived even unto extreme old age, unto the one's children's children's
-children, labouring truly unto the end and keeping strong hearts
-against the dread day of Hela, and the fate-locked gates of Valhalla.
-
-But at the end a wonder.
-
-As these sisters looked their last upon the sun, the one in the
-ancestral homestead under the eyes of love, the other in a distant land
-among strange faces, behold the wind of Thor, and out of the deep of
-heaven the white horses of Odin, All-Father, bearing Valkyrie, shining
-messengers of Valhalla. And those two world-worn women, faithful in all
-their lives, were caught up in death in divine arms and borne far from
-the fogs of Hela to golden thrones among the battle heroes, upon which
-the Nornir, sitting at the loom of life, had from all eternity graven
-their names.
-
-And from that hour have the gates of Valhalla been thrown wide to all
-faithful endeavour whether of man or of women.
-
- JOHN RUSSELL,
- Headmaster of the King Alfred School.
-
-
-THE LEGEND OF ST. CHRISTOPHER.
-
-Christopher was of the lineage of the Canaaneans and he was of a right
-great stature, and had a terrible and fearful cheer and countenance.
-And he was twelve cubits of length. And, as it is read in some
-histories, when he served and dwelled with the king of Canaaneans, it
-came in his mind that he would seek the greatest prince that was in the
-world and him he would serve and obey.
-
-And so far he went that he came to a right great king, of whom the
-renown generally was that he was the greatest of the world. And when
-the king saw him he received him into his service and made him to dwell
-in his court.
-
-Upon a time a minstrel sang before him a song in which he named oft
-the devil. And the king which was a Christian man, when he heard him
-name the devil, made anon the sign of the cross in his visage. And
-when Christopher saw that, he had great marvel what sign it was and
-wherefore the king made it. And he demanded it of him. And because the
-king would not say, he said, “If thou tell me not, I shall no longer
-dwell with thee.” And then the king told to him saying, “Alway when I
-hear the devil named, I fear that he should have power over me, and
-I garnish me with this sign that he grieve not nor annoy me.” Then
-Christopher said to him, “Thou doubtest the devil that he hurt thee
-not? Then is the devil more mighty and greater than thou art. I am then
-deceived of my hope and purpose; for I supposed that I had found the
-most mighty and the most greatest lord of the world. But I commend thee
-to God, for I will go seek him to be my lord and I his servant.”
-
-And then he departed from this king and hasted him to seek the devil.
-And as he went by a great desert he saw a great company of knights.
-Of which a knight cruel and horrible came to him and demanded whither
-he went. And Christopher answered to him and said, “I go to seek the
-devil for to be my master.” And he said, “I am he that thou seekest.”
-And then Christopher was glad and bound himself to be his servant
-perpetual, and took him for his master and lord.
-
-And as they went together by a common way, they found there a cross
-erect and standing. And anon as the devil saw the cross, he was afeard
-and fled, and left the right way and brought Christopher about by a
-sharp desert, and after, when they were past the cross, he brought him
-to the highway that they had left. And when Christopher saw that, he
-marvelled and demanded whereof he doubted that he had left high and
-fair way and had gone so far about by so hard desert. And the devil
-would not tell to him in no wise. Then Christopher said to him, “If
-thou wilt not tell me I shall anon depart from thee and shall serve
-thee no more.” Therefore the devil was constrained to tell him, and
-said, “There was a man called Christ which was hanged on the cross, and
-when I see his sign, I am sore afeard and flee from it wheresomever
-I find it.” To whom Christopher said, “Then he is greater and more
-mightier than thou, when thou art afraid of his sign. And I see well
-that I have laboured in vain since I have not founden the greatest lord
-of all the earth. And I will serve thee no longer. Go thy way then: for
-I will go seek Jesus Christ.”
-
-And when he had long sought and demanded where he should find Christ,
-at the last he came into a great desert to an hermit that dwelled
-there. And this hermit preached to him of Jesus Christ and informed
-him in the faith diligently. And he said to him, “This king whom thou
-desirest to serve, requireth this service that thou must oft fast.” And
-Christopher said to him, “Require of me some other thing and I shall
-do it. For that which thou requirest I may not do.” And the hermit
-said, “Thou must then wake and make many prayers.” And Christopher
-said to him, “I wot not what it is. I may do no such thing.” And then
-the hermit said unto him, “Knowest thou such a river in which many
-be perished and lost?” To whom Christopher said, “I know it well.”
-Then said the hermit, “Because thou art noble and high of stature and
-strong in thy members, thou shalt be resident by that river and shalt
-bear over all them that shall pass there. Which shall be a thing right
-convenable to Our Lord Jesus Christ, whom thou desirest to serve, and
-I hope He shall shew Himself to thee.” Then said Christopher, “Certes,
-this service may I well do, and I promise to Him for to do it.”
-
-Then went Christopher to this river, and made there his habitation
-for him. And he bare a great pole in his hand instead of a staff, by
-which he sustained him in the water; and bare over all manner of people
-without ceasing. And there he abode, thus doing many days.
-
-And on a time, as he slept in his lodge, he heard the voice of a
-child which called him and said, “Christopher, come out and bear me
-over.” Then he awoke and went out; but he found no man. And when he
-was again in his house, he heard the same voice, and he ran out and
-found nobody. The third time he was called, and came thither, and
-found a child beside the rivage of the river: which prayed him goodly
-to bear him over the water. And then Christopher lift up the child on
-his shoulders and took his staff and entered into the river for to
-pass. And the water of the river arose and swelled more and more. And
-the child was heavy as lead. And always as he went further the water
-increased and grew more, and the child more and more waxed heavy: in
-so much that Christopher had great anguish and feared to be drowned.
-And when he was escaped with great pain and passed the water, and set
-the child aground, he said to the child, “Child, thou hast put me in
-great peril. Thou weighest almost as I had had all the world upon me.
-I might bear no greater burden.” And the child answered, “Christopher,
-marvel thou no thing. For thou hast not only borne all the world upon
-thee; but thou hast borne Him that created and made all the world upon
-thy shoulders. I am Jesus Christ, the King to whom thou servest in this
-work. And that thou mayest know that I say to thee truth, set thy staff
-in the earth by the house, and thou shalt see to-morrow that it shall
-bear flowers and fruit.” And anon he vanished from his eyes.
-
-And then Christopher set his staff in the earth and when he arose on
-the morrow, he found his staff like a palm-tree bearing flowers, leaves
-and dates.
-
-
-ARTHUR IN THE CAVE.
-
-Once upon a time a Welshman was walking on London Bridge, staring
-at the traffic and wondering why there were so many kites hovering
-about. He had come to London, after many adventures with thieves
-and highwaymen, which need not be related here, in charge of a herd
-of black Welsh cattle. He had sold them with much profit, and with
-jingling gold in his pocket he was going about to see the sights of the
-city.
-
-He was carrying a hazel staff in his hand, for you must know that a
-good staff is as necessary to a drover as teeth are to his dogs. He
-stood still to gaze at some wares in a shop (for at that time London
-Bridge was shops from beginning to end), when he noticed that a man was
-looking at his stick with a long fixed look. The man after a while came
-to him and asked him where he came from.
-
-“I come from my own country,” said the Welshman, rather surlily, for he
-could not see what business the man had to ask such a question.
-
-“Do not take it amiss,” said the stranger: “if you will only answer my
-questions, and take my advice, it will be greater benefit to you than
-you imagine. Do you remember where you cut that stick?”
-
-The Welshman was still suspicious, and said: “What does it matter where
-I cut it?”
-
-“It matters,” said the questioner, “because there is a treasure hidden
-near the spot where you cut that stick. If you can remember the place
-and conduct me to it, I will put you in possession of great riches.”
-
-The Welshman now understood he had to deal with a sorcerer, and he was
-greatly perplexed as to what to do. On the one hand, he was tempted by
-the prospect of wealth; on the other hand, he knew that the sorcerer
-must have derived his knowledge from devils, and he feared to have
-anything to do with the powers of darkness. The cunning man strove hard
-to persuade him, and at length made him promise to shew the place where
-he cut his hazel staff.
-
-The Welshman and the magician journeyed together to Wales. They went
-to Craig y Dinas, the Rock of the Fortress, at the head of the Neath
-valley, near Pont Nedd Fechan, and the Welshman, pointing to the stock
-or root of an old hazel, said: “This is where I cut my stick.”
-
-“Let us dig,” said the sorcerer. They digged until they came to a
-broad, flat stone. Prising this up, they found some steps leading
-downwards. They went down the steps and along a narrow passage until
-they came to a door. “Are you brave?” asked the sorcerer, “will you
-come in with me?”
-
-“I will,” said the Welshman, his curiosity getting the better of his
-fear.
-
-They opened the door, and a great cave opened out before them. There
-was a faint red light in the cave, and they could see everything. The
-first thing they came to was a bell.
-
-“Do not touch that bell,” said the sorcerer, “or it will be all over
-with us both.”
-
-As they went further in, the Welshman saw that the place was not empty.
-There were soldiers lying down asleep, thousands of them, as far as
-ever the eye could see. Each one was clad in bright armour, the steel
-helmet of each was on his head, the shining shield of each was on his
-arm, the sword of each was near his hand, each had his spear stuck in
-the ground near him, and each and all were asleep.
-
-In the midst of the cave was a great round table at which sat warriors
-whose noble features and richly-dight armour proclaimed that they were
-not as the roll of common men.
-
-Each of these, too, had his head bent down in sleep. On a golden throne
-on the further side of the round table was a king of gigantic stature
-and august presence. In his hand, held below the hilt, was a mighty
-sword with scabbard and haft of gold studded with gleaming gems; on his
-head was a crown set with precious stones which flashed and glinted
-like so many points of fire. Sleep had set its seal on his eyelids
-also.
-
-“Are they asleep?” asked the Welshman, hardly believing his own eyes.
-“Yes, each and all of them,” answered the sorcerer. “But, if you touch
-yonder bell, they will all awake.”
-
-“How long have they been asleep?”
-
-“For over a thousand years.”
-
-“Who are they?”
-
-“Arthur's warriors, waiting for the time to come when they shall
-destroy all the enemy of the Cymry and repossess the strand of Britain,
-establishing their own king once more at Caer Lleon.”
-
-“Who are these sitting at the round table?”
-
-“These are Arthur's knights--Owain, the son of Urien; Cai, the son
-of Cynyr; Gnalchmai, the son of Gwyar; Peredir, the son of Efrawe;
-Geraint, the son of Erbin; Trystan, the son of March; Bedwyr, the son
-of Bedrawd; Ciernay, the son of Celyddon; Edeyrn, the son of Nudd;
-Cymri, the son of Clydno.”
-
-“And on the golden throne?” broke in the Welshman.
-
-“Is Arthur himself, with his sword Excalibur in his hand,” replied the
-sorcerer.
-
-Impatient by this time at the Welshman's questions, the sorcerer
-hastened to a great heap of yellow gold on the floor of the cave. He
-took up as much as he could carry, and bade his companion do the same.
-“It is time for us to go,” he then said, and he led the way towards the
-door by which they had entered.
-
-But the Welshman was fascinated by the sight of the countless soldiers
-in their glittering arms--all asleep.
-
-“How I should like to see them all awaking!” he said to himself. “I
-will touch the bell--I _must_ see them all arising from their sleep.”
-
-When they came to the bell, he struck it until it rang through the
-whole place. As soon as it rang, lo! the thousands of warriors leapt
-to their feet and the ground beneath them shook with the sound of the
-steel arms. And a great voice came from their midst: “Who rang the
-bell? Has the day come?”
-
-The sorcerer was so much frightened that he shook like an aspen leaf.
-He shouted in answer: “No, the day has not come. Sleep on.”
-
-The mighty host was all in motion, and the Welshman's eyes were dazzled
-as he looked at the bright steel arms which illumined the cave as with
-the light of myriad flames of fire.
-
-“Arthur,” said the voice again, “awake; the bell has rung, the day is
-breaking. Awake, Arthur the Great.”
-
-“No,” shouted the sorcerer, “it is still night. Sleep on, Arthur the
-Great.”
-
-A sound came from the throne. Arthur was standing, and the jewels in
-his crown shone like bright stars above the countless throng. His voice
-was strong and sweet like the sound of many waters, and he said: “My
-warriors, the day has not come when the Black Eagle and the Golden
-Eagle shall go to war. It is only a seeker after gold who has rung the
-bell. Sleep on, my warriors; the morn of Wales has not yet dawned.”
-
-A peaceful sound like the distant sigh of the sea came over the cave,
-and in a trice the soldiers were all asleep again. The sorcerer hurried
-the Welshman out of the cave, moved the stone back to its place and
-vanished.
-
-Many a time did the Welshman try to find his way into the cave again,
-but though he dug over every inch of the hill, he has never again found
-the entrance to Arthur's Cave.
-
- From “The Welsh Fairy Book,” by W. Jenkyn Thomas. Fisher Unwin.
-
-
-HAFIZ THE STONE-CUTTER.
-
-There was once a stone-cutter whose name was Hafiz, and all day long he
-chipped, chipped, chipped at his block. And often he grew very weary
-of his task and he would say to himself impatiently, “Why should I go
-on chip-chip-chipping at my block? Why should I not have pleasure and
-amusement as other folk have?”
-
-One day, when the sun was very hot and when he felt specially weary, he
-suddenly heard the sound of many feet, and, looking up from his work,
-he saw a great procession coming his way. It was the King, mounted on
-a splendid charger, all his soldiers to the right, in their shining
-armour, and the servants to the left, dressed in gorgeous clothing,
-ready to do his behests.
-
-And Hafiz said: “How splendid to be a King! If only I could be a King,
-if only for ten minutes, so that I might know what it feels like!” And
-then, even as he spoke, he seemed to be dreaming, and in his dream he
-sang this little song:
-
- Ah me! Ah me!
- If Hafiz only the King could be!
-
-And then a voice from the air around seemed to answer him and to say:
-
- Be thou the King.[54]
-
-And Hafiz became the King, and he it was that sat on the splendid
-charger, and they were his soldiers to the right and his servants to
-the left. And Hafiz said: “I am King, and there is no one stronger in
-the whole world than I.”
-
-But soon, in spite of the golden canopy over his head, Hafiz began to
-feel the terrible heat of the rays of the sun, and soon he noticed that
-the soldiers and servants were weary, that his horse drooped, and that
-he, Hafiz, was overcome, and he said angrily: “What! Is there something
-stronger in the world than a King?” And, almost without knowing it, he
-again sang his song--more boldly than the first time:
-
- Ah me! Ah me!
- If Hafiz only the Sun could be!
-
-And the Voice answered:
-
- Be thou the Sun.
-
-And Hafiz became the Sun, and shone down upon the Earth, but, because
-he did not know how to shine very wisely, he shone very fiercely, so
-that the crops dried up, and folk grew sick and died. And then there
-arose from the East a little cloud which slipped between Hafiz and the
-Earth, so that he could no longer shine down upon it, and he said: “Is
-there something stronger in the world than the Sun?”
-
- Ah me! Ah me!
- If Hafiz only the Cloud could be!
-
-And the Voice said:
-
- Be thou the cloud.
-
-And Hafiz became the Cloud, and rained down water upon the Earth, but,
-because he did not know how to do so wisely, there fell so much rain
-that all the little rivulets became great rivers, and all the great
-rivers overflowed their banks, and carried everything before them in
-swift torrent--all except one great rock which stood unmoved. And Hafiz
-said: “Is there something stronger than the Cloud?”
-
- Ah me! Ah me!
- If Hafiz only the Rock could be!
-
-And the Voice said:
-
- Be thou the Rock.
-
-And Hafiz became the Rock, and the Cloud disappeared and the waters
-went down.
-
-And Hafiz the Rock saw coming towards him a man--but he could not see
-his face. As the man approached he suddenly raised a hammer and struck
-Hafiz, so that he felt it through all his stony body. And Hafiz said:
-“Is there something stronger in the world than the Rock?”
-
- Ah me! Ah me!
- If Hafiz only that man might be!
-
-And the Voice said:
-
- Be thou--Thyself.
-
-And Hafiz seized the hammer and said:
-
-“The Sun was stronger than the King, the Cloud was stronger than the
-Sun, the Rock was stronger than the Cloud, but I, Hafiz, was stronger
-than all.”
-
- _Adapted and arranged for narration by M. C. S._
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[54] The melody to be crooned at first and to grow louder at each
-incident.
-
-
-TO YOUR GOOD HEALTH.
-
-(_From the Russian._)
-
-Long long ago there lived a King who was such a mighty monarch that
-whenever he sneezed everyone in the whole country had to say, “To your
-good health!” Everyone said it except the Shepherd with the bright blue
-eyes, and he would not say it.
-
-The King heard of this and was very angry, and sent for the Shepherd to
-appear before him.
-
-The Shepherd came and stood before the throne, where the King sat
-looking very grand and powerful. But, however grand or powerful he
-might be, the Shepherd did not feel a bit afraid of him.
-
-“Say at once, 'To my good health!'” cried the King.
-
-“To my good health,” replied the Shepherd.
-
-“To mine--to _mine_, you rascal, you vagabond!” stormed the King.
-
-“To mine, to mine, Your Majesty,” was the answer.
-
-“But to _mine_--to my own!” roared the King, and beat on his breast in
-a rage.
-
-“Well, yes; to mine, of course, to my own,” cried the Shepherd, and
-gently tapped his breast.
-
-The King was beside himself with fury and did not know what to do, when
-the Lord Chamberlain interfered:
-
-“Say at once--say at this very moment, ‘To your health, Your Majesty,’
-for if you don't say it you will lose your life,” he whispered.
-
-“No, I won't say it till I get the Princess for my wife,” was the
-Shepherd's answer.
-
-Now the Princess was sitting on a little throne beside the King her
-father, and she looked as sweet and lovely as a little golden dove.
-When she heard what the Shepherd said, she could not help laughing, for
-there is no denying the fact that this young shepherd with the blue
-eyes pleased her very much; indeed, he pleased her better than any
-king's son she had yet seen.
-
-But the King was not as pleasant as his daughter, and he gave orders to
-throw the Shepherd into the white bear's pit.
-
-The guards led him away and thrust him into the pit with the white
-bear, who had had nothing to eat for two days and was very hungry. The
-door of the pit was hardly closed when the bear rushed at the Shepherd;
-but when it saw his eyes it was so frightened that it was ready to eat
-itself. It shrank away into a corner and gazed at him from there, and
-in spite of being so famished, did not dare to touch him, but sucked
-its own paws from sheer hunger. The Shepherd felt that if he once
-removed his eyes off the beast he was a dead man, and in order to keep
-himself awake he made songs and sang them, and so the night went by.
-
-Next morning the Lord Chamberlain came to see the Shepherd's bones, and
-was amazed to find him alive and well. He led him to the King, who fell
-into a furious passion, and said:
-
-“Well, you have learned what it is to be very near death, and now will
-you say, 'To my very good health'?”
-
-But the Shepherd answered:
-
-“I am not afraid of ten deaths! I will only say it if I may have the
-Princess for my wife.”
-
-“Then go to your death,” cried the King, and ordered him to be thrown
-into the den with the wild boars.
-
-The wild boars had not been fed for a week, and when the Shepherd was
-thrust into their den they rushed at him to tear him to pieces. But the
-Shepherd took a little flute out of the sleeve of his jacket, and began
-to play a merry tune, on which the wild boars first of all shrank shyly
-away, and then got up on their hind legs and danced gaily. The Shepherd
-would have given anything to be able to laugh, they looked so funny;
-but he dared not stop playing, for he knew well enough that the moment
-he stopped they would fall upon him and tear him to pieces. His eyes
-were of no use to him here, for he could not have stared ten wild boars
-in the face at once; so he kept on playing, and the wild boars danced
-very slowly, as if in a minuet; then by degrees he played faster and
-faster, till they could hardly twist and turn quickly enough, and ended
-by all falling over each other in a heap, quite exhausted and out of
-breath.
-
-Then the Shepherd ventured to laugh at last; and he laughed so long
-and so loud that when the Lord Chamberlain came early in the morning,
-expecting to find only his bones, the tears were still running down his
-cheeks from laughter.
-
-As soon as the King was dressed the Shepherd was again brought before
-him; but he was more angry than ever to think the wild boars had not
-torn the man to bits, and he said:
-
-“Well, you have learned what it feels to be near ten deaths, _now_ say
-'To my good health!'”
-
-But the Shepherd broke in with:
-
-“I do not fear a hundred deaths; and I will only say it if I may have
-the Princess for my wife.”
-
-“Then go to a hundred deaths!” roared the King, and ordered the
-Shepherd to be thrown down the deep vault of scythes.
-
-The guards dragged him away to a dark dungeon, in the middle of which
-was a deep well with sharp scythes all round it. At the bottom of the
-well was a little light by which one could see, if anyone was thrown
-in, whether he had fallen to the bottom.
-
-When the Shepherd was dragged to the dungeon he begged the guards to
-leave him alone a little while that he might look down into the pit of
-scythes; perhaps he might after all make up his mind to say, “To your
-good health” to the King.
-
-So the guards left him alone, and he stuck up his long stick near the
-wall, hung his cloak round the stick and put his hat on the top. He
-also hung his knapsack up beside the cloak, so that it might seem to
-have some body within it. When this was done, he called out to the
-guards and said that he had considered the matter, but after all he
-could not make up his mind to say what the King wished.
-
-The guards came in, threw the hat and cloak, knapsack and stick all
-down in the well together, watched to see how they put out the light at
-the bottom, and came away, thinking that now there was really an end of
-the Shepherd. But he had hidden in a dark corner, and was now laughing
-to himself all the time.
-
-Quite early next morning came the Lord Chamberlain with a lamp, and he
-nearly fell backwards with surprise when he saw the Shepherd alive and
-well. He brought him to the King, whose fury was greater than ever, but
-who cried:
-
-“Well, now you have been near a hundred deaths; will you say, 'To your
-good health'?”
-
-But the Shepherd only gave the same answer:
-
-“I won't say it till the Princess is my wife.”
-
-“Perhaps after all you may do it for less,” said the King, who saw that
-there was no chance of making away with the Shepherd; and he ordered
-the state coach to be got ready; then he made the Shepherd get in with
-him and sit beside him, and ordered the coachman to drive to the silver
-wood.
-
-When they reached it, he said:
-
-“Do you see this silver wood? Well, if you will say, ‘To your good
-health,’ I will give it to you.”
-
-The Shepherd turned hot and cold by turns, but he still persisted:
-
-“I will not say it till the Princess is my wife.”
-
-The King was much vexed; he drove further on till they came to a
-splendid castle, all of gold, and then he said:
-
-“Do you see this golden castle? Well, I will give you that too, the
-silver wood and the golden castle, if only you will say that one thing
-to me: 'To your good health.'”
-
-The Shepherd gaped and wondered, and was quite dazzled, but he still
-said:
-
-“No, I will not say it till I have the Princess for my wife.”
-
-This time the King was overwhelmed with grief, and gave orders to drive
-on to the diamond pond, and there he tried once more:
-
-“You shall have them all--all, if you will but say, 'To your good
-health.'”
-
-The Shepherd had to shut his staring eyes tight not to be dazzled with
-the brilliant pond, but still he said:
-
-“No, no; I will not say it till I have the Princess for my wife.”
-
-Then the King saw that all his efforts were useless, and that he might
-as well give in; so he said:
-
-“Well, well, it is all the same to me--I will give you my daughter
-to wife; but then you really and truly must say to me, 'To your good
-health.'”
-
-“Of course I'll say it; why should I not say it? It stands to reason
-that I shall say it then.”
-
-At this the King was more delighted than anyone could have believed. He
-made it known to all through the country that there were going to be
-great rejoicings, as the Princess was going to be married. And everyone
-rejoiced to think that the Princess who had refused so many royal
-suitors, should have ended by falling in love with the staring-eyed
-Shepherd.
-
-There was such a wedding as had never been seen. Everyone ate and
-drank and danced. Even the sick were feasted, and quite tiny new-born
-children had presents given them. But the greatest merry-making was
-in the King's palace; there the best bands played and the best food
-was cooked. A crowd of people sat down to table, and all was fun and
-merry-making.
-
-And when the groomsman, according to custom, brought in the great
-boar's head on a big dish and placed it before the King, so that he
-might carve it and give everyone a share, the savoury smell was so
-strong that the King began to sneeze with all his might.
-
-“To your very good health!” cried the Shepherd before anyone else, and
-the King was so delighted that he did not regret having given him his
-daughter.
-
-In time, when the old King died, the Shepherd succeeded him. He made a
-very good king, and never expected his people to wish him well against
-their wills: but, all the same, everyone did wish him well, because
-they loved him.
-
-
-THE PROUD COCK.
-
-There was once a cock who grew so dreadfully proud that he would have
-nothing to say to anybody. He left his house, it being far beneath his
-dignity to have any trammel of that sort in his life, and as for his
-former acquaintances, he cut them all.
-
-One day, whilst walking about, he came to a few little sparks of fire
-which were nearly dead.
-
-They cried out to him: “Please fan us with your wings, and we shall
-come to the full vigour of life again.”
-
-But he did not deign to answer, and as he was going away, one of the
-sparks said: “Ah well! we shall die, but our big brother the Fire will
-pay you out for this one day.”
-
-On another day he was airing himself in a meadow, showing himself off
-in a very superb set of clothes. A voice calling from somewhere said:
-“Please be so good as to drop us into the water again.”
-
-He looked about and saw a few drops of water: they had got separated
-from their friends in the river, and were pining away with grief. “Oh!
-please be so good as to drop us into the water again,” they said; but,
-without any answer, he drank up the drops. He was too proud and a great
-deal too big to talk to a poor little puddle of water; but the drops
-said: “Our big brother the Water will one day take you in hand, you
-proud and senseless creature.”
-
-Some days afterwards, during a great storm of rain, thunder and
-lightning, the cock took shelter in a little empty cottage, and shut
-to the door; and he thought: “I am clever; I am in comfort. What fools
-people are to stop out in a storm like this! What's that?” thought he.
-“I never heard a sound like that before.”
-
-In a little while it grew much louder, and when a few minutes had
-passed, it was a perfect howl. “Oh!” thought he, “this will never do. I
-must stop it somehow. But what is it I have to stop?”
-
-He soon found it was the wind, shouting through the keyhole, so he
-plugged up the keyhole with a bit of clay, and then the wind was able
-to rest. He was very tired with whistling so long through the keyhole,
-and he said: “Now, if ever I have at any time a chance of doing a good
-turn to that princely domestic fowl, I will do it.”
-
-Weeks afterwards, the cock looked in at a house door: he seldom went
-there, because the miser to whom the house belonged almost starved
-himself, and so, of course, there was nothing over for anybody else.
-
-To his amazement the cock saw the miser bending over a pot on the fire.
-At last the old fellow turned round to get a spoon with which to stir
-his pot, and then the cock, walking up, looked in and saw that the
-miser was making oyster-soup, for he had found some oyster-shells in an
-ash-pit, and to give the mixture a colour he had put in a few halfpence
-in the pot.
-
-The miser chanced to turn quickly round, whilst the cock was peering
-into the saucepan, and, chuckling to himself, he said: “I shall have
-some chicken broth after all.”
-
-He tripped up the cock into the pot and shut the lid on. The bird,
-feeling warm, said: “Water, water, don't boil!” But the water only
-said: “You drank up my young brothers once: don't ask a favour of _me_.”
-
-Then he called out to the Fire: “Oh! kind Fire, don't boil the water.”
-But the Fire replied: “You once let my young sisters die: you cannot
-expect any mercy from me.” So he flared up and boiled the water all the
-faster.
-
-At last, when the cock got unpleasantly warm, he thought of the wind,
-and called out: “Oh, Wind, come to my help!” and the Wind said: “Why,
-there is that noble domestic bird in trouble. I will help him.” So he
-came down the chimney, blew out the fire, blew the lid off the pot,
-and blew the cock far away into the air, and at last settled him on a
-steeple, where the cock has remained ever since. And people say that
-the halfpence which were in the pot when it was boiling have given him
-the queer brown colour he still wears.
-
- _From the Spanish._
-
-
-SNEGOURKA.
-
-There lived once, in Russia, a peasant and his wife who would have been
-as happy as the day is long, if only God had given them a little child.
-
-One day, as they were watching the children playing in the snow, the
-man said to the woman:
-
-“Wife, shall we go out and help the children to make a snowball?”
-
-But the wife answered, smiling:
-
-“Nay, husband, but since God has given us no little child, let us go
-and fashion one from the snow.”
-
-And she put on her long blue cloak, and he put on his long brown coat,
-and they went out onto the crisp snow, and began to fashion the little
-child.
-
-First they made the feet and the legs and the little body, and then
-they took a ball of snow for the head. And at that moment a stranger in
-a long cloak, with his hat well drawn over his face, passed that way,
-and said: “Heaven help your undertaking!”
-
-And the peasants crossed themselves and said: “It is well to ask help
-from Heaven in all we do.”
-
-Then they went on fashioning the little child. And they made two holes
-for the eyes and formed the nose and the mouth. And then--wonder of
-wonders--the little child came alive, and breath came into its nostrils
-and parted lips.
-
-And the man was afeared, and said to his wife: “What have we done?”
-
-And the wife said: “This is the little girl child God has sent us.” And
-she gathered it into her arms, and the loose snow fell away from the
-little creature. Her hair became golden and her eyes were as blue as
-forget-me-nots--but there was no colour in her cheeks, because there
-was no blood in her veins.
-
-In a few days she was like a child of three or four, and in a few
-weeks she seemed to be the age of nine or ten, and ran about gaily and
-prattled with the other children, who loved her so dearly, though she
-was so different from them.
-
-Only, happy as she was, and dearly as her parents loved her, there was
-one terror in her life, and that was the sun. And during the day she
-would run and hide herself in cool, damp places away from the sunshine,
-and this the other children could not understand.
-
-As the Spring advanced and the days grew longer and warmer, little
-Snegourka (for this was the name by which she was known) grew paler
-and thinner, and her mother would often ask her: “What ails you, my
-darling?” and Snegourka would say: “Nothing Mother, but I wish the sun
-were not so bright.”
-
-One day, on St. John's Day, the children of the village came to fetch
-her for a day in the woods, and they gathered flowers for her and did
-all they could to make her happy, but it was only when the great red
-sun went down that Snegourka drew a deep breath of relief and spread
-her little hands out to the cool evening air. And the boys, glad at
-her gladness, said: “Let us do something for Snegourka. Let us light a
-bonfire.” And Snegourka, not knowing what a bonfire was, she clapped
-her hands and was as merry and eager as they. And she helped them
-gather the sticks, and then they all stood round the pile and the boys
-set fire to the wood.
-
-Snegourka stood watching the flames and listening to the crackle of
-the wood; and then suddenly they heard a tiny sound--and looking at
-the place where Snegourka had been standing, they saw nothing but a
-little snowdrift fast melting. And they called and called, “Snegourka!
-Snegourka!” thinking she had run into the forest. But there was no
-answer. Snegourka had disappeared from this life as mysteriously as she
-had come into it.
-
- _From the Russian, adapted for narration by M.T.S._
-
-
-THE WATER NIXIE.
-
-The river was so clear because it was the home of a very beautiful
-Water Nixie who lived in it, and who sometimes could emerge from her
-home and sit in woman's form upon the bank. She had a dark green smock
-upon her, the colour of the water-weed that waves as the water wills
-it, deep, deep down. And in her long wet hair were the white flowers
-of the water-violet, and she held a reed mace in her hand. Her face
-was very sad, because she had lived a long life, and known so many
-adventures, ever since she was a baby, which was nearly a hundred years
-ago. For creatures of the streams and trees live a long, long time, and
-when they die they lose themselves in Nature. That means that they are
-forever clouds, or trees, or rivers, and never have the form of men and
-women again.
-
-All water creatures would live, if they might choose it, in the sea,
-where they are born. It is in the sea they float hand-in-hand upon
-the crested billows, and sink deep in the great troughs of the strong
-waves, that are green as jade. They follow the foam and lose themselves
-in the wide ocean:
-
- Where great whales come sailing by,
- Sail and sail with unshut eye;
- And they store in the Sea King's palace
- The golden phosphor of the sea.
-
-But this Water Nixie had lost her happiness through not being good.
-She had forgotten many things that had been told her, and she had
-done many things that grieved others. She had stolen somebody else's
-property--quite a large bundle of happiness--which belonged elsewhere
-and not to her. Happiness is generally made to fit the person who owns
-it, just as do your shoes, or clothes; so that when you take some one
-else's it's very little good to you, for it fits badly, and you can
-never forget it isn't yours.
-
-So what with one thing and another, this Water Nixie had to be
-punished, and the Queen of the Sea had banished her from the waves. The
-punishment that can most affect merfolk is to restrict their freedom.
-And this is how the Queen of the Sea punished the Nixie of our tale.
-
-“You shall live for a long time in little places, where you will weary
-of yourself. You will learn to know yourself so well that everything
-you want will seem too good for you, and you will cease to claim it.
-And so, in time, you shall get free.”
-
-Then the Nixie had to rise up and go away, and be shut into the
-fastness of a very small space, according to the words of the Queen.
-And this small space was--a tear.
-
-At first she could hardly express her misery, and by thinking so
-continuously of the wideness and savour of the sea, she brought a dash
-of the brine with her, that makes the saltness of our tears. She became
-many times smaller than her own stature; even then, by standing upright
-and spreading wide her arms, she touched with her finger-tips the walls
-of her tiny crystal home. How she longed that this tear might be wept,
-and the walls of her prison shattered. But the owner of this tear was
-of a very proud nature, and she was so sad that tears seemed to her in
-no wise to express her grief.
-
-She was a Princess who lived in a country that was not her home. What
-were tears to her? If she could have stood on the top of the very
-highest hill and with both hands caught the great winds of heaven,
-strong as they, and striven with them, perhaps she might have felt
-as if she expressed all she knew. Or, if she could have torn down the
-stars from the heavens, or cast her mantle over the sun. But tears!
-Would they have helped to tell her sorrow? You cry if you soil your
-copy-book, don't you? or pinch your hand? So you may imagine the
-Nixie's home was a safe one, and she turned round and round in the
-captivity of that tear.
-
-For twenty years she dwelt in that strong heart, till she grew to be
-accustomed to her cell. At last, in this wise came her release.
-
-An old gipsy came one morning to the Castle and begged to see the
-Princess. She must see her, she cried. And the Princess came down the
-steps to meet her, and the gipsy gave her a small roll of paper in her
-hand. And the roll of paper smelt like honey as she took it, and it
-adhered to her palm as she opened it. There was little sign of writing
-on the paper, but in the midst of the page was a picture, small as the
-picture reflected in the iris of an eye. The picture shewed a hill,
-with one tree on the sky-line, and a long road wound round the hill.
-
-And suddenly in the Princess' memory a voice spoke to her. Many sounds
-she heard, gathered up into one great silence, like the quiet there is
-in forest spaces, when it is Summer and the green is deep:
-
-Then the Princess gave the gipsy two golden pieces, and went up to her
-chamber, and long that night she sat, looking out upon the sky.
-
-She had no need to look upon the honeyed scroll, though she held it
-closely. Clearly before her did she see that small picture: the hill,
-and the tree, and the winding road, imaged as if mirrored in the iris
-of an eye. And in her memory she was upon that road, and the hill rose
-beside her, and the little tree was outlined every twig of it against
-the sky.
-
-And as she saw all this, an overwhelming love of the place arose in
-her, a love of that certain bit of country that was so sharp and
-strong, that it stung and swayed her, as she leaned on the window-sill.
-
-And because the love of a country is one of the deepest loves you may
-feel, the band of her control was loosened, and the tears came welling
-to her eyes. Up they brimmed and over, in salty rush and follow,
-dimming her eyes, magnifying everything, speared for a moment on her
-eyelashes, then shimmering to their fall. And at last came the tear
-that held the disobedient Nixie.
-
-Splish! it fell. And she was free.
-
-If you could have seen how pretty she looked standing there, about the
-height of a grass-blade, wringing out her long wet hair. Every bit of
-moisture she wrung out of it, she was so glad to be quit of that tear.
-Then she raised her two arms above her in one delicious stretch, and if
-you had been the size of a mustard-seed perhaps you might have heard
-her laughing. Then she grew a little, and grew and grew, till she was
-about the height of a bluebell, and as slender to see.
-
-She stood looking at the splash on the window-sill that had been her
-prison so long, and then, with three steps of her bare feet, she
-reached the jessamine that was growing by the window, and by this she
-swung herself to the ground.
-
-Away she sped over the dew-drenched meadows till she came to the
-running brook, and with all her longing in her outstretched hands,
-she kneeled down by the crooked willows among all the comfrey and the
-loosestrife, and the yellow irises and the reeds.
-
-Then she slid into the wide, cool stream.
-
- PAMELA TENNANT (Lady Glenconner).
- _From “The Children and the Pictures”_
-
-
-THE BLUE ROSE.
-
-There lived once upon a time in China a wise Emperor who had one
-daughter. His daughter was remarkable for her perfect beauty. Her
-feet were the smallest in the world; her eyes were long and slanting
-and bright as brown onyxes, and when you heard her laugh it was like
-listening to a tinkling stream or to the chimes of a silver bell.
-Moreover, the Emperor's daughter was as wise as she was beautiful,
-and she chanted the verse of the great poets better than anyone in
-the land. The Emperor was old in years; his son was married and had
-begotten a son; he was, therefore, quite happy with regard to the
-succession to the throne, but he wished before he died to see his
-daughter wedded to someone who should be worthy of her.
-
-Many suitors presented themselves to the palace as soon as it became
-known that the Emperor desired a son-in-law, but when they reached the
-palace they were met by the Lord Chamberlain, who told them that the
-Emperor had decided that only the man who found and brought back the
-blue rose should marry his daughter. The suitors were much puzzled by
-this order. What was the blue rose and where was it to be found? In all
-a hundred and fifty suitors had presented themselves, and out of these
-fifty at once put away from them all thought of winning the hand of the
-Emperor's daughter, since they considered the condition imposed to be
-absurd.
-
-The other hundred set about trying to find the blue rose. One of them,
-whose name was Ti-Fun-Ti, was a merchant, and immensely rich: he at
-once went to the largest shop in the town and said to the shopkeeper,
-“I want a blue rose, the best you have.”
-
-The shopkeeper with many apologies, explained that he did not stock
-blue roses. He had red roses in profusion, white, pink, and yellow
-roses, but no blue roses. There had hitherto been no demand for the
-article.
-
-“Well,” said Ti-Fun-Ti, “you must get one for me. I do not mind how
-much money it costs, but I must have a blue rose.”
-
-The shopkeeper said he would do his best, but he feared it would be an
-expensive article and difficult to procure. Another of the suitors,
-whose name I have forgotten, was a warrior, and extremely brave; he
-mounted his horse, and taking with him a hundred archers and a thousand
-horsemen, he marched into the territory of the King of the Five Rivers,
-whom he knew to be the richest king in the world and the possessor of
-the rarest treasures, and demanded of him the blue rose, threatening
-him with a terrible doom should he be reluctant to give it up.
-
-The King of the Five Rivers, who disliked soldiers, and had a horror
-of noise, physical violence, and every kind of fuss (his bodyguard was
-armed solely with fans and sunshades), rose from the cushions on which
-he was lying when the demand was made, and, tinkling a small bell, said
-to the servant who straightway appeared, “Fetch me the blue rose.”
-
-The servant retired and returned presently bearing on a silken cushion
-a large sapphire which was carved so as to imitate a full-blown rose
-with all its petals.
-
-“This,” said the King of the Five Rivers, “is the blue rose. You are
-welcome to it.”
-
-The warrior took it, and after making brief, soldier-like thanks, he
-went straight back to the Emperor's palace, saying that he had lost
-no time in finding the blue rose. He was ushered into the presence of
-the Emperor, who as soon as he heard the warrior's story and saw the
-blue rose which had been brought sent for his daughter and said to her:
-“This intrepid warrior has brought you what he claims to be the blue
-rose. Has he accomplished the quest?”
-
-The Princess took the precious object in her hands, and after examining
-it for a moment, said: “This is not a rose at all. It is a sapphire;
-I have no need of precious stones.” And she returned the stone to the
-warrior with many elegantly expressed thanks. And the warrior went away
-in discomfiture.
-
-The merchant, hearing of the warrior's failure, was all the more
-anxious to win the prize. He sought the shopkeeper and said to him:
-“Have you got me the blue rose? I trust you have; because, if not, I
-shall most assuredly be the means of your death. My brother-in-law
-is chief magistrate, and I am allied by marriage to all the chief
-officials in the kingdom.”
-
-The shopkeeper turned pale and said: “Sir, give me three days and I
-will procure you the rose without fail.” The merchant granted him the
-three days and went away. Now the shopkeeper was at his wit's end as to
-what to do, for he knew well there was no such thing as a blue rose.
-For two days he did nothing but moan and wring his hands, and on the
-third day he went to his wife and said: “Wife, we are ruined.”
-
-But his wife, who was a sensible woman, said: “Nonsense. If there is no
-such thing as a blue rose we must make one. Go to the chemist and ask
-him for a strong dye which will change a white rose into a blue one.”
-
-So the shopkeeper went to the chemist and asked him for a dye, and the
-chemist gave him a bottle of red liquid, telling him to pick a white
-rose and to dip its stalk into the liquid and the rose would turn blue.
-The shopkeeper did as he was told; the rose turned into a beautiful
-blue and the shopkeeper took it to the merchant, who at once went with
-it to the palace saying that he had found the blue rose.
-
-He was ushered into the presence of the Emperor, who as soon as he saw
-the blue rose sent for his daughter and said to her: “This wealthy
-merchant has brought you what he claims to be the blue rose. Has he
-accomplished the quest?”
-
-The Princess took the flower in her hands and after examining it for
-a moment said: “This is a white rose; its stalk has been dipped in a
-poisonous dye and it has turned blue. Were a butterfly to settle upon
-it, it would die of the potent fume. Take it back. I have no need of a
-dyed rose.” And she returned it to the merchant with many elegantly
-expressed thanks.
-
-The other ninety-eight suitors all sought in various ways for the
-blue rose. Some of them travelled all over the world seeking it; some
-of them sought the aid of wizards and astrologers, and one did not
-hesitate to invoke the help of the dwarfs that live underground; but
-all of them, whether they travelled in far countries or took counsel
-with wizards and demons or sat pondering in lonely places, failed to
-find the blue rose.
-
-At last they all abandoned the quest except the Lord Chief Justice,
-who was the most skilful lawyer and statesman in the country. After
-thinking over the matter for several months he sent for the most famous
-artist in the country and said to him: “Make me a china cup. Let it be
-milk-white in colour and perfect in shape, and paint on it a rose, a
-blue rose.”
-
-The artist made obeisance and withdrew, and worked for two months at
-the Lord Chief Justice's cup. In two months' time it was finished, and
-the world has never seen such a beautiful cup, so perfect in symmetry,
-so delicate in texture, and the rose on it, the blue rose, was a living
-flower, picked in fairyland and floating on the rare milky surface
-of the porcelain. When the Lord Chief Justice saw it he gasped with
-surprise and pleasure, for he was a great lover of porcelain, and never
-in his life had he seen such a piece. He said to himself, “Without
-doubt the blue rose is here on this cup and nowhere else.”
-
-So, after handsomely rewarding the artist, he went to the Emperor's
-palace and said that he had brought the blue rose. He was ushered into
-the Emperor's presence, who as he saw the cup sent for his daughter and
-said to her: “This eminent lawyer has brought you what he claims to be
-the blue rose. Has he accomplished the quest?”
-
-The Princess took the bowl in her hands, and after examining it for a
-moment said: “This bowl is the most beautiful piece of china I have
-ever seen. If you are kind enough to let me keep it I will put it aside
-until I receive the blue rose. For so beautiful is it that no other
-flower is worthy to be put in it except the blue rose.”
-
-The Lord Chief Justice thanked the Princess for accepting the bowl with
-many elegantly turned phrases, and he went away in discomfiture.
-
-After this there was no one in the whole country who ventured on the
-quest of the blue rose. It happened that not long after the Lord
-Chief Justice's attempt a strolling minstrel visited the kingdom of
-the Emperor. One evening he was playing his one-stringed instrument
-outside a dark wall. It was a summer's evening, and the sun had sunk
-in a glory of dusty gold, and in the violet twilight one or two stars
-were twinkling like spear-heads. There was an incessant noise made by
-the croaking of frogs and the chatter of grasshoppers. The minstrel
-was singing a short song over and over again to a monotonous tune. The
-sense of it was something like this:
-
- I watched beside the willow trees
- The river, as the evening fell,
- The twilight came and brought no breeze,
- Nor dew, nor water for the well.
-
- When from the tangled banks of grass
- A bird across the water flew,
- And in the river's hard grey glass
- I saw a flash of azure blue.
-
-As he sang he heard a rustle on the wall, and looking up he saw a
-slight figure white against the twilight, beckoning to him. He walked
-along the wall until he came to a gate, and there someone was waiting
-for him, and he was gently led into the shadow of a dark cedar tree.
-In the dim twilight he saw two bright eyes looking at him, and he
-understood their message. In the twilight a thousand meaningless
-nothings were whispered in the light of the stars, and the hours fled
-swiftly. When the East began to grow light, the Princess (for it was
-she) said it was time to go.
-
-“But,” said the minstrel, “to-morrow I shall come to the palace and ask
-for your hand.”
-
-“Alas!” said the Princess, “I would that were possible, but my father
-has made a foolish condition that only he may wed me who finds the blue
-rose.”
-
-“That is simple,” said the minstrel. “I will find it.” And they said
-good-night to each other.
-
-The next morning the minstrel went to the palace, and on his way he
-picked a common white rose from a wayside garden. He was ushered into
-the Emperor's presence, who sent for his daughter and said to her:
-“This penniless minstrel has brought you what he claims to be the blue
-rose. Has he accomplished the quest?”
-
-The Princess took the rose in her hands and said: “Yes, this is without
-doubt the blue rose.”
-
-But the Lord Chief Justice and all who were present respectfully
-pointed out that the rose was a common white rose and not a blue one,
-and the objection was with many forms and phrases conveyed to the
-Princess.
-
-“I think the rose is blue,” said the Princess. “Perhaps you are all
-colour blind.”
-
-The Emperor, with whom the decision rested, decided that if the
-Princess thought the rose was blue it was blue, for it was well known
-that her perception was more acute than that of any one else in the
-kingdom.
-
-So the minstrel married the Princess, and they settled on the sea coast
-in a little seen house with a garden full of white roses, and they
-lived happily for ever afterwards. And the Emperor, knowing that his
-daughter had made a good match, died in peace.
-
- MAURICE BARING.
-
-
-THE TWO FROGS.
-
-Once upon a time in the country of Japan there lived two frogs, one of
-whom made his home in a ditch near the town of Osaka, on the sea coast,
-while the other dwelt in a clear little stream which ran through the
-city of Kioto. At such a great distance apart; they had never even
-heard of each other; but, funnily enough, the idea came into both their
-heads at once that they should like to see a little of the world, and
-the frog who lived at Kioto wanted to visit Osaka, and the frog who
-lived at Osaka wished to go to Kioto, where the great Mikado had his
-palace.
-
-So one fine morning, in the spring, they both set out along the road
-that led from Kioto to Osaka, one from one end and the other from the
-other.
-
-The journey was more tiring than they expected, for they did not know
-much about travelling, and half-way between the two towns there rose
-a mountain which had to be climbed. It took them a long time and a
-great many hops to reach the top, but there they were at last, and
-what was the surprise of each to see another frog before him! They
-looked at each other for a moment without speaking, and then fell into
-conversation, and explained the cause of their meeting so far from
-their homes. It was delightful to find that they both felt the same
-wish--to learn a little more of their native country--and as there was
-no sort of hurry they stretched themselves out in a cool, damp place,
-and agreed that they would have a good rest before they parted to go
-their ways.
-
-“What a pity we are not bigger,” said the Osaka frog, “and then we
-could see both towns from here and tell if it is worth our while going
-on.”
-
-“Oh, that is easily managed,” returned the Kioto frog. “We have only
-got to stand up on our hind legs, and hold on to each other, and then
-we can each look at the town he is travelling to.”
-
-This idea pleased the Osaka frog so much that he at once jumped up and
-put his front paws on the shoulder of his friend, who had risen also.
-There they both stood, stretching themselves as high as they could, and
-holding each other tightly, so that they might not fall down. The Kioto
-frog turned his nose towards Osaka, and the Osaka frog turned his nose
-towards Kioto; but the foolish things forgot that when they stood up
-their great eyes lay in the backs of their heads, and that though their
-noses might point to the places to which they wanted to go, their eyes
-beheld the places from which they had come.
-
-“Dear me!” cried the Osaka frog, “Kioto is exactly like Osaka. It is
-certainly not worth such a long journey. I shall go home.”
-
-“If I had had any idea that Osaka was only a copy of Kioto I should
-never have travelled all this way,” exclaimed the frog from Kioto, and
-as he spoke, he took his hands from his friend's shoulders and they
-both fell down on the grass.
-
-Then they took a polite farewell of each other, and set off for home
-again, and to the end of their lives they believed that Osaka and
-Kioto, which are as different to look at as two towns can be, were as
-like as two peas.
-
-
-THE WISE OLD SHEPHERD.
-
-Once upon a time, a Snake went out of his hole to take an airing. He
-crawled about, greatly enjoying the scenery and the fresh whiff of the
-breeze, until, seeing an open door, he went in. Now this door was the
-door of the palace of the King, and inside was the King himself, with
-all his courtiers.
-
-Imagine their horror at seeing a huge Snake crawling in at the door.
-They all ran away except the King, who felt that his rank forbade him
-to be a coward, and the King's son. The King called out for somebody to
-come and kill the Snake; but this horrified them still more, because
-in that country the people believed it to be wicked to kill any living
-thing, even snakes and scorpions and wasps. So the courtiers did
-nothing, but the young Prince obeyed his father, and killed the Snake
-with his stick.
-
-After a while the Snake's wife became anxious and set out in search of
-her husband. She too saw the open door of the palace, and in she went.
-O horror! there on the floor lay the body of her husband, all covered
-with blood and quite dead. No one saw the Snake's Wife crawl in; she
-inquired of a white ant what had happened, and when she found that the
-young Prince had killed her husband, she made a vow that, as he had
-made her a widow, so she would make his wife a widow.
-
-That night, when all the world was asleep, the Snake crept into the
-Prince's bedroom, and coiled round his neck. The Prince slept on,
-and when he awoke in the morning, he was surprised to find his neck
-encircled with the coils of a snake. He was afraid to stir, so there he
-remained, until the Prince's mother became anxious and went to see what
-was the matter. When she entered his room, and saw him in this plight,
-she gave a loud shriek, and ran off to tell the King.
-
-“Call the archers,” said the King.
-
-The archers came, and the King told them to go to the Prince's room,
-and shoot the Snake that was coiled about his neck. They were so
-clever, that they could easily do this without hurting the Prince at
-all.
-
-In came the archers in a row, fitted the arrows to the bows, the bows
-were raised and ready to shoot, when, on a sudden, from the Snake there
-issued a voice which spoke as follows:
-
-“O archers, wait, wait and hear me before you shoot. It is not fair to
-carry out the sentence before you have heard the case. Is not this a
-good law: an eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth? Is it not so, O
-King?”
-
-“Yes,” replied the King, “that is our law.”
-
-“Then,” said the Snake, “I plead the law. Your son has made me a widow,
-so it is fair and right that I should make his wife a widow.”
-
-“That sounds right enough,” said the King, “but right and law are not
-always the same thing. We had better ask somebody who knows.”
-
-They asked all the judges, but none of them could tell the law of the
-matter. They shook their heads, and said they would look up all their
-law-books, and see whether anything of the sort had ever happened
-before, and if so, how it had been decided. That is the way judges used
-to decide cases in that country, though I daresay it sounds to you a
-very funny way. It looked as if they had not much sense in their own
-heads, and perhaps that was true. The upshot of it all was that not a
-judge would give an opinion; so the King sent messengers all over the
-countryside, to see if they could find somebody who knew something.
-
-One of these messengers found a party of five shepherds, who were
-sitting upon a hill and trying to decide a quarrel of their own. They
-gave their opinions so freely, and in language so very strong, that
-the King's messenger said to himself, “Here are the men for us. Here
-are five men, each with an opinion of his own, and all different.”
-Post-haste he scurried back to the King, and told him that he had
-found at last some one ready to judge the knotty point.
-
-So the King and the Queen, and the Prince and Princess, and all the
-courtiers, got on horseback, and away they galloped to the hill
-whereupon the five shepherds were sitting, and the Snake too went with
-them, coiled round the neck of the Prince.
-
-When they got to the shepherds' hill, the shepherds were dreadfully
-frightened. At first they thought that the strangers were a gang of
-robbers, and when they saw it was the King their next thought was
-that one of their misdeeds had been found out; and each of them began
-thinking what was the last thing he had done, and wondering, was it
-that?
-
-But the King and the courtiers got off their horses, and said good day
-in the most civil way. So the shepherds felt their minds set at ease
-again. Then the King said:
-
-“Worthy shepherds, we have a question to put to you, which not all the
-judges in all the courts of my city have been able to solve. Here is my
-son, and here, as you see, is a snake coiled round his neck. Now, the
-husband of this Snake came creeping into my palace hall, and my son the
-Prince killed him; so this Snake, who is the wife of the other, says
-that, as my son has made her a widow, so she has a right to widow my
-son's wife. What do you think about it?”
-
-The first shepherd said: “I think she is quite right, my Lord the King.
-If anyone made my wife a widow, I would pretty soon do the same to him.”
-
-This was brave language, and the other shepherds shook their heads and
-looked fierce. But the King was puzzled, and could not quite understand
-it. You see, in the first place, if the man's wife were a widow,
-the man would be dead; and then it is hard to see that he could do
-anything. So, to make sure, the King asked the second shepherd whether
-that was his opinion too.
-
-“Yes,” said the second shepherd; “now the Prince has killed the Snake,
-the Snake has a right to kill the Prince if he can.” But that was not
-of much use either, as the Snake was as dead as a door-nail. So the
-King passed on to the third.
-
-“I agree with my mates,” said the third shepherd. “Because, you see, a
-Prince is a Prince, but then a Snake is a Snake.” That was quite true,
-they all admitted, but it did not seem to help the matter much. Then
-the King asked the fourth shepherd to say what he thought.
-
-The fourth shepherd said: “An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth;
-so I think a widow should be a widow, if so be she don't marry again.”
-
-By this time the poor King was so puzzled that he hardly knew whether
-he stood on his head or his heels. But there was still the fifth
-shepherd left; the oldest and wisest of them all; and the fifth
-shepherd said:
-
-“King, I should like to ask two questions.”
-
-“Ask twenty, if you like,” said the King. He did not promise to answer
-them, so he could afford to be generous.
-
-“First, I ask the Princess how many sons she has?”
-
-“Four,” said the Princess.
-
-“And how many sons has Mistress Snake here?”
-
-“Seven,” said the Snake.
-
-“Then,” said the old shepherd, “it will be quite fair for Mistress
-Snake to kill his Highness the Prince when her Highness the Princess
-has had three sons more.”
-
-“I never thought of that,” said the Snake. “Good-bye, King, and all
-you good people. Send a message when the Princess has had three more
-sons, and you may count upon me--I will not fail you.”
-
-So saying, she uncoiled from the Prince's neck and slid away among the
-grass.
-
-The King and the Prince and everybody shook hands with the wise old
-shepherd, and went home again. And the Princess never had any more sons
-at all. She and the Prince lived happily for many years; and if they
-are not dead they are living still.
-
- _From “The Talking Thrush.”_
-
-
-THE TRUE SPIRIT OF A FESTIVAL DAY.
-
-And it came to pass that the Buddha was born a Hare and lived in a
-wood; on one side was the foot of a mountain, on another a river, on
-the third side a border village.
-
-And with him lived three friends: a Monkey, a Jackal and an Otter; each
-of these creatures got food on his own hunting ground. In the evening
-they met together, and the Hare taught his companions many wise things:
-that the moral laws should be observed, that alms should be given to
-the poor, and that holy days should be kept.
-
-One day the Buddha said: “To-morrow is a fast day. Feed any beggars
-that come to you by giving food from your own table.” They all
-consented.
-
-The next day the Otter went down to the bank of the Ganges to seek
-his prey. Now a fisherman had landed seven red fish and had buried
-them in the sand on the river's bank while he went down the stream
-catching more fish. The Otter scented the buried fish, dug up the sand
-till he came upon them, and he called aloud: “Does any one own these
-fish?” And not seeing the owner, he laid the fish in the jungle where
-he dwelt, intending to eat them at a fitting time. Then he lay down,
-thinking how virtuous he was.
-
-The Jackal also went off in search of food, and found in the hut of a
-field watcher a lizard, two spits, and a pot of milk-curd.
-
-And, after thrice crying aloud, “To whom do these belong?” and not
-finding an owner, he put on his neck the rope for lifting the pot, and
-grasping the spits and lizard with his teeth, he laid them in his own
-lair, thinking, “In due season I will devour them,” and then he lay
-down, thinking how virtuous he had been.
-
-The Monkey entered the clump of trees, and gathering a bunch of
-mangoes, laid them up in his part of the jungle, meaning to eat them in
-due season. He then lay down and thought how virtuous he had been.
-
-But the Hare (who was the Buddha-to-be) in due time came out, thinking
-to lie (in contemplation) on the Kuca grass. “It is impossible for me
-to offer grass to any beggars who may chance to come by, and I have no
-oil or rice or fish. If any beggar come to me, I will give him (of) my
-own flesh to eat.”
-
-Now when Sakka, the King of the Gods, heard this thing, he determined
-to put the Royal Hare to the test. So he came in disguise of a Brahmin
-to the Otter and said: “Wise Sir, if I could get something to eat, I
-would perform all my priestly duties.”
-
-The Otter said: “I will give you food. Seven red fish have I safely
-brought to land from the sacred river of the Ganges. Eat thy fill, O
-Brahmin, and stay in this wood.”
-
-And the Brahmin said: “Let it be until to-morrow, and I will see to it
-then.”
-
-Then he went to the Jackal, who confessed that he had stolen the food,
-but he begged the Brahmin to accept it and remain in the wood; but the
-Brahmin said: “Let it be until the morrow, and then I will see to it.”
-
-And he came to the Monkey, who offered him the mangoes, and the Brahmin
-answered in the same way.
-
-Then the Brahmin went to the wise Hare, and the Hare said: “Behold, I
-will give you of my flesh to eat. But you must not take life on this
-holy day. When you have piled up the logs I will sacrifice myself by
-falling into the midst of the flames, and when my body is roasted you
-shall eat my flesh and perform all your priestly duties.”
-
-Now when Sakka heard these words he caused a heap of burning coals
-to appear, and the Wisdom Being, rising from the grass, came to the
-place, but before casting himself into the flames he shook himself,
-lest perchance there should be any insects in his coat who might suffer
-death. Then, offering his body as a free gift, he sprang up, and like
-a royal swan, lighting on a bed of lotus in an ecstasy of joy, he
-fell on the heap of live coals. But the flame failed even to heat the
-pores or the hair on the body of the Wisdom Being, and it was as if he
-had entered a region of frost. Then he addressed the Brahmin in these
-words: “Brahmin, the fire that you have kindled is icy cold; it fails
-to heat the pores or the hair on my body. What is the meaning of this?”
-
-“O most wise Hare! I am Sakka, and have come to put your virtue to the
-test.”
-
-And the Buddha in a sweet voice said: “No god or man could find in me
-an unwillingness to die.”
-
-Then Sakka said: “O wise Hare, be thy virtue known to all the ages to
-come.”
-
-And seizing the mountain he squeezed out the juice and daubed on the
-moon the signs of the young hare.
-
-Then he placed him back on the grass that he might continue his Sabbath
-meditation, and returned to Heaven.
-
-And the four creatures lived together and kept the moral law.
-
-
-FILIAL PIETY.
-
-Now it came to pass that the Buddha was re-born in the shape of a
-Parrot, and he greatly excelled all other parrots in his strength and
-beauty. And when he was full grown his father, who had long been the
-leader of the flock in their flights to other climes, said to him: “My
-son, behold my strength is spent! Do thou lead the flock, for I am no
-longer able.” And the Buddha said: “Behold, thou shalt rest. I will
-lead the birds.” And the parrots rejoiced in the strength of their new
-leader, and willingly did they follow him. Now from that day on, the
-Buddha undertook to feed his parents, and would not consent that they
-should do any more work. Each day he led his flock to the Himalaya
-Hills, and when he had eaten his fill of the clumps of rice that grew
-there, he filled his beak with food for the dear parents who were
-waiting his return.
-
-Now there was a man appointed to watch the rice-fields, and he did his
-best to drive the parrots away, but there seemed to be some secret
-power in the leader of this flock which the Keeper could not overcome.
-
-He noticed that the Parrots ate their fill and then flew away, but that
-the Parrot-King not only satisfied his hunger, but carried away rice in
-his beak.
-
-Now he feared there would be no rice left, and he went to his master
-the Brahmin to tell him what had happened; and even as the master
-listened there came to him the thought that the Parrot-King was
-something higher than he seemed, and he loved him even before he saw
-him. But he said nothing of this, and only warned the Keeper that he
-should set a snare and catch the dangerous bird. So the man did as he
-was bidden: he made a small cage and set the snare, and sat down in
-his hut waiting for the birds to come. And soon he saw the Parrot-King
-amidst his flock, who, because he had no greed, sought no richer spot,
-but flew down to the same place in which he had fed the day before.
-
-Now, no sooner had he touched the ground that he felt his feet caught
-in the noose. Then fear crept into his bird-heart, but a stronger
-feeling was there to crush it down, for he thought: “If I cry out the
-Cry of the Captured, my Kinsfolk will be terrified, and they will fly
-away foodless. But if I lie still, then their hunger will be satisfied,
-and they may safely come to my aid.” Thus was the Parrot both brave and
-prudent.
-
-But alas! he did not know that his Kinsfolk had nought of his brave
-spirit. When _they_ had eaten their fill, though they heard the
-thrice-uttered cry of the captured, they flew away, nor heeded the sad
-plight of their leader.
-
-Then was the heart of the Parrot-King sore within him, and he said:
-“All these my kith and kin, and not one to look back on me. Alas! what
-sin have I done?”
-
-The Watchman now heard the cry of the Parrot-King, and the sound of the
-other Parrots flying through the air. “What is that?” he cried, and
-leaving his hut he came to the place where he had laid the snare. There
-he found the captive Parrot; he tied his feet together and brought him
-to the Brahmin, his master. Now, when the Brahmin saw the Parrot-King,
-he felt his strong power, and his heart was full of love to him, but he
-hid his feelings, and said in a voice of anger: “Is thy greed greater
-than that of all other birds? They eat their fill, but thou takest away
-each day more food than thou canst eat. Doest thou this out of hatred
-for me, or dost thou store up the food in some granary for selfish
-greed?”
-
-And the Great Being made answer in a sweet human voice: “I hate thee
-not, O Brahmin. Nor do I store the rice in a granary for selfish greed.
-But this thing I do. Each day I pay a debt which is due--each day I
-grant a loan, and each day I store up a treasure.”
-
-Now the Brahmin could not understand the words of the Buddha (because
-true wisdom had not entered his heart), and he said: “I pray thee, O
-Wondrous Bird, to make these words clear unto me.”
-
-And then the Parrot-King made answer: “I carry food to my ancient
-parents who can no longer seek that food for themselves: thus I pay
-my daily debt. I carry food to my callow chicks whose wings are yet
-ungrown. When I am old they will care for me--this my loan to them. And
-for other birds, weak and helpless of wing, who need the aid of the
-strong, for them I lay up a store; to these I give in charity.”
-
-Then was the Brahmin much moved, and showed the love that was in his
-heart. “Eat thy fill, O Righteous Bird, and let thy Kinsfolk eat too,
-for thy sake.” And he wished to bestow a thousand acres of land upon
-him, but the Great Being would only take a tiny portion round which
-were set boundary stones.
-
-And the Parrot returned with a head of rice, and said: “Arise, dear
-Parents, that I may take you to a place of plenty.” And he told them
-the story of his deliverance.
-
- * * * * *
-
-MY thanks are due to:
-
-Mrs. Josephine Dodge Darkam Bacon, for permission to use an extract
-from “The Madness of Philip,” and to her publishers, Charles Scrivener.
-
-To Messrs. Houghton Mifflin, for permission to use extract from “Thou
-Shalt Not Preach,” by Mr. John Burroughs.
-
-To Messrs. Macmillan & Co., for permission to use “Milking Time” of
-Miss Rossetti.
-
-To Messrs. William Sharp, for permission to use passage from “The
-Divine Adventure,” by “Fiona MacLeod.”
-
-To Miss Ethel Clifford, for permission to use the poem of “The Child.”
-
-To Mr. James Whitcomb Riley and the Robbs Merrill Co., for permission
-to use “The Treasure of the Wise Man.”
-
-To Rev. R. L. Gales, for permission to use the article on “Nursery
-Rhymes” from the _Nation_.
-
-To Mr. Edmund Gosse, for permission to use extracts from “Father and
-Son.”
-
-To Messrs. Chatto and Windus, for permission to use “Essay on Child's
-Play” (from _Virginibus Puerisque_) and other papers.
-
-To Mr. George Allen & Co., for permission to use “Ballad for a Boy,” by
-W. Cory, from “Ionica.”
-
-To Professor Bradley, for permission to quote from his essay on “Poetry
-and Life.”
-
-To Mr. P. A. Barnett, for permission to quote from “The Commonsense of
-Education.”
-
-To Professor Ker, for permission to quote from “Sturla the Historian.”
-
-To Mr. John Russell, for permission to print in full, “A Saga.”
-
-To Messrs. Longmans Green & Co., for permission to use “The Two Frogs,”
-from the Violet Fairy Book, and “To Your Good Health,” from the Crimson
-Fairy Book.
-
-To Mr. Heinemann and Lady Glenconner, for permission to reprint “The
-Water Nixie,” by Pamela Tennant, from “The Children and the Pictures.”
-
-To Mr. Maurice Baring and the Editor of _The Morning Post_, for
-permission to reprint “The Blue Rose” from _The Morning Post_.
-
-To Dr. Walter Rouse and Mr. J. M. Dent, for permission to reprint from
-“The Talking Thrush” the story of “The Wise Old Shepherd.”
-
-To Mr. James Stephens, for permission to reprint “The Man and the Boy.”
-
-To Mr. Harold Barnes, for permission to use version of “The Proud Cock.”
-
-To Mrs. Arnold Glover, for permission to print two of her stories.
-
-To Miss Emilie Poulson, for permission to use her translation of
-Björnsen's poem.
-
-To George Routledge & Son, for permission to use stories from “Eastern
-Stories and Fables.”
-
-To Mrs. W. K. Clifford, for permission to quote from “Very Short
-Stories.”
-
-To Mr. W. Jenkyn Thomas and Mr. Fisher Unwin, for permission to use
-“Arthur in the Cave” from the Welsh Fairy Book.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The following stories are not a representative list: this I have
-endeavoured to give with the story-list preceding. These stories are
-mostly taken from my own _répertoire_, and have so constantly been
-asked for by teachers that I am glad of an opportunity of presenting
-them in full.
-
-Episode from “Sturla the Historian,” to illustrate the value of the art
-of story-telling.
-
-Saga, by John Russell.
-
-St. Christopher, in the version taken from the “_Legenda Aurea_.”
-
-“Arthur in the Cave,” from the “Welsh Fairy Book.”
-
-“Hafiz the Stone-cutter” (adapted from the Oriental).
-
-“To Your Good Health,” from The Crimson Fairy Book.
-
-“The Proud Cock,” from the Spanish.
-
-“Snegourka,” from the Russian.
-
-“The Water Nixie,” by Pamela Tennant.
-
-“The Blue Rose,” by Maurice Baring.
-
-“The Wise old Shepherd,” from “The Talking Thrush.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-I had intended, in this section, to offer an appendix of titles
-of stories and books which would cover all the ground of possible
-narrative in schools; but I have found, since taking up the question,
-so many lists containing standard books and stories, that I have
-decided that this original plan would be a work of supererogation,
-since it would be almost impossible to prepare such a list without the
-certainty of over-lapping. What is really needed is a supplementary
-list to those already published--a specialized list which has been
-gathered together by private research and personal experience. I have
-for many years spent considerable time in the British Museum, and some
-of the principal Libraries in the United States, and I now offer the
-fruit of that labour in the miscellaneous collection contained in this
-chapter. Before giving my own selection, I should like to say that for
-general lists one can use with great profit the following:
-
-
-
-
-LIST OF BOOKS
-
-
-SOURCES OF NORSE STORIES FOR STORY-TELLERS.
-
- Cycles of Stories from the Norse. Part I: Historical Tales. Part
- II: Norse Myths. Part III: Völsunga Saga. Part IV: Frithiof Saga.
- Snorro Sturluson. Stories of the Kings of Norway; done into English
- by William Morris. Page 83-117.
- Snorro Sturluson. A History of the Norse Kings; done into English
- by Samuel Laing. Pages 11-35.
- Snorro Sturluson. Younger Edda. Pages 72, 73, 114-127, 128-130,
- 131-139, 160-164, 184-187, 189-192.
- Morris. Story of Sigurd the Volsung.
- Völsunga Saga. By Eirikr and William Morris.
-
-Other sources from modern books can be found in Mabie, Wilmot Buxton,
-Keans Tappah, Cartwright Pole, Johonnut Anderson. Some of these are
-suitable for children themselves, and contain excellent reading matter.
-
-NOTE.--I most gratefully acknowledge these sources supplied by the
-courtesy of Pittsburg Carnegie Library.
-
- List of stories in compilation by Anna C. Tyler (Supervisor of
- Story-telling in New York).
- Heroism. A reading list for boys and girls.
-
-Both these lists are published by the New York Library, and I have had
-permission to quote both, by the courtesy of the Library.
-
-In that admirable work, “Story-Telling in School and Home,” by Evelyn
-Newcomb Partridge and George Everett Partridge, published by William
-Heinemann, besides a valuable analysis of the Art of Story-Telling,
-there is an excellent list of books and stories.
-
-
-LIST OF BOOKS CONTAINING STORIES OR READING MATTER FOR CHILDREN.
-
-The following list is not of my own making. I have taken it on the
-recommendation of Marion E. Potter, Bertha Tannehill and Emma L. Teich,
-who have compiled the list from twenty-three other lists. I again have
-made a shorter list of the titles, and acknowledge most gratefully the
-kind permission of the H. W. Wilson Company (Minneapolis) to quote from
-their book. The original work, which contains 3,000 titles, is well
-known in the United States under the title of “Children's Catalogue.”
-It is a book which ought to be in every School and Training College
-Library, and I hope my fragmentary selection may make it better known
-in my own country. I regret that I am unable to give publishers or
-reference marks for this American list.
-
- About Old Story-tellers. Mitchell, D. G.
- Boys' Iliad. Perry.
- Jack among the Indians, and Other Stories. G. B. Grinnell.
- Adventure Stories. Hale, E.
- Young Alaskans. Hough, E.
- Aztec Treasure House. Janvier.
- Last Three Soldiers. Skelton, W.
- Under the Lilacs. Alcott, Louisa.
- Moral Pirates. Livingstone, A. W.
- Classics Old and New. Alderman, E. A.
- Boy of a Thousand Years Ago. Comstock, H. R.
- All About Japan. Brane, B. M.
- All About the Russians. Lockes, E. C.
- Children of the Palm Lands. Allen, A. E.
- Italian Child Life. Ambrose, Marietta.
- American Hero Stories. Tappan, E. M.
- Chinese Boy and Girl, Headland, Y. T.
- Viking Tales of the North. Anderson, R. B.
- Animal Stories Re-told from St. Nicholas. Carter, M. H.
- Short Stories of Shy Neighbours. Kelly, M. H.
- Hundred Anecdotes of Animals. Billingham, P. T.
- Books of Saints and Friendly Beasts. Brown, A. F.
- Stories of Animal Life. Holden, C. F.
- Story of a Donkey (Abridged). Segur, S.
- Children of the Cold. Schnatka, F.
- Stories from Plato and other Classic Writers. Burt, M. E.
- Tenting on the Plains. Custer, E.
- To the Front. King, C.
- Stories of Persian Heroes. Firdansi.
- Nelson and his Captains. Fitchett, William H.
- Danish Fairy and Folk Tales. Bay, J. C.
- Evening Tales. Ortoli, F.
- Legends of King Arthur and his Court. Greene, F. N.
- Story of King Arthur. Pyle, H.
- New World Fairy Book. Kenedy, H. A.
- Myths of the Red Children. Wilson, G. L.
- Old Indian Legends. Zitkala, Sa.
- Folk Tales from the Russian. Blumenthal, V. K.
- Wagner Opera Stories. Barker, Grace.
- Lolanu, the Little Cliff-dweller. Bayliss (Mrs. Clara Kern).
- Big People and Little People of Other Lands. Shaw, E. R.
- Children's Stories of the Great Scientists. Wright, H. C.
- Fairy Tales. Lansing, M. F.
- Light Princess, and Other Stories. Macdonald, George.
- Classic Stories for the Little Ones. Mace, J., and McClurey, L. B.
- Old World Wonder Stories. O'Shea, M. V.
- Japanese Fairy Tales Re-told. Williston, T. P.
- Famous Indian Chiefs I Have Known. Hovard, O. O.
- Fanciful Tales. Stockton, F. R.
- Boys' Book of Famous Rulers, from Agamemnon to Napoleon. Farmer, Mrs.
- Lydia Hoyt.
- Favourite Greek Myths, Hyde, T. S.
- Children's Life in the Western Mountains. Foote, Mary (Hallock).
- Gods and Heroes. Francillon, Robert Edward.
- Sa-Zada Tales. Fraser, William Alexander.
- Story of Gretta the Strong. French, Allen.
- Lance of Kanana (Story of Arabia). French, Henry Willard.
- Home Life in all Lands. Morris, C.
- Held Fast for England. Henty.
- Plutarch's Lives. Ginn, Edwin.
- King's Story Book. Gomme, Lawrence.
- Little Journeys to Balkans, European Turkey and Greece. George, M. M.
- Herodotus. White, J. S.
- Classic Myths in English Literature. Gayley, C. M.
- Favourite Greek Myths. Hyde, L. S.
- Stories from the East. Church, A. T.
- Herodotus. Church, A. T.
- Men of Iron. Pyle, H.
- Boys' Heroes. Hale, Edward Everett.
- Strange Stories from History. Eggleston.
- Stories of Other Lands. Johannot, J.
- Book of Nature Myths. Holbrook, Florence.
- Stories of Great Artists. Home, Olive Brown, and Lois, K.
- Russian Grandmother's Wonder Tales. Houghton, Mrs. Louise (Seymour).
- Stories of Famous Children. Hunter, Mary van Brunt.
- Stories of Indian Chieftains. Husted, Mary Hall.
- Stories of Indian Children. Husted, Mary Hall.
- Golden Porch: A Book of Greek Fairy Tales. Hutchinson, W. M. L.
- Indian Boyhood. Eastman, C. H.
- Indian History for Young Folk. Drake, F. S.
- Indian Stories Re-told from St Nicholas. Drake, F. S.
- One Thousand Poems for Children. Ingpen, Roger.
- My Lady Pokahontas. Cooke, J. E.
- In the Sargasso Sea. Janvier, T. A.
- Childhood of Ji-Shib. Jenks, Albert Ernest.
- Stories from Chaucer told to the Children. Kelman, Janet Harvey.
- Stories from the Crusades. Kelman, Janet Harvey.
- New World Fairy Book. Kenedy, Howard Angus.
- Stories of Ancient People. Arnold E. T.
- Stories of Art and Artists. Clement, C.
- Mabinogion (Legends of Wales). Knightley.
- Heroes of Chivalry. Maitland, L.
- Cadet Days: Story of West Point. King, Charles.
- Household Stories for Little Readers. Klingensmith, Annie.
- Boy Travellers in the Russian Empire. Knox, Thomas Wallace.
- Boy Travellers on the Congo. Knox, Thomas Wallace.
- Fairy Book. Laboulaye, Eduard Réné Lefebre.
- Fairy Tales of All Nations. Translated by M. I. Booth. Laboulaye,
- Eduard Réné Lefebre.
- Middle Five (Life of Five Indian Boys at School). La Flesche, Francis.
- Wonderful Adventures of Nils. Lagerlöf, Selma.
- Land of Pluck. Dodge, M. M.
- Land of the Long Night. Du Chaillu, P. B.
- Schoolboy Days in France. Laurie, André.
- Schoolboy Days in Japan. Laurie, André.
- Schoolboy Days in Russia. Laurie, André.
- When I was a Boy in China. Lee, Yan Phon.
- Fifty Famous Stories Re-told. Baldwin.
- Stories from Famous Ballads. Lippincott.
- Wreck of the Golden Fleece. Leighton, Robert.
- Children's Letters, Written to Children by Famous Men and Women.
- Colson, E., and Chittenden, A. G.
- A Story of Abraham Lincoln. Hamilton, M.
-
-
-LITTLE COUSIN SERIES.
-
- Our Little Swedish Cousin. Coburn, C. M.
- Our Little Chinese Cousin. Headland, I. T.
- Our Little Arabian Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little Dutch Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little Egyptian Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little English Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little French Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little Hindu Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little Scotch Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.
- Our Little Alaskan Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.
- Our Little Australian Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.
- Our Little Brazilian Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.
- Our Little Grecian Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.
- Our Little Spanish Cousin. Nixon, Roulet, M. F.
- Our Little Korean Cousin. Pike, H. L.
- Our Little Panama Cousin. Pike, H. L.
- Our Little African Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Armenian Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Brown Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Cuban Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Eskimo Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Hawaiian Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Indian Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Irish Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Italian Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Japanese Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Jewish Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Norwegian Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Philippine Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Porto Rican Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Siamese Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Turkish Cousin. Wade, M. H.
- Our Little Canadian Cousin. Macdonald, E. Roberts.
-
- Little Folk in Brittany. Haines, A. C.
- Little Folks of Many Lands. Chance, L. M.
- Little Lives of Great Men. Hathaway, E. V.
- Little Men. Alcott, L. M.
- Little Royalties. McDougall, I.
- Little Stories of France. Dutton, M. B.
- Little Stories of Germany. Dutton, M. B.
- Lives of Girls who Became Famous. Bolton, S. K.
- Beasts of the Field. Long, William Joseph.
- Wood-Folk at School. Long, William Joseph.
- Long Ago in Greece. Carpenter, E. J.
- Peasant and Prince. Martineau, H.
- Boy Courier of Napoleon. Sprague, W. C.
- Wonder Stories from the Mabinogion. Brooks, E.
- Old Farm Fairies.[55] McConk, Henry Christopher.
- Tenants of an Old Farm.[55] McConk, Henry Christopher.
- At the Back of the North Wind. MacDonald, George.
- Princess and the Goblin. MacDonald, George.
- Cave Boy of the Age of Stone. McIntyre, Margaret A.
- Magna Carta Stories. Gilman, A.
- Early Cave Men. Dopp, K. E.
- Later Cave Men. Dopp, K. E.
- Stories of Roland. Marshall, H. E.
- Crofton Boys. Martineau, Harriet.
- Peats on the Fiord. Martineau, Harriet.
- Peasant and Prince. Martineau, Harriet.
- Child Stories from the Masters. Menafee, Maud.
- Miss Muffet's Christmas Party. Crotchers, S. M.
- Historical Tales: Greek. Morris, Charles.
- Historical Tales: Russian. Morris, Charles.
- Bed-Time Stories. Moulton, Louise Chandler.
- New Bed-Time Stories. Moulton, Louise Chandler.
- Modern Reader's Bible (Children Series). Moulton, F. R. G.
- My Air-Ships. Santos-Dumont.
- Old Norse Stories. Bradish, S. P.
- Through Russian Snows. Henty, G.
- Nine Worlds: Stories from Norse Mythology. Lichfield, M. E.
- Fairy Tales, Narratives and Poems. Norton, George Eliot.
- Modern Vikings. Boyeson, H. H.
- Boyhood in Norway. Boyeson, H. H.
- Old Greek Stories Told Anew. Peabody, J. B.
- Arabian Nights Re-told. Peary, Mrs. Josephine (Diebitsh).
- Heroic Ballads. Montgomery, D. H.
- English Ballads. Perkins, Mrs. Lucy Fitch.
- Boys' Iliad. Perry, Walter Copland.
- Boys' Odyssey. Perry, Walter Copland.
- Tale of Peter Rabbit. Potter, B.
- Tale of Squirrel Nutkin. Potter, B.
- Stories of Old France. Pitman, Leila Webster.
- Boys' and Girls' Plutarch. White, J. S.
- Greek Lives from Plutarch. Byles, C. E.
- My Lady Pokahontas. Cooke, J. E.
- Poems for Children. Rossetti, C. G.
- Children's Book. Scudder, H. E.
- Scottish Chiefs. Porter, Jane.
- Legends of the Red Children. Pratt, Mara Louise.
- Little Nature Studies for Little Folk. Burroughs, John.
- Giant Sun and His Family. Proctor, Mary.
- Stories of Starland. Proctor, Mary.
- Revolutionary Stories Re-told from St. Nicholas. Pyle, Howard.
- Old Tales from Rome. Zimmern, A.
- Stories of the Saints. Chenoweth, C. V. D.
- Sandman: His Farm Stories. Hopkins, W. T.
- Sandman: His Sea Stories. Hopkins, W. T.
- Sandman: His Ship Stories. Hopkins, W. T.
- Schooldays in France. Laurie, A.
- Schooldays in Italy. Laurie, A.
- Schooldays in Japan. Laurie, A.
- Schooldays in Russia. Laurie, A.
- William of Orange (Life Stories for Young People). Schupp, Otto Kar.
- Sea Yarns for Boys. Henderson, W. T.
- Story of Lord Roberts. Sellar, Edmund Francis.
- Story of Nelson. Sellar, Edmund Francis.
- Tent Life in Siberia. Kenman, G.
- Stories from English History. Skae, Hilda I.
- Boys who Became Famous Men (Giotto, Bach, Byron, Gainsborough, Handel,
- Coleridge, Canova, Chopin). Skinner, Harriet Pearl.
- Eskimo Stories. Smith, Mary Emily Estella.
- Some Curious Flyers, Creepers and Swimmers. Johannot, J. Bush Boys.
- Reid, M.
- New Mexico David, and Other Stories. Lummis, C. F.
- Child's History of Spain. Bonner, J.
- Historical Tales: Spanish. Morris, C.
- Story of the Cid. Wilson, C. D.
- Life of Lincoln for Boys. Sparhawk, Frances Campbell.
- Pieces for Every Occasion. Le Rou, C. B.
- Stories from Dante. Chester, N.
- Stories from Old English Poetry. Richardson, A. S.
- Stories from Plato and Other Classic Writers. Burt, M. E.
- Stories in Stone from the Roman Forum. Lovell, I.
- Stories of Brave Days. Carter, M. H.
- Stories of Early England. Buxton, E. M. Wilmot.
- Stories of Heroic Deeds. Johannot, J.
- Stories of Indian Chieftains. Husted, M. H.
- Stories of Insect Life. Weed, C. M., and Mustfeldt, M. E.
- Stories of the Gorilla Country. Du Chaillu, P. B.
- Stories of the Sea told by Sailors. Hale, E. E.
- Stories of War. Hale, E. E.
- Story of Lewis Caroll. Bowman, I.
- Story of Sir Launcelot and his Companions. Pyle, H.
- Queer Little People. Stowe, Harriet Beecher.
- In Clive's Command. Strang, Herbert.
- George Washington Jones (Christmas of a Little Coloured Boy). Stuart,
- Ruth McEnery.
- Story of Babette. Stuart, Ruth McEnery.
- Old Ballads in Prose. Tappan, Eva.
- Lion and Tiger Stories. Carter, M. H.
- True Tales of Birds and Beasts. Jordan, D. S.
- Typical Tales of Fancy, Romance and History from Shakespeare's Plays.
- Raymond, E.
- Young People's Story of Art. Whitcomb, Ida Prentice.
- Young People's Story of Music. Whitcomb, Ida Prentice.
- Tales of Laughter. Wiggin, K. Douglas.
-
-The following miscellaneous list of books and stories is my own. I
-do not mean that none of them have appeared in other lists, but the
-greater number have been sifted from larger lists which I have made
-during the last ten years, more or less.
-
-For English readers I have given the press-marks in the British Museum,
-which will be an economy of time to busy students and teachers. I have
-supplied, in every case where it has been possible, the source of
-the story and the name of the publisher for American readers, but my
-experience as a reader in the libraries of the States brings me to the
-conclusion that all the books of educational value will either be found
-in the main libraries or procured on application even in the small
-towns.
-
-In many cases the stories would have to be shortened and re-arranged.
-The difficulty of finding the sources and obtaining permission has
-deterred me from offering for the present these stories in full.
-
-This being a supplementary list to more general ones, there will
-naturally be absent a large number of standard books which I take for
-granted are known. Nevertheless, I have included the titles of some
-well-known works which ought not to be left out of any list.
-
-
-TITLES OF BOOKS CONTAINING TRANSLATIONS AND ADAPTATIONS OF CLASSICAL
-STORIES.
-
- The Children of the Dawn. Old Tales of Greece. E. Fennemore
- Buckley. 12403 f. 41. Wells, Gardner, Darton & Co.
- Kingsley's Heroes. 012208. e. 22/26. Blackie and Son. (See List of
- Stories.)
- Wonder Stories from Herodotus. (Excellent as a preparation for the
- real old stories.) N. Barrington d'Almeida. 9026.66. S. Harper
- Brothers.
-
-
-TITLES OF BOOKS CONTAINING CLASSICAL STORIES FROM HISTORY RE-TOLD.
-
- Plutarch's Lives for Boys and Girls. Re-told by W. H. Weston.
- 10606. d. 4. T. C. and E. C. Jack.
- Tales from Plutarch. By Jameson Rawbotham. 10606. bb. 3. Fisher
- Unwin.
-
-
-SOURCES OF INDIAN STORIES AND MYTHS.
-
-For an understanding of the inner meaning of these stories, and as a
-preparation for telling them, I should recommend as a useful book of
-reference:
-
- Indian Myths and Legends. By Mackenzie. 04503. f. 26. Gresham
- Publishing House.
-
-The following titles are of books containing stories for narration:
-
- Jacob's Indian Tales. 12411. h. 9. David Nutt.
- Old Deccan Days. Mary Frere. 12411. e.e. 14. John Murray.
- The Talking Thrush. W. H. D. Rouse. 12411. e.e.e. 17. J. M. Dent.
- Wide Awake Stories. 12411. b.b.b. 2. Steel and Temple.
- Indian Nights' Entertainment. Synnerton. 14162. f. 16. Eliot Stock.
- Myths of the Hindus and Buddhists. By Sister Nevedita and Amanda
- Coomara. K.T.C. Swamy. A. I. George Harrap Company. (This volume is
- mainly for reference.)
- Buddhist Birth Stories. T. W. Rhys Davids. 14098. d. 23. Trubner Co.
- Stories of the Buddha Birth. Cowell, Rouse, Neil, Francis. 14098. dd.
- 8. University Press, Cambridge.
-
-As selections of this extensive work:
-
- Eastern Stories and Fables. M. I. Shedlock. George Routledge.
- The Jatakas, Tales of India. Re-told by Ellen C. Babbitt. 012809.
- d. 8. The Century Co.
- Folk-Tales of Kashmir. Knowles. 2318. g. 18. Trübner
- & Co.
- The Jungle-Book. Rudyard Kipling. 012807. ff. 47. Macmillan.
- The Second Jungle-Book. Rudyard Kipling. 012807. k. 57. Macmillan.
- Tibetian Tales. F. A. Shieffner. 2318. g. 7. Trübner & Co.
-
-
-LEGENDS, MYTHS AND FAIRY-TALES.
-
- Classic Myths and Legends. A. H. Hope Moncrieff. 12403. ee. 6. The
- Gresham Publishing House.
- Myths and Folk-Tales of the Russians. Curtin. 2346. e. 6. Sampson Low.
- North-West Slav Legends and Fairy Stories. Erben. (Translated by W. W.
- Strickland.) 12430. i. 44.
- Russian Fairy-Tales. Nisbet Pain. 12431. ee. 18. Lawrence and Bullen.
- Sixty Folk-Tales from Slavonic Sources. Wratislau. 12431. dd. 29.
- Elliot Stock.
- Slavonic Fairy-Tales. F. Naake. 2348. b. 4. Henry S. King.
- Slav Tales. Chodsho. (Translated by Emily J. Harding.) 12411. eee. 2.
- George Allen.
- Chinese Stories. Pitman. 12410. dd. 25. George Harrap & Co.
- Chinese Fairy Tales. Professor Giles. 012201. de. 8. Govans
- International Library.
- Chinese Nights' Entertainment. Adèle Fielde. 12411. h. 4.
- G. P. Putnam.
- Maori Tales. K. M. Clark. 12411. h. 15. Macmillan & Co.
- Papuan Fairy Tales. Annie Ker. 12410. eee. 25. Macmillan & Co.
- Cornwall's Wonderland. Mabel Quiller Couch. 12431. r. 13. J. M. Dent.
- Perrault's Fairy Tales. 012200. e. 8. “The Temple Classics.”
- J. M. Dent.
- Gesta Romanorum. 12411. e. 15. Swan Sonnenschein.
- Myths and Legends of Japan. F. H. Davis. 1241. de. 8. G. Harrap & Co.
- Old World Japan. Frank Rinder. 12411. eee. 3. George Allen.
- Legendary Lore of All Nations. Swinton and Cathcart. 1241. f. 13.
- Ivison, Taylor & Co.
- Popular Tales from the Norse. Sir George Webbe Dasent. 12207. pp.
- George Routledge and Son.
- Fairy Tales from Finland. Zopelius. 12431. df. 2. J. M. Dent.
- Fairy Gold. A Book of Old English Fairy Tales, chosen by Ernest Rhys.
- 12411. dd. 22. J. M. Dent.
- Contes Populaires du Vallon. Aug. Gittée. 12430. h. 44. (Written in
- very simple style and easy of translation.) Wanderpooten Gand.
- Tales of Old Lusitania. Coelho. 12431. e. 34. Swan Sonnenschein.
- Tales from the Land of Nuts and Grapes. Charles Sellers. 12431. c. 38.
- Simpkin, Marshall & Co.
- The English Fairy Book. Ernest Rhys. 12410. dd. 29. Fisher Unwin.
- Zuni Folk Tales. F. H. Cushing. 12411. g. 30. Putnam.
- Manx Fairy Tales. Sophia Morrison. 12410. df. 10. David Nutt.
- Legend of the Iroquois. W. V. Canfield. 12410. ff. 23. A Wessels
- Company.
- The Indian's Book. Natalie Curtis. 2346. i. 2. Harper Brothers.
- Hansa Folk Lore. Rattray. 12431. tt. 2. Clarendon Press.
- Japanese Folk Stories and Fairy Tales. Mary F. Nixon-Roulet.
- 12450. ec. 18. Swan Sonnenschein.
- Kaffir Folk Tales. G. M. Theal. 2348. e. 15. Swan Sonnenschein.
- Old Hungarian Tales. Baroness Orczy and Montagu Barstow. 12411. f. 33.
- Dean and Son.
- Evening with the Old Story-tellers. G.B. 1155. e. I (1). James Burns.
- Myths and Legends of Flowers. C. Skinner. 07029. h. 50. Lippincott.
- The Book of Legends Told Over Again. Horace Scudder. 12430. e. 32. Gay
- and Bird.
- Indian Folk Tales (American Indian). Mary F. Nixon-Roulet. 12411. cc.
- 14. D. Appleton Company.
-
-
-ROMANCE.
-
- Epic and Romance. Professor W. P. Ker. 2310. c. 20. Macmillan. (As
- preparation for the selection of Romance Stories.)
- Old Celtic Romances. P. W. Joyce. 12430. cc. 34. David Nutt.
- Heroes of Asgard. Keary. 012273. de. 6. Macmillan & Co.
- Early British Heroes. Hartley. 12411. d. 5. J. M. Dent & Co.
- A Child's Book of Saints. W. Canton. 12206. r. 11. J. M. Dent.
- A Child's Book of Warriors. W. Canton. 04413. g. 49. J. M. Dent.
- History of Ballads. Professor W. P. Ker. From “Proceedings of British
- Academy.” 11852. Vol. 6 (9).
- History of English Balladry. Egbert Briant. 011853. aaa. 16.
- Richard G. Badger, Gorham Press.
- Book of Ballads for Boys and Girls. Selected by Smith and Soutar.
- 11622. bbb. 3. 7. The Clarendon Press.
- A Book of Ballad Stories. Mary Macleod. 12431. p. 3. Wells, Gardner &
- Co.
- Captive Royal Children. G. T. Whitham. 10806. eee. 2. Wells, Gardner,
- Darton & Co.
- Tales and Talks from History. 9007. h. 24. Blackie & Son.
- Stories from Froissart. Henry Newbolt. 9510. cc. 9. Wells, Gardner,
- Darton & Co.
- Pilgrim Tales from Chaucer. F. J. Harvey Darton. 12410. eee. 14.
- Wells, Gardner & Darton.
- Wonder Book of Romances. F. J. Harvey Darton. 12410. eee. 18. Wells,
- Gardner & Darton.
- Red Romance Book. Andrew Lang. 12411. bbb. 10. Longmans, Green & Co.
- The Garden of Romance. Edited by Ernest Rhys. 12411. h. 17.
- Kegan Paul.
- The Kiltartan Wonderbook. Lady Gregory. 12450. g. 32. Maunsel & Co.
- The Story of Drake. L. Elton. 10601. p. (From “The Children's Heroes”
- Series.)
- Tales from Arabian Nights. 012201. ff. 7/1. Blackie & Sons.
- King Peter. Dion Calthrop, 012632. ccc. 37. Duckworth & Co.
- Tales of the Heroic Ages: Siegfried, Beowulf, Frithjof, Roland.
- Zenaide Ragozin. 12411. eee. G. P. Putnam.
-
-
-TITLES OF MISCELLANEOUS BOOKS CONTAINING MATERIAL FOR NARRATION.
-
- Strange Adventures in Dicky Birdland. Kearton. 12809. ff. 45. Cassell
- & Co.
- Then and Now Stories: Life in England Then and Now; Children Then and
- Now; Story-Tellers Then and Now. W.P. 2221. Macmillan & Co.
- A Book of Bad Children. Trego Webb. 012808. ee. Methuen & Co.
- Land of Play. Ada Wallas. 12813. r. 8. (The story of a Doll-Historian,
- much appreciated by children.) Edward Arnold.
- Tell It Again Stories (For very young children). Elizabeth Thompson
- Dillingham and Adèle Pomers Emerson. 012808. cc. 15. Ginn and Co.
- The Basket Woman. Mrs. Mary Austin. Houghton Mifflin Co.
- The Queen Bee, and Other Stories. Evald. (Translated by C. C. Moore
- Smith.) P.P. 6064 c. Nelson and Sons.
- The Children and the Pictures. Pamela Tennant. 12804. tt. 10. William
- Heinemann.
- Stories from the History of Ceylon for Children. Marie Musaus Higgins.
- Capper & Sons.
- Nonsense for Somebody by A. Nobody. 12809. n. 82. Wells, Gardner & Co.
- Graphic Stories for Boys and Girls. Selected from 3, 4, 5, 6 of the
- Graphic Readers. 012866. f. Collins.
- Child Lore. 1451. a. 54. Nimmo.
- Windlestraw (Legends in Rhyme of Plants and Animals). Pamela
- Glenconner. 011651. e. 76. Chiswick Press.
- Deccan Nursery Tales. Kinaid. Macmillan.
- The Indian's Story Book. Richard Wilson. Macmillan.
- Told in Gallant Deeds. A Child's History of the War. Mrs. Belloc
- Lowndes. Nisbet.
-
-I much regret that I have been unable to find a good collection of
-stories from history for Narrative purposes. I have made a careful
-and lengthy search, but apart from the few I have quoted the stories
-are all written from the _reading_ point of view, rather than the
-_telling_. There is a large scope for such a book, but the dramatic
-presentation is the first and chief essential of such a work. These
-stories could be used as supplementary to the readings of the great
-historians. It would be much easier to interest boys and girls in the
-more leisurely account of the historian when they have once been caught
-in the fire of enthusiasm on the dramatic side.
-
-The following is a list of single stories chosen for the dramatic
-qualities which make them suitable for narration. For the Press-marks
-and the publishers it will be necessary to refer back to the list
-containing the book-titles.
-
-
-CLASSICAL STORIES RE-TOLD.
-
- The Story of Theseus (To be told in six parts for a series).
- How Theseus Lifted the Stone.
- How Theseus Slew the Corynetes.
- How Theseus Slew Sinis.
- How Theseus Slew Kerkyon and Procrustes.
- How Theseus Slew Medea and was acknowledged as the Son of Ægeus.
- How Theseus Slew the Minotaur.
- (From Kingsley's Heroes. 012208. e. 22/26. Blackie & Son.)
- The Story of Crœsus.
- The Conspiracy of the Magi.
- Arion and the Dolphin.
- (From Wonder Tales from Herodotus. These are intended for reading,
- but could be shortened for effective narration.)
- Coriolanus.
- Julius Cæsar.
- Aristides.
- Alexander.
- (From Plutarch's Lives for Boys and Girls. These stories must be
- shortened and adapted for narration.)
- The God of the Spears: The Story of Romulus.
- His Father's Crown: The story of Alcibiades.
- (From Tales from Plutarch. F. J. Rowbotham. Both these stories to
- be shortened and told in sections.)
-
-
-INDIAN STORIES.
-
- The Wise Old Shepherd.
- (From The Talking Thrush. Rouse.)
- The Religious Camel.
- (From the same source.)
- Less Inequality than Men Deem.
- The Brahman, the Tiger and the Six Judges.
- Tit for Tat.
- (From Old Deccan Days. Mary Frere.)
- Pride Goeth Before a Fall.
- Harisarman.
- (From Jacob's Indian Fairy Tales.)
- The Bear's Bad Bargain.
- Little Anklebone.
- Peasie and Beansie.
- (From Wide Awake Stories. Flora Annie Steel.)
- The Weaver and the Water Melon.
- The Tiger and the Hare.
- (From Indian Nights' Entertainment. Synnerton.)
- The Virtuous Animals.
- (This story should be abridged and somewhat altered for narration.)
- The Ass as Singer.
- The Wolf and the Sheep.
- (From Tibetian Tales. F. A. Schieffur.)
- A Story about Robbers.
- (From Out of the Far East. Page. 131. Lafcadio Hearn. 10058. de. g.
- Houghton and Mifflin.)
- Dripping.
- (From Indian Fairy Tales. Mark Thornhill. 12431. bbb. 38. Hatchard.)
- The Buddha as Tree-Spirit.
- The Buddha as Parrot.
- The Buddha as King.
- (From Eastern Stories and Fables. George Routledge.)
- Raksas and Bakshas.
- The Bread of Discontent.
- (From Legendary Lore of All Nations. Cathcart and Swinton.)
- A Germ-Destroyer.
- Namgay Doola (A good story for boys, to be given in shortened form).
- (From The Kipling Reader. 1227. t. 7. Macmillan.)
- A Stupid Boy.
- The Clever Jackal (One of the few stories wherein the Jackal shows
- skill combined with gratitude).
- Why the Fish Laughed.
- (From Folk Tales of Kashmir. Knowles.)
-
-
-COMMON SENSE AND RESOURCEFULNESS AND HUMOUR.
-
- The Thief and the Cocoanut Tree.
- The Woman and the Lizard.
- Sada Sada.
- The Shopkeeper and the Robber.
- The Reciter.
- Rich Man's Potsherd.
- Singer and the Donkey.
- Child and Milk.
- Rich Man Giving a Feast.
- King Solomon and the Mosquitoes.
- The King who Promised to Look After Tennel Ranan's Family.
- Vikadakavi.
- Horse and Complainant.
- The Woman and the Stolen Fruit.
- (From An Indian Tale or Two. Swinton. 14171. A. 20. Reprinted from
- Blackheath Local Guide.)
-
-
-TITLES OF BOOKS CONTAINING STORIES FROM HISTORY.
-
- British Sailor Heroes.
- British Soldier Heroes.
- (From the Hero Reader. W.P. 53 ⅓. William Heinemann.)
- The Story of Alfred the Great. A. E. McKillan.
- Alexander the Great. Ada Russell: W.P. 66/5.
- The Story of Jean d'Arc. Wilmot Buxton. W.P. 66/1.
- Marie Antoinette. Alice Birkhead. W.P. 66/2.
- (All these are published by George Harrap.)
-
-
-STORIES FROM THE LIVES OF SAINTS.
-
- The Children's Library of the Saints. Edited by Rev. W. Guy Pearse.
- Printed by Richard Jackson.
- (This is an illustrated penny edition.)
- From the Legenda Aurea. 012200. de.
- The Story of St. Brandon (The Episode of the Birds). Vol 7, page 52.
- The Story of St. Francis. Vol. 6, page 125.
- The Story of Santa Clara and the Roses.
- Saint Elisabeth of Hungary. Vol. 6, page 213.
- St. Martin and the Cloak. Vol. 6, page 142.
- The Legend of St. Marjory.
- (_Tales Facetiæ._ 12350. b. 39.)
- Melangell's Lambs.
- (From The Welsh Fairy Book. W. Jenkyn Thomas. Fisher Unwin.)
- Our Lady's Tumbler. (Twelfth Century Legend told by Philip Wicksteed.
- 012356. e. 59.)
- (J. M. Dent. This story could be shortened and adapted without
- sacrificing too much of the beauty of the style.)
- The Song of the Minster.
- (From William Canton's Book of Saints. K.T.C. a/4. J. M. Dent.
- This should be shortened and somewhat simplified for narration,
- especially in the technical ecclesiastical terms.)
- The Story of St. Kenelm the Little King.
- (From Old English History for Children.)
- The Story of King Alfred and St. Cuthbert.
- The Story of Ædburg, the Daughter of Edward.
- The Story of King Harold's Sickness and Recovery.
-
-I commend all those who tell these stories to read the comments made on
-them by E. A. Freeman himself.
-
- (From Old English History for Children. 012206. ppp. 7. J. M. Dent.
- Everyman Series.)
-
-
-STORIES DEALING WITH THE SUCCESS OF THE YOUNGEST CHILD.
-
-(This is sometimes due to a kind action shown to some humble person or
-to an animal.)
-
- The Three Sons.
- (From The Kiltartan Wonderbook. By Lady Gregory.)
- The Flying Ship.
- (From Russian Fairy Tales. Nisbet Pain.)
- How Jesper Herded the Hares.
- (From The Violet Fairy Book. 12411. ccc. 6.)
- Youth, Life and Death.
- (From Myths and Folk Tales of Russians and Slavs. By Curtin.)
- Jack the Dullard. Hans Christian Andersen.
- (See list of Andersen Stories.)
- The Enchanted Whistle.
- (From The Golden Fairy Book. 12411. c. 36.)
- The King's Three Sons.
- Hunchback and Brothers.
- (From Legends of the French Provinces. 1241. c. 2.)
- The Little Humpbacked Horse. (This story is more suitable for reading
- than telling.)
- (From Russian Wonder Tales. By Post Wheeler. 12410. dd. 30. Adam
- and Charles Black.)
- The Queen Bee. By Grimm. (See full list.)
- The Wonderful Bird.
- (From Roumanian Fairy Tales. Adapted by J. M. Percival. 12431. dd.
- 23. Henry Holt.)
-
-
-LEGENDS, MYTHS, FAIRY TALES AND MISCELLANEOUS STORIES.
-
- How the Herring became King.
- Joe Moore's Story.
- The Mermaid of Gob Ny Ooyl.
- King Magnus Barefoot.
- (From Manx Tales. By Sophia Morrison.)
- The Greedy Man.
- (From Contes Populaires Malgaches. By G. Ferrand. 2348. aaa. 19.
- Ernest Leroux.)
- Arbutus.
- Basil.
- Briony.
- Dandelion.
- (From Legends of Myths and Flowers. C. Skinner.)
- The Magic Picture.
- The Stone Monkey.
- Stealing Peaches.
- The Country of Gentlemen.
- Football on a Lake.
- (From Chinese Fairy Tales. Professor Giles.)
- The Lime Tree.
- Intelligence and Luck.
- The Frost, the Sun and Wind.
- (From Sixty Folk Tales. Wratislaw.)
- The Boy who Slept.
- The Gods Know. (This story must be shortened and adapted for
- narration.)
- (From Chinese Fairy Stories. By Pitman.)
- The Imp Tree.
- The Pixy Flower.
- Tom-Tit Tot.
- The Princess of Colchester.
- (From Fairy Gold. Ernest Rhys.)
- The Origin of the Mole.
- (From Cossack Fairy Tales. Selected by Nisbet Bain. 12431. f. 51.
- Lawrence and Bullen.)
- Dolls and Butterflies.
- (From Myths and Legends of Japan. Chapter VI.)
- The Child of the Forest.
- The Sparrow's Wedding.
- The Moon Maiden.
- (From Old World Japan. By Frank Binder.)
- The Story of Merlin. (For Young People.)
- (Told in Early British Heroes. Harkey.)
- The Isle of the Mystic Lake.
- (From Voyage of Maildun, “Old Celtic Romances.” P. W. Joice.)
- The Story of Baldur. (In Three Parts, for Young Children.)
- (From Heroes of Asgard. M. R. Earle. Macmillan.)
- Adalhero.
- (From Evenings with the Old Story-Tellers. See “Titles of Books.”)
- Martin, the Peasant's Son.
- (This is more suitable for reading. From Russian Wonder Tales. Post
- Wheeler.)
-
-
-MISCELLANEOUS STORIES.
-
- Versions of the Legend of Rip Van Winkle.
- Urashima.
- (From Myths and Legends of Japan. Hadland Davis.)
- The Monk and the Bird.
- (From the Book of Legends-Told Over Again. Horace Scudder.)
- Carob. (Talmud Legend.)
- (From Myths and Legends of Flowers. C. Skinner.)
- The Land of Eternal Youth.
- (From Child-Lore.)
- Catskin.
- Guy of Gisborne.
- King Henry and the Miller.
- (From Stories from Ballads. M. Macleod.)
- The Legend of the Black Prince.
- Why the Wolves no Longer Devour the Lambs on Xmas Night.
- (From Au Pays des Legendes. E. Herpin. 12430. bbb. 30. Hyacinthe
- Calliere.)
- The Coyote and the Locust.
- The Coyote and the Raven.
- (From Zuni Folk Tales. Cushing.)
- The Peacemaker.
- (From Legends of the Iroquois. W. V. Canfield.)
- The Story of the Great Chief of the Animals.
- The Story of Lion and Little Jackal.
- (From Kaffir Folk Tales. G. M. Theal.)
- The Legend of the Great St. Nicholas.
- The Three Counsels.
- (From Bulletin de Folk Lore. Liege. Academies, 987 ½.)
- The Tale of the Peasant Demyar.
- Monkey and the Pomegranate Tree.
- The Ant and the Snow.
- The Value of an Egg.
- The Padre and the Negro.
- Papranka.
- (From Tales of Old Lusitania. Coelho.)
- Kojata.
- The Lost Spear. (To be shortened.)
- The Hermit. By Voltaire.
- The Blue Cat. (From the French.)
- The Silver Penny.
- The Three Sisters.
- The Slippers of Abou-Karem.
- (From The Golden Fairy Book. 12411. e. 36. Hutchinson.)
- The Fairy Baby.
- (From Uncle Remus in Hansaland. By Mary and Newman Tremearne.)
- Why the Sole of a Man's Foot is Uneven.
- The Wonderful Hair.
- The Emperor Trojan's Goat Ears.
- The Language of Animals.
- Handicraft above Everything.
- Just Earnings are Never Lost.
- The Maiden who was Swifter than a Horse.
- (From Servian Stories and Legends.)
- Le Couple Silencieux.
- Le Mort Parlant.
- La Sotte Fiancee.
- Le Cornacon.
- Persin au Pot.
- (From Contes Populaires du Vallon. Aug. Gittée. 12430. h. 44.)
- The Rat and the Cat.
- The Two Thieves.
- The Two Rats.
- The Dog and the Rat.
- (From Contes Populaires Malgaches. 2348. aaa. 19. Gab. Ferrand.)
- Rua and Toka.
- (From The Maori Tales. Clark.)
- John and the Pig. (Old Hungarian Tales.)
- (This story is given for the same purpose as “Long Bow Story.” See
- Andrew Lang's Books.)
- Lady Clare.
- The Wolf-Child.
- (From Land of Grapes and Nuts.)
- The Ungrateful Man.
- The Faithful Servant. (In part.)
- Jovinian the Proud Emperor.
- The Knight and the King of Hungary.
- The Wicked Priest.
- The Emperor Conrad and the Count's Son.
- (From the Gesta Romanorum. 1155. e. I.)
- Virgil, the Emperor and the Truffles.
- (From Unpublished Legends of Virgil. Collected by C. G. Leland.
- 12411. eee. 15. Elliot Stock.)
- Seeing that All was Right. (A good story for boys.)
- La Fortuna.
- The Lanterns of the Strozzi Palace.
- (From Legends of Florence. Re-told by C. G. Leland. 12411. c.cc. 2.
- David Nutt.)
- The Three Kingdoms.
- Yelena the Wise.
- Seven Simeons.
- Ivan, the Bird and the Wolf.
- The Pig, the Deer and the Steed.
- Waters of Youth.
- The Useless Wagoner.
- (These stories need shortening and adapting. From Myths and Folk
- Tales of the Russian. Curtin.)
-
-
-MISCELLANEOUS STORIES TAKEN FROM THE ANDREW LANG BOOKS.
-
- The Serpent's Gifts.
- Unlucky John.
- (From All Sorts of Story Books. 012704. aaa. 35.)
- Makoma. (A story for boys.)
- (From Orange Fairy Book. 12411. c. 36.)
- The Lady of Solace.
- How the Ass Became a Man Again.
- Amys and Amile.
- The Burning of Njal.
- Ogier the Dane.
- (From Red Book of Romance. 12411. bbb. 10.)
- The Heart of a Donkey.
- The Wonderful Tune.
- A French Puck.
- A Fish Story.
- (From The Lilac Fairy Book. 12411. de. 17.)
- East of the Sun and West of the Moon. (As a preparation for Cupid and
- Psyche.)
- (From The Blue Fairy Book. 12411. I. 3.)
- The Half Chick.
- The Story of Hok Lee and the Dwarfs.
- (From The Green Fairy Book. 12411.1. 6.)
- How to Find a True Friend. (To be given in shorter form.)
- (From The Crimson Fairy Book. 12411. c. 20.)
- The Long Bow Story. (This story makes children learn to distinguish
- between falsehood and romance.)
- (From The Olive Fairy Book. 12410. dd. 18.)
- Kanny, the Kangaroo.
- Story of Tom the Bear.
- (From The Animal Story Book.)
- The Story of the Fisherman.
- Aladdin and the Lamp. (This story should be divided and told in two
- sections.)
- The Story of Ali Cogia.
- (From the Arabian Nights Stories of Andrew Lang. All these stories
- are published by Longmans, Green & Co.)
-
-
-The following titles are taken from the “Story-telling Magazine,”
-published 27 West 23rd Street, New York.
-
- March and the Shepherd.
- (Folk Lore from Foreign Lands. January, 1914.)
- The Two Young Lions.
- (From Fénélon's Fables and Fairy Tales. Translated by Marc T.
- Valette. March, 1914.)
- Why the Cat Spits at the Dog. (November, 1913.)
- The Story of Persephone. By R. T. Wyche. (September, 1913.)
- The Story of England's First Poet. By G. P. Krapp.
- (From In Oldest England, July, 1913.)
- The Three Goats. By Jessica Child. (For very young children. July,
- 1913.)
- The Comical History of the Cobbler and the King. (Chap. Book. 12331.
- i. 4.)
- (This story should be shortened to add to the dramatic power.)
-
-
-The two following stories, which are great favourites, should be told
-one after the other, one to illustrate the patient wife, and the other
-the patient husband.
-
- The Fisherman and his Wife. Hans. C. Andersen.
- (See Publishers of Andersen's Stories.)
- Hereafter This.
- (From More English Fairy Tales. By Jacobs. 12411. h. 23. David
- Nutt.)
- How a Man Found his Wife in the Land of the Dead. (This is a very
- dramatic and pagan story, to be used with discretion.)
- The Man without Hands and Feet.
- The Cockerel.
- (From Papuan Fairy Tales. Annie Ker.)
- The Story of Sir Tristram and La Belle Iseult. (To be told in
- shortened form.)
- (From Cornwall's Wonderland. Mabel Quiller Couch.)
- The Cat that Went to the Doctor. The Wood Anemone. Sweeter than Sugar.
- The Raspberry Caterpillar.
- (From Fairy Tales from Finland. Zopelius.)
- Dinevan the Emu.
- Goomble Gubbon the Bustard.
- (From Australian Legendary Lore. By Mrs. Langloh Parker. 12411. h.
- 13.)
- The Tulip Bed.
- (From English Fairy Book. Ernest Rhys.)
-
-I have been asked so often for this particular story: I am glad to be
-able to provide it in very poetical language.
-
- The Fisherman and his Wife.
- The Wolf and the Kids.
- The Adventures of Chanticleer and Partlet.
- The Old Man and his Grandson.
- Rumpelstiltskin.
- The Queen Bee.
- The Wolf and the Man.
- The Golden Goose.
- (From Grimm's Fairy Tales. By Mrs. Edgar Lucas. 12410. dd. 33.
- Constable.)
-
-
-STORIES FROM HANS C. ANDERSEN.
-
-(For young children.)
-
- Ole-Luk-Oie. (Series of seven.)
- What the Old Man Does is Always Right.
- The Princess and the Pea.
- Thumbelina.
-
-(For older children.)
-
- It's Quite True.
- Five Out of One Pod.
- Great Claus and Little Claus.
- Jack the Dullard.
- The Buckwheat.
- The Fir-Tree.
- The Little Tin Soldier.
- The Nightingale.
- The Ugly Duckling.
- The Swineherd.
- The Sea Serpent.
- The Little Match-Girl.
- The Gardener and the Family.
-
-The two best editions of Hans C. Andersen's Fairy Tales are the
-translation by Mrs. Lucas, published by Dent, and the only complete
-English edition, published by W. A. and J. K. Craigie (Humphrey
-Milford, 1914).
-
-
-MISCELLANEOUS MODERN STORIES.
-
- The Summer Princess.
- (From The Enchanted Garden. Mrs. Molesworth. 012803. d. f. T.
- Fisher Unwin. This could be shortened and arranged for narration.)
- Thomas and the Princess. (A Fairy Tale for Grown-Ups, for pure
- relaxation.) By Joseph Conrad.
- (From Twenty-six Ideal Stories for Girls. 012809. e. 1. Hutchinson
- & Co.)
- The Truce of God.
- (From All-Fellowes Seven Legends of Lower Redemption. Laurence
- Housman. 012630. 1. 25. Kegan Paul.)
- The Selfish Giant. By Oscar Wilde. 012356. e. 59. David Nutt.
- The Legend of the Tortoise.
- (From the Provençal. From Windestraw. Pamela Glenconner.) Chiswick
- Press.
- Fairy Grumblesnooks.
- A Bit of Laughter's Smile. By Maud Symonds.
- (From Tales for Little People. Nos. 323 and 318. Aldine Publishing
- Company.)
- The Fairy who Judged her Neighbours.
- (From The Little Wonder Box. By Jean Ingelow. 12806. r. 21.
- Griffiths, Farren & Co.)
-
-
-FOR TEACHERS OF YOUNG CHILDREN.
-
- Le Courage.
- L'Ecole.
- Le Jour de Catherine.
- Jacqueline et Mirant.
- (From Nos Enfants. Anatole France. 12810. dd. 72. Hachette.)
- The Giant and the Jackstraw. By David Starr Jordan.
- (From Una and the Knights. For very small children.)
- The Musician.
- Legend of the Christmas Rose.
- (From The Girl from the Marsh Croft. Selma Lagerlöf. 12581. p. 99.)
- Both these should be shortened and adapted for narration.
-
-I trust that the titles of my stories in this Section may not be
-misleading. Under the titles of “Myths, Legends and Fairy Tales,”
-I have included many which contain valuable ethical teaching, deep
-philosophy and stimulating examples for conduct in life. I regret that
-I have not been able to furnish in my own list many of the stories I
-consider good for narration, but the difficulty of obtaining permission
-has deterred me from further efforts in this direction. I hope,
-however, that teachers and students will look up the book containing
-these stories.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[55] Both books dealing with insect life.
-
-
-
-
-INDEX
-
-
-Adler, Felix, on animal stories, 80
-
-Adventures of a Beetle, 29
-
-Alice in Wonderland, 57, 136
-
-Analysis of motive and feeling, to be avoided, 43
-
-Andersen, Hans C., 2, 15, 16, 21, 29, 31, 34, 39, 41, 44, 45, 62, 63,
-80, 112, 116, 123, 124, 138, 150, 156, 232
-
-Animal Play, Psychology of, 105
-
-Art, true purpose of, 109
-
-Arthur in the Cave, 165-9
-
-Artifices of story telling, 32
-
-
-Bacon, J. D. D., 12
-
-Ballad for a boy, 107
-
-Baring, M., 193
-
-Barnes, Earl, 60
-
-Barnett, P. A., 104
-
-Barnett, Mrs. P. A., 70
-
-Barrow, E., 40
-
-Beautiful things need appropriate language, 82
-
-Beetle, the, 125
-
-Beginning, should be striking, 39
-
-Belloc's Cautionary Tales, 56
-
-Béranger, 25
-
-Bible Stories, 67
-
-Björnson's tribute to Andersen, 116
-
-Blazing Mansion, the, 74
-
-Bluebeard, 76
-
-Blue Rose, the, 187
-
-‘Blugginess,’ the thirst for, 85
-
-Books, choice of, 61
-
-Bradley, Professor, 119
-
-Brown, T. E., 17
-
-Buddha, stories of, 87, 127, 200, 203
-
-Buffoonery, to be discouraged, 54
-
-Burroughs, John, 58, 108
-
-Buster Brown, 53
-
-Butterfly, Story of, 45
-
-
-Call of the Homeland, 71
-
-Calypso, 93
-
-Calthrop, Dion, 92
-
-Carlyle, T., 115
-
-Chap books, 51, 52
-
-Chesterton, G. K., on sentimentality, 46
-
-Child, the, 87
-
-Child Play, 104, 105
-
-Children's Catalogue, 211
-
-Choice of books, 61
-
-Christopher, St., legend of, 162-5
-
-Cid, the, 133
-
-Cinderella, 71, 90, 119, 120
-
-Classical Stories, 218, 223
-
-Class teaching, use of story-telling in, 132
-
-Clifford, Ethel, 88
-
-Clifford, Mrs. W. K., 40, 64
-
-Commonplace, to be avoided, 99
-
-Common sense of Education, 104
-
-Common sense, illustrated in stories, 71, 224
-
-Concealment of emotion by children, 114
-
-Confucius, 60
-
-Co-operation of audience, how to enlist, 37
-
-Cory, W., 107
-
-Coquelin, 27, 34
-
-Crazy Jane, 47
-
-Creative work, value of, 113
-
-Curious Girl, 51
-
-Curtin, Russian Myths, 90
-
-Cymbeline, 94
-
-
-Danger of side issues, 6
-
-Danger of altering the story for the occasion, 8
-
-Darning Needle, 125
-
-Death, stories dealing with, 86
-
-Death-bed scenes, 55
-
-Defence of Poesy, 5, 91, 110
-
-Detail, excess of, 21
-
-Dick Whittington, 100
-
-Didactic fiction, a low type of art, 4, 59
-
-Dido and Aeneas, 66
-
-Difficulties of the story, 6
-
-Dinkey Bird, the, 64
-
-Direct appeal, danger of, 111
-
-Divine Adventure, the, 81
-
-Dobson, Austin, 21
-
-Don Quixote, 21, 133
-
-Dramatic and poetic elements, 134
-
-Dramatic Excitement, 82
-
-Dramatic joy, 4, 93
-
-Dramatic presentation, of moral value, 59
-
----- indispensable, 89
-
-Dramatisation, danger of, 111
-
-Drudgery, essential for success, 29
-
-
-Educational uses of story telling, 4
-
-Effect of story, difficult to gauge, 14
-
----- how to obtain and maintain, 89
-
-Elements, desirable, 61
-
----- to be avoided, 42
-
-Eliot, George, 83
-
-Emotions, unable to find expression, 60
-
-Emphasis, danger of, 33
-
-Endings, dramatic, 40
-
-Enfant Prodigue, 18
-
-Environment, 95
-
-Essentials of the story, 25
-
-Ewing, Mrs., 50, 104, 106
-
-Examples for Youth, 56
-
-Experience, the appeal to, 62
-
-
-Fact and make-believe, 119
-
-Fairchild Family, 44
-
-Fairy tales, 58, 72, 73, 74, 75, 102, 104, 112
-
----- do not appeal to some, 121
-
----- mixed with science, to be avoided, 57
-
----- poor material of, 122
-
----- potential truth in, 121
-
----- right age for, 75
-
-Father and Son, 102
-
-Fear, appeals to, 51
-
-Fénélon's Telemachus, 92
-
-Festival Day, true spirit of, 200-3
-
-Fiction, should be used, 109
-
-Field, Eugene, 64, 69
-
-Filial Piety, 203-6
-
-Fleming, Marjorie, 53
-
-Folk lore, tampering with, 76
-
-Freeman, P., poems of, 55
-
-Froebel, 59
-
-Fun, coarse and exaggerated, 53
-
-
-Gales, R. L., 101
-
-Geography, dramatic possibilities of, 134
-
-Gesture, use and abuse of, 35, 126
-
-Glenconner, Lady, 187
-
-Glover, Mrs. Arnold, 96
-
-Golden Numbers, 71
-
-Goschen, G., 65, 99
-
-Gosse, E., 102
-
-Gregory, Lady, 24
-
-Grimm, 71
-
-Groos, Karl, 105
-
-Grotesque stories, an antidote to sentimentality, 78
-
-Gunnar, Death of, 133
-
-
-Hafiz the Stone-cutter, 170-2
-
-Harris, Muriel, 56
-
-Harrison, Frederic, 61
-
-Hearn, Lafcadio, 31
-
-Hector and Andromache, 66
-
-Helen and Paris, 8
-
-Heroes of Asgaard, 65
-
-History and fiction, 109, 225
-
-Honey Bee and other Stories, 57
-
-Human interest, 93
-
-Humour, development slow, 136
-
----- educational value of, 135
-
----- to encourage the sense of, 4, 73, 224
-
-Hushaby Lady, 69
-
-Hysteria, how encouraged, 60
-
-
-Ice Maiden, 80
-
-Ideal, translated into action, 4, 110
-
-Illustration of stories, 131
-
-Imagination, appeal by, 20
-
----- cultivation of, 4, 65, 103
-
----- Queyrat on, 118
-
----- Ribot on, 105
-
-Indian Stories, 81, 91, 218
-
-Infant piety, tales of, 55
-
-Irish peasants as an audience, 10
-
-
-Jack and the Beanstalk, 74, 121
-
-Jacob, More English tales, 72
-
-James, Henry, 27
-
-James, William, 84
-
-Janeway, Mrs., 51
-
-Jesper and the Hares, 72
-
-John and the Pig, 106
-
-
-Keatinge, on Suggestion, 34
-
-Kimmins, Dr., 130
-
-Kinematograph, dramatic value of, 18, 48
-
-King Peter, 92
-
-Kinship with animals, to be encouraged, 80
-
-Ker, Professor, 157
-
-Kipling, Rudyard, 38, 39, 40, 41, 123, 127
-
-
-Ladd's Psychology, 108
-
-Lang, Andrew, 72, 73, 85, 230
-
-Laocoon group, 55
-
-Lear's Book of Nonsense, 79
-
-Legends, Myths and Fairy tales, 219, 227
-
-Life, stories of saving, 86
-
-Little Citizens of other Lands, 103
-
-Little Cousin Series, 214
-
-Little Red Riding Hood, 76
-
-Lion and Hare, 126
-
-Loti, 114
-
-
-Magnanimity, to be encouraged, 107
-
-Mahomet, advice to teachers, 68
-
-McKracken, Mrs. E., 45
-
-Macleod, Fiona, 81
-
-Marsh King's Daughter, 62
-
-Mechanical devices for attracting attention, 32
-
-Memory or improvisation, 123
-
-Memory, the effect of, 63
-
-Mentius, Chinese philosopher, 95
-
-Metempsychosis, 81
-
-Milking time, 68
-
-Mill on the Floss, 83
-
-Milton, 69
-
-Mimicry, use of, 36
-
-Ministering Children, 44
-
-Miscellaneous Stories, 222, 228
-
-Modern Stories, List of, 233
-
-Montessori, on Silence, 131
-
-Moore Smith, C. G., 57
-
-Moral Instruction of Children, 81
-
-Moral tales, 55
-
-Morley, Henry, 58
-
-Morley, Lord, on direct moral teaching, 128
-
-Mother Play, 59
-
-Moulton, Professor, 67
-
-
-Napoleon, 85, 134
-
-Nebuchadnezzar's golden image, 67
-
-Necker de Saussure, Mme., 20
-
-Nightingale, the, 138-150
-
-Njal, Burning of, 85, 133
-
-Nonsense, a plea for, 79
-
-Norse Stories, 210
-
-Nursery Rhymes, 101
-
-
-Old people, as an audience, 24
-
-Openings, vivid, 39, 40
-
-Orpheus and Eurydice, 66
-
-Our Lady's Tumbler, 123
-
-Over dramatic stimulation, 48
-
-Over-elaboration, 21
-
-Over explanation, danger of, 23
-
-Over-illustration, danger of, 17
-
-
-Pandora, story of, 123
-
-Pantomime, stories in, 18
-
-Paris and Helen, 8
-
-Pausing, the art of, 33
-
-Piety Promoted, 57
-
-Planting for Eternity, 115
-
-Plato, on the End of Education, 91
-
-Poetic element, children's unexpressed need, 135
-
-Poetry and Life, 119
-
-Poetry, effect of, 119
-
-Poetry, value of, 69
-
-Polish, importance of, 31
-
-Poor Robin, 55
-
-Priggishness, how to avoid, 51
-
-Preparation for a story, 124
-
-Princess and the Pea, 34, 156-7
-
-Proud Cock, the, 178-180
-
-Psyche, 120
-
-Psychology, 108
-
-Psychological novelist, 108
-
-Pueblo tribe of Indians, 91
-
-Puss in Boots, 108
-
-
-Quebec and Téméraire, story of, 107
-
-Questions, danger of, 13
-
-Questions of teachers, 117
-
-Questioning the audience, futility of, 130
-
-Queyrat, 19, 23, 63, 106, 113, 118
-
-Quintilian, on the use of the hands, 35
-
-
-Reading matter for children, 211
-
-Realism, excessive, 49
-
-Repetition of story (by children) inadvisable, 130
-
-Repetition of stories (by lecturers) recommended, 30, 62
-
-Reproduction of stories, 112, 130
-
-Resourcefulness, stories of, 71, 224
-
-Ribot, on the imagination, 34, 105
-
-Riley, Whitcomb, 100
-
-Romance, Books of, 85, 221
-
-Romance, good for children, 66
-
----- in the streets, 97
-
-Rossetti, Christina, 68
-
-Russell, J., 161
-
-Russian myths and folk tales, 90
-
-
-Saga, a, 160, 161
-
-Saints, lives of, 225
-
-St. Christopher, Legend of, 162-5
-
-St. Francis and St. Clare, 66
-
-Santa Claus, 122
-
-Sarcasm, excess to be avoided, 44
-
-Satire, excessive, to be deprecated, 44
-
-Saturation, necessity of, 27
-
-Scott, Dr., 71
-
-Scudder, H., 111, 124
-
-Sensationalism, danger of, 47
-
-Sentimentality, 45
-
-Shakespeare, 69, 96
-
-Shepherd, the Obstinate, 172-8
-
-Sherwood, Mrs., 52
-
-Side issues, danger of, 6
-
-Sidney, Sir Philip, 85, 91, 110
-
-Siegfried and Brunhild, 66
-
-Silence, Montessori on, 131
-
-Simplicity, the keynote of story-telling, 2
-
-Smith, Mrs. R. B., 14
-
-Smith, N. A., 71
-
-Snake story, a, 195-200
-
-Snegourka, 180-2
-
-Snow Child, the, 180-2
-
-Somerset, Lady H., 110
-
-Song and Story, 70
-
-Song of Roland, 85
-
-Souvenirs du Peuple, 25
-
-Standard, must be high, 23
-
-Sterne, 44
-
-Stephens, James, 47
-
-Stevenson, R. L., 104, 105, 123
-
-Stories, in full, 138
-
----- to counteract influence of the streets, 93
-
----- outside children's experience, futility of, 48
-
-Story telling in school and home, 210
-
-Story Telling Magazine, 231
-
-Sturla, story of, 157-160
-
-Suggestion, 32, 34, 59
-
-Sully, on children, 30, 90
-
-Sunday books, 56
-
-Swineherd, the, 150-156
-
-Sympathy for foreigners, 103
-
-Syrett, N., 118
-
-
-Talking over a story, 129
-
-Talking Thrush, the, 200
-
-Talks to teachers, 85
-
-Teachers of Young Children, books for, 234
-
-Telemachus, 92
-
-Tell, Wilhelm, 30
-
-Tennant, Pamela, 187
-
-Thackeray, 135
-
-Thomas, W. Jenkyn, 169
-
-Three Bears, 121
-
-Through the Looking Glass, 90
-
-Tiger, Jackal and Brahman, 11
-
-Time, spent on story telling, 117
-
-Tin Soldier, the, 63, 64, 124, 129
-
-Top and Ball, 125
-
-To your good health, 172-8
-
-Treasure of the Wise Man, 100
-
-Troy, tale of, 8
-
-Truth, many-sided, 122
-
-Truth of Stories, 118
-
-Truth and Falsehood, how to distinguish, 106
-
-Two Frogs, the, 193-5
-
-
-Ulysses, 7, 93
-
-Unfamiliar words, danger of, 10
-
-United States, 31, 33, 49
-
-Unsuitable material for stories, 42
-
-Unusual element, desirable, 64
-
-Unwholesome Extravagance, 53
-
-Utilitarian stories, danger of, 99
-
-
-Very Short Stories, 64
-
-Virginibus Puerisque, 104
-
-Voice, dramatic power of, 17
-
-
-Wallas, K., 71
-
-Warlike Excitement, not essential, 87
-
-Water Nixie, the, 183-7
-
-Wide, Wide World, 44
-
-Wiggin, Kate Douglas, 48, 71
-
-Wise Old Shepherd, the, 195-200
-
-Wolf and Kids, 78
-
-
-Yonge, Miss, 54
-
-Youngest Child, success of, 226
-
-
-
-
-_Sherratt and Hughes, Printers, London and Manchester._
-
-
-
-
-MURRAY'S SHILLING LIBRARY
-
-_In Red Cloth, crown 8vo., 1/-net each._
-
-
- =THE SCHOOLMASTER.= A Commentary upon the Aims and Methods of an
- Assistant Master in a Public School. By A. C. BENSON, C.V.O.,
- President of Magdalene College, Cambridge.
-
-This book is the fruits of the experience of one who has gained
-distinction both as a schoolmaster and as a man of letters. It is not a
-scientific educational treatise, but an attempt to consider the life of
-the schoolmaster from within.
-
- =GOLDEN STRING.= A Day Book for Busy Men and Women. Arranged by
- SUSAN, COUNTESS OF MALMESBURY, and Miss VIOLET BROOKE-HUNT.
-
-“An admirable selection of noble and inspiring thoughts.”--_Westminster
-Gazette_.
-
-“Delightful little volume, one can find nothing but praise for a happy
-idea so admirably carried out.”--_Ladies' Field_.
-
- =RUNNING THE BLOCKADE.= A Personal Narrative of Adventures, Risks,
- and Escapes during the American Civil War. By THOMAS E. TAYLOR.
- Frontispiece and Map.
-
-An absorbing record of personal adventure, and a real contribution to
-history, for it presents to us, from the pen of a principal actor, the
-most complete account we have of a great blockade in the early days
-of steam. As a picture of exciting escapes, of coolness and resource
-at moments of danger, of well-calculated risks, boldly accepted and
-carried through, it has few rivals in sea story.
-
- =HISTORICAL MEMORIALS OF CANTERBURY.= By the late DEAN STANLEY.
- With Illustrations.
-
-“No pilgrim to Canterbury need now content himself with the meagre
-historical information of the guide-books when he can get Dean
-Stanley's fascinating work for one shilling.”--_The Church Times_.
-
- =LIVINGSTONE'S FIRST EXPEDITION TO AFRICA=. A popular account
- of Missionary Travels and Researches in South Africa. By DAVID
- LIVINGSTONE, M.D. With Map and numerous Illustrations.
-
-This is the great missionary-explorer's own narrative of his first
-travel experiences in Africa, and consists chiefly of a full account of
-his wonderful journeys in the years 1849-1856, in the course of which
-he discovered the Victoria Falls, and crossed the continent from west
-to east.
-
- =THE GATHERING OF BROTHER HILARIUS.= By MICHAEL FAIRLESS.
-
-Through this little book runs the road of life, the common road of men,
-the white highway that Hilarius watched from the monastery gate and
-Brother Ambrose saw nearing its end in the Jerusalem of his heart. The
-book is a romance. It may be read as a romance of the Black Death and
-a monk with an artist's eye; but for the author it is a romance of the
-Image of God.
-
- =AN ENGLISHWOMAN'S LOVE LETTERS.= By LAURENCE HOUSMAN.
-
-Mr. T. P. O'Connor in the _Daily Mail_ said:--“I turned over the
-leaves rapidly, almost greedily, and had read almost all its story
-before I could allow myself to sleep.... It is a loud cry, not merely
-of one intoxicated and torn heart, but of the claim of inner and true
-emotion to be still the greatest force of life; the one thing worth
-having--worth living for, longing for, dying for.”
-
- =ÆSOP'S FABLES.= A New Version, chiefly from the original sources.
- By the Rev. THOMAS JAMES, M.A. With more than 100 Woodcuts
- designed by TENNIEL and WOLFE.
-
-Sir John Tenniel's beautiful illustrations are a notable feature of
-this edition of “the most popular moral and political class-book of
-more than two thousand years.”
-
- =THE LION HUNTER IN SOUTH AFRICA.= Five Years' Adventures in the
- Far Interior of South Africa, with Notices of the Native Tribes
- and Savage Animals. By ROUALEYN GORDON CUMMING, of Altyre. With
- Woodcuts.
-
-This sporting classic is a fascinating first-hand narrative of hunting
-expeditions in pursuit of big game and adventures with native tribes.
-A special interest now attaches to it by reason of the great changes
-which have come over the “scene of the lion hunter's” exploits.
-
- =UNBEATEN TRACKS IN JAPAN.= An Account of Travels in the Interior,
- including visits to the Aborigines of Yezo and the Shrine of
- Nikkô. By Mrs. BISHOP (ISABELLA L. BIRD). With Illustrations.
-
-This book gives practically Mrs. BISHOP'S day to day experiences during
-journeys of over one hundred and four thousand miles in Japan. As a
-faithful and realistic description of Old Japan by one of the most
-remarkable Englishwomen of her day, this book has an abiding interest.
-
- =NOTES FROM A DIARY.= First Series. By SIR MOUNTSTUART E. GRANT
- DUFF.
-
-Sir Mountstuart Grant Duff, besides being a distinguished
-public-servant, was a popular member of society with a genius for
-gathering and recording good stories. In his series of “Notes from a
-Diary” he jotted down the best things he heard, and thereby made some
-enjoyable volumes.
-
- =LAVENGRO: The Scholar, the Gypsy, the Priest.= By GEORGE BORROW.
- With 6 Pen and Ink Sketches by PERCY WADHAM.
-
-This edition contains the unaltered text of the original issue: with
-the addition of some Suppressed Episodes printed only in the Editions
-issued by Mr. Murray; MS. Variorum, Vocabulary, and Notes by the late
-Professor W. I. KNAPP.
-
- =OUR ENGLISH BIBLE.= The Story of its Origin and Growth. By H. W.
- HAMILTON HOARE, late of Balliol College, Oxford, now an Assistant
- Secretary to the Board of Education, Whitehall. With Specimen
- Pages of Old Bibles.
-
-An historical sketch of the lineage of our Authorised Version, which
-was published in 1901 under the title of “The Evolution of the English
-Bible.”
-
-The aim of the sketch is to give, in a continuous and narrative form,
-a history of our English translations, and to exhibit them in close
-connection with the story of the national life.
-
- =THE LETTERS OF QUEEN VICTORIA. A Selection from her Majesty's
- correspondence between the years 1837 and 1861.= Edited by A. C.
- BENSON, M.A., C.V.O., and VISCOUNT ESHER, G.C.V.O., K.C.B. With 16
- Portraits. 3 vols. 1_s._ net each volume.
-
-Published by authority of his Majesty King Edward VII. This edition is
-not abridged, but is the complete and revised text of the original.
-
- =ORIGIN OF SPECIES BY MEANS OF NATURAL SELECTION.= By CHARLES
- DARWIN. Popular impression of the Corrected Copyright Edition.
- Issued with the approval of the author's executors.
-
-The first edition of Darwin's “Origin of Species” has now passed out of
-copyright.
-
-It should, however, be clearly understood that the edition which thus
-loses its legal protection is the imperfect edition which the author
-subsequently revised and which was accordingly superseded. This, the
-complete and authorised edition of the work, will not lose copyright
-for some years.
-
-The only complete editions authorised by Mr. Darwin and his
-representatives are those published by Mr. Murray.
-
- =ROUND THE HORN BEFORE THE MAST.= An Account of a Voyage from
- San Francisco round Cape Horn to Liverpool, in a Fourmasted
- “Windjammer,” with experiences of the life of an Ordinary Seaman.
- By BASIL LUBBOCK. With Illustrations.
-
-_The Sheffield Independent_ says:--“If you care to read what life at
-sea in a sailing vessel really is like, this is the book that tells the
-story.... Mr. Lubbock has a fine power of telling a tale realistically.
-I have never read any work about the sea that is as vivid and actual as
-this.”
-
- =ENGLISH BATTLES AND SIEGES IN THE PENINSULA.= By LIEUT.-GEN. SIR
- WILLIAM NAPIER, K.C.B. With Portrait.
-
-In spite of the countless books which have appeared on the Peninsular
-War, this great work has preserved its popularity as a standard book on
-the subject for over half a century and still holds its own when most
-rivals, which have appeared since, have become forgotten.
-
- =STUDIES IN THE ART OF RAT-CATCHING.= By H. C. BARKLEY.
-
-“Should the reader know of a schoolboy fond of ratting, the proud
-possessor possibly of a sharp terrier, and, maybe, a few ferrets, and
-wish to bestow a present upon him, the memory of which would last
-throughout his life, we could not do better than advise him to purchase
-this most pleasantly-written book and bestow it upon him.”--_Field._
-
- =THE SERMON ON THE MOUNT.= By the Right Rev. CHARLES GORE, D.D.,
- LL.D., Bishop of Oxford.
-
-Cultured and scholarly, and yet simple and luminous, eloquent in tone
-and graceful in diction, practical and stimulating, it is far and away
-the best exposition of the Sermon on the Mount that has yet appeared.
-
- =THE HOUSE OF QUIET. An Autobiography.= By A. C. BENSON.
-
-“The House of Quiet” is an autobiography, and something more--a series
-of very charming essays on people and life. The writer has placed
-himself in the chair of an invalid, an individual possessed of full
-mental vigour and free from bodily pain, but compelled by physical
-weakness to shirk the rough and tumble of a careless, unheeding,
-work-a-day world. He writes with a pen dipped in the milk of human
-kindness, and the result is a book to read time and again.
-
- =THE THREAD OF GOLD.= By A. C. BENSON.
-
-_The Guardian_ says:--“The style of the writing is equally simple and
-yet dignified; from beginning to end an ease of movement charms the
-reader. The book is abundantly suggestive.... The work is that of a
-scholar and a thinker, quick to catch a vagrant emotion, and should be
-read, as it was evidently written, in leisure and solitude. It covers a
-wide range--art, nature, country life, human character, poetry and the
-drama, morals and religion.”
-
- =THE PAINTERS OF FLORENCE. From the 13th to the 16th Centuries.= By
- JULIA CARTWRIGHT (Mrs. ADY). With Illustrations.
-
-Mrs. Ady is a competent and gifted writer on Italian painting, and
-presents in these 350 pages an excellent history of the splendid art
-and artists of Florence during the golden period from Cimabue and
-Giotto to Andrea del Sarto and Michelangelo.
-
- =A LADY'S LIFE IN THE ROCKY MOUNTAINS.= By Mrs. BISHOP (ISABELLA L.
- BIRD). With Illustrations.
-
-_The Irish Times_ says:--“‘A Lady's Life in the Rocky Mountains’ needs
-no introduction to a public who have known and admired Mrs. Bishop
-(Isabella L. Bird) as a fearless traveller in the days when it was
-something of an achievement for a woman to undertake long and remote
-journeys.”
-
- =THE LIFE OF DAVID LIVINGSTONE.= By WILLIAM GARDEN BLAIKIE. With
- Portrait.
-
-This is the standard biography of the great missionary who will for
-ever stand pre-eminent among African travellers.
-
- =DEEDS OF NAVAL DARING; or, Anecdotes of the British Navy.= By
- EDWARD GIFFARD.
-
-This work contains ninety-three anecdotes, told in everyday language,
-of such traits of courage and feats of individual daring as may best
-serve to illustrate the generally received idea of the British sailor's
-character for “courage verging on temerity.”
-
- =SINAI AND PALESTINE in connection with their History.= By the late
- DEAN STANLEY. With Maps.
-
-“There is no need, at this time of day, to praise the late Dean
-Stanley's fascinating story of his travels in Palestine. It is enough
-to say that here Mr. Murray has given us, for the sum of one shilling
-net, a delightful reprint of that charming book, with maps and plans
-and the author's original advertisement and prefaces. We would
-especially commend this cheap storehouse of history, tradition, and
-observation to Bible students.”--_Dundee Courier._
-
- =THE NATURALIST ON THE RIVER AMAZONS.= A Record of Adventures,
- Habits of Animals, Sketches of Brazilian and Indian Life, and
- Aspects of Nature under the Equator, during Eleven Years
- of Travel. By H. W. BATES, F.R.S. Numerous Illustrations.
-
-A most readable record of adventures, sketches of Brazilian and Indian
-life, habits of animals, and aspects of nature under the Equator during
-eleven years of travel.
-
- * * * * *
-
-WORKS OF SAMUEL SMILES.
-
-Few books in the whole history of literature have had such wide
-popularity or such healthy and stimulating effect as the works of
-Samuel Smiles during the last half-century. How great men have attained
-to greatness and successful men achieved success is the subject of
-these enthralling volumes, which are now brought within the reach of
-all.
-
- =SELF-HELP. With Illustrations of Conduct and Perseverance.= With
- Portrait.
-
- =LIFE AND LABOUR; or, Characteristics of Men of Industry, Culture,
- and Genius.=
-
- =CHARACTER. A Book of Noble Characteristics.= With Frontispiece.
-
- =JAMES NASMYTH, Engineer and Inventor of the Steam Hammer.= An
- Autobiography. Portrait and Illustrations.
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Note:
-
-Variable spelling and hyphenation have been retained. Minor punctuation
-inconsistencies have been silently repaired.
-
-Corrections.
-
-The first line indicates the original, the second the correction.
-
-p. 72:
-
- is “What the Old Man does is alway Right.”
- is “What the Old Man does is always Right.”
-
-p. 91:
-
- I remember the surprise which which, when I had grown somewhat older
- I remember the surprise which, when I had grown somewhat older
-
-p. 126:
-
- and practice will make make you more and more critical
- and practice will make you more and more critical
-
-p. 234:
-
- (From The Girl from the Marsh Croft. Selma Lagelöf. 12581. p. 99.)
- (From The Girl from the Marsh Croft. Selma Lagerlöf. 12581. p. 99.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Art of Story-Telling, by Marie L. Shedlock
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ART OF STORY-TELLING ***
-
-***** This file should be named 61340-0.txt or 61340-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/1/3/4/61340/
-
-Produced by MFR, Eleni Christofaki and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/61340-0.zip b/old/61340-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5c1128e..0000000
--- a/old/61340-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61340-h.zip b/old/61340-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 3a9dbd0..0000000
--- a/old/61340-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61340-h/61340-h.htm b/old/61340-h/61340-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index b45e016..0000000
--- a/old/61340-h/61340-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11961 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Art of Story-Telling, by MARIE L. SHEDLOCK.
- </title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/i_title.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {margin: auto 25%;}
-
- h1,h2,h3,h4 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p { margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em; text-indent: 1em;
-}
-.noin {text-indent: 0;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.p6 {margin-top: 6em;}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 4em; visibility: hidden;
-page-break-before: always;}
-hr.tb {width: 50%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em; visibility: visible;
-margin-left: 25%; margin-right: 25%; border-top: 1px solid black;}
-ul {list-style-type: none;}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
-/* visibility: hidden; */ /* define the position */
-position: absolute; right: 3%; margin-right: 0em;
-text-align: right; /* remove any special formating that could be inherited */
-font-style: normal; font-weight: normal; font-variant: normal;
-letter-spacing: 0em; text-decoration: none; text-indent: 0em;
-font-size: x-small; /* never wrap this */ white-space: nowrap;}
-.pagenum span { /* do not show text that is meant for non-css version*/
-visibility: hidden;}
-.pagenum a {display: inline-block; color: #808080;
-padding: 1px 4px 1px 4px;}
-
-ul {list-style-type: none;}
-ul.index { list-style-type: none; }
-li { list-style-type: none; }
-li.isub1 {text-indent: 1em;}
-li.isub2 {text-indent: 2em;}
-
-table {margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;}
- .tdr {text-align: right;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.u {text-decoration: underline;}
-
-.hang {text-indent: -1em; margin-left: 1em;}
-
-.err {border-bottom: thin dotted red;}
-
-.figcenter {margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em; margin-left: auto;
-margin-right: auto; clear: both; max-width: 100%; /* div no wider than
-screen, even when screen is narrow */ text-align: center;}
-
-img {max-width: 100%; border: none}
-
-.footnotes {border: none;}
-.footnote {margin: 1em 4em; font-size: 1em;}
-.footnote .label {position: relative; bottom: 0.4em;
- vertical-align: baseline; font-size: 80%; text-decoration: none;}
-.fnanchor {vertical-align: super; bottom: 0.4em;
- font-size: 80%; white-space: nowrap;}
-
-.poem {display: inline-block; margin: auto;
- line-height: 1.2em; text-align: left;}
-.poem .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poem .i0 {padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem .i2 {padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -2em;}
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;
- color: black; font-size: .9em; padding: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 5em; font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-@media handheld
-{
-
-body {margin-left: 2%; margin-right: 2%; margin-top: 1%; margin-bottom: 1%;}
-p { margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em;
-text-align: justify; text-indent: 2em; }
-.pagenum {display: none;}
-ul {list-style-type: none;}
-ul.index { list-style-type: none; }
-li { list-style-type: none; }
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Art of Story-Telling, by Marie L. Shedlock
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Art of Story-Telling
-
-Author: Marie L. Shedlock
-
-Commentator: Professor John Adams
-
-Release Date: February 8, 2020 [EBook #61340]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ART OF STORY-TELLING ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by MFR, Eleni Christofaki and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="transnote">
-<h3>Transcriber's Note.</h3>
-
-<p>A list of the changes made can be found at the <a href="#Transcribers_Note">end of the book</a>.
-</p></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<h1>THE ART OF STORY-TELLING</h1>
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/i_cover.jpg" width="400" height="621" alt="cover" />
-</div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" width="400" height="640" alt="title" />
-</div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-<p class="center">
-<big><b>THE ART
-OF STORY-TELLING</b></big></p>
-
-<p class="center p2"><span class="smcap">By</span> MARIE L. SHEDLOCK</p>
-
-<p class="center p2"><small>WITH A PREFACE BY</small>
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Professor</span> JOHN ADAMS
-<br />
-CHAIR OF EDUCATION, UNIVERSITY OF LONDON</p>
-
-<p class="center p4">LONDON<br />
-JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET, W.<br />
-1915</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p class="center p6">ALL RIGHTS RESERVED</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-<table summary="contents">
-<tr><td colspan="3">&nbsp;</td><td class="tdr">PAGE</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Preface</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_vii">vii</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Introduction</span> </td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_1">1</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>Chapter</td> <td class="tdr">I.</td> <td><span class="smcap">The Difficulties of Story-Telling connected
-with Libraries and Clubs</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_6">6</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">II.</td> <td><span class="smcap">The Essentials of Story-Telling</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_25">25</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">III.</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">The Artifices of Story-Telling</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_32">32</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">IV.</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">Elements to Avoid</span> </td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_42">42</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">V.</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">Elements to Seek</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_61">61</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">VI.</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">How to Obtain and Maintain the Effect</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_89">89</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">VII.</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">Questions and Answers</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_117">117</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>”&nbsp;</td> <td class="tdr">VIII.</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">List of Stories Told in Full</span> </td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_138">138</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td colspan="2">&nbsp;</td>
-<td><span class="smcap">List of Titles of Individual Stories and
-of Collections of Stories</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_210">210</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Index</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_235">235</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">vii</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>PREFACE.</h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Professor John Adams</span>, <br />
-
-<i>Chair of Education, University of London</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">Those</span> who do not love schoolmasters tell us that the
-man who can do something supremely well contents
-himself with doing it, while the man who cannot do
-it very well must needs set about showing other
-people how it should be done. The masters in any
-craft are prone to magnify their gifts by maintaining
-that the poet&mdash;or the stove-pipe maker&mdash;is born, not
-made. Teachers will accordingly be gratified to find
-in the following pages the work of a lady who is at
-the same time a brilliant executant and an admirable
-expositor. Miss Shedlock stands in the very first
-rank of story-tellers. No one can claim with greater
-justice that the gift of Scheherazade is hers by birthright.
-Yet she has recognised that even the highest
-natural gifts may be well or ill manipulated: that in
-short the poet, not to speak of the stove-pipe maker,
-must take a little more trouble than to be merely born.</p>
-
-<p>It is well when the master of a craft begins to take
-thought and to discover what underlies his method.
-It does not, of course, happen that every master is
-able to analyse the processes that secure him success
-in his art. For after all the expositor has to be born
-as well as the executant; and it is perhaps one of the
-main causes of the popularity of the born-not-made
-theory that so few people are born both good artists
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">viii</a></span>
-and good expositors. Miss Shedlock has had this
-rare good fortune, as all those who have both read her
-book and heard her exemplify her principles on the
-platform will readily admit.</p>
-
-<p>Let no one who lacks the gift of story-telling hope
-that the following pages will confer it. Like Comenius
-and like the schoolmaster in Shakespeare, Miss
-Shedlock is entitled to claim a certain capacity or
-ingenuity in her pupils, before she can promise
-effective help. But on the other hand let no successful
-story-teller form the impression that he has nothing
-to learn from the exposition here given. The best
-craftsmen are those who are not only most able but
-most willing to learn from a fellow master. The most
-inexperienced story-teller who has the love of the art
-in his soul will gather a full harvest from Miss
-Shedlock's teaching, while the most experienced and
-skilful will not go empty away.</p>
-
-<p>The reader will discover that the authoress is first
-and last an artist. “Dramatic joy” is put in the
-forefront when she is enumerating the aims of the
-story-teller. But her innate gifts as a teacher will not
-be suppressed. She objects to “didactic emphasis”
-and yet cannot say too much in favour of the moral
-effect that may be produced by the use of the story.
-She raises here the whole problem of direct <i>versus</i>
-indirect moral instruction, and decides in no uncertain
-sound in favour of the indirect form. There is a great
-deal to be said on the other side, but this is not the
-place to say it. On the wide question Miss Shedlock
-has on her side the great body of public opinion
-among professional teachers. The orthodox master
-proclaims that he is, of course, a moral instructor, but
-adds that in the schoolroom the less <i>said</i> about the
-matter the better. Like the authoress, the orthodox
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">ix</a></span>
-teacher has much greater faith in example than in
-precept: so much faith indeed that in many schools
-precept does not get the place it deserves. But in the
-matter of story-telling the artistic element introduces
-something that is not necessarily involved in ordinary
-school work. For better or for worse modern opinion
-is against the explicitly stated lesson to be drawn from
-any tale that is told. Most people agree with Mark
-Twain's condemnation of “the moral that wags its
-crippled tail at the end of most school-girls' essays.”</p>
-
-<p>The justification of the old-fashioned “moral” was
-not artistic but didactic. It embodied the determination
-of the story-teller to see that his pupils got the
-full benefit of the lesson involved. If the moral is to
-be cut out, the story-teller must be sure that the lesson
-is so clearly conveyed in the text that any further
-elaboration would be felt as an impertinent addition.
-Whately assures us that men prefer metaphors to
-similes because in the simile the point is baldly stated,
-whereas in the metaphor the reader or hearer has to
-be his own interpreter. All education is in the last
-resort self-education, and Miss Shedlock sees to it
-that her stories compel her hearers to make the
-application she desires.</p>
-
-<p>In two other points modern opinion is prepared to
-give our authoress rein where our forefathers would
-have been inclined to restrain her. The sense of
-humour has come to its proper place in our schoolrooms&mdash;pupils'
-humour, be it understood, for there
-always was scope enough claimed for the humour of
-the teacher. So with the imagination. The time is
-past when this “mode of being conscious” was
-looked at askance in school. Parents and teachers
-no longer speak contemptuously about “the busy
-faculty,” and quote Genesis in its condemnation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_x" id="Page_x">x</a></span>
-
-Miss Shedlock has been well advised to keep to her
-legitimate subject instead of wandering afield in a
-Teutonic excursion into the realms of folk-lore. What
-parents and teachers want is the story as here and now
-existing and an account of how best to manipulate it.
-This want the book now before us admirably meets.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-JOHN ADAMS.
-</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">1</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>INTRODUCTION.</h2>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">Story-telling</span> is almost the oldest Art in the world&mdash;the
-first conscious form of literary communication.
-In the East it still survives, and it is not an uncommon
-thing to see a crowd at a street-corner held by the
-simple narration of a story. There are signs in the
-West of a growing interest in this ancient art, and we
-may yet live to see the renaissance of the troubadours
-and the minstrels whose appeal will then rival that
-of the mob orator or itinerant politician. One of the
-surest signs of a belief in the educational power of the
-story is its introduction into the curriculum of the
-Training-College and the classes of the Elementary
-and Secondary Schools. It is just at the time when
-the imagination is most keen&mdash;the mind being unhampered
-by accumulation of facts&mdash;that stories appeal
-most vividly and are retained for all time.</p>
-
-<p>It is to be hoped that some day stories will only
-be told to school groups by experts who have devoted
-special time and preparation to the art of telling them.
-It is a great fallacy to suppose that the systematic
-study of story-telling destroys the spontaneity of
-narrative. After a long experience, I find the exact
-converse to be true, namely, that it is only when one
-has overcome the mechanical difficulties that one can
-“let oneself go” in the dramatic interest of the
-story.</p>
-
-<p>By the expert story-teller I do not mean the professional
-elocutionist. The name&mdash;wrongly enough&mdash;has
-become associated in the mind of the public with
-persons who beat their breast, tear their hair, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">2</a></span>
-declaim blood-curdling episodes. A decade or more
-ago, the drawing-room reciter was of this type, and
-was rapidly becoming the bugbear of social gatherings.
-The difference between the stilted reciter and
-the simple story-teller is perhaps best illustrated by
-an episode in Hans C. Andersen's immortal story of
-the Nightingale.<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> The real Nightingale and the
-artificial Nightingale have been bidden by the
-Emperor to unite their forces and to sing a duet at
-a Court function. The duet turns out most disastrously,
-and whilst the artificial Nightingale is singing
-his one solo for the thirty-third time, the real
-Nightingale flies out of the window back to the green
-wood&mdash;a true artist, instinctively choosing his right
-atmosphere. But the bandmaster&mdash;symbol of the
-pompous pedagogue&mdash;in trying to soothe the outraged
-feelings of the courtiers, says, “Because, you see,
-Ladies and Gentlemen, and, above all, Your Imperial
-Majesty, with the real nightingale you never can tell
-what you will hear, but in the artificial nightingale
-everything is decided beforehand. So it is, and so
-it must remain. It cannot be otherwise.”</p>
-
-<p>And as in the case of the two nightingales, so it is
-with the stilted reciter and the simple narrator: one
-is busy displaying the machinery, showing “how the
-tunes go”&mdash;the other is anxious to conceal the art.
-Simplicity should be the keynote of story-telling, but
-(and here the comparison with the Nightingale breaks
-down) it is a simplicity which comes after much
-training in self-control, and much hard work in
-overcoming the difficulties which beset the presentation.</p>
-
-<p>I do not mean that there are not born story-tellers
-who <i>could</i> hold an audience without preparation, but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">3</a></span>
-they are so rare in number that we can afford to
-neglect them in our general consideration; for this
-work is dedicated to the average story-tellers anxious
-to make the best use of their dramatic ability, and it
-is to them that I present my plea for special study and
-preparation before telling a story to a group of
-children&mdash;that is, if they wish for the far-reaching
-effects I shall speak of later on. Only the preparation
-must be of a much less stereotyped nature than that
-by which the ordinary reciters are trained for their
-career.</p>
-
-<p>Some years ago, when I was in the States, I was
-asked to put into the form of lectures my views upon
-the educational value of telling stories. A sudden
-inspiration seized me. I began to cherish a dream of
-long hours to be spent in the British Museum, the
-Congressional Library in Washington and the Public
-Library at Boston&mdash;and this is the only portion of
-the dream which has been realized. I planned an
-elaborate scheme of research work which was to result
-in a magnificent (if musty) philological treatise. I
-thought of trying to discover by long and patient
-researches what species of lullaby were crooned by
-Egyptian mothers to their babes, and what were the
-elementary dramatic poems in vogue among Assyrian
-nursemaids which were the prototypes of “Little Jack
-Horner,” “Dickory, Dickory Dock,” and other
-nursery classics. I intended to follow up the study
-of these ancient documents by making an appendix
-of modern variants, showing what progress we had
-made&mdash;if any&mdash;among modern nations.</p>
-
-<p>But there came to me suddenly one day the remembrance
-of a scene from Racine's “Plaideurs” in
-which the counsel for the defence, eager to show how
-fundamental is his knowledge, begins his speech:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">4</a></span>
-
-“Before the Creation of the World”&mdash;And the
-Judge (with a touch of weariness tempered by humour)
-suggests:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Let us pass on to the Deluge.”</p>
-
-<p>And thus I, too, have “passed on to the Deluge.”
-I have abandoned an account of the origin and past
-of stories which at the best would only have displayed
-a little recently-acquired book-knowledge. When I
-thought of the number of scholars who could treat this
-part of the question so infinitely better than myself,
-I realized how much wiser it would be&mdash;though the
-task is much more humdrum&mdash;to deal with the present
-possibilities of story-telling for our generation of
-parents and teachers, and, leaving out the folk-lore
-side, devote myself to the story itself.</p>
-
-<p>My objects in urging the use of stories in the
-education of children are at least five-fold:</p>
-
-<p><i>First</i>, to give them dramatic joy, for which they
-have a natural craving. <i>Secondly</i>, to develop a sense
-of humour, which is really a sense of proportion.
-<i>Thirdly</i>, to correct certain tendencies by showing the
-consequences in the career of the hero in the story.
-(Of this motive the children must be quite unconscious,
-and there must be no didactic emphasis.) <i>Fourthly</i>,
-by means of example, not precept, to present such
-ideals as will sooner or later (I care not which) be
-translated into action. <i>Fifthly</i>, to develop the
-imagination, which really takes in all the other points.</p>
-
-<p>So much for the purely educational side of the book.
-But the art of story-telling, quite apart from the
-subject, appeals not only to the educational world or
-to parents as parents, but also to a wider outside
-public, who may be interested in the purely human
-point of view.</p>
-
-<p>In great contrast to the lofty scheme I had originally<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">5</a></span>
-proposed to myself, I now simply place before all
-those who are interested in the Art of Story-telling in
-any form the practical experience I have had in my
-travels across the United States and through England;
-and, because I am confining myself to personal
-experience which must of necessity be limited, I am
-very anxious not to appear dogmatic or to give the
-impression that I wish to lay down the law on the
-subject. But I hope my readers may profit by my
-errors, improve on my methods, and thus help to bring
-about the revival of an almost lost art&mdash;one which
-appeals more directly and more stirringly than any
-other method to the majority of listeners.</p>
-
-<p>In Sir Philip Sidney's “Defence of Poesy” we
-find these words:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Forsooth he cometh to you with a tale, which
-holdeth children from play, and old men from the
-chimney-corner, and pretending no more, doth
-intend the winning of the mind from wickedness
-to virtue even as the child is often brought to take
-most wholesome things by hiding them in such
-other as have a pleasant taste.”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p class="right">
-MARIE L. SHEDLOCK.
-</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> See p. <a href="#Page_138">138</a>.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">6</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER I.</h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">The Difficulties of the Story.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin">I <span class="smcap">propose</span> to deal in this chapter with the difficulties
-or dangers which beset the path of the Story-teller,
-because, until we have overcome these, we cannot hope
-for the finished and artistic presentation which is to
-bring out the full value of the story.</p>
-
-<p>The difficulties are many, and yet they ought not to
-discourage the would-be narrators, but only show them
-how all-important is the preparation for the story, if
-it is to have the desired effect.</p>
-
-<p>I propose to illustrate by concrete examples, thereby
-hoping to achieve a two-fold result: one to fix the
-subject more clearly in the mind of the student&mdash;the
-other to use the Art of Story-telling to explain itself.</p>
-
-<p>I have chosen one or two instances from my own
-personal experience. The grave mistakes made in my
-own case may serve as a warning to others, who will
-find, however, that experience is the best teacher. For
-positive work, in the long run, we generally find out
-our own method. On the negative side, however, it
-is useful to have certain pitfalls pointed out to us, in
-order that we may save time by avoiding them: it is
-for this reason that I sound a note of warning. These
-are:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>I.&mdash;<i>The danger of side issues.</i> An inexperienced
-story-teller is exposed to the temptation of breaking
-off from the main dramatic interest in a short exciting
-story, in order to introduce a side issue, which is often
-interesting and helpful, but should be reserved for a
-longer and less dramatic story. If the interest turns
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">7</a></span>
-on some dramatic moment, the action must be quick
-and uninterrupted, or it will lose half its effect.</p>
-
-<p>I had been telling a class of young children the
-story of Polyphemus and Ulysses, and, just at the
-most dramatic moment in it, some impulse prompted
-me to go off on a side issue to describe the personal
-appearance of Ulysses.</p>
-
-<p>The children were visibly bored, but with polite
-indifference they listened to my elaborate description
-of the hero. If I had given them an actual description
-from Homer, I believe that the strength of the
-language would have appealed to their imagination
-(all the more strongly because they might not have
-understood the individual words) and have lessened
-their disappointment at the dramatic issue being
-postponed; but I trusted to my own lame verbal
-efforts, and signally failed. Attention flagged, fidgeting
-began, the atmosphere was rapidly becoming
-spoiled, in spite of the patience and toleration still
-shown by the children. At last, however, one little
-girl in the front row, as spokeswoman for the class,
-suddenly said: “If you please, before you go any
-further, do you mind telling us whether, after all, that
-Poly ... (slight pause) that (final attempt)
-<i>Polyanthus</i> died?”</p>
-
-<p>Now, the remembrance of this question has been of
-extreme use to me in my career as a story-teller. I
-have realized that in a short dramatic story the mind
-of the listeners must be set at ease with regard to the
-ultimate fate of the special “Polyanthus” who takes
-the centre of the stage.</p>
-
-<p>I remember too the despair of a little boy at a
-dramatic representation of “Little Red Riding-Hood,”
-when that little person delayed the thrilling catastrophe
-with the Wolf, by singing a pleasant song on her way
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">8</a></span>
-through the wood. “Oh, why,” said the little boy,
-“does she not get on?” And I quite shared his
-impatience.</p>
-
-<p>This warning is only necessary in connection with
-the short dramatic narrative. There are occasions
-when we can well afford to offer short descriptions for
-the sake of literary style, and for the purpose of
-enlarging the vocabulary of the child. I have found,
-however, in these cases, it is well to take the children
-into your confidence&mdash;warning them that they are to
-expect nothing particularly exciting in the way of
-dramatic event: they will then settle down with a
-freer mind (though the mood may include a touch of
-resignation) to the description you are about to offer
-them.<a name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a></p>
-
-<p>II.&mdash;<i>The danger of altering the story to suit special
-occasions.</i> This is done sometimes from extreme
-conscientiousness, sometimes from sheer ignorance of
-the ways of children; it is the desire to protect them
-from knowledge which they already possess and with
-which they (equally conscientious) are apt to “turn
-and rend” the narrator. I remember once when I
-was telling the story of the siege of Troy to very
-young children, I suddenly felt anxious lest there
-should be anything in the story of the Rape of Helen
-not altogether suitable for the average age of the
-class&mdash;namely, nine years. I threw therefore, a
-domestic colouring over the whole subject, and
-presented an imaginary conversation between Paris
-and Helen, in which Paris tried to persuade Helen
-that she was a strong-minded woman, thrown away
-on a limited society in Sparta, and that she should
-come away and visit some of the institutions of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">9</a></span>
-world with him, which would doubtless prove a
-mutually instructive journey.<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-I then gave the
-children the view taken by Herodotus that Helen
-never went to Troy, but was detained in Egypt. The
-children were much thrilled by the story, and
-responded most eagerly when, in my inexperience, I
-invited them to reproduce for the next day the tale
-I had just told them.</p>
-
-<p>A small child in the class presented me, as you will
-see, with the ethical problem from which I had so
-laboriously protected <i>her</i>. The essay ran:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p>“Once upon a time the King of Troy's son was
-called Paris. And he went over to <i>Greace</i> to see
-what it was like. And here he saw the beautiful
-Helen<i>er</i>, and likewise her husband Menela<i>yus</i>.
-And one day, Menelayus went out hunting, and left
-Paris and Helener alone, and Paris said: ‘Do you
-not feel <i>dul</i> in this <i>palis</i>?’ And Helener said: ‘I
-feel very dull in this <i>pallice</i>,<a name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>
-and Paris said:
-'Come away and see the world with me.’ So they
-<i>sliped</i> off together, and they came to the King of
-Egypt, and <i>he</i> said: ‘Who <i>is</i> the young lady?’
-So Paris told him. ‘But,’ said the King, ‘it is not
-<i>propper</i> for you to go off with other people's <i>wifes</i>.
-So <i>Helener</i> shall stop here.’ Paris stamped his
-foot. When Menelayus got home, <i>he</i> stamped his
-foot. And he called round him all his soldiers, and
-they stood round Troy for eleven years. At last
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">10</a></span>
-they thought it was no use <i>standing</i> any longer, so
-they built a wooden horse in memory of Helener
-and the Trojans and it was taken into the town.”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>Now the mistake I made in my presentation was to
-lay particular stress on the reason for elopement by
-my careful readjustment, which really called more
-attention to the episode than was necessary for the
-age of my audience; and evidently caused confusion
-in the minds of some of the children who knew the
-story in its more accurate original form.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst travelling in the States, I was provided with
-a delightful appendix to this story. I had been telling
-Miss Longfellow and her sister the little girl's version
-of the Siege of Troy, and Mrs. Thorpe made the
-following comment, with the American humour whose
-dryness adds so much to its value:</p>
-
-<p>“I never realised before,” she said, “how glad the
-Greeks must have been to sit down even inside a
-horse, when they had been <i>standing</i> for eleven years.”</p>
-
-<p>III.&mdash;<i>The danger of introducing unfamiliar words.</i>
-This is the very opposite danger of the one to which
-I have just alluded; it is the taking for granted that
-children are acquainted with the meaning of certain
-words upon which turns some important point in the
-story. We must not introduce (without at least a
-passing explanation) words which, if not rightly
-understood, would entirely alter the picture we wish
-to present.</p>
-
-<p>I had once promised to tell stories to an audience of
-Irish peasants, and I should like to state here that,
-though my travels have brought me into touch with
-almost every kind of audience, I have never found
-one where the atmosphere is so “self-prepared” as in
-that of a group of Irish peasants. To speak to them
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">11</a></span>
-(especially on the subject of Fairy-tales) is like playing
-on a delicate harp: the response is so quick and the
-sympathy is so keen. Of course the subject of Fairy-tales
-is one which is completely familiar to them and
-comes into their every-day life. They have a feeling
-of awe with regard to fairies, which in some parts of
-Ireland is very deep.<a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a></p>
-
-<p>On this particular occasion I had been warned by
-an artist friend who had kindly promised to sing
-songs between the stories, that my audience would be
-of varying age and almost entirely illiterate. Many
-of the older men and women, who could neither read
-nor write, had never been beyond their native village.
-I was warned to be very simple in my language and
-to explain any difficult words which might occur in
-the particular Indian story I had chosen for that night,
-namely, “The Tiger, The Jackal and the Brahman.”<a name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a>
-It happened that the older portion of the audience had
-scarcely ever seen even the picture of wild animals.
-I profited by the advice, and offered a word of explanation
-with regard to the Tiger and the Jackal. I
-also explained the meaning of the word Brahman&mdash;at
-a proper distance, however, lest the audience should
-class him with wild animals. I then went on with
-my story, in the course of which I mentioned the
-Buffalo. In spite of the warning I had received, I
-found it impossible not to believe that the name of
-this animal would be familiar to any audience. I
-therefore went on with the sentence containing this
-word, and ended it thus: “And then the Brahman
-went a little further and met an old Buffalo turning a
-wheel.”</p>
-
-<p>The next day, whilst walking down the village
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">12</a></span>
-street, I entered into conversation with a thirteen-year-old
-girl who had been in my audience the night before,
-and who began at once to repeat in her own words
-the Indian story in question. When she came to the
-particular sentence I have just quoted, I was greatly
-startled to hear <i>her</i> version, which ran thus: “And
-the priest went on a little further, and he met another
-old gentleman pushing a wheelbarrow.” I stopped
-her at once, and not being able to identify the sentence
-as part of the story I had told, I questioned her a
-little more closely. I found that the word Buffalo
-had evidently conveyed to her mind an old “<i>buffer</i>”
-whose name was “Lo” (probably taken to be an
-Indian form of appellation, to be treated with tolerance
-though it might not be Irish in sound). Then, not
-knowing of any wheel more familiarly than that
-attached to a barrow, the young narrator completed
-the picture in her own mind&mdash;which, doubtless, was
-a vivid one&mdash;but one must admit that it had lost
-something of the Indian atmosphere which I had
-intended to gather about it.</p>
-
-<p>IV.&mdash;<i>The danger of claiming the co-operation of
-the class by means of questions.</i> The danger in this
-case is more serious for the teacher than the child,
-who rather enjoys the process and displays a fatal
-readiness to give any sort of answer if only he can
-play a part in the conversation. If we could depend
-on the children giving the kind of answer we expect,
-all might go well, and the danger would be lessened;
-but children have a perpetual way of frustrating our
-hopes in this direction, and of landing us in unexpected
-bypaths from which it is not always easy to
-return to the main road without a very violent reaction.
-As illustrative of this, I quote from “The Madness of
-Philip,” by Josephine Dodge Daskam Bacon, a truly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">13</a></span>
-delightful essay on Child Psychology, in the guise
-of the lightest of stories.</p>
-
-<p>The scene takes place in a Kindergarten&mdash;where a
-bold and fearless visitor has undertaken to tell a story
-on the spur of the moment to a group of restless
-children.</p>
-
-<p>She opens thus: “Yesterday, children, as I came
-out of my yard, what do you think I saw?”</p>
-
-<p>The elaborately concealed surprise in store was so
-obvious that Marantha rose to the occasion and
-suggested “an el'phunt.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, no. Why should I see an elephant in my
-yard? It was not <i>nearly</i> so big as that&mdash;it was a
-little thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“A fish,” ventured Eddy Brown, whose eye fell
-upon the aquarium in the corner. The raconteuse
-smiled patiently.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, how could a fish, a live fish, get into my
-front yard?”</p>
-
-<p>“A dead fish,” says Eddy. He had never been
-known to relinquish voluntarily an idea.</p>
-
-<p>“No; it was a little kitten,” said the story-teller
-decidedly. “A little white kitten. She was standing
-right near a big puddle of water. Now, what else do
-you think I saw?”</p>
-
-<p>“Another kitten,” suggests Marantha, conservatively.</p>
-
-<p>“No; it was a big Newfoundland dog. He saw the
-little kitten near the water. Now, cats don't like
-water, do they? What do they like?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mice,” said Joseph Zukoffsky abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, yes, they do; but there were no mice in
-my yard. I'm sure you know what I mean. If they
-don't like <i>water</i>, <i>what</i> do they like?”</p>
-
-<p>“Milk,” cried Sarah Fuller confidently.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">14</a></span>
-
-“They like a dry place,” said Mrs. R. B. Smith.
-“Now, what do you suppose the dog did?”</p>
-
-<p>It may be that successive failures had disheartened
-the listeners. It may be that the very range of choice
-presented to them and the dog alike dazzled their
-imagination. At all events, they made no answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Nobody knows what the dog did?” repeated the
-story-teller encouragingly. “What would you do if
-you saw a little kitten like that?”</p>
-
-<p>And Philip remarked gloomily:</p>
-
-<p>“I'd pull its tail.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what do the rest of you think? I hope you
-are not as cruel as that little boy.”</p>
-
-<p>A jealous desire to share Philip's success prompted
-the quick response:</p>
-
-<p>“I'd pull it too.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, the reason of the total failure of this story
-was the inability to draw any real response from the
-children, partly because of the hopeless vagueness of
-the questions, partly because, there being no time for
-reflection, the children said the first thing that comes
-into their head without any reference to their real
-thoughts on the subject.</p>
-
-<p>I cannot imagine anything less like the enlightened
-methods of the best Kindergarten teaching. Had
-Mrs. R. B. Smith been a real, and not a fictional,
-person, it would certainly have been her last appearance
-as a <i>raconteuse</i> in this educational institution.</p>
-
-<p>V.&mdash;<i>The difficulty of gauging the effect of a story
-upon the audience.</i> This rises from lack of observation
-and experience; it is the want of these qualities
-which leads to the adoption of such a method as I
-have just presented. We learn in time that want of
-expression on the faces of the audience and want of
-any kind of external response does not always mean
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">15</a></span>
-either lack of interest or attention. There is often
-real interest deep down, but no power, or perhaps no
-wish, to display that interest, which is deliberately
-concealed at times so as to protect oneself from
-questions which may be put.</p>
-
-<p>I was speaking on one occasion in Davenport in
-the State of Iowa. I had been engaged to deliver a
-lecture to adults on the “Fun and Philosophy” of
-Hans C. Andersen's Fairy Tales. When I arrived
-at the Hall, I was surprised and somewhat annoyed
-to find four small boys sitting in the front row. They
-seemed to be about ten years old, and, knowing pretty
-well from experience what boys of that age usually
-like, I felt rather anxious as to what would happen,
-and I must confess that for once I wished children
-had the useful faculty, developed in adults, of successfully
-concealing their feelings. Any hopes I had
-conceived on this point were speedily shattered. After
-listening to the first few sentences, two of the boys
-evidently recognised the futility of bestowing any
-further attention on the subject, and consoled themselves
-for the dulness of the occasion by starting a
-“scrap.” I watched this proceeding for a minute
-with great interest, but soon recalled the fact that I
-had not been engaged in the capacity of spectator, so,
-addressing the antagonists in as severe a manner as
-I could assume, I said: “Boys, I shall have to ask
-you to go to the back of the hall.” They responded
-with much alacrity, and evident gratitude, and even
-exceeded my instructions by leaving the hall
-altogether.</p>
-
-<p>My sympathy was now transferred to the two
-remaining boys, who sat motionless, and one of them
-never took his eyes off me during the whole lecture.
-I feared lest they might be simply cowed by the treatment
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">16</a></span>
-meted out to their companions, whose joy in
-their release had been somewhat tempered by the
-disgrace of ejection. I felt sorry that I could not
-provide these model boys with a less ignominious
-retreat, and I cast about in my mind how I could make
-it up to them. At the end of the lecture, I addressed
-them personally and, congratulating them on their
-quiet behaviour, said that, as I feared the main part
-of the lecture could scarcely have interested them, I
-should conclude, not with the story I had intended
-for the adults, but with a special story for them, as a
-reward for their good behaviour. I then told Hans
-C. Andersen's “Jack the Dullard,” which I have
-always found to be a great favourite with boys. These
-particular youths smiled very faintly, and left any
-expression of enthusiasm to the adult portion of the
-audience. My hostess, who was eager to know what
-the boys thought, enquired of them how they liked the
-lecture. The elder one said guardedly: “I liked it
-very well, but I was <i>piqued</i> at her underrating my
-appreciation of Hans Andersen.”</p>
-
-<p>I was struck with the entirely erroneous impression
-I had received of the effect I was producing upon the
-boys. I was thankful at least that a passing allusion
-to Schopenhauer in my lecture possibly provided
-some interest for this “young old” child.</p>
-
-<p>I felt somewhat in the position of a Doctor of
-Divinity in Canada to whom a small child confided
-the fact that she had written a parody on “The Three
-Fishers,” but that it had dropped into the fire. The
-Doctor made some facetious rejoinder about the
-impertinence of the flames in consuming her manuscript.
-The child reproved him in these grave words:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">17</a></span>
-“Nature, you know, <i>is</i> Nature, and her laws are
-inviolable.”</p>
-
-<p>VI.&mdash;<i>The danger of over illustration.</i> After long
-experience, and after considering the effect produced
-on children when pictures are shown to them during
-the narration, I have come to the conclusion that the
-appeal to the eye and the ear at the same time is of
-doubtful value, and has, generally speaking, a
-distracting effect; the concentration on one channel
-of communication attracts and holds the attention
-more completely. I was confirmed in this theory
-when I addressed an audience of blind people for the
-first time, and noticed how closely they attended, and
-how much easier it seemed to them, because they were
-so completely “undistracted by the sights around
-them.”<a name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a></p>
-
-<p>I have often suggested to young teachers two
-experiments in support of this theory. They are not
-practical experiments, nor could they be repeated
-often with the same audience, but they are intensely
-interesting and they serve to show the <i>actual</i> effect
-of appealing to one sense at a time. The first of these
-experiments is to take a small group of children and
-suggest that they should close their eyes whilst you
-tell them a story. You will then notice how much
-more attention is given to the intonation and inflection
-of the voice. The reason is obvious: because there
-is nothing to distract the attention, it is concentrated
-on the only thing offered to the listeners (that is,
-sound), to enable them to seize the dramatic interest
-of the story.</p>
-
-<p>We find an example of the dramatic power of the
-voice in its appeal to the imagination, in one of the
-tributes brought by an old pupil to Thomas Edward
-Brown (Master at Clifton College):</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">18</a></span>
-“My earliest recollection is that his was the most
-vivid teaching I ever received: great width of view
-and poetical, almost passionate, power of presentment.
-We were reading Froude's History, and I
-shall never forget how it was Brown's words,
-Brown's voice, not the historian's, that made me
-feel the great democratic function which the
-monasteries performed in England: the view
-became alive in his mouth.”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p class="noin">And in another passage:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“All set forth with such dramatic force and aided
-by such a splendid voice, left an indelible impression
-on my mind.” (<i>Letters of T. E. Brown</i>, p. 55.)</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>A second experiment, and a much more subtle and
-difficult one, is to take the same group of children on
-another occasion, telling them a story in pantomime
-form, giving them first the briefest outline of it. In
-this case this must be of the simplest construction,
-until the children are able (if you continue the experiment)
-to look for something more subtle.</p>
-
-<p>I have never forgotten the marvellous performance
-of a play given in London, many years ago, entirely
-in pantomime form. The play was called <i>L'Enfant
-Prodigue</i>, and was presented by a company of French
-artists. It would be almost impossible to exaggerate
-the strength of that “silent appeal” to the public.
-One was so unaccustomed to reading meaning and
-development of character into gesture and facial
-expression that it was really a revelation to most
-present&mdash;certainly to all Anglo-Saxons.</p>
-
-<p>I cannot touch on this subject without admitting
-the enormous dramatic value connected with the
-kinematograph. Though it can never take the place
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">19</a></span>
-of an actual performance, whether in story form or
-on the stage, it has a real educational value in its
-possibilities of representation which it is difficult to
-over-estimate, and I believe that its introduction into
-the school curriculum, under the strictest supervision,
-will be of extraordinary benefit. The movement, in
-its present chaotic condition, and in the hands of a
-commercial management, is more likely to stifle than
-to awaken or stimulate the imagination, but the
-educational world is fully alive to the danger, and I
-am convinced that in the future of the movement good
-will predominate.</p>
-
-<p>The real value of the cinematograph in connection
-with stories is that it provides the background that is
-wanting to the inner vision of the average child, and
-does not prevent its imagination from filling in the
-details later. For instance, it would be quite impossible
-for the average child to get an idea from mere
-word-painting of the atmosphere of the Polar regions,
-as represented lately on the film in connection with
-Captain Scott's expedition; but any stories told later
-on about these regions would have an infinitely
-greater interest.</p>
-
-<p>There is, however, a real danger in using pictures
-to illustrate the story&mdash;especially if it be one which
-contains a direct appeal to the imagination of the
-child (as quite distinct from the stories which deal
-with facts)&mdash;which is that you force the whole audience
-of children to see the same picture, instead of giving
-each individual child the chance of making his own
-mental picture, which is of far greater joy, and of
-much greater educational value, since by this process
-the child co-operates with you instead of having all
-the work done for it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">20</a></span>
-Queyrat, in his work on “La Logique chez l'Enfant”
-quotes Madame Necker de Saussure:<a name="FNanchor_8_8" id="FNanchor_8_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a>
- “To children and animals actual objects present themselves,
-not the terms of their manifestations. For them
-thinking is seeing over again, it is going through the
-sensations that the real object would have produced.
-Everything which goes on within them is in the form
-of pictures, or rather, inanimate scenes in which Life
-is partially reproduced.... Since the child has,
-as yet, no capacity for abstraction, he finds a stimulating
-power in words and a suggestive inspiration
-which holds him enchanted. They awaken vividly-coloured
-images, pictures far more brilliant than would
-be called into being by the objects themselves.”</p>
-
-<p>Surely, if this be true, we are taking from children
-that rare power of mental visualisation by offering to
-their outward vision an <i>actual</i> picture.</p>
-
-<p>I was struck with the following note by a critic of
-the “Outlook,” referring to a Japanese play but
-bearing directly on the subject in hand.</p>
-
-<p>“First, we should be inclined to put insistence upon
-appeal by <i>imagination</i>. Nothing is built up by lath
-and canvas; everything has to be created by the poet's
-speech.”</p>
-
-<p>He alludes to the decoration of one of the scenes,
-which consists of three pines, showing what can be
-conjured up in the mind of the spectator.</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Ah, yes. Unfolding now before my eyes</div>
-<div class="i0">The views I know: the Forest, River, Sea</div>
-<div class="i0">And Mist&mdash;the scenes of Ono now expand.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>I have often heard objections raised to this theory
-by teachers dealing with children whose knowledge
-of objects outside their own little limited circle is so
-scanty that words we use without a suspicion that they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">21</a></span>
-are unfamiliar are really foreign expressions to them.
-Such words as sea, woods, fields, mountains would
-mean nothing to them, unless some explanation were
-offered. To these objections I have replied that
-where we are dealing with objects that can actually
-be seen with the bodily eyes, then it is quite legitimate
-to show pictures of those objects before you begin the
-story, so that the distraction between the actual and
-mental presentation may not cause confusion; but, as
-the foregoing example shows, we should endeavour
-to accustom the children to seeing much more than
-the mere objects themselves, and in dealing with
-abstract qualities we must rely solely on the power
-and choice of words and dramatic qualities of presentation,
-nor need we feel anxious if the response is not
-immediate, or even if it is not quick and eager.<a name="FNanchor_9_9" id="FNanchor_9_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a></p>
-
-<p>VII.&mdash;<i>The danger of obscuring the point of the
-story with too many details.</i> This is not peculiar to
-teachers, nor is it only shown in the narrative form.
-I have often heard really brilliant after-dinner stories
-marred by this defect. One remembers the attempt
-made by Sancho Panza to tell a story to Don Quixote,
-and I have always felt a keen sympathy with the latter
-in his impatience over the recital.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“‘In a village of Estramadura there was a
-shepherd&mdash;no, I mean a goatherd&mdash;which shepherd&mdash;or
-goatherd&mdash;as my story says, was called Lope
-Ruiz&mdash;and this Lope Ruiz was in love with a
-shepherdess called Torralva, who was daughter to a
-rich herdsman, and this rich herdsman&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘If this be thy story, Sancho,’ said Don Quixote,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">22</a></span>
-‘thou wilt not have done these two days. Tell it
-concisely like a man of sense, or else say no more.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I tell it in the manner they tell all stories in
-my country,’ answered Sancho, ‘and I cannot tell
-it otherwise, nor ought your Worship to require
-me to make new customs.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Tell it as thou wilt, then,’ said Don Quixote;
-‘since it is the will of fate that I should hear it, go
-on.’</p>
-
-<p>Sancho continued:</p>
-
-<p>‘He looked about him until he espied a fisherman
-with a boat near him, but so small that it could only
-hold one person and one goat. The fisherman got
-into the boat and carried over one goat; he returned
-and carried another; he came back again and carried
-another. Pray, sir, keep an account of the goats
-which the fisherman is carrying over, for if you lose
-count of a single one, the story ends, and it will be
-impossible to tell a word more.... I go on, then....
-He returned for another goat, and another,
-and another and another&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘<i>Suppose</i> them all carried over,’ said Don
-Quixote, ‘or thou wilt not have finished carrying
-them this twelve months.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Tell me, how many have passed already?’
-said Sancho.</p>
-
-<p>‘How should I know?’ answered Don Quixote.</p>
-
-<p>‘See there, now! Did I not tell thee to keep
-an exact account? There is an end of the story.
-I can go no further.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How can this be?’ said Don Quixote. ‘Is it
-so essential to the story to know the exact number
-of goats that passed over, that if one error be made
-the story can proceed no further?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Even so,’ said Sancho Panza.”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">23</a></span>
-
-VIII.&mdash;<i>The danger of over-explanation.</i> Again,
-another danger lurks in the temptation to offer over
-much explanation of the story, which is common to
-most story-tellers. This is fatal to the artistic success
-of any story, but it is even more serious in connection
-with stories told from an educational point of view,
-because it hampers the imagination of the listener;
-and since the development of that faculty is one of our
-chief aims in telling these stories, we must let it have
-free play, nor must we test the effect, as I have said
-before, by the material method of asking questions.
-My own experience is that the fewer explanations you
-offer (provided you have been careful with the choice
-of your material and artistic in the presentation) the
-more readily the child will supplement by his own
-thinking power what is necessary for the understanding
-of the story.</p>
-
-<p>Queyrat says: “A child has no need of seizing on
-the exact meaning of words; on the contrary, a certain
-lack of precision seems to stimulate his imagination
-only the more vigorously, since it gives it a broader
-liberty and firmer independence.”<a name="FNanchor_10_10" id="FNanchor_10_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a></p>
-
-<p>IX.&mdash;One special danger lies in the <i>lowering of
-the standard of the story</i> in order to cater to
-the undeveloped taste of the child. I am alluding
-here only to the story which is presented from the
-educational point of view. There are moments of
-relaxation in a child's life, as in that of an adult, when
-a lighter taste can be gratified. I am alluding now to
-the standard of story for school purposes.</p>
-
-<p>There is one development of the subject which
-seems to have been very little considered either in the
-United States or in our own country, namely, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">24</a></span>
-telling of stories to <i>old</i> people, and that not only in
-institutions or in quiet country villages, but in the
-heart of the busy cities and in the homes of these old
-people. How often, when the young people are able
-to enjoy outside amusements, the old people, necessarily
-confined to the chimney-corner and many
-unable to read much for themselves, might return to
-the joy of their childhood by hearing some of the old
-stories told them in dramatic form. Here is a
-delightful occupation for those of the leisured class
-who have the gift, and a much more effective way of
-capturing attention than the more usual form of
-reading aloud.</p>
-
-<p>Lady Gregory, in talking to the workhouse folk in
-Ireland, was moved by the strange contrast between
-the poverty of the tellers and the splendours of the
-tale.</p>
-
-<p>She says: “The stories they love are of quite
-visionary things; of swans that turn into kings'
-daughters, and of castles with crowns over the doors,
-and of lovers' flight on the backs of eagles, and music-loving
-witches, and journeys to the other world, and
-sleeps that last for 700 years.”</p>
-
-<p>I fear it is only the Celtic imagination that will
-glory in such romantic material; but I am sure the
-men and women of the poorhouse are much more
-interested than we are apt to think in stories outside
-the small circle of their lives.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> With regard to the right moment for choosing this kind of
-story, I shall return to the subject in a later chapter.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> I venture to hope (at this long distance of years) that my
-language in telling the story was more simple than appears from
-this account.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> This difference of spelling in the same essay will be much
-appreciated by those who know how gladly children offer an
-orthographical alternative, in hopes that one if not the other may
-satisfy the exigency of the situation.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> I refer, of course, to the Irish in their native atmosphere.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> See<a href="#Page_210"> List of Stories</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> This was at the Congressional Library at Washington.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_8_8" id="Footnote_8_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> Page <a href="#Page_55">55</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_9_9" id="Footnote_9_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> In further illustration of this point see “When Burbage
-played” (Austin Dobson) and “In the Nursery” (Hans C.
-Andersen).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_10_10" id="Footnote_10_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> From “Les Jeux des Enfants,” page 16.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">25</a></span></p>
-<h2>CHAPTER II</h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">The Essentials of the Story.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">It</span> would be a truism to suggest that dramatic instinct
-and dramatic power of expression are naturally the
-first essentials for success in the Art of Story-telling,
-and that, without these, no story-teller would go very
-far; but I maintain that, even with these gifts, no high
-standard of performance will be reached without
-certain other qualities&mdash;among the first of which I
-place <i>apparent</i> simplicity, which is really the <i>art</i> of
-<i>concealing</i> the art.</p>
-
-<p>I am speaking here of the public story-teller, or of
-the teachers with a group of children&mdash;not the
-spontaneous (and most rare) power of telling stories
-at the fireside by some gifted village grandmother,
-such as Béranger gives us in his poem, <i>Souvenirs du
-Peuple</i>:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Mes enfants, dans ce village,</div>
-<div class="i0">Suivi de rois, il passa;</div>
-<div class="i0">Voilà bien longtemps de ça;</div>
-<div class="i0">Je venais d'entrer en ménage.</div>
-<div class="i0">A pied grimpant le côteau,</div>
-<div class="i0">Où pour voir je m'étais mise.</div>
-<div class="i0">Il avait petit chapeau</div>
-<div class="i0">Avec redingote grise.</div>
-<div class="i0">Près de lui je me troublai!</div>
-<div class="i0">Il me dit: Bonjour, ma chère,</div>
-<div class="i2">Bonjour, ma chère.</div>
-<div class="i0">Il vous a parlé, grand'mère?</div>
-<div class="i2">Il vous a parlé?</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p>I am sceptical enough to think that it is not the
-spontaneity of the grandmother but the art of Béranger
-which enhances the effect of the story told in the poem.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">26</a></span>
-
-This intimate form of narration, which is delightful
-in its special surroundings, would fail to <i>reach</i>, much
-less <i>hold</i>, a large audience, <i>not</i> because of its simplicity
-but often because of the want of skill in arranging
-material and of the artistic sense of selection which
-brings the interest to a focus and arranges the sidelights.
-In short, the simplicity we need for the
-ordinary purpose is that which comes from ease and
-produces a sense of being able to let ourselves go,
-because we have thought out our effects: it is when
-we translate our instinct into art that the story becomes
-finished and complete.</p>
-
-<p>I find it necessary to emphasise this point because
-people are apt to confuse simplicity of delivery with
-carelessness of utterance, loose stringing of sentences
-of which the only connections seem to be the ever-recurring
-use of “and” and “so,” and “er ...”&mdash;this
-latter inarticulate sound has done more to ruin a
-story and distract the audience than many more
-glaring errors of dramatic form.</p>
-
-<p>The real simplicity holds the audience because the
-lack of apparent effort in the artist has the most
-comforting effect upon the listener. It is like turning
-from the whirring machinery of process to the finished
-article, bearing no trace of manufacture except in
-the harmony and beauty of the whole, from which we
-realise that the individual parts have received all
-proper attention.</p>
-
-<p>And what really brings about this apparent simplicity
-which ensures the success of the story? It
-has been admirably expressed in a passage from
-Henry James's lecture on Balzac:</p>
-
-<p>“The fault in the Artist which amounts most
-completely to a failure of dignity is the absence of
-<i>saturation with his idea</i>. When saturation fails, no
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">27</a></span>
-other real presence avails, as when, on the other hand,
-it operates, no failure of method fatally interferes.”</p>
-
-<p>I now offer two illustrations of the effect of this
-saturation, one to show that the failure of method
-does not prevent successful effect, the other to show
-that when it is combined with the necessary secondary
-qualities the perfection of art is reached.</p>
-
-<p>In illustration of the first point, I recall an experience
-in the North of England when the Head Mistress of
-an elementary school asked me to hear a young,
-inexperienced girl tell a story to a group of very small
-children.</p>
-
-<p>When she began, I felt somewhat hopeless, because
-of the complete failure of method. She seemed to
-have all the faults most damaging to the success of
-a speaker. Her voice was harsh, her gestures
-awkward, her manner was restless and melodramatic;
-but as she went on, I soon began to discount all these
-faults and, in truth, I soon forgot about them, for so
-absorbed was she in her story, so saturated with her
-subject, that she quickly communicated her own
-interest to her audience, and the children were
-absolutely spellbound.</p>
-
-<p>The other illustration is connected with a memorable
-peep behind the stage, when the late M. Coquelin had
-invited me to see him in the green-room between the
-first and second Acts of “L'Abbé Constantin,” one
-of the plays given during his last season in London,
-the year before his death. The last time I had met
-M. Coquelin was at a dinner-party, where I had been
-dazzled by the brilliant conversation of this great
-artist in the rôle of a man of the world. But on this
-occasion, I met the simple, kindly priest, so absorbed
-in his rôle that he inspired me with the wish to offer
-a donation for his poor, and on taking leave to ask
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">28</a></span>
-for his blessing for myself. Whilst talking to him,
-I had felt puzzled: it was only when I had left him
-that I realised what had happened&mdash;namely, that he
-was too thoroughly saturated with his subject to be
-able to drop his rôle during the interval, in order to
-assume the more ordinary one of host and man of the
-world.</p>
-
-<p>Now, it is this spirit I would wish to inculcate into
-the would-be story-tellers. If they would apply themselves
-in this manner to their work, it would bring
-about a revolution in the art of presentation, that is,
-in the art of teaching. The difficulty of the practical
-application of this theory is the constant plea, on the
-part of the teachers, that there is not the time to work
-for such a standard in an art which is so apparently
-simple that the work expended on it would never be
-appreciated.</p>
-
-<p>My answer to this objection is that, though the
-counsel of perfection would be to devote a great deal
-of time to the story, so as to prepare the atmosphere
-quite as much as the mere action of the little drama
-(just as photographers use time exposure to obtain
-sky effects, as well as the more definite objects in the
-picture), yet it is not so much a question of time as
-concentration on the subject which is one of the chief
-factors in the preparation of the story.</p>
-
-<p>So many story-tellers are satisfied with cheap results,
-and most audiences are not critical enough to
-encourage a high standard.<a name="FNanchor_11_11" id="FNanchor_11_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> The method of “showing
-the machinery” has more immediate results, and it is
-easy to become discouraged over the drudgery which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">29</a></span>
-is not necessary to secure the approbation of the
-largest number. But, since I am dealing with the
-essentials of really good story-telling, I may be
-pardoned for suggesting the highest standard and the
-means for reaching it.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore I maintain that capacity for work, and
-even drudgery, is among the essentials of story work.
-Personally I know of nothing more interesting than
-to watch the story grow gradually from mere outline
-into a dramatic whole. It is the same pleasure, I
-imagine, which is felt over the gradual development
-of a beautiful design on a loom. I do not mean
-machine-made work, which has to be done under
-adverse conditions, in a certain time, and is similar
-to thousands of other pieces of work; but that work
-upon which we can bestow unlimited time and concentrated
-thought.</p>
-
-<p>The special joy in the slowly-prepared story comes
-in the exciting moment when the persons, or even the
-inanimate objects, become alive and move as of
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>I remember spending two or three discouraging
-weeks with Andersen's story of the “Adventures of
-a Beetle.” I passed through times of great depression,
-because all the little creatures&mdash;beetles, earwigs,
-frogs, etc.&mdash;behaved in such a conventional, stilted
-way (instead of displaying the strong individuality
-which Andersen had bestowed upon them) that I
-began to despair of presenting a live company at all.</p>
-
-<p>But one day the Beetle, so to speak, “took the
-stage,” and at once there was life and animation
-among the minor characters. Then the main work
-was done, and there remained only the comparatively
-easy task of guiding the movement of the little drama,
-suggesting side issues and polishing the details,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">30</a></span>
-always keeping a careful eye on the Beetle, that he
-might “gang his ain gait” and preserve to the full
-his own individuality.</p>
-
-<p>There is a tendency in preparing stories to begin
-with detail work (often a gesture or side issue which
-one has remembered from hearing a story told), but
-if this is done before the contemplative period, only
-scrappy, jerky and ineffective results are obtained, on
-which one cannot count for dramatic effects. This
-kind of preparation reminds one of a young peasant
-woman who was taken to see a performance of
-<i>Wilhelm Tell</i>, and when questioned as to the plot,
-could only sum it up by saying, “I know some fruit
-was shot at.”<a name="FNanchor_12_12" id="FNanchor_12_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a></p>
-
-<p>I realise the extreme difficulty for teachers to devote
-the necessary time to the perfecting of the stories they
-tell in school, because this is only one of the subjects
-they have to take in an already over-crowded curriculum.
-To them I would offer this practical advice:
-<i>Do not be afraid to repeat your stories</i>.<a name="FNanchor_13_13" id="FNanchor_13_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a>
-If you did
-not undertake more than seven stories a year (chosen
-with infinite care), and if you repeated these stories
-six times during the year of forty-two weeks, you
-would be able to do artistic (and therefore lasting)
-work; you would give a very great deal of pleasure
-to the children, who delight in hearing a story many
-times. You would be able to avoid the direct moral
-application (to which subject I shall return later on);
-for each time a child hears a story artistically told, a
-little more of the meaning underlying the simple story
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">31</a></span>
-will come to him without any explanation on your
-part. The habit of doing one's best, instead of one's
-second-best, means, in the long run, that one has no
-interest except in the preparation of the best, and the
-stories, few in number, polished and finished in style,
-will have an effect of which one can scarcely over-state
-the importance.</p>
-
-<p>In the story of the Swineherd,<a name="FNanchor_14_14" id="FNanchor_14_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> Hans Andersen
-says:</p>
-
-<p>“On the grave of the Prince's father there grew a
-rose-tree. It only bloomed once in five years, and
-only bore one rose. But what a rose! Its perfume
-was so exquisite that whoever smelt it forgot at once
-all his cares and sorrows.”</p>
-
-<p>Lafcadio Hearn says: “Time weeds out the errors
-and stupidities of cheap success, and presents the
-Truth. It takes, like the aloe, a long time to flower,
-but the blossom is all the more precious when it
-appears.”</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11">
-<span class="label">[11]</span></a> A noted Greek gymnast struck his pupil, though he was
-applauded by the whole assembly. “You did it clumsily, and not
-as you ought, for these people would never have praised you for
-anything really artistic.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_12_12" id="Footnote_12_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> For further details on the question of preparation of the
-story, see chapter on “<a href="#Page_117">Questions asked by Teachers</a>.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_13_13" id="Footnote_13_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> Sully says that children love exact repetition because of the
-intense enjoyment bound up with the process of imaginative
-realisation.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_14_14" id="Footnote_14_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> See p. <a href="#Page_150">150</a>.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">32</a></span></p>
-<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
-
-<p class="center">
-
-<span class="smcap">The Artifices of Story-telling.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">By</span> this term I do not mean anything against the
-gospel of simplicity which I am so constantly preaching,
-but, for want of a better term, I use the word
-“artifice” to express the mechanical devices by which
-we endeavour to attract and hold the attention of the
-audience. The art of telling stories is, in truth, much
-more difficult than acting a part on the stage: first,
-because the narrator is responsible for the whole
-drama and the whole atmosphere which surrounds it.
-He has to live the life of each character and understand
-the relation which each bears to the whole.
-Secondly, because the stage is a miniature one,
-gestures and movements must all be so adjusted as
-not to destroy the sense of proportion. I have often
-noticed that actors, accustomed to the more roomy
-public stage, are apt to be too broad in their gestures
-and movements when they tell a story. The special
-training for the Story-teller should consist not only in
-the training of the voice and in choice of language,
-but above all in power of <i>delicate</i> suggestion, which
-cannot always be used on the stage because this is
-hampered by the presence of <i>actual things</i>. The
-Story-teller has to present these things to the more
-delicate organism of the “inward eye.”</p>
-
-<p>So deeply convinced am I of the miniature character
-of the Story-telling Art that I do not believe you can
-ever get a perfectly artistic presentation of this kind
-in a very large hall or before a very large audience.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">33</a></span></p>
-
-<p>I have made experiments along this line, having
-twice told a story to an audience exceeding five
-thousand, in the States,<a name="FNanchor_15_15" id="FNanchor_15_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> but on both occasions,
-though the dramatic reaction upon oneself from the
-response of so large an audience was both gratifying
-and stimulating, I was forced to sacrifice the delicacy
-of the story and to take from its artistic value by the
-necessity of emphasis, in order to be heard by all
-present.</p>
-
-<p>Emphasis is the bane of all story-telling, for it
-destroys the delicacy, and the whole performance
-suggests a struggle in conveying the message; the
-indecision of the victory leaves the audience restless
-and unsatisfied.</p>
-
-<p>Then, again, as compared with acting on the stage,
-in telling a story you miss the help of effective
-entrances and exits, the footlights, the costume, the
-facial expression of your fellow-actor which interprets
-so much of what you yourself say without further
-elaboration on your part; for, in the story, in case of
-a dialogue which necessitates great subtlety and
-quickness in facial expression and gesture, you have
-to be both speaker and listener.</p>
-
-<p>Now, of what artifices can we make use to take the
-place of all the extraneous help offered to actors on
-the stage?</p>
-
-<p>First and foremost, as a means of suddenly pulling
-up the attention of the audience, is the judicious Art
-of Pausing.</p>
-
-<p>For those who have not actually had experience in
-the matter, this advice will seem trite and unnecessary,
-but those who have even a little experience will realise
-with me the extraordinary efficacy of this very simple<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">34</a></span>
-means. It is really what Coquelin spoke of as a
-“high light,” where the interest is focussed, as it
-were, to a point.</p>
-
-<p>I have tried this simple art of <i>pausing</i> with every
-kind of audience, and I have very rarely known it to
-fail. It is very difficult to offer a concrete example of
-this, unless one is giving a “live” representation;
-but I shall make an attempt, and at least I shall hope
-to make myself understood by those who have heard
-me tell stories.</p>
-
-<p>In Hans C. Andersen's “Princess and the Pea,”<a name="FNanchor_16_16" id="FNanchor_16_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a>
-the King goes down to open the door himself. Now,
-you may make this point in two ways. You may
-either say: “And then the King went to the door,
-and at the door there stood a real Princess,” or, “And
-then the King went to the door, and at the door there
-stood&mdash;(pause)&mdash;a real Princess.”</p>
-
-<p>It is difficult to exaggerate the difference of effect
-produced by so slight a cause.<a name="FNanchor_17_17" id="FNanchor_17_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> With children it
-means an unconscious curiosity which expresses itself
-in a sudden muscular tension&mdash;there is just time,
-during that instant's pause, to <i>feel</i>, though not to
-<i>formulate</i>, the question: “What is standing at the
-door?” By this means half your work of holding
-the attention is accomplished. It is not necessary for
-me to enter into the psychological reason of this, but
-I strongly recommend those who are interested in the
-question to read the chapter in Ribot's work on this
-subject, <i>Essai sur l'Imagination créatrice</i>, as well as
-Mr. Keatinge's work on “Suggestion.”</p>
-
-<p>I would advise all teachers to revise their stories
-with a view to introducing the judicious Pause, and
-to vary its use according to the age, the number and,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">35</a></span>
-above all, the mood of the audience. Experience
-alone can ensure success in this matter. It has taken
-me many years to realise the importance of this
-artifice.</p>
-
-<p>Among other means of holding the attention of the
-audience and helping to bring out the points of the
-story is the use of gesture. I consider, however, it
-must be a sparing use, and not of a broad or definite
-character. We shall never improve on the advice
-given by Hamlet to the actors on this subject: “See
-that ye o'erstep not the modesty of Nature.”</p>
-
-<p>And yet, perhaps, it is not necessary to warn Story-tellers
-against <i>abuse</i> of gesture: it is more helpful to
-encourage them in the use of it, especially in Anglo-Saxon
-countries, where we are fearful of expressing
-ourselves in this way, and, when we do, the gesture
-often lacks subtlety. The Anglo-Saxon, when he does
-move at all, moves in solid blocks&mdash;a whole arm, a
-whole leg, the whole body&mdash;but if you watch a
-Frenchman or an Italian in conversation, you suddenly
-realise how varied and subtle are the things which can
-be suggested by the mere turn of the wrist or the
-movement of a finger. The power of the hand has
-been so wonderfully summed up in a passage from
-Quintilian that I am justified in offering it to all
-those who wish to realise what can be done by
-gesture:</p>
-
-<p>“As to the hands, without the aid of which all
-delivery would be deficient and weak, it can scarcely
-be told of what a variety of motions they are susceptible,
-since they almost equal in expression the power
-of language itself. For other parts of the body assist
-the speaker, but these, I may almost say, speak
-themselves. With our hands we ask, promise, call
-persons to us and send them away, threaten, supplicate,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">36</a></span>
-intimate dislike or fear; with our hands we
-signify joy, grief, doubt, acknowledgment, penitence,
-and indicate measure, quantity, number and time.
-Have not our hands the power of inciting, of restraining,
-or beseeching, of testifying approbation....
-So that amidst the great diversity of tongues pervading
-all nations and peoples, the language of the
-hands appears to be a language common to all men.”
-(From “Education of an Orator,” Book II, Chap. 3.)</p>
-
-<p>One of the most effective artifices in telling stories
-to young children is the use of mimicry&mdash;the imitation
-of animals' voices and sounds in general is of never-ending
-joy to the listeners. Only, I should wish to
-introduce a note of grave warning in connection with
-this subject. This special artifice can only be used
-by such narrators as have special aptitude and gifts
-in this direction. There are many people with good
-imaginative power but wholly lacking in the power
-of mimicry, whose efforts in this direction, however
-painstaking, would remain grotesque and therefore
-ineffective. When listening to such performances (of
-which children are strangely critical) one is reminded
-of the French story in which the amateur animal
-painter is showing her picture to an undiscriminating
-friend:</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” says the friend, “this is surely meant for a
-lion?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” says the artist, with some slight show of
-temper; “it is my little lap-dog.”</p>
-
-<p>Another artifice which is particularly successful
-with very small children is to ensure their attention
-by inviting their co-operation before you actually
-begin the story. The following has proved quite
-effective as a short introduction to my stories when I
-was addressing large audiences of children:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">37</a></span>
-
-“Do you know that last night I had a very strange
-dream, which I am going to tell you before I begin
-the stories. I dreamed that I was walking along the
-streets of&mdash;&mdash; (here would follow the town in which
-I happened to be speaking), with a large bundle on
-my shoulders, and this bundle was full of stories which
-I had been collecting all over the world in different
-countries; and I was shouting at the top of my voice:
-‘Stories! Stories! Stories! Who will listen to my
-stories?’ And the children came flocking round me
-in my dream, saying: ‘Tell <i>us</i> your stories. <i>We</i> will
-listen to your stories.’ So I pulled out a story from
-my big bundle and I began in a most excited way,
-‘Once upon a time there lived a King and a Queen
-who had no children, and they&mdash;&mdash;’ Here a little boy,
-<i>very</i> much like that little boy I see sitting in the front
-row, stopped me, saying: ‘Oh! I know <i>that</i> old
-story; it's Sleeping Beauty.’</p>
-
-<p>“So I pulled out a second story, and began: ‘Once
-upon a time there was a little girl who was sent by
-her mother to visit her grandmother&mdash;&mdash;’ Then a
-little girl, so much like the one sitting at the end of
-the second row, said: 'Oh! everybody knows that
-story! It's&mdash;&mdash;’”</p>
-
-<p>Here I would make a judicious pause, and then the
-children in the audience would shout in chorus, with
-joyful superiority: “Little Red Riding-Hood!”
-(before I had time to explain that the children in my
-dream had done the same).</p>
-
-<p>This method I repeated two or three times, being
-careful to choose very well-known stories. By this
-time the children were all encouraged and stimulated.
-I usually finished with congratulations on the number
-of stories they knew, expressing a hope that some of
-those I was going to tell that afternoon would be new
-to them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">38</a></span>
-
-I have rarely found this plan fail for establishing a
-friendly relation between oneself and the juvenile
-audience.</p>
-
-<p>It is often a matter of great difficulty, not to <i>win</i> the
-attention of an audience but to <i>keep</i> it, and one of the
-most subtle artifices is to let the audience down
-(without their perceiving it) after a dramatic situation,
-so that the reaction may prepare them for the interest
-of the next situation.</p>
-
-<p>An excellent instance of this is to be found in
-Rudyard Kipling's story of “The Cat that walked ...”
-where the repetition of words acts as a sort of sedative
-until you realise the beginning of a fresh situation.</p>
-
-<p>The great point is never to let the audience quite
-down, that is, in stories which depend on dramatic
-situations. It is just a question of shade and colour
-in the language. If you are telling a story in sections,
-and spread over two or three occasions, you should
-always stop at an exciting moment. It encourages
-speculation between whiles in the children's minds,
-which increases their interest when the story is taken
-up again.</p>
-
-<p>Another very necessary quality in the mere artifice
-of story-telling is to watch your audience, so as to
-be able to know whether its mood is for action or
-reaction, and to alter your story accordingly. The
-moods of reaction are rarer, and you must use them
-for presenting a different kind of material. Here is
-your opportunity for introducing a piece of poetic
-description, given in beautiful language, to which the
-children cannot listen when they are eager for action
-and dramatic excitement.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps one of the greatest artifices is to take a
-quick hold of your audience by a striking beginning
-which will enlist their attention from the start; you<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">39</a></span>
-can then relax somewhat, but you must be careful
-also of the end, because that is what remains most
-vivid for the children. If you question them as to
-which story they like best in a programme, you will
-constantly find it to be the last one you have told,
-which has for the moment blurred out the others.</p>
-
-<p>Here are a few specimens of beginnings which
-seldom fail to arrest the attention of the child:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“There was once a giant ogre, and he lived in a
-cave by himself.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>The Giant and the Jackstraws</i>,”
-Starr Jordan.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“There were once twenty-five tin soldiers, who were
-all brothers, for they had been made out of the same
-old tin spoon.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>The Tin Soldier</i>,” Hans C. Andersen.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“There was once an Emperor who had a horse shod
-with gold.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>The Beetle</i>,” Hans C. Andersen.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“There was once a merchant who was so rich that
-he could have paved the whole street with gold, and
-even then he would have had enough for a small
-alley.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>The Flying Trunk</i>,” Hans C. Andersen.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“There was once a shilling which came forth from
-the mint springing and shouting, 'Hurrah! Now I
-am going out into the wide world.'”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>The Silver Shilling</i>,” Hans C. Andersen.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“In the High and Far Off Times the Elephant, O
-Best Beloved, had no trunk.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>The Elephant's Child</i>”: <i>Just So
-Stories</i>, Rudyard Kipling.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">40</a></span></p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Not always was the Kangaroo as now we behold
-him, but a Different Animal with four short legs.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>Old Man Kangaroo</i>”: <i>Just So
-Stories</i>, Rudyard Kipling.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Whichever way I turn,” said the weather-cock on
-a high steeple, “no one is satisfied.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>Fireside Fables</i>,” Edwin Barrow.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“A set of chessmen, left standing on their board,
-resolved to alter the rules of the game.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From the same source.</i>
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“The Pink Parasol had tender whalebone ribs and
-a slender stick of cherry-wood.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>Very Short Stories</i>,” Mrs. W. K. Clifford.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“There was once a poor little Donkey on Wheels;
-it had never wagged its tail, or tossed its head, or said
-‘Hee-haw,’ or tasted a tender thistle.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From the same source.</i>
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>Now, some of these beginnings are, of course, for
-very young children, but they all have the same
-advantage, that of plunging <i>in medias res</i>, and therefore
-are able to arrest attention at once, as distinct
-from the stories which open on a leisurely note of
-description.</p>
-
-<p>In the same way we must be careful about the
-endings of the stories; in some way or other they must
-impress themselves either in a very dramatic climax
-to which the whole story has worked up, such as we
-have in the following:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Then he goes out to the Wet Wild Woods, or up
-the Wet Wild Trees, or on the Wet Wild Roofs,
-waving his Wild Tail, and walking by his Wild
-Lone.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>Just So Stories</i>,” Rudyard Kipling.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">41</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Or by an anti-climax for effect:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“We have all this straight out of the alderman's
-newspaper, but it is not to be depended on.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>Jack the Dullard</i>,” Hans C. Andersen.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>Or by evading the point:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Whoever does not believe this must buy shares
-in the Tanner's yard.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>A Great Grief</i>,” Hans C. Andersen.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>Or by some striking general comment:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“He has never caught up with the three days he
-missed at the beginning of the world, and he has
-never learnt how to behave.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&mdash;<i>From</i> “<i>How the Camel got his Hump</i>”:
-<i>Just So Stories</i>, Rudyard Kipling.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_15_15" id="Footnote_15_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> Once at the Summer School at Chatauqua, New York, and once
-in Lincoln Park, Chicago.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_16_16" id="Footnote_16_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> See p. <a href="#Page_156">156</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_17_17" id="Footnote_17_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> There must be no more emphasis in the second manner than the
-first.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">42</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Elements to Avoid in Selection of Material.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin">I <span class="smcap">am</span> confronted, in this portion of my work, with a
-great difficulty, because I cannot afford to be as
-catholic as I could wish (this rejection or selection of
-material being primarily intended for those story-tellers
-dealing with normal children); but I wish from
-the outset to distinguish between a story told to an
-individual child in the home circle or by a personal
-friend, and a story told to a group of children as part
-of the school curriculum. And if I seem to reiterate
-this difference, it is because I wish to show very clearly
-that the recital of parents and friends may be quite
-separate in content and manner from that offered by
-the teaching world. In the former case, almost any
-subject can be treated, because, knowing the individual
-temperament of the child, a wise parent or friend
-knows also what can be presented or <i>not</i> presented
-to the child; but in dealing with a group of normal
-children in school, much has to be eliminated that
-could be given fearlessly to the abnormal child: I
-mean the child who, by circumstances or temperament,
-is developed beyond its years.</p>
-
-<p>I shall now mention some of the elements which
-experience has shown me to be unsuitable for class
-stories.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">43</a></span>
-
-I.&mdash;<i>Stories dealing with analysis of motive and
-feeling.</i></p>
-
-<p>This warning is specially necessary to-day, because
-this is above all an age of introspection and analysis.
-We have only to glance at the principal novels and
-plays during the last quarter of a century&mdash;most
-especially during the last ten years&mdash;to see how this
-spirit has crept into our literature and life.</p>
-
-<p>Now, this tendency to analyse is obviously more
-dangerous for children than for adults, because, from
-lack of experience and knowledge of psychology, the
-child's analysis is incomplete. He cannot see all the
-causes of the action, nor can he make that philosophical
-allowance for mood which brings the adult to truer
-conclusions.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore we should discourage children who show
-a tendency to analyse too closely the motives of their
-actions, and refrain from presenting in our stories
-any example which might encourage them to persist
-in this course.</p>
-
-<p>I remember, on one occasion, when I went to say
-good-night to a little girl of my acquaintance, I found
-her sitting up in bed, very wide awake. Her eyes
-were shining, her cheeks were flushed, and when I
-asked her what had excited her so much, she said:</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>know</i> I have done something wrong to-day, but
-I cannot quite remember what it was.”</p>
-
-<p>I said: “But Phyllis, if you put your hand, which
-is really quite small, in front of your eyes, you could
-not see the shape of anything else, however large it
-might be. Now, what you have done to-day appears
-very large because it is so close, but when it is a little
-further off, you will be able to see better and know
-more about it. So let us wait till to-morrow morning.”</p>
-
-<p>I am happy to say that she took my advice. She
-was soon fast asleep, and the next morning she had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">44</a></span>
-forgotten the wrong over which she had been
-unhealthily brooding the night before.<a name="FNanchor_18_18" id="FNanchor_18_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a></p>
-
-<p>II.&mdash;<i>Stories dealing too much with sarcasm and
-satire.</i> These are weapons which are too sharply
-polished, and therefore too dangerous, to place in the
-hands of children. For here again, as in the case of
-analysis, they can only have a very incomplete conception
-of the case. They do not know the real cause which
-produces the apparently ridiculous situation: it is
-experience and knowledge which lead to the discovery
-of the pathos and sadness which often underlie the
-ridiculous appearance, and it is only the abnormally
-gifted child or grown-up person who discovers this by
-instinct. It takes a lifetime to arrive at the position
-described in Sterne's words: “I would not have let
-fallen an unseasonable pleasantry in the venerable
-presence of misery to be entitled to all the Wit which
-Rabelais has ever scattered.”</p>
-
-<p>I will hasten to add that I should not wish children
-to have their sympathy too much drawn out, or their
-emotions kindled too much to pity, because this would
-be neither healthy nor helpful to themselves or others.
-I only want to protect the children from the dangerous
-critical attitude induced by the use of satire: it
-sacrifices too much of the atmosphere of trust and
-belief in human beings which ought to be an essential
-of child-life. If we indulge in satire, the sense of
-kindness in children tends to become perverted, their
-sympathy cramped, and they themselves to become old
-before their time. We have an excellent example of
-this in Hans C. Andersen's “Snow Queen.”</p>
-
-<p>When Kay gets the piece of broken mirror into his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">45</a></span>
-eye, he no longer sees the world from the normal
-child's point of view: he can no longer see anything
-but the foibles of those about him&mdash;a condition usually
-only reached by a course of pessimistic experience.</p>
-
-<p>Andersen sums up the unnatural point of view in
-these words:</p>
-
-<p>“When Kay tried to repeat the Lord's Prayer, he
-could only remember the multiplication table.” Now,
-without taking these words in any literal sense, we
-can admit that they represent the development of the
-head at the expense of the heart.</p>
-
-<p>An example of this kind of story to avoid is
-Andersen's “Story of the Butterfly.” The bitterness
-of the Anemones, the sentimentality of the Violets,
-the schoolgirlishness of the Snowdrops, the domesticity
-of the Sweet-peas&mdash;all this tickles the palate of
-the adult, but does not belong to the plane of the
-normal child. Again I repeat that the unusual child
-may take all this in and even preserve its kindly
-attitude towards the world, but it is a dangerous
-atmosphere for the ordinary child.</p>
-
-<p>III.&mdash;<i>Stories of a sentimental kind.</i> Strange to say,
-this element of sentimentality often appeals more to
-the young teachers than to the children themselves.
-It is difficult to define the difference between sentiment
-and sentimentality, but the healthy normal boy or
-girl of&mdash;let us say ten or eleven years old seems to
-feel it unconsciously, though the distinction is not
-so clear a few years later.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Elizabeth McKracken contributed an excellent
-article some years ago to the American <i>Outlook</i> on
-the subject of literature for the young, in which we
-find a good illustration of this power of discrimination
-on the part of a child.</p>
-
-<p>A young teacher was telling her pupils the story of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">46</a></span>
-the emotional lady who, to put her lover to the test,
-bade him pick up the glove which she had thrown
-down into the arena between the tiger and the lion.
-The lover does her bidding, in order to vindicate his
-character as a brave knight. One boy, after hearing
-the story, at once states his contempt for the knight's
-acquiescence, which he declares to be unworthy.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” says the teacher, “you see he really did it
-to show the lady how foolish she was.” The answer
-of the boy sums up what I have been trying to show:
-“There was no sense in <i>his</i> being sillier than <i>she</i> was,
-to show her <i>she</i> was silly.”</p>
-
-<p>If the boy had stopped there, we might have
-concluded that he was lacking in imagination or
-romance, but his next remark proves what a balanced
-and discriminating person he was, for he added:
-“Now, if <i>she</i> had fallen in, and he had leapt after
-her to rescue her, that would have been splendid and
-of some use.” Given the character of the lady, we
-might, as adults, question the last part of the boy's
-statement, but this is pure cynicism and fortunately
-does not enter into the child's calculations.</p>
-
-<p>In my own personal experience (and I have told this
-story often in the German ballad form to girls of ten
-and twelve in the High Schools in England) I have
-never found one girl who sympathised with the lady or
-who failed to appreciate the poetic justice meted out to
-her in the end by the dignified renunciation of the
-knight.</p>
-
-<p>Chesterton defines sentimentality as “a tame, cold,
-or small and inadequate manner of speaking about
-certain matters which demand very large and beautiful
-expression.”</p>
-
-<p>I would strongly urge upon young teachers to revise,
-by this definition, some of the stories they have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">47</a></span>
-included in their repertory, and see whether they would
-stand the test or not.</p>
-
-<p>IV.&mdash;<i>Stories containing strong sensational episodes.</i>
-The danger is all the greater because many children
-delight in it, and some crave for it in the abstract, but
-fear it in the concrete.<a name="FNanchor_19_19" id="FNanchor_19_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a></p>
-
-<p>An affectionate aunt, on one occasion, anxious to
-curry favour with a four-year-old nephew, was taxing
-her imagination to find a story suitable for his tender
-years. She was greatly startled when he suddenly
-said, in a most imperative tone: “Tell me the story
-of a <i>bear</i> eating a small boy.” This was so remote
-from her own choice of subject that she hesitated at
-first, but coming to the conclusion that as the child
-had chosen the situation he would feel no terror in the
-working up of its details, she began a most thrilling
-and blood-curdling story, leading up to the final
-catastrophe. But just as she had reached the great
-dramatic moment, the child raised his hands in terror
-and said: “Oh! Auntie, don't let the bear <i>really</i> eat
-the boy!”</p>
-
-<p>“Don't you know,” said an impatient boy who had
-been listening to a mild adventure story considered
-suitable to his years, “that I don't take any interest
-in the story until the decks are dripping with gore?”
-Here we have no opportunity of deciding whether or
-not the actual description demanded would be more
-alarming than the listener had realised.</p>
-
-<p>Here is a poem of James Stephens, showing a
-child's taste for sensational things:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">A man was sitting underneath a tree</div>
-<div class="i0">Outside the village, and he asked me</div>
-<div class="i0">What name was upon this place, and said he</div>
-<div class="i0">Was never here before. He told a</div>
-<div class="i0">Lot of stories to me too. His nose was flat.</div>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">48</a></span>
-<div class="i0">I asked him how it happened, and he said,</div>
-<div class="i0">The first mate of the “Mary Ann” done that,</div>
-<div class="i0">With a marling-spike one day, but he was dead,</div>
-<div class="i0">And a jolly job too, but he'd have gone a long way to have killed him.</div>
-<div class="i0">A gold ring in one ear, and the other was bit off by a crocodile, bedad,</div>
-<div class="i0">That's what he said: He taught me how to chew.</div>
-<div class="i0">He was a real nice man. He liked me too.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>The taste that is fed by the sensational contents of
-the newspapers and the dramatic excitement of street
-life, and some of the lurid representations of the
-Kinematograph, is so much stimulated that the interest
-in normal stories is difficult to rouse. I will not here
-dwell on the deleterious effects of over dramatic
-stimulation, which has been known to lead to crime,
-since I am keener to prevent the telling of too many
-sensational stories than to suggest a cure when the
-mischief is done. Kate Douglas Wiggin has said:</p>
-
-<p>“Let us be realistic, by all means, but beware, O
-Story-teller, of being too realistic. Avoid the shuddering
-tale of ‘the wicked boy who stoned the birds,’ lest
-some hearer should be inspired to try the dreadful
-experiment and see if it really does kill.”</p>
-
-<p>I must emphasise the fact, however, that it is only
-the excess of this dramatic element which I deplore.
-A certain amount of excitement is necessary; but this
-question belongs to the positive side of the subject, and
-I shall deal with it later on.</p>
-
-<p>V.&mdash;<i>Stories presenting matters quite outside the
-plane of the child</i> (unless they are wrapped in mystery,
-which is of great educational value).</p>
-
-<p>The element I wish to eliminate is the one which
-would make children world-wise and old before their
-time.</p>
-
-<p>A small American child who had entertained a guest
-in her mother's absence, when questioned as to whether<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">49</a></span>
-she had shown all the hospitality the mother would
-have considered necessary, said: “Oh! yes. And I
-talked to her in the kind of ‘dressy’ tone <i>you</i> use on
-your ‘At Home’ days.”</p>
-
-<p>On one occasion I was lecturing in the town of
-Cleveland, and was to stay in the house of a lady
-whom I had met only once, in New York, but with true
-American hospitality she had begged me to make her
-house my home during the whole of my stay in
-Cleveland. In writing to invite me, she mentioned the
-pleasure it would afford her little ten-year-old daughter
-to make my acquaintance, and added this somewhat
-enigmatic sentence: “Mignon has asked permission
-to dedicate her <i>last</i> work to you.” I was alarmed at
-the word <i>last</i>, given the age of the author, and felt
-sorry that the literary faculty had developed quite so
-early, lest the unfettered and irresponsible years of
-childhood should have been sacrificed. I was still
-more troubled when, upon my arrival, I learned that
-the title of the book which was to be dedicated to me
-was “The Two Army Girls,” and contained the
-elaborate history of a double courtship. But, as the
-story was read to me, I was soon disarmed. A more
-innocent recital I never heard&mdash;and it was all the
-quainter because of certain little grown-up sentences
-gathered from the conversation of elders in unguarded
-moments, which evidently conveyed but slight meaning
-to the youthful authoress. The final scene between
-two of the lovers is so characteristic that I cannot
-refrain from quoting the actual words. Said John:
-“I love you, and I wish you to be my wife.” “That
-I will,” said Mary, without any hesitation. “That's
-all right,” said John. “And now let us <i>get back to
-the Golf Links</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Oh, that modern writers of fiction would<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">50</a></span> “get back
-to the Golf Links” sooner than they do, realising with
-this little unconscious philosopher that there are some
-reactions from love-making which show a healthy and
-balanced constitution.</p>
-
-<p>Experience with children ought to teach us to avoid
-stories which contain too much <i>allusion</i> to matters of
-which the hearers are entirely ignorant; but, judging
-from the written stories of to-day, supposed to be for
-children, it is still a matter of difficulty to realise that
-this form of allusion to “foreign” matters, or making
-a joke the appreciation of which depends solely on a
-special and “inside” knowledge, is always bewildering
-and fatal to sustained dramatic interest.</p>
-
-<p>It is a matter of intense regret that so very few
-people have sufficiently clear remembrance of their own
-childhood to help them to understand the taste and
-point of view of the <i>normal</i> child. There is a passage
-in the “Brownies” (by Mrs. Ewing) which illustrates
-the confusion created in the child mind by a facetious
-allusion in a dramatic moment which needed a more
-direct treatment.</p>
-
-<p>When the nursery toys have all gone astray, one
-little child exclaims joyfully:</p>
-
-<p>“Why, the old Rocking-Horse's nose has turned
-up in the oven!”</p>
-
-<p>“It couldn't” remarks a tiresome, facetious doctor,
-far more anxious to be funny than to sympathise with
-the joy of the child; “it was the purest Grecian,
-modelled from the Elgin marbles.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, for grown-up people this is an excellent joke,
-but for a child who has not yet become acquainted with
-these Grecian masterpieces, the whole remark is pointless
-and hampering.<a name="FNanchor_20_20" id="FNanchor_20_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a>
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">51</a></span>
-
-VI.&mdash;<i>Stories which appeal to fear or priggishness.</i>
-This is a class of story to be avoided which scarcely
-counts to-day and against which the teacher does not
-need a warning; but I wish to make a passing allusion
-to it, partly to round off my subject and partly to
-show that we have made some improvement in choice
-of subject.</p>
-
-<p>When I study the evolution of the story from the
-crude recitals offered to our children within the last
-hundred years, I feel that, though our progress in
-intelligent mental catering may be slow, it is real and
-sure. One has only to take some examples from the
-Chap Books of the beginning of last century to realise
-the difference of appeal. Everything offered then was
-either an appeal to fear or to priggishness, and one
-wonders how it is that our grandparents and their
-parents ever recovered from the effects of such stories
-as were offered to them. But there is the consoling
-thought that no lasting impression was made upon
-them, such as I believe <i>may</i> be possible by the right
-kind of story.</p>
-
-<p>I offer a few examples of the old type of story:</p>
-
-<p>Here is an encouraging address offered by a certain
-Mr. Janeway to children about the year 1828:</p>
-
-<p>“Dare you do anything which your parents forbid
-you, and neglect to do what they command? Dare
-you to run up and down on the Lord's Day, or do
-you keep in to read your book, and learn what your
-good parents command?”</p>
-
-<p>Such an address would have almost tempted children
-to envy the lot of orphans, except that the guardians
-and less close relations might have been equally, if not
-more, severe.</p>
-
-<p>From “The Curious Girl,” published about 1809:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">52</a></span>
-“Oh! papa, I hope you will have no reason to be
-dissatisfied with me, for I love my studies very much,
-and I am never so happy at my play as when I have
-been assiduous at my lessons all day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Adolphus: How strange it is, papa, you should
-believe it possible for me to act so like a child, now
-that I am twelve years old!”</p>
-
-<p>Here is a specimen taken from a Chap-book about
-1825:</p>
-
-<p>Edward refuses hot bread at breakfast. His hostess
-asks whether he likes it. “Yes, I am extremely fond
-of it.” “Why did you refuse it?” “Because I
-know that my papa does not approve of my eating it.
-Am I to disobey a Father and Mother I love so well,
-and forget my duty, because they are a long way off?
-I would not touch the cake, were I sure nobody could
-see me. I myself should know it, and that would
-be sufficient.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nobly replied!” exclaimed Mrs. C. “Act always
-thus, and you must be happy, for although the whole
-world should refuse the praise that is due, you must
-enjoy the approbation of your conscience, which is
-beyond anything else.”</p>
-
-<p>Here is a quotation of the same kind from Mrs.
-Sherwood:</p>
-
-<p>“Tender-souled little creatures, desolated by a sense
-of sin, if they did but eat a spoonful of cupboard jam
-without Mamma's express permission.... Would a
-modern Lucy, jealous of her sister Emily's doll, break
-out thus easily into tearful apology for her guilt?&mdash;‘I
-know it is wicked in me to be sorry that Emily is
-happy, but I feel that I cannot help it.’ And would a
-modern mother retort with heartfelt joy?&mdash;'My dear
-child, I am glad you have confessed. Now I shall tell
-you why you feel this wicked sorrow'&mdash;proceeding to
-an account of the depravity of human nature so unredeemed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">53</a></span>
-by comfort for a childish mind of common
-intelligence that one can scarcely imagine the
-interview ending in anything less tragic than a fit of
-juvenile hysteria.”</p>
-
-<p>Description of a Good Boy. “A good boy is dutiful
-to his Father and Mother, obedient to his master and
-loving to his playfellows. He is diligent in learning
-his book, and takes a pleasure in improving himself
-in everything that is worthy of praise. He rises early
-in the morning, makes himself clean and decent, and
-says his prayers. He loves to hear good advice, is
-thankful to those who give it and always follows it.
-He never swears<a name="FNanchor_21_21" id="FNanchor_21_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a> or calls names or uses ill words to
-companions. He is never peevish and fretful, always
-cheerful and good-tempered.”</p>
-
-<p>VII.&mdash;<i>Stories of exaggerated and coarse fun.</i> In the
-chapter on the positive side of this subject I shall
-speak more in detail of the educational value of robust
-and virile representation of fun and of sheer nonsense,
-but as a representation to these statements, I should
-like to strike a note of warning about the element of
-exaggerated and coarse fun being encouraged in our
-school stories, partly because of the lack of humour in
-such presentations&mdash;a natural product of stifling
-imagination&mdash;and partly because the train of the
-abnormal has the same effect as the too frequent use
-of the melodramatic.</p>
-
-<p>You have only to read the adventures of Buster
-Brown, which for years formed the Sunday reading of
-millions of children in the United States, to realise
-what would be the effect of coarse fun and entire
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">54</a></span>absence of humour upon the normal child in its everyday
-experience, an effect all the greater because of the
-real skill with which the illustrations are drawn. It is
-only fair to state that this series was not originally
-prepared or intended for the young, but it is a matter
-of regret (shared by most educationists in the States)
-that they should ever have been given to children at
-all.</p>
-
-<p>In an article in <i>Macmillan's Magazine</i>, Dec. 1869,
-Miss Yonge writes: “A taste for buffoonery is much
-to be discouraged, an exclusive taste for extravagance
-most unwholesome and even perverting. It becomes
-destructive of reverence and soon degenerates into
-coarseness. It permits nothing poetical or imaginative,
-nothing sweet or pathetic to exist, and there is a
-certain self-satisfaction and superiority in making
-game of what others regard with enthusiasm and
-sentiment which absolutely bars the way against a
-higher or softer tone.”</p>
-
-<p>Although these words were written nearly half a
-century ago, they are so specially applicable to-day
-that they seem quite “up-to-date”: indeed, I think
-they will hold equally good fifty years hence.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of a strong taste on the part of children for
-what is ugly and brutal, I am sure that we ought to
-eliminate this element as far as possible from the
-school stories&mdash;especially among poor children. Not
-because I think children should be protected from all
-knowledge of evil, but because so much of this knowledge
-comes into their life outside school that we can
-well afford to ignore it during school hours. At the
-same time, however, as I shall show by example when
-I come to the positive side, it would be well to show
-children by story illustration the difference between
-brute ugliness without anything to redeem it and
-surface ugliness, which may be only a veil over the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">55</a></span>
-beauty that lies underneath. It might be possible, for
-instance, to show children the difference between the
-real ugliness of a brutal story of crime and an illustration
-of it in the sensational papers, and the apparent
-ugliness in the priest's face of the “Laocoon” group,
-because of the motive of courage and endurance behind
-the suffering. Many stories in everyday life could be
-found to illustrate this.</p>
-
-<p>VIII.&mdash;<i>Stories of infant piety and death-bed scenes.</i>
-The stories for children forty years ago contained
-much of this element, and the following examples will
-illustrate this point:</p>
-
-<p>Notes from poems written by a child between six and
-eight years of age, by name Philip Freeman, afterwards
-Archdeacon of Exeter:</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Poor Robin, thou canst fly no more,</div>
-<div class="i0">Thy joys and sorrows all are o'er.</div>
-<div class="i0">Through Life's tempestuous storms thou'st trod,</div>
-<div class="i0">But now art sunk beneath the sod.</div>
-<div class="i0">Here lost and gone poor Robin lies,</div>
-<div class="i0">He trembles, lingers, falls and dies.</div>
-<div class="i0">He's gone, he's gone, forever lost,</div>
-<div class="i0">No more of him they now can boast.</div>
-<div class="i0">Poor Robin's dangers all are past,</div>
-<div class="i0">He struggled to the very last.</div>
-<div class="i0">Perhaps he spent a happy Life,</div>
-<div class="i0">Without much struggle and much strife.</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="right">
-<i>Published by John Loder, bookseller,
-Woodbridge, in 1829.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>The prolonged gloom of the main theme is somewhat
-lightened by the speculative optimism of the last
-verse.</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Life, transient Life, is but a dream,</div>
-<div class="i0">Like Sleep which short doth lengthened seem</div>
-<div class="i0">Till dawn of day, when the bird's lay</div>
-<div class="i0">Doth charm the soul's first peeping gleam.</div>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">56</a></span></div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Then farewell to the parting year,</div>
-<div class="i0">Another's come to Nature dear.</div>
-<div class="i0">In every place, thy brightening face</div>
-<div class="i0">Does welcome winter's snowy drear.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Alas! our time is much mis-spent.</div>
-<div class="i0">Then we must haste and now repent.</div>
-<div class="i0">We have a book in which to look,</div>
-<div class="i0">For we on Wisdom should be bent.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Should God, the Almighty, King of all,</div>
-<div class="i0">Before His judgment-seat now call</div>
-<div class="i0">Us to that place of Joy and Grace</div>
-<div class="i0">Prepared for us since Adam's fall.</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p>I think there is no doubt that we have made considerable
-progress in this matter. Not only do we
-refrain from telling these highly moral (<i>sic</i>) stories
-but we have reached the point of parodying them, in
-sign of ridicule, as, for instance, in such writing as
-Belloc's “Cautionary Tales.” These would be a
-trifle too grim for a timid child, but excellent fun for
-adults.</p>
-
-<p>It should be our study to-day to prove to children
-that the immediate importance to them is not to think
-of dying and going to Heaven, but of living and&mdash;shall
-we say?&mdash;going to College, which is a far better
-preparation for a life to come than the morbid dwelling
-upon the possibility of an early death.</p>
-
-<p>In an article signed “Muriel Harris,” I think, from
-a copy of the <i>Tribune</i>, appeared a delightful article on
-Sunday Books, from which I quote the following:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">57</a></span></p>
-<p>“All very good little children died young in the
-story-books, so that unusual goodness must have been
-the source of considerable anxiety to affectionate
-parents. I came across a little old book the other day
-called ‘Examples for Youth.’ On the yellow fly-leaf
-was written in childish, carefully sloping hand:
-‘Presented to Mary Palmer Junior, by her sister, to
-be read on Sundays,’ and was dated 1828. The
-accounts are taken from a work on <i>Piety Promoted</i>,
-and all of them begin with unusual piety in early youth
-and end with the death-bed of the little paragon, and
-his or her dying words.”</p>
-
-<p>IX.&mdash;<i>Stories containing a mixture of Fairy Tale and
-Science.</i> By this combination you lose what is
-essential to each, namely, the fantastic on the one side,
-and accuracy on the other. The true Fairy Tale should
-be unhampered by any compromise of probability even&mdash;the
-scientific representation should be sufficiently
-marvellous along its own lines to need no supernatural
-aid. Both appeal to the imagination in different ways.</p>
-
-<p>As an exception to this kind of mixture, I should
-quote “The Honey Bee, and Other Stories,” translated
-from the Danish of Evald by C. G. Moore Smith.
-There is a certain robustness in these stories dealing
-with the inexorable laws of Nature, though some of
-them will appear hard to the child; but they will be
-of interest to all teachers.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps the worst element in choice of stories is that
-which insists upon the moral detaching itself and
-explaining the story. In “Alice in Wonderland” the
-Duchess says, “‘And the moral of <i>that</i> is: Take care
-of the sense and the sounds will take care of themselves.’
-‘How fond she is of finding morals in
-things,’ thought Alice to herself.” (This gives the
-point of view of the child.)</p>
-
-<p>The following is a case in point, found in a rare old
-print in the British Museum:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">58</a></span></p>
-<p>“Jane S. came home with her clothes soiled and
-hands badly torn. ‘Where have you been?’ asked
-her mother. ‘I fell down the bank near the mill,’
-said Jane, ‘and I should have been drowned if Mr. M.
-had not seen me and pulled me out.’ 'Why did you
-go so near the edge of the brink?‘ 'There was a
-pretty flower there that I wanted, and I only meant to
-take one step, but I slipped and fell down.’ Moral:
-Young people often take but one step in sinful indulgence
-(Poor Jane!), but they fall into soul-destroying
-sins. There is a sinful pleasure which they wish to
-enjoy. They can do it by a single act of sin (the
-heinous act of picking a flower!). They do it; but that
-act leads to another, and they fall into the Gulf of
-Perdition, unless God interposes.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, apart from the folly of this story, we must
-condemn it on moral grounds. Could we imagine a
-lower standard of a Deity than that presented here to
-the child?</p>
-
-<p>To-day the teacher would commend Jane for a
-laudable interest in botany, but might add a word of
-caution about choosing inclined planes as a hunting-ground
-for specimens and a popular, lucid explanation
-of the inexorable law of gravity.</p>
-
-<p>Here we have an instance of applying a moral when
-we have finished our story, but there are many stories
-where nothing is left to chance in this matter, and
-where there is no means for the child to use ingenuity
-or imagination in making out the meaning for himself.</p>
-
-<p>Henry Morley has condemned the use of this
-method as applied to Fairy Stories. He says:
-“Moralising in a Fairy Story is like the snoring of
-Bottom in Titania's lap.”</p>
-
-<p>But I think this applies to all stories, and most
-especially to those by which we do wish to teach
-something.</p>
-
-<p>John Burroughs says in his article,<a name="FNanchor_22_22" id="FNanchor_22_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">59</a></span> “Thou shalt
-not preach”:</p>
-
-<p>“Didactic fiction can never rank high. Thou shalt
-not preach or teach; though shalt pourtray and create,
-and have ends as universal as nature.... What Art
-demands is that the Artist's personal convictions and
-notions, his likes and dislikes, do not obtrude themselves
-at all; that good and evil stand judged in his
-work by the logic of events, as they do in nature, and
-not by any special pleading on his part. He does not
-hold a brief for either side; he exemplifies the working
-of the creative energy.... The great artist works <i>in</i>
-and <i>through</i> and <i>from</i> moral ideas; his works are
-indirectly a criticism of life. He is moral without
-having a moral. The moment a moral obtrudes itself,
-that moment he begins to fall from grace as an artist....
-The great distinction of Art is that it aims to
-see life steadily and to see it whole.... It affords the
-one point of view whence the world appears
-harmonious and complete.”</p>
-
-<p>It would seem, then, from this passage, that it is of
-<i>moral</i> importance to put things dramatically.</p>
-
-<p>In Froebel's “Mother Play” he demonstrates the
-educational value of stories, emphasising that their
-highest use consists in their ability to enable the child,
-through <i>suggestion</i>, to form a pure and noble idea of
-what a man may be or do. The sensitiveness of a
-child's mind is offended if the moral is forced upon
-him, but if he absorbs it unconsciously, he has received
-its influence for all time.</p>
-
-<p>To me the idea of pointing out the moral of the
-story has always seemed as futile as tying a flower on
-to a stalk instead of letting the flower <i>grow out</i> of the
-stalk, as Nature intended. In the first case, the flower,
-showy and bright for the moment, soon fades away.
-In the second instance, it develops slowly, coming to
-perfection in fulness of time because of the life within.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">60</a></span>
-
-X.&mdash;Lastly, the element to avoid is <i>that which rouses
-emotions which cannot be translated into action</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Earl Barnes, to whom all teachers owe a debt
-of gratitude for the inspiration of his education views,
-insists strongly on this point. The sole effect of such
-stories is to produce a form of hysteria, fortunately
-short-lived, but a waste of force which might be
-directed into a better channel.<a name="FNanchor_23_23" id="FNanchor_23_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a> Such stories are so
-easy to recognise that it would be useless to make a
-formal list, but I shall make further allusion to this in
-dealing with stories from the lives of the saints.</p>
-
-<p>These, then, are the main elements to avoid in the
-selection of material suitable for normal children.
-Much might be added in the way of detail, and the
-special tendency of the day may make it necessary
-to avoid one class of story more than another; but
-this care belongs to another generation of teachers and
-parents.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_18_18" id="Footnote_18_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> Such works as “Ministering Children,” “The Wide, Wide
-World,” “The Fairchild Family,” are instances of the kind of story
-I mean, as containing too much analysis of emotion.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_19_19" id="Footnote_19_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> One child's favourite book bore the exciting title of “Birth,
-Life and Death of Crazy Jane.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_20_20" id="Footnote_20_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> This does not imply that the child would not appreciate in the
-right context the thrilling and romantic story in connection with
-the finding of the Elgin marbles.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_21_21" id="Footnote_21_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> One is almost inclined to prefer Marjorie Fleming's little
-innocent oaths. “But she was more than usual calm. She did not
-give a single dam.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_22_22" id="Footnote_22_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> From “Literary Values.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_23_23" id="Footnote_23_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> A story is told of Confucius, that having attended a funeral
-he presented his horse to the chief mourner. When asked why he
-bestowed this gift, he replied: “I wept with the man, so I feel
-I ought to <i>do</i> something for him.”</p></div></div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">61</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Elements to Seek in Choice of Material.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">In</span> “The Choice of Books” Frederic Harrison has
-said: “The most useful help to reading is to know
-what we shall <i>not</i> read, ... what we shall keep from
-that small cleared spot in the overgrown jungle of
-information which we can call our ordered patch of
-fruit-bearing knowledge.”<a name="FNanchor_24_24" id="FNanchor_24_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a></p>
-
-<p>Now, the same statement applies to our stories, and,
-having busied myself, during the last chapter, with
-“clearing my small spot” by cutting away a mass of
-unfruitful growth, I am now going to suggest what
-would be the best kind of seed to sow in the patch
-which I have “reclaimed from the Jungle.”</p>
-
-<p>Again I repeat that I have no wish to be dogmatic,
-and that in offering suggestions as to the stories to be
-told, I am only catering for a group of normal school-children.
-My list of subjects does not pretend to cover
-the whole ground of children's needs, and just as I
-exclude the abnormal or unusual child from the scope
-of my warning in subjects to avoid, so do I also
-exclude that child from the limitation in choice of
-subjects to be sought, because you can offer almost
-any subject to the unusual child, especially if you stand
-in close relation to him and know his powers of
-apprehension. In this matter, <i>age</i> has very little to
-say: it is a question of the stage of development.</p>
-
-<p>Experience has taught me that for the group of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">62</a></span>
-normal children, almost irrespective of age, the first
-kind of story suitable will contain an appeal to
-conditions to which they are accustomed. The
-reason of this is obvious: the child, having limited
-experience, can only be reached by this experience,
-until his imagination is awakened and he is enabled
-to grasp through this faculty what he has not actually
-passed through. Before this awakening has taken
-place he enters the realm of fiction (represented in the
-story) by comparison with his personal experience.
-Every story and every point in the story mean more
-as that experience widens, and the interest varies, of
-course, with temperament, quickness of perception,
-power of visualising and of concentration.</p>
-
-<p>In “The Marsh King's Daughter,” H. C. Andersen
-says:</p>
-
-<p>“The Storks have a great many stories which they
-tell their little ones, all about the bogs and marshes.
-They suit them to their age and capacity. The young
-ones are quite satisfied with Kribble, Krabble, or some
-such nonsense, and find it charming; but the elder
-ones want something with more meaning.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the most interesting experiments to be made
-in connection with this subject is to tell the same story
-at intervals of a year or six months to some individual
-child.<a name="FNanchor_25_25" id="FNanchor_25_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a> The different incidents in the story which
-appeal to it (and you must watch it closely, to be sure
-the interest is real, and not artificially stimulated by
-any suggestion on your part) will mark its mental
-development and the gradual awakening of its
-imagination. This experiment is a very delicate one,
-and will not be infallible, because children are secretive
-and the appreciation is often (unconsciously) simulated,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">63</a></span>
-or concealed through shyness or want of articulation.
-But it is, in spite of this, a deeply interesting and
-helpful experiment.</p>
-
-<p>To take a concrete example: let us suppose the story
-of Andersen's Tin Soldier told to a child of five or six
-years. At the first recital, the point which will interest
-the child most will be the setting up of the tin soldiers
-on the table, because he can understand this by means
-of his own experience, in his own nursery: it is an
-appeal to conditions to which he is accustomed and
-for which no exercise of the imagination is needed,
-unless we take the effect of memory to be, according
-to Queyrat, retrospective imagination.</p>
-
-<p>The next incident that appeals is the unfamiliar
-behaviour of the toys, but still in familiar surroundings;
-that is to say, the <i>unusual</i> activities are carried
-on in the safe precincts of the nursery&mdash;in the <i>usual</i>
-atmosphere of the child.</p>
-
-<p>I quote from the text:</p>
-
-<p>“Late in the evening the other soldiers were put in
-their box, and the people of the house went to bed.
-Now was the time for the toys to play; they amused
-themselves with paying visits, fighting battles and
-giving balls. The tin soldiers rustled about in their
-box, for they wanted to join the games, but they could
-not get the lid off. The nut-crackers turned somersaults,
-and the pencil scribbled nonsense on the slate.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, from this point onwards in the story, the events
-will be quite outside the personal experience of the
-child, and there will have to be a real stretch of
-imagination to appreciate the thrilling and blood-curdling
-adventures of the little tin soldier, namely, the
-terrible sailing down the gutter under the bridge, the
-meeting with the fierce rat who demands the soldier's
-passport, the horrible sensation in the fish's body, etc.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">64</a></span>
-Last of all, perhaps, will come the appreciation of the
-best qualities of the hero: his modesty, his dignity, his
-reticence, his courage and his constancy: he seems to
-combine all the qualities of the best soldier with those
-of the best civilian, without the more obvious qualities
-which generally attract first. As for the love-story, we
-must not <i>expect</i> any child to see its tenderness and
-beauty, though the individual child may intuitively
-appreciate these qualities, but it is not what we wish
-for or work for at this period of child-life.</p>
-
-<p>This method could be applied to various stories. I
-have chosen the <i>Tin Soldier</i> because of its dramatic
-qualities and because it is marked off (probably quite
-unconsciously on the part of Andersen) into periods
-which correspond to the child's development.</p>
-
-<p>In Eugene Field's exquisite little poem of “The
-Dinkey Bird” we find the objects familiar to the child
-in <i>unusual</i> places, so that some imagination is needed
-to realise that “big red sugar-plums are clinging to
-the cliffs beside that sea”; but the introduction of the
-fantastic bird and the soothing sound of the Amfalula
-Tree are new and delightful sensations, quite out of
-the child's personal experience.</p>
-
-<p>Another such instance is to be found in Mrs. W. K.
-Clifford's story of Master Willie. The abnormal
-behaviour of familiar objects, such as a doll, leads
-from the ordinary routine to the paths of adventure.
-This story is to be found in a little book called “Very
-Short Stories,” a most interesting collection for
-teachers and children.</p>
-
-<p>We now come to the second element we should seek
-in material&mdash;namely, the element of the unusual, which
-we have already anticipated in the story of the Tin
-Soldier.</p>
-
-<p>This element is necessary in response to the demand<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">65</a></span>
-of the child who expressed the needs of his fellow-playmates
-when he said: “I want to go to the place
-where the shadows are real.” This is the true definition
-of “Faerie” lands, and is the first sign of real
-mental development in the child when he is no longer
-content with the stories of his own little deeds and
-experiences, when his ear begins to appreciate sounds
-different from the words in his own everyday language,
-and when he begins to separate his own personality
-from the action of the story.</p>
-
-<p>George Goschen says<a name="FNanchor_26_26" id="FNanchor_26_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a>:</p>
-
-<p>“What I want for the young are books and stories
-which do not simply deal with our daily life. I like
-the fancy (even) of little children to have some larger
-food than images of their own little lives, and I confess
-I am sorry for the children whose imaginations are not
-sometimes stimulated by beautiful Fairy Tales which
-carry them to worlds different from those in which
-their future will be passed.... I hold that what
-removes them more or less from their daily life is
-better than what reminds them of it at every step.”</p>
-
-<p>It is because of the great value of leading children to
-something beyond the limited circle of their own lives
-that I deplore the twaddling boarding-school stories
-written for girls and the artificially-prepared Public
-School stories for boys. Why not give them the
-dramatic interest of a larger stage? No account of a
-cricket match, or a football triumph, could present a
-finer appeal to boys and girls than the description of
-the Peacestead in the “Heroes of Asgaard”:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">66</a></span></p>
-<p>“This was the playground of the Æsir, where they
-practised trials of skill one with another and held
-tournaments and sham fights. These last were always
-conducted in the gentlest and most honourable
-manner; for the strongest law of the Peacestead was,
-that no angry blow should be struck, or spiteful word
-spoken upon the sacred field.”</p>
-
-<p>For my part, I would unhesitatingly give to boys
-and girls an element of strong romance in the stories
-which are told them even before they are twelve.
-Miss Sewell says:</p>
-
-<p>“The system that keeps girls in the schoolroom
-reading simple stories, without reading Scott and
-Shakespeare and Spenser, and then hands them over
-to the unexplored recesses of the Circulating Library,
-has been shown to be the most frivolizing that can be
-devised.” She sets forward the result of her experience
-that a good novel, especially a romantic one, read
-at twelve or fourteen, is really a beneficial thing.</p>
-
-<p>At present many of the children from the elementary
-schools get their first idea of love (if one can give it
-such a name) from vulgar pictures displayed in the
-shop windows, or jokes on marriage culled from the
-lowest type of paper, or the proceedings of a divorce-court.</p>
-
-<p>What an antidote to such representation might be
-found in the story of</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>Hector and Andromache,</li>
-<li>Siegfreid and Brunhild,</li>
-<li>Dido and Æneas,</li>
-<li>Orpheus and Eurydice,</li>
-<li>St. Francis and St. Clare.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>One of the strongest elements we should introduce
-into our stories for children of all ages is that which
-calls forth love of beauty. And the beauty should
-stand out, not necessarily only in delineation of noble
-qualities in our heroes and heroines, but in beauty and
-strength of language and form.</p>
-
-<p>In this latter respect the Bible stories are of such<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">67</a></span>
-inestimable value&mdash;all the greater because a child is
-familiar with the subject, and the stories gain fresh
-significance from the spoken or winged word as
-compared with the mere reading. Whether we should
-keep to the actual text is a matter of individual
-experience. Professor R. G. Moulton, whose interpretations
-of the Bible Stories are so well known both in
-England and the States, does not always confine
-himself to the actual text, but draws the dramatic
-elements together, rejecting what seems to him to
-break the narrative, but introducing the actual
-language where it is the most effective. Those who
-have heard him will realise the success of his method.</p>
-
-<p>There is one Bible story which can be told with
-scarcely any deviation, and that is the story of
-Nebuchadnezzar and the Golden Image. Thus, I
-think it wise, if the children are to succeed in partially
-visualizing the story, that they should have some idea
-of the dimensions of the Golden Image as it would
-stand out in a vast plain. It might be well to compare
-those dimensions with some building with which the
-child is familiar. In London the matter is easy, as the
-height will compare, roughly speaking, with that of
-Westminster Abbey. The only change in the text I
-should adopt is to avoid the constant enumeration of
-the list of rulers and the musical instruments. In
-doing this, I am aware that I am sacrificing something
-of beauty in the rhythm,&mdash;on the other hand, for
-narrative purpose, the interest is not broken. The first
-time the announcement is made, that is, by the Herald,
-it should be in a perfectly loud, clear and toneless
-voice, such as you would naturally use when shouting
-through a trumpet to a vast concourse of people
-scattered over a wide plain; reserving all the dramatic
-tone of voice for the passage where Nebuchadnezzar is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">68</a></span>
-making the announcement to the three men by themselves.
-I can remember Professor Moulton saying
-that all the dramatic interest of the story is summed
-up in the words “But if Not....” This suggestion is
-a very helpful one, for it enables us to work up
-gradually to this point, and then, as it were, <i>unwind</i>,
-until we reach the words of Nebuchadnezzar's
-dramatic recantation.</p>
-
-<p>In this connection, it is a good plan occasionally
-during the story hour to introduce really good poetry
-which, delivered in a dramatic manner (far removed,
-of course, from the melodramatic), might give children
-their first love of beautiful form in verse. And I do
-not think it necessary to wait for this. Even the
-normal child of seven (though there is nothing
-arbitrary in the suggestion of this age) will appreciate
-the effect&mdash;if only on the ear&mdash;of beautiful lines well
-spoken. Mahomet has said, in his teaching advice:
-“Teach your children poetry: it opens the mind,
-lends grace to wisdom and makes heroic virtues
-hereditary.”</p>
-
-<p>To begin with the youngest children of all, here
-is a poem which contains a thread of story, just enough
-to give a human interest:</p>
-
-<p class="center">MILKING-TIME.</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">When the cows come home, the milk is coming,</div>
-<div class="i0">Honey's made when the bees are humming.</div>
-<div class="i0">Duck, Drake on the rushy lake,</div>
-<div class="i0">And the deer live safe in the breezy brake,</div>
-<div class="i0">And timid, funny, pert little bunny</div>
-<div class="i0">Winks his nose, and sits all sunny.</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="right">
-<i>Christina Rossetti.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>Now, in comparing this poem with some of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">69</a></span>
-doggerel verse offered to small children, one is struck
-with the literary superiority in the choice of words.
-Here, in spite of the simplicity of the poem, there is
-not the ordinary limited vocabulary, nor the forced
-rhyme, nor the application of a moral, by which the
-artist falls from grace.</p>
-
-<p>Again, in Eugene Field's “Hushaby Lady,” the
-language of which is most simple, the child is carried
-away by the beauty of the sound.</p>
-
-<p>I remember hearing some poetry repeated by the
-children in one of the elementary schools in Sheffield
-which made me feel that they had realised romantic
-possibilities which would prevent their lives from ever
-becoming quite prosaic again, and I wish that this
-practice were more usual. There is little difficulty
-with the children. I can remember, in my own experience
-as a teacher in London, making the experiment of
-reading or repeating passages from Milton and
-Shakespeare to children from nine to eleven years of
-age, and the enthusiastic way they responded by learning
-those passages by heart. I have taken, with
-several sets of children, such passages from Milton as
-“Echo Song,” “Sabrina,” “By the rushy fringed
-Bank,” “Back, shepherds, back,” from <i>Comus</i>,
-“May Morning,” “Ode to Shakespeare,” “Samson
-on his blindness,” etc. I even ventured on several
-passages from <i>Paradise Lost</i>, and found “Now came
-still evening on” a particular favourite with the
-children.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed even easier to interest them in Shakespeare,
-and they learned quite readily and easily many
-passages from “As You Like It,” “Merchant of
-Venice,” “Julius Cæsar”; from “Richard II,”
-“Henry IV,” and “Henry V.”</p>
-
-<p>The method I should recommend in the introduction<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">70</a></span>
-of both poets occasionally into the Story-hour would
-be threefold.</p>
-
-<p>First, to choose passages which appeal for beauty of
-sound or beauty of mental vision called up by those
-sounds: such as, “Tell me where is Fancy bred,”
-Titania's Lullaby, “How sweet the moonlight sleeps
-upon this bank.”</p>
-
-<p>Secondly, passages for sheer interest of content, such
-as the Trial Scene from “The Merchant of Venice,”
-or the Forest Scene in “As You Like It.”</p>
-
-<p>Thirdly, for dramatic and historical interest, such
-as, “Men at some time are masters of their fates,” the
-whole of Mark Antony's speech, and the scene with
-Imogen and her foster-brothers in the Forest.</p>
-
-<p>It may not be wholly out of place to add here that
-the children learned and repeated these passages
-themselves, and that I offered them the same advice as
-I do to all Story-tellers. I discussed quite openly with
-them the method I considered best, trying to make
-them see that simplicity of delivery was not only the
-most beautiful but the most effective means to use;
-and, by the end of a few months, when they had been
-allowed to experiment and express themselves, they
-began to see that mere ranting was not force, and that
-a sense of reserve power is infinitely more impressive
-and inspiring than mere external presentation.</p>
-
-<p>I encouraged them to criticise each other for the
-common good, and sometimes I read a few lines with
-over-emphasis and too much gesture, which they were
-at liberty to point out, so that they might avoid the
-same error.</p>
-
-<p>A very good collection of poems for this purpose
-of narrative is to be found in:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>Mrs. P. A. Barnett's series of <i>Song and Story</i>,</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-Published by A. and C. Black.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">71</a></span>
-
-And for older children:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p><i>The Call of the Homeland</i>, Anthology.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-Edited by Dr. Scott and Miss Katharine Wallas,
-Published by Blackie and Son.
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p class="noin">Also in a collection published (I believe) in Boston by
-Miss Agnes Repplier.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p><i>Golden Numbers</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-(K. D. Wiggin and N. A. Smith).
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>It will be realised from the scanty number of
-examples offered in this section that it is only a side
-issue, a mere suggestion of an occasional alternative
-for the Story-hour, as likely to develop the imagination.</p>
-
-<p>I think it is well to have a good number of stories
-illustrating the importance of common sense and
-resourcefulness. For this reason I consider that stories
-treating of the ultimate success of the youngest son
-are very admirable for the purpose, because the
-youngest child, who begins by being considered
-inferior to the elder ones, triumphs in the end, either
-from resourcefulness, or from common sense, or from
-some high quality, such as kindness to animals,
-courage in overcoming difficulties, etc.<a name="FNanchor_27_27" id="FNanchor_27_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus we have the story of Cinderella. The cynic
-might imagine that it was the diminutive size of her
-foot that ensured her success: the child does not realise
-any advantage in this, but, though the matter need not
-be pressed, the story leaves us with the impression that
-Cinderella had been patient and industrious, forbearing
-with her sisters. We know that she was strictly
-obedient to her godmother, and in order to be this she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">72</a></span>
-makes her dramatic exit from the ball which is the
-beginning of her triumph. There are many who
-might say that these qualities do not meet with
-reward in life and that they end in establishing a habit
-of drudgery, but, after all, we must have poetic justice
-in a Fairy Story, occasionally, at any rate.</p>
-
-<p>Another such story is “Jesper and the Hares.”
-Here, however, it is not at first resourcefulness that
-helps the hero, but sheer kindness of heart, which
-prompts him first to help the ants, and then to show
-civility to the old woman, without for a moment
-expecting any material benefit from such actions. At
-the end, he does win by his own ingenuity and
-resourcefulness, and if we regret that his <i>trickery</i> has
-such wonderful results, we must remember that the
-aim was to win the princess for herself, and that there
-was little choice left him. I consider the end of this
-story to be one of the most remarkable I have found
-in my long years of browsing among Fairy Tales. I
-should suggest stopping at the words: “The Tub is
-full,” as any addition seems to destroy the subtlety of
-the story.<a name="FNanchor_28_28" id="FNanchor_28_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a></p>
-
-<p>Another story of this kind, admirable for children
-from six years and upwards, is “What the Old Man
-does is <span class="err" title="original: alway">always</span> Right.” Here, perhaps, the entire lack
-of common sense on the part of the hero would serve
-rather as a warning than a stimulating example, but
-the conduct of the wife in excusing the errors of her
-foolish husband is a model of resourcefulness.</p>
-
-<p>In the story of “Hereafter&mdash;this”<a name="FNanchor_29_29" id="FNanchor_29_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a> we have just the
-converse: a perfectly foolish wife shielded by a most
-patient and forbearing husband, whose tolerance and
-common sense save the situation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">73</a></span>
-
-One of the most important elements to seek in our
-choice of stories is that which tends to develop, eventually,
-a fine sense of humour in a child. I purposely
-use the word “eventually,” because I realise first that
-humour has various stages, and that seldom, if ever,
-can you expect an appreciation of fine humour from a
-normal child, that is, from an elemental mind. It
-seems as if the rough-and-tumble element were almost
-a necessary stage through which children must pass&mdash;a
-stage, moreover, which is normal and healthy; but up
-to now we have quite unnecessarily extended the period
-of elephantine fun, and though we cannot control the
-manner in which children are catered for along this
-line in their homes, we can restrict the folly of
-appealing too strongly or too long to this elemental
-faculty in our schools. Of course, the temptation is
-strong, because the appeal is so easy. But there is a
-tacit recognition that horse-play and practical jokes
-are no longer considered an essential part of a
-child's education. We note this in the changed attitude
-in the schools, taken by more advanced educationists,
-towards bullying, fagging, hazing, etc. As a reaction,
-then, from more obvious fun, there should be a certain
-number of stories which make appeal to a more subtle
-element, and in the chapter on the questions put to me
-by teachers on various occasions, I speak more in
-detail about the educational value of a finer humour in
-our stories.</p>
-
-<p>At some period there ought to be presented in our
-stories the superstitions connected with the primitive
-history of the race, dealing with the Fairy (proper),
-giants, dwarfs, gnomes, nixies, brownies and other
-elemental beings. Andrew Lang says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">74</a></span> “Without our
-savage ancestors we should have had no poetry.
-Conceive the human race born into the world in its
-present advanced condition, weighing, analysing,
-examining everything. Such a race would have been
-destitute of poetry and flattened by common sense.
-Barbarians did the <i>dreaming</i> of the world.”</p>
-
-<p>But it is a question of much debate among educationists
-what should be the period of the child's
-life in which these stories are to be presented. I
-myself was formerly of opinion that they belonged to
-the very primitive age of the individual, just as they
-belong to the primitive age of the race, but experience
-in telling stories has taught me to compromise.</p>
-
-<p>Some people maintain that little children, who take
-things with brutal logic, ought not to be allowed the
-Fairy Tale in its more limited form of the Supernatural;
-whereas, if presented to older children, this
-material can be criticised, catalogued and (alas!)
-rejected as worthless, or retained with flippant toleration.</p>
-
-<p>Now, whilst recognising a certain value in this point
-of view, I am bound to admit that if we regulate our
-stories entirely on this basis, we lose the real value of
-the Fairy Tale element&mdash;it is the one element which
-causes little children to <i>wonder</i>, simply because no
-scientific analysis of the story can be presented to
-them. It is somewhat heartrending to feel that Jack
-and the Bean-Stalk and stories of that ilk are to be
-handed over to the critical youth who will condemn
-the quick growth of the tree as being contrary to the
-order of nature, and wonder why Jack was not playing
-football in the school team instead of climbing trees
-in search of imaginary adventures.</p>
-
-<p>A wonderful plea for the telling of early superstitions
-to children is to be found in an old Indian Allegory
-called “The Blazing Mansion.”
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">75</a>
-</span> </p>
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“An old man owned a large, rambling mansion&mdash;the
-pillars were rotten, the galleries tumbling down,
-the thatch dry and combustible, and there was only one
-door. Suddenly, one day, there was a smell of fire:
-the old man rushed out. To his horror he saw that
-the thatch was aflame, the rotten pillars were catching
-fire one by one, and the rafters were burning like
-tinder. But inside, the children went on amusing
-themselves quite happily. The distracted father said:
-‘I will run in and save my children. I will seize them
-in my strong arms, I will bear them harmless through
-the falling rafters and the blazing beams.’ Then the
-sad thought came to him that the children were romping
-and ignorant. ‘If I say the house is on fire, they
-will not understand me. If I try to seize them, they
-will romp about and try to escape. Alas! not a
-moment to be lost!’ Suddenly a bright thought
-flashed across the old man's mind. ‘My children are
-ignorant,’ he said; ‘they love toys and glittering
-playthings. I will promise them playthings of
-unheard-of beauty. Then they will listen.’</p>
-
-<p>So the old man shouted: ‘Children, come out of
-the house and see these beautiful toys! Chariots with
-white oxen, all gold and tinsel. See these exquisite
-little antelopes. Whoever saw such goats as these?
-Children, children, come quickly, or they will all be
-gone!’</p>
-
-<p>Forth from the blazing ruin the children came in
-hot haste. The word ‘plaything’ was almost the only
-word they could understand.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Father, rejoiced that his offspring was
-freed from peril, procured for them one of the most
-beautiful chariots ever seen: the chariot had a canopy
-like a pagoda: it had tiny rails and balustrades and
-rows of jingling bells. Milk-white oxen drew the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">76</a></span>
-chariot. The children were astonished when they were
-placed inside.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-(<i>From the “Thabagata.”</i>)
-</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>Perhaps, as a compromise, one might give the
-gentler superstitions to very small children, and leave
-such a blood-curdling story as Bluebeard to a more
-robust age.</p>
-
-<p>There is one modern method which has always
-seemed to me much to be condemned, and that is the
-habit of changing the end of a story, for fear of
-alarming the child. This is quite indefensible. In
-doing this we are tampering with folk-lore and confusing
-stages of development.</p>
-
-<p>Now, I know that there are individual children that,
-at a tender age, might be alarmed at such a story, for
-instance, as Little Red Riding-Hood; in which case, it
-is better to sacrifice the “wonder stage” and present
-the story later on.</p>
-
-<p>I live in dread of finding one day a bowdlerized form
-of “Bluebeard” (prepared for a junior standard), in
-which, to produce a satisfactory finale, all the wives
-come to life again, and “live happily for ever after”
-with Bluebeard and each other!</p>
-
-<p>And from this point it seems an easy transition to
-the subject of legends of different kinds. Some of the
-old country legends in connection with flowers are
-very charming for children, and as long as we do not
-tread on the sacred ground of the Nature Students, we
-may indulge in a moderate use of such stories, of which
-a few will be found in the Story Lists.</p>
-
-<p>With regard to the introduction of legends connected
-with saints into the school curriculum, my chief plea is
-the element of the unusual which they contain, and
-an appeal to a sense of mysticism and wonder which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">77</a></span>
-is a wise antidote to the prosaic and commercial
-tendencies of to-day. Though many of the actions of
-the saints may be the result of a morbid strain of self-sacrifice,
-at least none of them were engaged in the sole
-occupation of becoming rich: their ideals were often
-lofty and unselfish; their courage high, and their deeds
-noble. We must be careful, in the choice of our
-legends, to show up the virile qualities rather than to
-dwell on the elements of horror in details of
-martyrdom, or on the too-constantly recurring
-miracles, lest we should defeat our own ends. For the
-children might think lightly of the dangers to which
-the saints were exposed if they find them too often
-preserved at the last moment from the punishment
-they were brave enough to undergo. For one or other
-of these reasons, I should avoid the detailed history of
-St. Juliana, St. Vincent, St. Quintin, St. Eustace, St.
-Winifred, St. Theodore, St. James the More, St.
-Katharine, St. Cuthbert, St. Alphage, St. Peter of
-Milan, St. Quirine and Juliet, St. Alban and others.</p>
-
-<p>The danger of telling children stories connected with
-sudden conversions is that they are apt to place too
-much emphasis on the process, rather than the goal to
-be reached. We should always insist on the splendid
-deeds performed after a real conversion&mdash;not the details
-of the conversion itself; as, for instance, the beautiful
-and poetical work done by St. Christopher when he
-realised what work he could do most effectively.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, there are many stories of the
-saints dealing with actions and motives which would
-appeal to the imagination and are not only worthy of
-imitation, but are not wholly outside the life and
-experience even of the child.<a name="FNanchor_30_30" id="FNanchor_30_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">78</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Having protested against the elephantine joke and
-the too-frequent use of exaggerated fun, I now endeavour
-to restore the balance by suggesting the introduction
-into the school curriculum of a few purely
-grotesque stories which serve as an antidote to sentimentality
-or utilitarianism. But they must be presented
-as nonsense, so that the children may use them for
-what they are intended, as pure relaxation. Such a
- story is that of “The Wolf and the Kids.” I
-have had serious objections offered to this story by
-several educational people, because of the revenge
-taken by the goat on the wolf, but I am inclined to
-think that if the story is to be taken as anything but
-sheer nonsense, it is surely sentimental to extend our
-sympathy towards a caller who has devoured six of his
-hostess' children. With regard to the wolf being cut
-open, there is not the slightest need to accentuate the
-physical side. Children accept the deed as they accept
-the cutting off of a giant's head, because they do not
-associate it with pain, especially if the deed is presented
-half-humorously. The moment in the story where
-their sympathy is aroused is the swallowing of the
-kids, because the children do realise the possibility of
-being disposed of in the mother's absence. (Needless
-to say, I never point out the moral of the kids'
-disobedience to the mother in opening the door.) I
-have always noticed a moment of breathlessness even
-in a grown-up audience when the wolf swallows the
-kids, and that the recovery of them “all safe and
-sound, all huddled together” is quite as much appreciated
-by the adult audience as by the children, and is
-worth the tremor caused by the wolf's summary action.</p>
-
-<p>I have not always been able to impress upon the
-teachers that this story <i>must</i> be taken lightly. A very
-earnest young student came to me once after I had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">79</a></span>
-told it, and said in an awestruck voice: “Do you
-Correlate?” Having recovered from the effect of
-this word, which she carefully explained, I said that
-as a rule I preferred to keep the story apart from
-the other lessons, just an undivided whole, because it
-had effects of its own which were best brought about
-by not being connected with other lessons.<a name="FNanchor_31_31" id="FNanchor_31_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> She
-frowned her disapproval and said: “I am sorry,
-because I thought I would take The Goat for my Nature
-Study lesson, and then tell your story at the end.” I
-thought of the terrible struggle in the child's mind
-between his conscientious wish to be accurate and his
-dramatic enjoyment of the abnormal habits of a goat
-who went out with scissors, needle and thread; but I
-have been most careful since to repudiate any connection
-with Nature Study in this and a few other stories
-in my répertoire.</p>
-
-<p>One might occasionally introduce one of Edward
-Lear's “Book of Nonsense.” For instance:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">There was an Old Man of Cape Horn,</div>
-<div class="i0">Who wished he had never been born;</div>
-<div class="i0">So he sat in a chair till he died of despair,</div>
-<div class="i0">That dolorous Man of Cape Horn.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>Now, except in case of very young children, this
-could not possibly be taken seriously. The least
-observant normal boy or girl would recognise the
-hollowness of the pessimism that prevents a man from
-at least an attempt to rise from his chair.</p>
-
-<p>The following I have chosen as repeated with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">80</a></span>
-intense appreciation and much dramatic vigour by a
-little boy just five years old:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">There was an Old Man who said, “Hush!</div>
-<div class="i0">I perceive a young bird in this bush!”</div>
-<div class="i0">When they said, “Is it small?” he replied, “Not at all!</div>
-<div class="i0">It is four times as big as the bush!”<a name="FNanchor_32_32" id="FNanchor_32_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a></div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>One of the most desirable of all elements to
-introduce into our stories is that which encourages
-kinship with animals. With very young children this
-is easy, because in those early years when the mind
-is not clogged with knowledge, the sympathetic
-imagination enables them to enter into the feelings of
-animals. Andersen has an illustration of this point in
-his “Ice Maiden”:</p>
-
-<p>“Children who cannot talk yet can understand the
-language of fowls and ducks quite well, and cats and
-dogs speak to them quite as plainly as Father and
-Mother; but that is only when the children are very
-small, and then even Grandpapa's stick will become a
-perfect horse to them that can neigh and, in their eyes,
-is furnished with legs and a tail. With some children
-this period ends later than with others, and of such we
-are accustomed to say that they are very backward,
-and that they have remained children for a long time.
-People are in the habit of saying strange things.”</p>
-
-<p>Felix Adler says: “Perhaps the chief attraction of
-Fairy Tales is due to their representing the child as
-living in brotherly friendship with nature and all
-creatures. Trees, flowers, animals, wild and tame, even
-the stars are represented as comrades of children. That
-animals are only human beings in disguise is an axiom
-in the Fairy Tales. Animals are humanised, that is,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">81</a></span>
-the kinship between animal and human life is still
-keenly felt; and this reminds us of those early
-animistic interpretations of nature which subsequently
-led to doctrines of metempsychosis.”<a name="FNanchor_33_33" id="FNanchor_33_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a></p>
-
-<p>I think that beyond question the finest animal stories
-are to be found in the Indian Collections, of which I
-furnish a list in the Appendix.</p>
-
-<p>With regard to the development of the love of nature
-through the telling of the stories, we are confronted
-with a great difficult in the elementary schools, because
-so many of the children have never been out of the
-towns, have never seen a daisy, a blade of grass and
-scarcely a tree, so that in giving, in form of a story,
-a beautiful description of scenery, you can make no
-appeal to the retrospective imagination, and only the
-rarely gifted child will be able to make pictures whilst
-listening to a style which is beyond his everyday use.
-Nevertheless, once in a way, when the children are in
-a quiet mood, not eager for action but able to give
-themselves up to the pure joy of sound, then it is
-possible to give them a beautiful piece of writing in
-praise of Nature, such as the following, taken from
-<i>The Divine Adventure</i>, by Fiona Macleod:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">82</a></span></p>
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Then he remembered the ancient wisdom of the
-Gael and came out of the Forest Chapel and went into
-the woods. He put his lip to the earth, and lifted a
-green leaf to his brow, and held a branch to his ear,
-and because he was no longer heavy with the sweet
-clay of mortality, though yet of human clan he heard
-that which we do not hear, and saw that which we do
-not see, and knew that which we do not know. All the
-green life was his. In that new world, he saw the lives
-of trees, now pale green, now of woodsmoke blue, now
-of amethyst; the gray lives of stone; breaths of the
-grass and reed, creatures of the air, delicate and wild
-as fawns, or swift and fierce and terrible, tigers, of that
-undiscovered wilderness, with birds almost invisible
-but for their luminous wings, and opalescent crests.”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>The value of this particular passage is the mystery
-pervading the whole picture, which forms so beautiful
-an antidote to the eternal explaining of things. I
-think it of the highest importance for children to realise
-that the best and most beautiful things cannot be
-expressed in everyday language and that they must
-content themselves with a flash here and there of the
-beauty which may come later. One does not enhance
-the beauty of the mountain by pulling to pieces some
-of the earthy clogs: one does not increase the impression
-of a vast ocean by analysing the single drops of
-water. But at a reverent distance one gets a clear
-impression of the whole, and can afford to leave the
-details in the shadow.</p>
-
-<p>In presenting such passages (and it must be done
-very sparingly) experience has taught me that we
-should take the children into our confidence by telling
-them frankly that nothing exciting is going to happen,
-so that they will be free to listen to the mere words.
-A very interesting experiment might occasionally be
-made by asking the children some weeks afterwards to
-tell you in their own words what pictures were made on
-their minds. This is a very different thing from
-allowing the children to reproduce the passage at once,
-the danger of which proceeding I speak of later in
-detail. (See Chapter on Questions.)</p>
-
-<p>We now come to the question as to what proportion
-of <i>Dramatic Excitement</i> we should present in the
-stories for a normal group of children. Personally, I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">83</a></span>
-should like, while the child is very young (I mean in
-mind, not in years) to exclude the element of dramatic
-excitement, but though this may be possible for the
-individual child, it is quite Utopian to hope we can
-keep the average child free from what is in the atmosphere.
-Children crave for excitement, and unless we
-give it to them in legitimate form, they will take it in
-any riotous form it presents itself, and if from our
-experience we can control their mental digestion by a
-moderate supply of what they demand, we may save
-them from devouring too eagerly the raw material they
-can so easily find for themselves.</p>
-
-<p>There is a humorous passage bearing on this
-question in the story of the small Scotch boy, when he
-asks leave of his parents to present the pious little
-book&mdash;a gift to himself from his Aunt&mdash;to a little sick
-friend, hoping probably that the friend's chastened
-condition will make him more lenient towards this
-mawkish form of literature. The parents expostulate,
-pointing out to their son how ungrateful he is, and how
-ungracious it would be to part with his Aunt's gift.
-Then the boy can contain himself no longer. He
-bursts out, unconsciously expressing the normal
-attitude of children at a certain stage of development:
-“It's a <i>daft</i> book ony way; there's naebody gets kilt
-en't. I like stories about folk getting their heids cut
-off, or stabbit through and through, wi' swords an'
-spears. An' there's nae wile beasts. I like Stories
-about black men gettin' ate up, an' white men killin'
-lions and tigers an' bears an'&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Then, again, we have the passage from George
-Eliot's “Mill on the Floss”:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">84</a></span></p>
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“Oh, dear! I wish they would not fight at your
-school, Tom. Didn't it hurt you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hurt me? No,” said Tom, putting up the hooks
-again, taking out a large pocket-knife, and slowly
-opening the largest blade, which he looked at meditatively
-as he rubbed his finger along it. Then he
-added:</p>
-
-<p>“I gave Spooner a black eye&mdash;that's what he got
-for wanting to leather me. I wasn't going to go halves
-because anybody leathered me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! how brave you are, Tom. I think you are
-like Samson. If there came a lion roaring at me, I
-think you'd fight him, wouldn't you, Tom?”</p>
-
-<p>“How can a lion come roaring at you, you silly
-thing? There's no lions only in the shows.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, but if we were in the lion countries&mdash;I mean
-in Africa where it's very hot, the lions eat people there.
-I can show it you in the book where I read it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I should get a gun and shoot him.”</p>
-
-<p>“But if you hadn't got a gun?&mdash;we might have
-gone out, you know, not thinking, just as we go out
-fishing, and then a great lion might come towards us
-roaring, and we could not get away from him. What
-should you do, Tom?”</p>
-
-<p>Tom paused, and at last turned away contemptuously,
-saying: “But the lion <i>isn't</i> coming. What's
-the use of talking?”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>This passage illustrates also the difference between
-the highly-developed imagination of the one and the
-stodgy prosaical temperament of the other. Tom could
-enter into the elementary question of giving his school-fellow
-a black eye, but could not possibly enter into
-the drama of the imaginary arrival of a lion. He was
-sorely in need of Fairy Stories.</p>
-
-<p>It is for this element we have to cater, and we
-cannot shirk our responsibilities.</p>
-
-<p>William James says: “Living things, moving
-things or things that savour of danger or blood, that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">85</a></span>
-have a dramatic quality, these are the things natively
-interesting to childhood, to the exclusion of almost
-everything else, and the teacher of young children
-(until more artificial interests have grown up) will keep
-in touch with his pupils by constant appeal to such
-matters as those.”<a name="FNanchor_34_34" id="FNanchor_34_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of course the savour of danger and blood is only
-<i>one</i> of the things to which we should appeal, but I
-give the whole passage to make the point clearer.</p>
-
-<p>This is one of the most difficult parts of our selection,
-namely, how to present enough excitement for the
-child and yet include enough constructive element
-which will satisfy him when the thirst for
-“blugginess” is slaked.</p>
-
-<p>And here I should like to say that, whilst wishing
-to encourage in children great admiration and reverence
-for the courage and other fine qualities which
-have been displayed in times of war, and which have
-mitigated its horrors, I think we should show that
-some of the finest moments in these heroes' lives had
-nothing to do with their profession as soldiers. Thus
-we have the well-known story of Sir Philip Sidney and
-the soldier; the wonderful scene where Roland drags
-the bodies of his dead friends to receive the blessing
-of the archbishop after the battle of Roncevalles<a name="FNanchor_35_35" id="FNanchor_35_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a>; and
-of Napoleon sending the sailor back to England.
-There is a moment in the story of Gunnar when he
-pauses in the midst of the slaughter of his enemies,
-and says, “I wonder if I am less brave than others,
-because I kill men less willingly than they.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">86</a></span></p>
-
-<p>And in the “Njal's Burning” from Andrew Lang's
-“Book of Romance” we have the words of the boy
-Thord when his grandmother, Bergthora, urges him
-to go out of the burning house.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>“You promised me when I was little, grandmother,
-that I never should go from you till I wished it of
-myself. And I would rather die with you than live
-after you.”</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>Here the moral courage is so splendidly shown;
-none of these heroes feared to die in battle or in open
-single fight, but to face a death by fire for higher
-considerations is a point of view worth presenting to
-the child.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of all the dramatic excitement roused by
-the conduct of our soldiers and sailors,<a name="FNanchor_36_36" id="FNanchor_36_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a> should we not
-try to offer also in our stories the romance and excitement
-of saving as well as <i>taking</i> life?</p>
-
-<p>I would have quite a collection dealing with the
-thrilling adventures of the Life-Boat and the Fire
-Brigade, of which I hope to present examples in the
-final Story List.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, we ought to include a certain number of
-stories dealing with Death, especially with children
-who are of an age to realise that it must come to all,
-and that this is not a calamity but a perfectly natural
-and simple thing. At present the child in the street
-invariably connects death with sordid accidents. I
-think they should have stories of Death coming in
-heroic form, as when a man or woman dies for a
-great cause, in which he has opportunity of admiring
-courage, devotion and unselfishness; or of Death
-coming as a result of treachery, such as we find in
-the death of Baldur, of Siegfried, and of others,
-so that children may learn to abhor such deeds; but
-also a fair proportion of stories dealing with death that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">87</a></span>
-comes naturally, when our work is done and our
-strength gone, which has no more tragedy than the
-falling of a leaf from the tree. In this way we can
-give children the first idea that the individual is so
-much less than the whole.</p>
-
-<p>Quite small children often take Death very naturally.
-A boy of five met two of his older companions at the
-school door. They said sadly and solemnly: “We
-have just seen a dead man!” “Well,” said the little
-philosopher, “that's all right. We've <i>all</i> got to die
-when our work's done.”</p>
-
-<p>In one of the Buddha stories which I reproduce at
-the end of this book, the little Hare (who is, I think, a
-symbol of nervous Individualism) constantly says:
-“Suppose the Earth were to fall in, what would
-become of me?”</p>
-
-<p>As an antidote to the ordinary attitude towards
-death, I commend an episode from a German folk-lore
-story called “Unlucky John,” which is included in
-the list of stories recommended at the end of this
-book.</p>
-
-<p>The following sums up in poetic form some of the
-material necessary for the wants of a child:</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE CHILD.</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">The little new soul has come to Earth,</div>
-<div class="i2">He has taken his staff for the Pilgrim's way.</div>
-<div class="i0">His sandals are girt on his tender feet,</div>
-<div class="i2">And he carries his scrip for what gifts he may.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">What will you give to him, Fate Divine?</div>
-<div class="i2">What for his scrip on the winding road?</div>
-<div class="i0">A crown for his head, or a laurel wreath?</div>
-<div class="i2">A sword to wield, or is gold his load?</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">88</a></span>
-<div class="i0">What will you give him for weal or woe?</div>
-<div class="i2">What for the journey through day and night?</div>
-<div class="i0">Give or withhold from him power and fame,</div>
-<div class="i2">But give to him love of the earth's delight.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Let him be lover of wind and sun</div>
-<div class="i2">And of falling rain; and the friend of trees;</div>
-<div class="i0">With a singing heart for the pride of noon,</div>
-<div class="i2">And a tender heart for what twilight sees.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Let him be lover of you and yours&mdash;</div>
-<div class="i2">The Child and Mary; but also Pan,</div>
-<div class="i0">And the sylvan gods of the woods and hills,</div>
-<div class="i2">And the god that is hid in his fellow-man.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Love and a song and the joy of earth,</div>
-<div class="i2">These be the gifts for his scrip to keep</div>
-<div class="i0">Till, the journey ended, he stands at last</div>
-<div class="i2">In the gathering dark, at the gate of sleep.</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="right">
-<i>Ethel Clifford.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>And so our stories should contain all the essentials
-for the child's scrip on the road of life, providing the
-essentials and holding or withholding the non-essentials.
-But, above all, let us fill the scrip with
-gifts that the child need never reject, even when he
-passes through “the gate of sleep.”</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_24_24" id="Footnote_24_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> Chapter I, page <a href="#Page_3">3</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_25_25" id="Footnote_25_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> This experiment cannot be made with a group of children, for
-obvious reasons.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_26_26" id="Footnote_26_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> From an address on the “Cultivation of the Imagination.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_27_27" id="Footnote_27_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> “The House in the Wood” (Grimm) is a good instance of
-triumph for the youngest child.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_28_28" id="Footnote_28_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> To be found in Andrew Lang's Collection. See <a href="#Lang_Books">list of Stories</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_29_29" id="Footnote_29_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> To be found in Jacob's “More English Tales.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_30_30" id="Footnote_30_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> For selection of suitable stories among legends of the Saints,
-see <a href="#Page_210">Story Lists</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_31_31" id="Footnote_31_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> I believe that I am quite in a minority among Educationists
-in this matter. Possibly my constantly specialising in the stories
-may have formed my opinion.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_32_32" id="Footnote_32_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> These words have been set most effectively to music by Miss
-Margaret Ruthven Lang. (Boston.)</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_33_33" id="Footnote_33_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> From “Moral Instruction of Children,” page 66. “The Use of
-Fairy Tales.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_34_34" id="Footnote_34_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> From “Talks to Teachers,” page 93.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_35_35" id="Footnote_35_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> An excellent account of this is to be found in “The Song of
-Roland,” by Arthur Way and Frederic Spender.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_36_36" id="Footnote_36_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> This passage was written before the Great War.</p></div></div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">89</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VI.</h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">How to Obtain and Maintain the Effect of the
-Story.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">We</span> are now coming to the most important part of the
-question of Story-Telling, to which all the foregoing
-remarks have been gradually leading, and that is
-the Effects of these stories upon the child, apart
-from the dramatic joy he experiences in listening to
-them, which would in itself be quite enough to justify
-us in the telling. But, since I have urged upon
-teachers the extreme importance of giving so much
-time to the manner of telling and of bestowing so
-much care on the selection of the material, it is right
-that they should expect some permanent results, or
-else those who are not satisfied with the mere enjoyment
-of the children will seek other methods of appeal&mdash;and
-it is to them that I most specially dedicate this
-chapter.</p>
-
-<p>I think we are on the threshold of the re-discovery
-of an old truth, that the Dramatic Presentation is the
-quickest and surest, because it is the only one with
-which memory plays no tricks. If a thing has
-appeared before us in a vital form, nothing can really
-destroy it; it is because things are often given in a
-blurred, faint light that they gradually fade out of our
-memory. A very keen scientist was deploring to me,
-on one occasion, the fact that stories were told so much
-in the schools, to the detriment of science, for which
-she claimed the same indestructible element that I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">90</a></span>
-recognise in the best-told stories. Being very much
-interested in her point of view, I asked her to tell
-me, looking back on her school days, what she could
-remember as standing out from other less clear
-information. After thinking some little time over the
-matter, she said with some embarrassment, but with a
-candour that did her much honour:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, now I come to think of it, it was the story
-of Cinderella.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, I am not holding any brief for this story in
-particular. I think the reason it was remembered was
-because of the dramatic form in which it was presented
-to her, which fired her imagination and kept the
-memory alight. I quite realise that a scientific fact
-might also have been easily remembered if it was
-presented in the form of a successful chemical experiment:
-but this also has something of the dramatic
-appeal and will be remembered on that account.</p>
-
-<p>Sully says: “We cannot understand the fascination
-of a story for children save in remembering that for
-their young minds, quick to imagine, and unversed in
-abstract reflection, words are not dead things but
-<i>winged</i>, as the old Greeks called them.”<a name="FNanchor_37_37" id="FNanchor_37_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Red Queen (in “Through the Looking-Glass”)
-was more psychological than she knew when
-she made the memorable statement: “When once
-you've <i>said</i> a thing that <i>fixes</i> it, and you must take the
-consequences.”</p>
-
-<p>In Curtin's Introduction to “Myths and Folk Tales
-of the Russians,” he says:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">91</a></span></p>
-<p>“I remember well the feeling roused in my mind
-at the mention or sight of the name <i>Lucifer</i> during the
-early years of my life. It stood for me as the name
-of a being stupendous, dreadful in moral deformity,
-lurid, hideous and mighty. I remember the surprise
-<span class="err" title="original: which which">which, when</span> I had grown somewhat older and
-began to study Latin, I came upon the name in Virgil
-where it means <i>light-bringer</i>&mdash;the herald of the Sun.”</p>
-
-<p>Plato has said: “That the End of Education should
-be the training by suitable habits of the Instincts of
-Virtue in the Child.”</p>
-
-<p>About two thousand years later, Sir Philip Sidney,
-in his “Defence of Poesy,” says: “The final end of
-learning is to draw and lead us to so high a perfection
-as our degenerate souls, made worse by their clay
-lodgings, can be capable of.”</p>
-
-<p>And yet it is neither the Greek philosopher nor the
-Elizabethan poet that makes the every-day application
-of these principles; but we have a hint of this application
-from the Pueblo tribe of Indians, of whom
-Lummis tells us the following:</p>
-
-<p>“There is no duty to which a Pueblo child is trained
-in which he has to be content with a bare command:
-Do this. For each he learns a fairy-tale designed to
-explain how children first came to know that it was
-right to ‘do this,’ and detailing the sad results that
-befell those who did otherwise. Some tribes have
-regular story-tellers, men who have devoted a great
-deal of time to learning the myths and stories of their
-people and who possess, in addition to a good memory,
-a vivid imagination. The mother sends for one of
-these, and having prepared a feast for him, she and her
-little brood, who are curled up near her, await the
-Fairy Stories of the dreamer, who after his feast and
-smoke entertains the company for hours.”</p>
-
-<p>In modern times, the nurse, who is now receiving
-such complete training for her duties with the children,
-should be ready to imitate the “dreamer” of the
-Indian tribe. I rejoice to find that regular instruction<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">92</a></span>
-in Story-telling is being given in many of the institutions
-where the nurses are trained.</p>
-
-<p>Some years ago there appeared a book by Dion
-Calthrop called “King Peter,” which illustrates very
-fully the effect of story-telling. It is the account of
-the education of a young prince which is carried on at
-first by means of stories, and later he is taken out into
-the arena of Life to be shown what is happening there&mdash;the
-dramatic appeal being always the means used to
-awaken his imagination. The fact that only <i>one</i> story
-a year is told him prevents our seeing the effect from
-day to day, but the time matters little. We only need
-faith to believe that the growth, though slow, was very
-sure.</p>
-
-<p>There is something of the same idea in the “Adventures
-of Telemachus,” written by Fénélon for his royal
-pupil, the young Duke of Burgundy; but whereas
-Calthrop trusts to the results of indirect teaching by
-means of dramatic stories, Fénélon, on the contrary,
-makes use of the somewhat heavy, didactic method, so
-that one would think the attention of the young prince
-must have wandered at times; and I imagine
-Telemachus was in the same condition when he was
-addressed at some length by Mentor, who, being
-Minerva (though in disguise), should occasionally
-have displayed that sense of humour which must
-always temper true wisdom:</p>
-
-<p>Take, for instance, the heavy reproof conveyed in
-the following passage:</p>
-
-<p>“Death and shipwreck are less dreadful than the
-pleasures that attack Virtue.... Youth is full of
-presumption and arrogance, though nothing in the
-world is so frail: it fears nothing, and vainly relies on
-its own strength, believing everything with the utmost
-levity and without any precaution.”</p>
-
-<p>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">93</a></span>
-And on another occasion, when Calypso hospitably
-provides clothes for the shipwrecked men, and Telemachus
-is handling a tunic of the finest wool and white
-as snow, with a vest of purple embroidered with gold,
-and displaying much pleasure in the magnificence of
-the clothes, Mentor addresses him in a severe voice,
-saying: “Are these, O Telemachus, the thoughts
-that ought to occupy the heart of the son of Ulysses?
-A young man who loves to dress vainly, as a woman
-does, is unworthy of wisdom or glory.”</p>
-
-<p>I remember, as a schoolgirl of thirteen, having to
-commit to memory several books of these adventures,
-so as to become familiar with the style. Far from
-being impressed by the wisdom of Mentor, I was
-simply bored, and wondered why Telemachus did not
-escape from him. The only part in the book that
-really interested me was Calypso's unrequited love for
-Telemachus, but this was always the point where we
-ceased to learn by heart, which surprised me greatly,
-for it was here that the real human interest seemed
-to begin.</p>
-
-<p>Of all the effects which I hope for from the telling of
-stories in the schools, personally I place first the
-dramatic joy we bring to the children and to ourselves.
-But there are many who would consider this result as
-fantastic, if not frivolous, and not to be classed among
-the educational values concocted with the introduction
-of stories into the school curriculum. I therefore
-propose to speak of other effects of story-telling which
-may seem of more practical value.</p>
-
-<p>The first, which is of a purely negative character, is
-that through means of a dramatic story we can counteract
-some of the sights and sounds of the streets which
-appeal to the melodramatic instinct in children. I am
-sure that all teachers whose work lies in the crowded<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">94</a></span>
-cities must have realised the effect produced on
-children by what they see and hear on their way to
-and from school. If we merely consider the hoardings,
-with their realistic representations, quite apart from
-the actual dramatic happenings in the street, we at once
-perceive that the ordinary school interests pale before
-such lurid appeals as these. How can we expect the
-child who has stood open-mouthed before a poster
-representing a woman chloroformed by a burglar,
-whilst that hero escapes in safety with her jewels, to
-display any interest in the arid monotony of the
-multiplication-table? The illegitimate excitement
-created by the sight of the depraved burglar can only
-be counteracted by something equally exciting along
-the realistic but legitimate side; and this is where the
-story of the right kind becomes so valuable, and why
-the teacher who is artistic enough to undertake the
-task can find the short path to results which theorists
-seek for so long in vain. It is not even necessary to
-have an exceedingly exciting story; sometimes one
-which will bring about pure reaction may be just as
-suitable.</p>
-
-<p>I remember in my personal experience an instance
-of this kind. I had been reading with some children
-of about ten years old the story from Cymbeline, of
-Imogen in the forest scene, when the brothers strew
-flowers upon her, and sing the funeral dirge,</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“Fear no more the heat of the sun.”</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="noin">Just as we had all taken on this tender, gentle mood,
-the door opened and one of the prefects announced in a
-loud voice the news of the relief of Mafeking. The
-children were on their feet at once, cheering lustily,
-and for the moment the joy over the relief of the brave
-garrison was the predominant feeling. Then, before<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">95</a></span>
-the Jingo spirit had time to assert itself, I took advantage
-of a momentary reaction and said: “Now,
-children, don't you think we can pay England the
-tribute of going back to England's greatest poet?”
-In a few minutes we were back in the heart of the
-Forest, and I can still hear the delightful intonation of
-those subdued voices repeating:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Golden lads and girls all must</div>
-<div class="i0">Like chimney-sweepers come to dust.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>It is interesting to note that the same problem that
-is exercising us to-day was a source of difficulty to
-people in remote times. The following is taken from
-an old Chinese document, and has particular interest
-for us to-day.</p>
-
-<p>“The Philosopher Mentius (born 371 <small>B.C.</small>) was left
-fatherless at a very tender age and brought up by his
-mother Changsi. The care of this prudent and attentive
-mother has been cited as a model for all virtuous
-parents. The house she occupied was near that of a
-butcher: she observed at the first cry of the animals
-that were being slaughtered, the little Mentius ran to
-be present at the sight, and that, on his return, he
-sought to imitate what he had seen. Fearful lest his
-heart might become hardened, and accustomed to the
-sights of blood, she removed to another house which
-was in the neighbourhood of a cemetery. The relations
-of those who were buried there came often to weep
-upon their graves, and make their customary libations.
-The lad soon took pleasure in their ceremonies and
-amused himself by imitating them. This was a new
-subject of uneasiness to his mother: she feared her son
-might come to consider as a jest what is of all things
-the most serious, and that he might acquire a habit
-of performing with levity, and as a matter of routine
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">96</a></span>
-merely, ceremonies which demand the most exact
-attention and respect. Again therefore she anxiously
-changed the dwelling, and went to live in the city,
-opposite to a school, where her son found examples the
-most worthy of imitation, and began to profit by them.
-This anecdote has become incorporated by the Chinese
-into a proverb, which they constantly quote: The
-Mother of Mentius seeks a neighbourhood.”</p>
-
-<p>Another influence we have to counteract is that of
-newspaper headings which catch the eye of children
-in the streets and appeal so powerfully to their
-imagination.</p>
-
-<p>Shakespeare has said:</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Tell me where is Fancy bred,</div>
-<div class="i0">Or in the heart, or in the head?</div>
-<div class="i0">How begot, how nourished?</div>
-<div class="i2">Reply, reply.</div>
-<div class="i0">It is engendered in the eyes</div>
-<div class="i0">With gazing fed: and Fancy dies</div>
-<div class="i0">In the cradle where it lies.</div>
-<div class="i2">Let us all ring Fancy's knell.</div>
-<div class="i2">I'll begin it&mdash;ding, dong, bell.</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="right">
-“<i>Merchant of Venice.</i>”
-</p>
-
-<p>If this be true, it is of importance to decide what
-our children shall look upon as far as we can control
-the vision, so that we can form some idea of the effect
-upon their imagination.</p>
-
-<p>Having alluded to the dangerous influence of the
-street, I should hasten to say that this influence is very
-far from being altogether bad. There are possibilities
-of romance in street life which may have just the same
-kind of effect on children as the telling of exciting
-stories. I am indebted to Mrs. Arnold Glover (Hon.
-Sec. of the National Organisation of Girls' Clubs),
-one of the most widely informed people on this subject,
-for the two following experiences gathered from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">97</a></span>
-streets which bear indirectly on the subject of story-telling:</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Glover was visiting a sick woman in a very
-poor neighbourhood, and found, sitting on the doorstep
-of the house, two children, holding something
-tightly grasped in their little hands, and gazing
-with much expectancy towards the top of the street.
-She longed to know what they were doing, but not
-being one of those unimaginative and tactless folk who
-rush headlong into the mysteries of children's doings,
-she passed them at first in silence. It was only when
-she found them still in the same silent and expectant
-posture half-an-hour later that she said tentatively:
-“I wonder whether you would tell me what you are
-doing here?” After some hesitation, one of them
-said, in a shy voice: “We're waitin' for the barrer.”
-It then transpired that, once a week, a vegetable-and
-flower-cart was driven through this particular street,
-on its way to a more prosperous neighbourhood, and
-on a few red-letter days, a flower, or a sprig, or even a
-root sometimes fell out of the back of the cart; and
-those two little children were waiting there in hope,
-with their hands full of soil, ready to plant anything
-which might by golden chance fall that way, in their
-secret garden of oyster-shells.</p>
-
-<p>This seems to me as charming a fairy-tale as any
-that our books can supply.</p>
-
-<p>Another time Mrs. Glover was collecting the pennies
-for the Holiday Fund Savings Bank from the children
-who came weekly to her house. She noticed on three
-consecutive Mondays that one little lad deliberately
-helped himself to a new envelope from her table. Not
-wishing to frighten or startle him, she allowed this to
-continue for some weeks, and then one day, having
-dismissed the other children, she asked him quite<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">98</a></span>
-quietly why he was taking the envelopes. At first he
-was very sulky, and said: “I need them better than
-you do.” She quite agreed this might be, but
-reminded him that, after all, they belonged to her.
-She promised, however, that if he would tell her for
-what purpose he wanted the envelopes, she would
-endeavour to help him in the matter. Then came the
-astonishing announcement: “I am building a navy.”
-After a little more gradual questioning, Mrs. Glover
-drew from the boy the information that the Borough
-Water Carts passed through the side street once a
-week, flushing the gutter; that then the Envelope
-Ships were made to sail on the water and pass under
-the covered ways which formed bridges for wayfarers
-and tunnels for the “navy.” Great was the excitement
-when the ships passed out of sight and were recognised
-as they arrived safely at the other end. Of course the
-expenses in raw material were greatly diminished by
-the illicit acquisition of Mrs. Glover's property, and in
-this way she had unconsciously provided the neighbourhood
-with a navy and a Commander. Her first
-instinct, after becoming acquainted with the whole
-story, was to present the boy with a real boat, but on
-second thought she collected and gave him a number
-of old envelopes with names and addresses upon them,
-which added greatly to the excitement of the sailing,
-because they could be more easily identified as they
-came out of the other side of the tunnel, and had their
-respective reputations as to speed.</p>
-
-<p>Here is indeed food for romance, and I give both
-instances to prove that the advantages of street life are
-to be taken into consideration as well as the disadvantages;
-though I think we are bound to admit that the
-latter outweigh the former.</p>
-
-<p>One of the immediate results of dramatic stories is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">99</a></span>
-the escape from the commonplace, to which I have
-already alluded in quoting Mr. Goschen's words. The
-desire for this escape is a healthy one, common to
-adults and children. When we wish to get away from
-our own surroundings and interests, we do for ourselves
-what I maintain we ought to do for children; we
-step into the land of fiction. It has always been a
-source of astonishment to me that, in trying to escape
-from our own every-day surroundings, we do not step
-more boldly into the land of pure romance, which
-would form a real contrast to our every-day life, but in
-nine cases out of ten the fiction which is sought after
-deals with the subjects of our ordinary existence&mdash;namely,
-frenzied finance, sordid poverty, political
-corruption, fast society, and religious doubts.</p>
-
-<p>There is the same danger in the selection of fiction
-for children: namely, a tendency to choose very
-utilitarian stories, both in form and substance, so that
-we do not lift the children out of the commonplace. I
-remember once seeing the titles of two little books, the
-contents of which were being read or told to small
-children of the poorer class: one was called “Tom the
-Boot-black,” the other, “Dan the News-boy.” My
-chief objection to these stories was the fact that neither
-of the heroes rejoiced in their work for the work's
-sake. Had Tom even invented a new kind of blacking,
-or if Dan had started a splendid newspaper, it might
-have been encouraging for those among the listeners
-who were thinking of engaging in similar professions.
-It is true, both gentlemen amassed large fortunes, but
-surely the school age is not to be limited to such
-dreams and aspirations as these! One wearies of the
-tales of boys who arrive in a town with one cent
-in their pockets, and leave it as millionaires, with the
-added importance of a Mayoralty, not to speak of a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">100</a></span>
-Knighthood. It is true that the romantic prototype of
-these boys is Dick Whittington, for whom we unconsciously
-cherish the affection which we often bestow
-on a far-off personage. Perhaps&mdash;who knows?&mdash;it is
-the picturesque adjunct of the cat&mdash;lacking to modern
-millionaires.<a name="FNanchor_38_38" id="FNanchor_38_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a></p>
-
-<p>I do not think it Utopian to present to children a
-fair share of stories which deal with the importance of
-things “untouched by hand.” They too can learn at
-an early age that “the things which are seen are
-temporal, but the things which are unseen are
-spiritual.” To those who wish to try the effect of such
-stories on children, I present for their encouragement
-the following lines from Whitcomb Riley:</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE TREASURE OF THE WISE MAN.<a name="FNanchor_39_39" id="FNanchor_39_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a></p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Oh, the night was dark and the night was late,</div>
-<div class="i0">When the robbers came to rob him;</div>
-<div class="i0">And they picked the lock of his palace-gate,</div>
-<div class="i0">The robbers who came to rob him&mdash;</div>
-<div class="i0">They picked the lock of the palace-gate,</div>
-<div class="i0">Seized his jewels and gems of State</div>
-<div class="i0">His coffers of gold and his priceless plate,&mdash;</div>
-<div class="i0">The robbers that came to rob him.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">But loud laughed he in the morning red!&mdash;</div>
-<div class="i0">For of what had the robbers robbed him?</div>
-<div class="i0">Ho! hidden safe, as he slept in bed,</div>
-<div class="i0">When the robbers came to rob him,&mdash;</div><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">101</a></span>
-<div class="i0">They robbed him not of a golden shred</div>
-<div class="i0">Of the childish dreams in his wise old head&mdash;</div>
-<div class="i0">“And they're welcome to all things else,” he said,</div>
-<div class="i0">When the robbers came to rob him.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>There is a great deal of this romantic spirit, combined
-with a delightful sense of irresponsibility, which
-I claim above all things for small children, to be found
-in our old Nursery Rhymes. I quote from the following
-article written by the Rev. R. L. Gales for the
-<i>Nation</i>.</p>
-
-<p>After speaking on the subject of Fairy Stories being
-eliminated from the school curriculum, the writer
-adds:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">102</a></span></p>
-<p>“This would be lessening the joy of the world and
-taking from generations yet unborn the capacity for
-wonder, the power to take a large unselfish interest
-in the spectacle of things, and putting them forever
-at the mercy of small private cares.</p>
-
-<p>A Nursery Rhyme is the most sane, the most
-unselfish thing in the world. It calls up some delightful
-image,&mdash;a little nut-tree with a silver walnut and a
-golden pear; some romantic adventure only for the
-child's delight and liberation from the bondage of
-unseeing dulness: it brings before the mind the
-quintessence of some good thing:</p>
-
-<p>'The little dog laughed to see such sport'&mdash;there
-is the soul of good humour, of sanity, of health
-in the laughter of that innocently wicked little dog.
-It is the laughter of pure frolic without unkindness.
-To have laughed with the little dog as a child is the
-best preservative against mirthless laughter in later
-years&mdash;the horse laughter of brutality, the ugly
-laughter of spite, the acrid laughter of fanaticism. The
-world of Nursery Rhymes, the old world of Mrs.
-Slipper-Slopper, is the world of natural things, of
-quick, healthy motion, of the joy of living.</p>
-
-<p>In Nursery Rhymes the child is entertained with
-all the pageant of the world. It walks in Fairy
-Gardens, and for it the singing birds pass. All the
-King's horses and all the King's men pass before it in
-their glorious array. Craftsmen of all sorts, bakers,
-confectioners, silversmiths, blacksmiths are busy for it
-with all their arts and mysteries, as at the court of an
-Eastern King.”</p>
-
-<p>In insisting on the value of this escape from the
-commonplace, I cannot prove the importance of it more
-clearly than by showing what may happen to a child
-who is deprived of his birthright by having none of the
-Fairy Tale element presented to him. In “Father and
-Son,” Mr. Edmund Gosse says:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">103</a></span></p>
-<p>“Meanwhile, capable as I was of reading, I found
-my greatest pleasure in the pages of books. The
-range of these was limited, for story-books of every
-description were sternly excluded. No fiction of any
-kind, religious or secular, was admitted into the house.
-In this it was to my Mother, not to my Father, that
-the prohibition was due. She had a remarkable, I
-confess, to me somewhat unaccountable impression
-that to ‘tell a story,’ that is, to compose fictitious
-narrative of any kind, was a sin.... Nor would she
-read the chivalrous tales in the verse of Sir Walter
-Scott, obstinately alleging that they were not true.
-She would read nothing but lyrical and subjective
-poetry.... As a child, however, she had possessed a
-passion for making up stories, and so considerable a
-skill in it, that she was constantly being begged to
-indulge others with its exercise.... ‘When I was a
-very little child,’ she says, ‘I used to amuse myself
-and my brothers with inventing stories such as I had
-read. Having, as I suppose, naturally a restless mind
-and busy imagination, this soon became the chief
-pleasure of my life. Unfortunately, my brothers were
-always fond of encouraging this propensity, and I
-found in Taylor, my maid, a still greater tempter. I
-had not known there was any harm in it, until Miss
-Shore (a Calvinistic governess), finding it out, lectured
-me severely and told me it was wicked. From that
-time forth I considered that to invent a story of any
-kind was a sin.... But the longing to invent stories
-grew with violence. The simplicity of Truth was not
-enough for me. I must needs embroider imagination
-upon it, and the folly and wickedness which disgraced
-my heart are more than I am able to express....’
-This (the Author, her son, adds) is surely a very
-painful instance of the repression of an instinct.”</p>
-
-<p>In contrast to the stifling of the imagination, it is
-good to recall the story of the great Hermits who,
-having listened to the discussion of the Monday sitting
-at the Académie des Sciences (Institut de France) as to
-the best way to teach the young how to shoot in the
-direction of mathematical genius, said: “<i>Cultivez
-l'imagination, messieurs. Tout est là. Si vous voulez
-des mathématiciens, donnez à vos enfants à lire&mdash;des
-Contes de Fées.</i>”</p>
-
-<p>Another important effect of the story is to develop at
-an early age sympathy for children of other countries
-where conditions are different from our own. There is
-a book used in American schools called “Little
-Citizens of other Lands,” dealing with the clothes, the
-games and occupations of those little citizens. Stories
-of this kind are particularly necessary to prevent the
-development of insular notions, and are a check on that
-robust form of Philistinism, only too prevalent, alas!
-among grown-ups, which looks askance at new<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">104</a></span>
-suggestions and makes the withering remark: “How
-un-English! How queer!”&mdash;the second comment
-being, it would seem, a natural corollary to the first.<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a></p>
-
-<p>I have so constantly to deal with the question of
-confusion between Truth and Fiction in the mind of
-children that it might be useful to offer here an
-example of the way they make the distinction for
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Ewing says on this subject:</p>
-
-<p>“If there are young intellects so imperfect as to be
-incapable of distinguishing between Fancy and Falsehood,
-it is most desirable to develop in them the power
-to do so, but, as a rule, in childhood, we appreciate
-the distinction with a vivacity which as elders our
-care-clogged memories fail to recall.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. P. A. Barnett, in his book on the “Commonsense
-of Education,” says, alluding to Fairy Tales:</p>
-
-<p>“Children will <i>act</i> them but not act <i>upon</i> them, and
-they will not accept the incidents as part of their
-effectual belief. They will imagine, to be sure,
-grotesque worlds, full of admirable and interesting
-personages to whom strange things might have
-happened. So much the better; this largeness of
-imagination is one of the possessions that distinguish
-the better nurtured child from others less fortunate.”</p>
-
-<p>The following passage from Stevenson's essay on
-<i>Child Play</i><a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> will furnish an instance of children's
-aptitude for creating their own dramatic atmosphere:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">105</a></span></p>
-<p>“When my cousin and I took our porridge of a
-morning, we had a device to enliven the course of a
-meal. He ate his with sugar, and explained it to be a
-country continually buried under snow. I took mine
-with milk, and explained it to be a country suffering
-gradual inundation. You can imagine us exchanging
-bulletins; how here was an island still unsubmerged,
-here a valley not yet covered with snow; what inventions
-were made; how his population lived in cabins
-on perches and travelled on stilts, and how mine was
-always in boats; how the interest grew furious as the
-last corner of safe ground was cut off on all sides and
-grew smaller every moment; and how, in fine, the food
-was of altogether secondary importance, and might
-even have been nauseous, so long as we seasoned it
-with these dreams. But perhaps the most exciting
-moments I ever had over a meal, were in the case of
-calves' feet jelly. It was hardly possible not to believe,
-and you may be quite sure, so far from trying it, I did
-all I could to favour the illusion&mdash;that some part of it
-was hollow, and that sooner or later my spoon would
-lay open the secret tabernacle of that golden rock.
-There, might some Red-Beard await this hour; there
-might one find the treasures of the Forty Thieves.
-And so I quarried on slowly, with bated breath,
-savouring the interest. Believe me, I had little palate
-left for the jelly; and though I preferred the taste
-when I took cream with it, I used often to go without
-because the cream dimmed the transparent fractures.”</p>
-
-<p>In his work on Imagination, Ribot says: “The free
-initiative of children is always superior to the imitations
-we pretend to make for them.”</p>
-
-<p>The passage from Robert Stevenson becomes more
-clear from a scientific point of view when taken in
-connection with one from Karl Groos' book on the
-“Psychology of Animal Play”:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">106</a></span></p>
-<p>“The Child is wholly absorbed in his play, and yet
-under the ebb and flow of thought and feeling like still
-water under wind-swept waves, he has the knowledge
-that it is pretence after all. Behind the sham ‘I’ that
-takes part in the game, stands the unchanged ‘I’
-which regards the sham ‘I’ with quiet superiority.”</p>
-
-<p>Queyrat speaks of play as one of the distinct phases
-of a child's imagination; it is “essentially a metamorphosis
-of reality, a transformation of places and
-things.”</p>
-
-<p>Now to return to the point which Mrs. Ewing
-makes, namely, that we should develop in normal
-children the power of distinguishing between Truth
-and Falsehood.</p>
-
-<p>I should suggest including two or three stories
-which would test that power in children, and if they
-fail to realise the difference between romancing and
-telling lies then it is evident that they need special
-attention and help along this line. I give the titles of
-two stories of this kind in the collection at the end of
-the book.<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a></p>
-
-<p>So far we have dealt only with the negative results
-of stories, but there are more important effects, and I
-am persuaded that if we are careful in our choice of
-stories, and artistic in our presentation (so that the
-truth is framed, so to speak, in the memory), we can
-unconsciously correct evil tendencies in children which
-they only recognise in themselves when they have
-already criticised them in the characters of the story.
-I have sometimes been misunderstood on this point,
-therefore I should like to make it quite clear. I do
-<i>not</i> mean that stories should take the place entirely of
-moral or direct teaching, but that on many occasions
-they could supplement and strengthen moral teaching,
-because the dramatic appeal to the imagination is
-quicker than the moral appeal to the conscience. A
-child will often resist the latter lest it should make him<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">107</a></span>
-uncomfortable or appeal to his personal sense of
-responsibility: it is often not in his power to resist the
-former, because it has taken possession of him before
-he is aware of it.</p>
-
-<p>As a concrete example, I offer three verses from a
-poem entitled “A Ballad for a Boy,” written some
-twelve years ago by W. Cory, an Eton master. The
-whole poem is to be found in a book of poems known
-as “Ionica” (published by George Allen and Co.).</p>
-
-<p>The poem describes a fight between two ships, the
-French ship <i>Téméraire</i> and the English ship <i>Quebec</i>.
-The English ship was destroyed by fire. Farmer, the
-captain, was killed, and the officers taken prisoners:</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“They dealt with us as brethren, they mourned for Farmer dead;</div>
-<div class="i0">And as the wounded captives passed, each Breton bowed the head.</div>
-<div class="i0">Then spoke the French lieutenant, 'Twas the fire that won, not we:</div>
-<div class="i0">You never struck your flag to <i>us</i>; you'll go to England free.'<a name="FNanchor_43_43" id="FNanchor_43_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a></div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">'Twas the sixth day of October, Seventeen-hundred-seventy-nine,</div>
-<div class="i0">A year when nations ventured against us to combine,</div>
-<div class="i0"><i>Quebec</i> was burned and Farmer slain, by us remembered not;</div>
-<div class="i0">But thanks be to the French book wherein they're not forgot.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">And you, if you've to fight the French, my youngster, bear in mind</div>
-<div class="i0">Those seamen of King Louis so chivalrous and kind;</div>
-<div class="i0">Think of the Breton gentlemen who took our lads to Brest,</div>
-<div class="i0">And treat some rescued Breton as a comrade and a guest.”</div>
-</div></div></div>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">108</a></span>
-This poem is specially to be commended because it
-is another example of the finer qualities which are
-developed in war.<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a></p>
-
-<p>Now, such a ballad as this, which, being pure
-narrative, could easily be introduced into the story-hour,
-would do as much to foster “<i>L'entente cordiale</i>”
-as any processions or civic demonstrations, or lavish
-international exchange of hospitality. It has also a
-great practical application now that we are encouraging
-visits between English and foreign children. Let us
-hope the <i>entente cordiale</i> will not stop at France.
-There must be many such instances of magnanimity
-and generosity displayed to us by other nations, and it
-might be well to collect them and include them among
-stories for the school curriculum.</p>
-
-<p>But in all our stories, in order to produce desired
-effects we must refrain from holding, as Burroughs
-says, “a brief for either side,” and we must leave the
-decision of the children free in this matter.<a name="FNanchor_45_45" id="FNanchor_45_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a></p>
-
-<p>In a review of Ladd's <i>Psychology</i> in the
-“Academy,” we find a passage which refers as much
-to the story as to the novel:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">109</a></span></p>
-<p>“The psychological novelist girds up his loins
-and sets himself to write little essays on each of his
-characters. If he have the gift of the thing he may
-analyse motives with a subtlety which is more than
-their desert, and exhibit simple folk passing through
-the most dazzling rotations. If he be a novice, he is
-reduced to mere crude invention&mdash;the result in both
-cases is quite beyond the true purpose of Art. Art&mdash;when
-all is said and done&mdash;is a suggestion, and it
-refuses to be explained. Make it obvious, unfold it
-in detail, and you reduce it to a dead letter.”</p>
-
-<p>Again there is a sentence by Schopenhauer applied
-to novels which would apply equally well to stories:</p>
-
-<p>“Skill consists in setting the inner life in motion
-with the smallest possible array of circumstances, for
-it is this inner life that excites our interest.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, in order to produce an encouraging and lasting
-effect by means of our stories, we should be careful
-to introduce a certain number from fiction where virtue
-is rewarded and vice punished, because to appreciate
-the fact that “virtue is its own reward” calls for a
-developed and philosophic mind, or a born saint, of
-whom there will not, I think, be many among normal
-children: a comforting fact, on the whole, as the
-normal teacher is apt to confuse them with prigs.</p>
-
-<p>A <i>grande dame</i> visiting an elementary school
-listened to the telling of an exciting story from fiction,
-and was impressed by the thrill of delight which passed
-through the children. But when the story was
-finished, she said: “But <i>oh!</i> what a pity the story was
-not taken from actual history!”</p>
-
-<p>Now, not only was this comment quite beside the
-mark, but the lady in question did not realise that
-pure fiction has one quality which history cannot have.
-The historian, bound by fact and accuracy, must often
-let his hero come to grief. The poet (or, in this case,
-we may call him, in the Greek sense, the “maker” of
-stories) strives to show <i>ideal</i> justice.</p>
-
-<p>What encouragement to virtue (except for the
-abnormal child) can be offered by the stories of good
-men coming to grief, such as we find in Miltiades,
-Phocion, Socrates, Severus, Cicero, Cato and Cæsar?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">110</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Sir Philip Sidney says in his “Defence of Poesy”:</p>
-
-<p>“Only the Poet declining to be held by the limitations
-of the lawyer, the <i>historian</i>, the grammarian,
-the rhetorician, the logician, the physician, the metaphysician,
-if lifted up with the vigour of his own
-imagination; doth grow in effect into another nature
-in making things either better than Nature bringeth
-forth or quite anew, as the Heroes, Demi-gods,
-Cyclops, Furies and such like, so as he goeth hand
-in hand with Nature not enclosed in the narrow range
-of her gifts but freely ranging within the Zodiac of
-his own art&mdash;<i>her</i> world is brazen; the poet only
-delivers a golden one.”</p>
-
-<p>The effect of the story need not stop at the negative
-task of correcting evil tendencies. There is the
-positive effect of translating the abstract ideal of the
-story into concrete action.</p>
-
-<p>I was told by Lady Henry Somerset that when the
-first set of slum children came down for a fortnight's
-holiday in the country, she was much startled and
-shocked by the obscenity of the games they played
-amongst themselves. Being a sound psychologist,
-Lady Henry wisely refrained from appearing surprised
-or from attempting any direct method of reproof. “I
-saw,” she said, “that the ‘goody’ element would
-have no effect, so I changed the whole atmosphere
-by reading to them or telling them the most thrilling
-mediæval tales without any commentary. By the end
-of the fortnight the activities had all changed. The
-boys were performing astonishing deeds of prowess,
-and the girls were allowing themselves to be rescued
-from burning towers and fetid dungeons.” Now, if
-these deeds of chivalry appear somewhat stilted to us,
-we can at least realise that, having changed the whole
-atmosphere of the filthy games, it is easier to translate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">111</a></span>
-the deeds into something a little more in accordance
-with the spirit of the age, and boys will more readily
-wish later on to save their sisters from dangers more
-sordid and commonplace than fiery towers and dark
-dungeons, if they have once performed the deeds in
-which they had to court danger and self-sacrifice for
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>And now we come to the question as to how these
-effects are to be maintained. In what has already
-been stated about the danger of introducing the
-dogmatic and direct appeal into the story, it is evident
-that the avoidance of this element is the first means of
-preserving the story in all its artistic force in the
-memory of the child, and we must be careful, as I
-point out in the chapter on Questions, not to interfere
-by comment or question with the atmosphere we have
-made round the story, or else, in the future, that story
-will become blurred and overlaid with the remembrance,
-not of the artistic whole, as presented by the
-teller of the story, but by some unimportant small side
-issue raised by an irrelevant question or a superfluous
-comment.</p>
-
-<p>Many people think that the dramatisation of the
-story by the children themselves helps to maintain
-the effect produced. Personally, I fear there is the
-same danger as in the immediate reproduction of the
-story, namely, that the general dramatic effect may be
-weakened.</p>
-
-<p>If, however, there is to be dramatisation (and I do
-not wish to dogmatise on the subject), I think it should
-be confined to facts and not fancies, and this is why I
-realise the futility of the dramatisation of Fairy Tales.</p>
-
-<p>Horace Scudder says on this subject:</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing has done more to vulgarise the Fairy
-than its introduction on the stage. The charm of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">112</a></span>
-the Fairy Tale is its divorce from human experience;
-the charm of the stage is its realisation in miniature of
-Human Life. If a frog is heard to speak, if a dog is
-changed before our eyes into a prince by having cold
-water dashed over it, the charm of the Fairy Tale has
-fled, and, in its place, we have the perplexing pleasure
-of <i>leger de main</i>. Since the real life of a Fairy is in
-the imagination, a wrong is committed when it is
-dragged from its shadowy hiding-place and made to
-turn into ashes under the calcium light of the understanding.”<a name="FNanchor_46_46" id="FNanchor_46_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a></p>
-
-<p>I am bound to confess that the teachers have a case
-when they plead for this re-producing of the story,
-and there are three arguments they use whose validity
-I admit, but which have nevertheless not converted me,
-because the loss, to my mind, would exceed the gain.</p>
-
-<p>The first argument they put forward is that the
-reproduction of the story enables the child to enlarge
-and improve his vocabulary. Now I greatly sympathise
-with this point of view, only, as I regard the story-hour
-as a very precious and special one, which I think
-may have a lasting effect on the character of a child, I
-do not think it important that, during this hour, a
-child should be called upon to improve his vocabulary
-at the expense of the dramatic whole, and at the
-expense of the literary form in which the story has
-been presented. It would be like using the Bible for
-parsing or paraphrase or pronunciation. So far, I
-believe, the line has been drawn here, though there are
-blasphemers who have laid impious hands on Milton
-or Shakespeare for this purpose.</p>
-
-<p>There are surely other lessons (as I have already
-said in dealing with the reproduction of the story<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">113</a></span>
-quite apart from the dramatisation), lessons more
-utilitarian in character, which can be used for this
-purpose: the facts of history (I mean the mere facts
-as compared with the deep truths) and those of
-geography, above all, the grammar lessons are those
-in which the vocabulary can be enlarged and
-improved. But I am anxious to keep the story-hour
-apart as dedicated to something higher than these
-excellent but utilitarian considerations.</p>
-
-<p>The second argument used by the teachers is the
-joy felt by the children in being allowed to dramatise
-the stories. This, too, appeals very strongly to me,
-but there is a means of satisfying their desire and yet
-protecting the dramatic whole, and that is occasionally
-to allow children to act out their own dramatic inventions;
-this, to my mind, has great educational significance:
-it is original and creative work and, apart
-from the joy of the immediate performance, there is
-the interesting process of comparison which can be
-presented to the children, showing them the difference
-between their elementary attempts and the finished
-product of the experienced artist, which they can be
-led to recognise by their own powers of observation
-if the teachers are not in too great a hurry to point it
-out themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Here is a short original story (quoted by the French
-psychologist, Queyrat, in his “Jeux de l'enfance”)
-written by a child of five:</p>
-
-<p>“One day I went to sea in a life-boat&mdash;all at once
-I saw an enormous whale, and I jumped out of the
-boat to catch him, but he was so big that I climbed
-on his back and rode astride, and all the little fishes
-laughed to see.”</p>
-
-<p>Here is a complete and exciting drama, making a
-wonderful picture and teeming with adventure. We<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">114</a></span>
-could scarcely offer anything to so small a child for
-reproduction that would be a greater stimulus to the
-imagination.</p>
-
-<p>Here is another, offered by Loti, but the age of the
-child is not given:</p>
-
-<p>“Once upon a time, a little girl out in the Colonies
-cut open a huge melon, and out popped a green beast
-and stung her, and the little child died.”</p>
-
-<p>Loti adds: “The phrases ‘out in the Colonies’
-and ‘a huge melon’ were enough to plunge me
-suddenly into a dream. As by an apparition, I beheld
-tropical trees, forests alive with marvellous birds.
-Oh! the simple magic of the words 'the Colonies'!
-In my childhood they stood for a multitude of distant
-sun-scorched countries, with their palm-trees, their
-enormous flowers, their black natives, their wild beasts,
-their endless possibilities of adventure.”</p>
-
-<p>I quote this in full because it shows so clearly the
-magic force of words to evoke pictures, without any
-material representation. It is just the opposite effect
-of the pictures presented to the bodily eye without
-the splendid educational opportunity for the child to
-form his own mental image.</p>
-
-<p>I am more and more convinced that the rare power
-of visualization is accounted for by the lack of mental
-practice afforded along these lines.</p>
-
-<p>The third argument used by the teachers in favour
-of the dramatisation of the stories is that it is a means
-of discovering how much the child has really learnt
-from the story. Now this argument makes absolutely
-no appeal to me.</p>
-
-<p>My experience, in the first place, has taught me
-that a child very seldom gives out any account of a
-deep impression made upon him: it is too sacred and
-personal. But he very soon learns to know what is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">115</a></span>
-expected of him, and he keeps a set of stock sentences
-which he has found out are acceptable to the teacher.
-How can we possibly gauge the deep effects of a story
-in this way, or how can a child, by acting out a story,
-describe the subtle elements which you have tried to
-introduce? You might as well try to show with a
-pint measure how the sun and rain have affected a
-plant, instead of rejoicing in the beauty of the sure,
-if slow, growth.</p>
-
-<p>Then, again, why are we in such a hurry to find out
-what effects have been produced by our stories? Does
-it matter whether we know to-day or to-morrow how
-much a child has understood? For my part, so sure
-do I feel of the effect that I am willing to wait indefinitely.
-Only I must make sure that the first presentation
-is truly dramatic and artistic.</p>
-
-<p>The teachers of general subjects have a much easier
-and more simple task. Those who teach science,
-mathematics, even, to a certain extent, history and
-literature, are able to gauge with a fair amount of
-accuracy, by means of examination, what their pupils
-have learnt. The teaching carried on by means of
-stories can never be gauged in the same manner. We
-must be content, though we have nothing to place in
-our “shop window,” content to know of the possessions
-behind, and make up our mind that we can show
-the education authorities little or no results from our
-teaching, but that the real fruit will be seen by the
-next generation; and we can take courage, for, if our
-story be “a thing of beauty,” it will never “pass into
-nothingness.”</p>
-
-<p>Carlyle has said:<a name="FNanchor_47_47" id="FNanchor_47_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a></p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">116</a></span></p>
-<p>“Of this thing be certain: wouldst thou plant for
-Eternity, then plant into the deep infinite faculties of
-man, his Fantasy and Heart. Wouldst thou plant for
-Year and Day, then plant into his shallow superficial
-faculties, his self-love and arithmetical understanding,
-what will grow there.”</p>
-
-<p>If we use this marvellous Art of Story-Telling in
-the way I have tried to show, then the children who
-have been confided to our care will one day be able
-to bring to us the tribute which Björnson brought to
-Hans C. Andersen:</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Wings you give to my Imagination,</div>
-<div class="i2">Me uplifting to the strange and great;</div>
-<div class="i0">Gave my heart the poet's revelation,</div>
-<div class="i2">Glorifying things of low estate.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">When my child-soul hungered all-unknowing,</div>
-<div class="i2">With great truths its needs you satisfied:</div>
-<div class="i0">Now, a world-worn man, to you is owing</div>
-<div class="i2">That the child in me has never died.</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="right">
-(<i>Translated from the Danish by
-Emilie Poulson.</i>)
-</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> From “Studies of Childhood,” page 55.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_38_38" id="Footnote_38_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> I always remember the witty jibe of a chairman at my expense
-on this subject, who, when proposing a vote of thanks to me, asked
-whether I seriously approved of the idea of providing “wild-cat
-schemes” in order to bring romance into the lives of millionaires.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_39_39" id="Footnote_39_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39_39"><span class="label">[39]</span></a> From The Lockerbie Book, by James Whitcomb Riley. Copyright
-1911. Used by special permission of the publishers, the
-Bobbs-Merrill Company.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> See <a href="#Page_214">Little Cousin Series</a> in American collection of tales at the
-end of book.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_41_41" id="Footnote_41_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> From “Virginibus Puerisque and other Essays.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> See Longbow story, “John and the Pig.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> This is even a higher spirit than that shown in the advice given
-in the <i>Agamemnon</i> (speaking of the victor's attitude after the taking
-of Troy):
-</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“Yea, let no craving for forbidden gain</div>
-<div class="i0">Bid conquerors yield before the darts of greed.”</div>
-</div></div></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> The great war in which we have become involved since this
-book was written has furnished brilliant examples of these finer
-qualities.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_45_45" id="Footnote_45_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45_45"><span class="label">[45]</span></a> It is curious to find that the story of “Puss-in-Boots” in its
-variants is sometimes presented with a moral, sometimes without.
-In the valley of the Ganges it has <i>none</i>. In Cashmere it has one
-moral, in Zanzibar another.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_46_46" id="Footnote_46_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46_46"><span class="label">[46]</span></a> From “Childhood in Literature and Art.” Study of Hans C.
-Andersen, page 201.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_47_47" id="Footnote_47_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47_47"><span class="label">[47]</span></a> “Sartor Resartus,” Book III, page 218.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">117</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">On Questions Asked by Teachers.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">The</span> following questions have been put to me so often
-by teachers, in my own country and the States, that
-I have thought it might be useful to give in my book
-some of the attempts I have made to answer them;
-and I wish to record here an expression of gratitude
-to the teachers who have asked these questions at the
-close of my lectures. It has enabled me to formulate
-my views on the subject and to clear up, by means
-of research and thought, the reason for certain things
-which I had more or less taken for granted. It has
-also constantly modified my own point of view, and
-has prevented me from becoming too dogmatic in
-dealing with other people's methods.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question I.</i> Why do I consider it necessary to spend
-so many years on the Art of Story-Telling,
-which takes in, after all, such a restricted
-portion of literature?</p>
-
-<p>Just in the same way that an actor thinks it worth
-while to go through so many years' training to fit
-him for the stage, although dramatic literature is also
-only one branch of general literature. The region of
-Storyland is the legitimate stage for children. They
-crave for drama as we do, and because there are
-comparatively few good story-tellers, children do not
-have their dramatic needs satisfied. What is the
-result? We either take them to dramatic performances
-for grown-up people, or we have children's<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">118</a></span>
-theatres where the pieces, charming as they may be,
-are of necessity deprived of the essential elements
-which constitute a drama&mdash;or they are shrivelled up
-to suit the capacity of the child. Therefore it would
-seem wiser, whilst the children are quite young, to
-keep them to the simple presentation of stories,
-because, their imagination being keener at that period,
-they have the delight of the inner vision and they
-do not need, as we do, the artificial stimulus provided
-by the machinery of the stage.<a name="FNanchor_48_48" id="FNanchor_48_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a></p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question II.</i> What is to be done if a child asks you:
-Is a story true?</p>
-
-<p>I hope I shall not be considered Utopian in my
-ideas if I say that it is quite easy, even with small
-children, to teach them that the seeing of truth is a
-relative matter which depends on the eyes of the seer.
-If we were not afraid to tell our children that all
-through life there are grown-up people who do not
-see things that others see, their own difficulties would
-be helped.</p>
-
-<p>In his <i>Imagination Créatrice</i>, Queyrat says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">119</a></span> “To
-get down into the recesses of a child's mind, one
-would have to become even as he is; we are reduced
-to interpreting that child in the terms of an adult.
-The children we observe live and grow in a civilised
-community, and the result of this is that the development
-of their imagination is rarely free or complete,
-for as soon as it rises beyond the average level, the
-rationalistic education of parents and schoolmasters
-at once endeavours to curb it. It is restrained in its
-flight by an antagonistic power which treats it as a
-kind of incipient madness.”</p>
-
-<p>It is quite easy to show children that if you keep
-things where they belong they are true with regard
-to each other, but that if you drag these things out
-of the shadowy atmosphere of the “make-believe,”
-and force them into the land of actual facts, the whole
-thing is out of gear.</p>
-
-<p>To take a concrete example: The arrival of the
-coach made from a pumpkin and driven by mice is
-entirely in harmony with the Cinderella surroundings,
-and I have never heard one child raise any question
-of the difficulty of travelling in such a coach or of
-the uncertainty of mice in drawing it. But suggest
-to the child that this diminutive vehicle could be
-driven among the cars of Broadway, or amongst the
-motor omnibuses in the Strand, and you would bring
-confusion at once into his mind.</p>
-
-<p>Having once grasped this, the children will lose the
-idea that Fairy Stories are just for them, and not for
-their elders, and from this they will go on to see that
-it is the child-like mind of the Poet and Seer that
-continues to appreciate these things: that it is the
-dull, heavy person whose eyes so soon become dim
-and unable to see any more the visions which were
-once his own.</p>
-
-<p>In his essay on <i>Poetry and Life</i> (Glasgow, 1889),
-Professor Bradley says:</p>
-
-<p>“It is the effect of poetry, not only by expressing
-emotion but in other ways also, to bring life into the
-dead mass of our experience, and to make the world
-significant.”</p>
-
-<p>This applies to children as well as to adults. There
-may come to the child in the story-hour, by some
-stirring poem or dramatic narration, a sudden flash<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">120</a></span>
-of the possibilities of Life which he had not hitherto
-realised in the even course of school experience.</p>
-
-<p>“Poetry,” says Professor Bradley, “is a way of
-representing truth; but there is in it, as its detractors
-have always insisted, a certain untruth or illusion.
-We need not deny this, so long as we remember that
-the illusion is conscious, that no one wishes to deceive,
-and that no one is deceived. But it would be better
-to say that poetry is false to literal fact for the sake
-of obtaining a higher truth. First, in order to
-represent the connection between a more significant
-part of experience and a less significant, poetry,
-instead of linking them together by a chain which
-touches one by one the intermediate objects that
-connect them, leaps from one to the other. It thus
-falls at once into conflict with commonsense.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, the whole of this passage bears as much on
-the question of the truth embodied in a Fairy Tale
-as a poem, and it would be interesting to take some
-of these tales and try to discover where they are false
-to actual fact for the sake of a higher truth.</p>
-
-<p>Let us take, for instance, the story of Cinderella:
-The coach and pumpkins to which we have alluded,
-and all the magic part of the story, are false to actual
-facts as we meet them in our every-day life; but is it
-not a higher truth that Cinderella could escape from
-her chimney corner by thinking of the brightness
-outside? In this sense we all travel in pumpkin
-coaches.</p>
-
-<p>Take the story of Psyche, in any one of the many
-forms it is presented to us in folk-story. The magic
-transformation of the lover is false to actual fact; but
-is it not a higher truth that we are often transformed
-by Circumstance, and that love and courage can
-overcome most difficulties?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">121</a></span>
-
-Take the story of the Three Bears. It is not in
-accordance with established fact that bears should
-extend hospitality to children who invade their territory.
-Is it not true, in a higher sense, that fearlessness
-often lessens or averts danger?</p>
-
-<p>Take the story of Jack and the Bean-Stalk. The
-rapid growth of the bean-stalk and the encounter with
-the Giant are false to literal fact; but is it not a higher
-truth that the spirit of courage and high adventure
-leads us straight out of the commonplace and often
-sordid facts of Life?</p>
-
-<p>Now, all these considerations are too subtle for the
-child, and, if offered in explanation, would destroy
-the excitement and interest of the story; but they are
-good for those of us who are presenting such stories:
-they not only provide an argument against the objection
-raised by unimaginative people as to the futility,
-if not immorality, of presenting these primitive tales,
-but clear up our own doubt and justify us in the use
-of them, if we need such justification.</p>
-
-<p>For myself, I am perfectly satisfied that, being part
-of the history of primitive people, it would be foolish
-to ignore them from an evolutionary point of view,
-which constitutes their chief importance; and it is
-only from the point of view of expediency that I
-mention the potential truths they contain.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question III.</i> What are you to do if a child says he
-does not like Fairy Tales?</p>
-
-<p>This is not an uncommon case. What we have
-first to determine, under these circumstances, is
-whether this dislike springs from a stolid, prosaic
-nature, whether it springs from a real inability to
-visualize such pictures as the Fairy, or marvellous
-element in the story, presents, or whether (and this is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">122</a></span>
-often the real reason) it is from a fear of being asked
-to believe what his judgment resents as untrue, or
-whether he thinks it is “grown-up” to reject such
-pleasure as unworthy of his years.</p>
-
-<p>In the first case, it is wise to persevere, in hopes of
-developing the dormant imagination. If the child
-resents the apparent want of truth, we can teach him
-how many-sided truth is, as I suggested in my answer
-to the first question. In the other cases, we must try
-to make it clear that the delight he may venture to
-take now will increase, not decrease, with years; that
-the more you bring <i>to</i> a thing (in the way of experience
-and knowledge) the more you will draw <i>out</i> of it.</p>
-
-<p>Let us take as a concrete example the question of
-Santa Claus. This joy has almost disappeared, for
-we have torn away the last shred of mystery about that
-personage by allowing him to be materialised in the
-Christmas shops and bazaars.</p>
-
-<p>But the original myth need never have disappeared;
-the link could easily have been kept by gradually
-telling the child that the Santa Claus they worshipped
-as a mysterious and invisible power is nothing but
-the Spirit of Charity and Kindness that makes us
-remember others, and that this spirit often takes the
-form of material gifts. We can also lead them a step
-higher and show them that this spirit of kindness can
-do more than provide material things; so that the
-old nursery tale has laid a beautiful foundation which
-need never be pulled up: we can build upon it and
-add to it all through our lives.</p>
-
-<p>Is not <i>one</i> of the reasons that children reject Fairy
-Tales because such very <i>poor</i> material is offered them?
-There is a dreary flatness about all except the very
-best which revolts the child of literary appreciation
-and would fail to strike a spark in the more prosaic.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">123</a></span>
-
-<i>Question IV.</i> Do I recommend learning a story by
-heart, or telling it in one's own words?</p>
-
-<p>This would largely depend on the kind of story.
-If the style is classic or if the interest of the story is
-closely connected with the style, as in Andersen,
-Kipling or Stevenson, then it is better to commit it
-absolutely to memory. But if this process should
-take too long (I mean for those who cannot afford the
-time to specialise), or if it produces a stilted effect,
-then it is wiser to read the story many times over, let
-it soak in, taking notes of certain passages which
-would add to the dramatic interest of the story, and
-not trouble about the word accuracy of the whole.</p>
-
-<p>For instance, for very young children the story of
-Pandora, as told in the Wonder-Book, could be
-shortened so as to leave principally the dramatic
-dialogue between the two children, which would be
-easily committed to memory by the narrator and
-would appeal most directly to the children. Again, for
-older children: in taking a beautiful mediæval story
-such as “Our Lady's Tumbler,” the original text
-could hardly be presented so as to hold an audience;
-but whilst giving up a great deal of the elaborate
-material, we should try to present many of the characteristic
-passages which seem to sum up the situation.
-For instance, before his performance, the Tumbler
-cries: “What am I doing? For there is none here
-so caitiff but who vies with all the rest in serving God
-after his trade.” And after his act of devotion:
-“Lady, this is a choice performance. I do it for no
-other but for you; so aid me God, I do not&mdash;for you
-and for your Son. And this I dare avouch and boast,
-that for me it is no play-work. But I am serving you,
-and that pays me.”</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, there are some very gifted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">124</a></span>
-narrators who can only tell the story in their own
-words. I consider that both methods are necessary
-to the all-round story-teller.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question V.</i> How do I set about preparing a story?</p>
-
-<p>Here again the preparation depends a great deal on
-the kind of story: whether it has to be committed to
-memory or re-arranged to suit a certain age of child,
-or told entirely in one's own words. But there is one
-kind of preparation which is the same for any story,
-that is, living with it for a long time, until you have
-really obtained the right atmosphere, and then bringing
-the characters actually to life in this atmosphere,
-most especially in the case of inanimate objects. This
-is where Hans C. Andersen reigns supreme. Horace
-Scudder says of him: “By some transmigration,
-souls have passed into tin soldiers, balls, tops, money-pigs,
-coins, shoes and even such attenuated things as
-darning-needles, and when, in forming these apparent
-dead and stupid bodies, they begin to make manifestations,
-it is always in perfect consistency with the
-ordinary conditions of the bodies they occupy, though
-the several objects become, by the endowment of
-souls, suddenly expanded in their capacity.”<a name="FNanchor_49_49" id="FNanchor_49_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a></p>
-
-<p>Now, my test of being ready with such stories is
-whether I have ceased to look upon such objects <i>as</i>
-inanimate. Let us take some of those quoted from
-Andersen. First, the Tin Soldier. To me, since I
-have lived in the story, he is a real live hero, holding
-his own with some of the bravest fighting heroes in
-history or fiction. As for his being merely of tin, I
-entirely forget it, except when I realise against what
-odds he fights, or when I stop to admire the wonderful
-way Andersen carries out his simile of the old tin<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">125</a></span>
-spoon&mdash;the stiffness of the musket, and the tears of
-tin.</p>
-
-<p>Take the Top and the Ball, and, except for the
-delightful way they discuss the respective merits of
-<i>cork</i> and <i>mahogany</i> in their ancestors, you would
-completely forget that they are not real human beings
-with the live passions and frailties common to youth.</p>
-
-<p>As for the Beetle&mdash;who ever thinks of him as a
-mere entomological specimen? Is he not the symbol
-of the self-satisfied traveller who learns nothing <i>en
-route</i> but the importance of his own personality?
-And the Darning-Needle? It is impossible to divorce
-human interest from the ambition of this little piece of
-steel.</p>
-
-<p>And this same method applied to the preparation of
-any story shows that you can sometimes rise from the
-rôle of mere interpreter to that of creator&mdash;that is to
-say, the objects live afresh for you in response to the
-appeal you make in recognising their possibilities of
-vitality.</p>
-
-<p>As a mere practical suggestion, I would advise that,
-as soon as you have overcome the difficulties of the
-text (if actually learning by heart, there is nothing
-but the drudgery of constant repetition), and as you
-begin to work the story into true dramatic form,
-always say the words aloud, and many times aloud,
-before you try them even on one person. More
-suggestions come to one in the way of effects from
-hearing the sounds of the words, and more complete
-mental pictures, in this way than any other ... it is
-a sort of testing period, the results of which may or
-may not have to be modified when produced in public....
-In case of committing to memory, I advise
-word perfection first, not trying dramatic effects before
-this is reached; but, on the other hand, if you are<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">126</a></span>
-using your own words, you can think out the effects
-as you go along&mdash;I mean, during the preparation.
-Gestures, pauses, facial expression often help to fix
-the choice of words you decide to use, though here
-again the public performance will often modify the
-result. I should strongly advise that all gestures
-should be studied before the glass, because this most
-faithfully-recording friend, whose sincerity we dare
-not question, will prevent glaring errors, and also help
-by the correction of these to more satisfactory results
-along positive lines. If your gesture does not satisfy
-(and practice will <span class="err" title="original: make make">make</span> you more and more
-critical), it is generally because you have not made
-sufficient allowance for the power of imagination in
-your audience. Emphasis in gesture is just as
-inartistic&mdash;and therefore ineffective&mdash;as emphasis in
-tone or language.</p>
-
-<p>Before <i>deciding</i>, however, either on the facial
-expression or gesture, we must consider the chief
-characters in the story, and study how we can best&mdash;<i>not</i>
-present them, but allow them to present themselves,
-which is a very different thing. The greatest
-tribute which can be paid to a story-teller, as to an
-actor, is that his own personality is temporarily
-forgotten, because he has so completely identified
-himself with his rôle.</p>
-
-<p>When we have decided what the chief characters
-really mean to do, we can let ourselves go in the
-impersonation....</p>
-
-<p>I shall now take a story as a concrete example&mdash;namely,
-the Buddhist legend of the Lion and the
-Hare,<a name="FNanchor_50_50" id="FNanchor_50_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a> which I give in the final story list.</p>
-
-<p>We have here the Lion and the Hare as types&mdash;the
-other animals are less individual and therefore display<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">127</a></span>
-less salient qualities. The little hare's chief characteristics
-are nervousness, fussiness and misdirected
-imagination. We must bear this all in mind when
-she appears on the stage&mdash;fortunately these characteristics
-lend themselves easily to dramatic representation.
-The lion is not only large-hearted but
-broad-minded. It is good to have an opportunity of
-presenting to the children a lion who has other
-qualities than physical beauty or extraordinary
-strength. (Here again there will lurk the danger of
-alarming the Nature students!) He is even more
-interesting than the magnanimous lion whom we
-have sometimes been privileged to meet in fiction.</p>
-
-<p>Of course we grown-up people know that the lion
-is the Buddha in disguise. Children will not be able
-to realise this, nor is it the least necessary that they
-should do so; but they will grasp the idea that he is
-a very unusual lion, not to be met with in Paul du
-Chaillu's adventures, still less in the quasi-domestic
-atmosphere of the Zoological Gardens. If our presentation
-is life-like and sincere, we shall convey all
-we intend to the child. This is part of what I call
-the atmosphere of the story, which, as in a photograph,
-can only be obtained by long exposure, that is to say,
-in case of the preparation we must bestow much
-reflection and sympathy.</p>
-
-<p>Because these two animals are the chief characters,
-they must stand out in sharp outline: the other
-animals must be painted in fainter colours&mdash;they
-should be suggested rather than presented in detail.
-It might be as well to give a definite gesture to the
-Elephant&mdash;say, a characteristic movement with his
-trunk&mdash;a scowl to the Tiger, a supercilious and
-enigmatic smile to the Camel (suggested by Kipling's
-wonderful creation). But if a gesture were given to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">128</a></span>
-each of the animals, the effect would become monotonous,
-and the minor characters would crowd the
-foreground of the picture, impeding the action and
-leaving little to the imagination of the audience....
-I personally have found it effective to repeat the
-gestures of these animals as they are leaving the stage,
-less markedly, as it is only a form of reminder.</p>
-
-<p>Now, what is the impression we wish to leave on
-the mind of the child, apart from the dramatic joy and
-interest we have endeavoured to provide? Surely it
-is that he may realise the danger of a panic. One
-method of doing this (alas! a favourite one still) is
-to say at the end of the story: “Now, children, what
-do we learn from this?” Of this method Lord
-Morley has said: “It is a commonplace to the wise,
-and an everlasting puzzle to the foolish, that direct
-inculcation of morals should invariably prove so
-powerless an instrument&mdash;so futile a method.”</p>
-
-<p>If this direct method were really effective, we might
-as well put the little drama aside, and say plainly:
-“It is foolish to be nervous; it is dangerous to make
-loose statements. Large-minded people understand
-things better than those who are narrow-minded.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, all these abstract statements would be as true
-and as tiresome as the multiplication-table. The child
-might or might not fix them in his mind, but he would
-not act upon them.</p>
-
-<p>But, put all the artistic warmth of which you are
-capable into the presentation of the story, and, without
-one word of comment from you, the children will feel
-the dramatic intensity of that vast concourse of
-animals brought together by the feeble utterance of
-one irresponsible little hare. Let them feel the dignity
-and calm of the Lion, which accounts for his authority;
-his tender but firm treatment of the foolish little Hare;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">129</a></span>
-and listen to the glorious finale when all the animals
-retire convinced of their folly; and you will find that
-you have adopted the same method as the Lion (who
-must have been an unconscious follower of Froebel),
-and that there is nothing to add to the picture.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question VI.</i> Is it wise to talk over a story with
-children and to encourage them in the habit of
-asking questions about it?</p>
-
-<p>At the time, no! The effect produced is to be by
-dramatic means, and this would be destroyed by any
-attempts at analysis by means of questions.</p>
-
-<p>The medium that has been used in the telling of the
-story is (or ought to be) a purely artistic one which
-will reach the child through the medium of the
-emotions: the appeal to the intellect or the reason is
-a different method, which must be used at a different
-time. When you are enjoying the fragrance of a
-flower or the beauty of its colour, it is not the moment
-to be reminded of its botanical classification. Just as
-in the botany lesson it would be somewhat irrelevant
-to talk of the part that flowers play in the happiness
-of life.</p>
-
-<p>From a practical point of view, it is not wise to
-encourage questions on the part of the children,
-because they are apt to disturb the atmosphere by
-bringing in entirely irrelevant matter, so that in
-looking back on the telling of the story, the child
-often remembers the irrelevant conversation to the
-exclusion of the dramatic interest of the story itself.<a name="FNanchor_51_51" id="FNanchor_51_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a></p>
-
-<p>I remember once making what I considered at the
-time a most effective appeal to some children who had
-been listening to the story of the Little Tin Soldier,
-and, unable to refrain from the cheap method of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">130</a></span>
-questioning, of which I have now recognised the
-futility, I asked: “Don't you think it was nice of the
-little dancer to rush down into the fire to join the brave
-little soldier?” “Well,” said a prosaic little lad of
-six: “I thought the draught carried her down.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question VII.</i> Is it wise to call upon children to
-repeat the story as soon as it has been told?</p>
-
-<p>My answer here is decidedly in the negative.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst fully appreciating the modern idea of
-children expressing themselves, I very much deprecate
-this so-called self-expression taking the form of mere
-reproduction. I have dealt with this matter in detail
-in another portion of my book. This is one of the
-occasions when children should be taking in, not
-giving out. (Even the most fanatic of moderns must
-agree that there are such moments.)</p>
-
-<p>When, after much careful preparation, an expert
-has told a story to the best of his ability, to encourage
-the children to reproduce this story with their imperfect
-vocabulary and with no special gift of speech (I
-am always alluding to the normal group of children)
-is as futile as if, after the performance of a musical
-piece by a great artist, some individual member of
-the audience were to be called upon to give his
-rendering of the original rendering. The result would
-be that the musical joy of the audience would be
-completely destroyed and the performer himself would
-share in the loss.<a name="FNanchor_52_52" id="FNanchor_52_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a></p>
-
-<p>I have always maintained that five minutes of
-complete silence after the story would do more to fix
-the impression on the mind of the child than any
-amount of attempts at reproducing it. The general<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">131</a></span>
-statement made in Dr. Montessori's wonderful chapter
-on Silence would seem to me of special application to
-the moments following on the telling of a story.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question VIII.</i> Should children be encouraged to
-illustrate the stories which they have heard?</p>
-
-<p>As a dramatic interest to the teachers and the
-children, I think it is a very praiseworthy experiment,
-if used somewhat sparingly. But I seriously doubt
-whether these illustrations in any way indicate the
-impression made on the mind of the child. It is the
-same question that arises when that child is called
-upon (or expresses a wish) to reproduce the story in
-his own words: the unfamiliar medium in both
-instances makes it almost impossible for the child to
-convey his meaning, unless he be an artist in the one
-case or have real literary power of expression in
-the other.</p>
-
-<p>My own impression, which has been confirmed by
-many teachers who have made the experiment, is that
-a certain amount of disappointment is mixed up with
-the daring joy in the attempt, simply because the
-children can get nowhere near the ideal which has
-presented itself to the “inner eye.”</p>
-
-<p>I remember a Kindergarten mistress saying that on
-one occasion, when she had told to the class a thrilling
-story of a knight, one of the children immediately
-asked for permission to draw a picture of him on the
-blackboard. So spontaneous a request could not, of
-course, be refused, and, full of assurance, the would-be
-artist began to give his impression of the knight's
-appearance. When the picture was finished, the child
-stood back for a moment to judge for himself of the
-result. He put down the chalk and said sadly:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">132</a></span> “And
-I <i>thought</i> he was so handsome.”</p>
-
-<p>Nevertheless, except for the drawback of the other
-children seeing a picture which might be inferior to
-their own mental vision, I should quite approve of
-such experiments as long as they are not taken as
-literal data of what the children have really received.
-It would, however, be better not to have the picture
-drawn on a blackboard but at the child's private desk,
-to be seen by the teacher and not, unless the picture
-were exceptionally good, to be shown to the other
-children.</p>
-
-<p>One of the best effects of such an experiment would
-be to show a child how difficult it is to give the
-impression he wishes to record, and which would
-enable him later on to appreciate the beauty of such
-work in the hands of a finished artist.</p>
-
-<p>I can anticipate the jeers with which such remarks
-would be received by the Futurist School, but, according
-to their own theory, I ought to be allowed to
-express the matter <i>as I see it</i>, however faulty the vision
-may appear to them.<a name="FNanchor_53_53" id="FNanchor_53_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a></p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question IX.</i> In what way can the dramatic method
-of story-telling be used in ordinary class teaching?</p>
-
-<p>This is too large a question to answer fully in so
-general a survey as this work, but I should like to give
-one or two concrete examples as to how the element
-of story-telling could be introduced.</p>
-
-<p>I have always thought that the only way in which
-we could make either a history or literature lesson<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">133</a></span>
-live, so that it should take a real hold on the mind of
-the pupil at any age, would be that, instead of offering
-lists of events, crowded into the fictitious area of one
-reign, one should take a single event, say in one lesson
-out of five, and give it in the most splendid language
-and in the most dramatic (not to be confused with
-“melodramatic”) manner.</p>
-
-<p>To come to a concrete example: Supposing that
-you are talking to the class of Greece, either in
-connection with its history, its geography or its
-literature, could any mere accumulation of facts give
-a clearer idea of the life of the people than a dramatically
-told story from Homer, Æschylus, Sophocles or
-Euripides?</p>
-
-<p>What in the history of Iceland could give a more
-graphic idea of the whole character of the life and
-customs of the inhabitants than one of the famous
-sagas, such as “The Burning of Njal” or “The
-Death of Gunnar”?</p>
-
-<p>In teaching the history of Spain, what could make
-the pupils understand better the spirit of knight-errantry,
-its faults and its qualities, than a recital from
-“Don Quixote” or from the tale of “The Cid”?</p>
-
-<p>In a word, the stories must appeal so vividly to the
-imagination that they will light up the whole period
-of history which we wish them to illustrate, and keep
-it in the memory for all time.</p>
-
-<p>But apart from the dramatic presentation of history,
-there are great possibilities for introducing the short
-story into the portrait of some great personage: a
-story which, though it may be insignificant in itself,
-throws a sudden sidelight on his character, and reveals
-the mind behind the actual deeds; this is what I mean
-by using the dramatic method.</p>
-
-<p>To take a concrete example: Supposing, in giving<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">134</a></span>
-an account of the life of Napoleon, after enlarging
-on his campaigns, his European policy, his indomitable
-will, you were suddenly to give an idea of his
-many-sidedness by relating how he actually found
-time to compile a catechism which was used for some
-years in the elementary schools in France!</p>
-
-<p>What sidelights might be thrown in this way on
-such characters as Nero, Cæsar, Henry VIII, Luther,
-Goethe!</p>
-
-<p>To take one example from these: Instead of making
-the whole career of Henry VIII centre round the fact
-that he was a much-married man, could we not present
-his artistic side and speak of his charming contributions
-to music?....</p>
-
-<p>So much for the history lessons. But could not
-the dramatic form and interest be introduced into our
-geography lessons? Think of the romance of the
-Panama Canal, the position of Constantinople as
-affecting the history of Europe, the shape of Greece,
-England as an Island, the position of Tibet, the
-interior of Africa&mdash;to what wonderful story-telling
-would these themes lend themselves!</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question X.</i> Which should predominate in the story&mdash;the
-dramatic or the poetic element?</p>
-
-<p>This is a much debated point. From experience,
-I have come to the conclusion that, though both
-should be found in the whole range of stories, the
-dramatic element should prevail from the very nature
-of the presentation, and also because it reaches the
-larger number of children (at least of normal children).
-Almost every child is dramatic, in the sense that he
-loves action (not necessarily an action in which he has
-to bear a part). It is the exceptional child who is
-reached by the poetic side, and just as on the stage<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">135</a></span>
-the action must be quicker and more concentrated
-than in a poem&mdash;even than a dramatic poem&mdash;so it
-must be with the story. Children act out in their
-imagination the dramatic or actable part of the story&mdash;the
-poetical side, which must be painted in more
-delicate colours or presented in less obvious form,
-often escapes them. Of course the very reason why
-we must include the poetical element is that it is an
-unexpressed need of most children. Their need of
-the dramatic is more loudly proclaimed and more
-easily satisfied.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><i>Question XI.</i> What is the educational value of
-Humour in the stories told to our children?</p>
-
-<p>My answer to this is that Humour means much
-more than is usually understood by this term. So
-many people seem to think that to have a sense of
-humour is merely to be tickled by a funny element
-in a story. It surely means something much more
-subtle than this. It is Thackeray who says: “If
-Humour only meant Laughter ... but the Humourist
-professes to awaken and direct your love, your pity,
-your kindness, your scorn for untruth and pretention,
-your tenderness for the weak, the poor, the oppressed,
-the unhappy.” So that, in our stories, the introduction
-of humour should not merely depend on the
-doubtful amusement that follows on a sense of incongruity.
-It should inculcate a sense of proportion
-brought about by an effort of imagination: it shows
-a child its real position in the Universe, and prevents
-an exaggerated idea of his own importance. It
-develops the logical faculty, and prevents hasty
-conclusions. It shortens the period of joy in horseplay
-and practical jokes. It brings about a clearer
-perception of all situations, enabling the child to get<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">136</a></span>
-the point of view of another person. It is the first
-instilling of philosophy into the mind of a child, and
-prevents much suffering later on when the blows of
-life fall upon him; for a sense of humour teaches us
-at an early age not to expect too much; and this
-philosophy can be developed without cynicism or
-pessimism, without even destroying the <i>joie de vivre</i>....</p>
-
-<p>One cannot, however, sufficiently emphasize the
-fact that these far-reaching results can only be brought
-about by humour quite distinct from the broader fun
-and hilarity which have also their use in an educational
-scheme.</p>
-
-<p>From my own experience, I have learned that
-development of Humour is with most children
-extremely slow. It is quite natural and quite right
-that at first pure fun, obvious situations and elementary
-jokes should please them, but we can very
-gradually appeal to something more subtle, and if I
-were asked what story would educate our children
-most thoroughly in appreciation of Humour, I should
-say that “Alice in Wonderland” was the most
-effective.</p>
-
-<p>What better object-lesson could be given in
-humorous form of taking somebody else's point of
-view than that given to Alice by the Mock Turtle in
-speaking of the Whiting?:</p>
-
-<p>“‘You know what they're like?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I believe so,’ said Alice. ‘They have their tails
-in their mouths&mdash;and they're all over crumbs.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You're wrong about the crumbs,’ said the Mock
-Turtle. 'Crumbs would all wash off in the sea.'”</p>
-
-<p>Or when Alice is speaking to the Mouse of her Cat,
-and says: “She is such a dear quiet thing&mdash;and a
-capital one for catching mice&mdash;&mdash;” and then suddenly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">137</a></span>
-realises the point of view of the Mouse, who was
-“trembling down to the end of its tail.”</p>
-
-<p>Then, as an instance of how a lack of humour leads
-to illogical conclusions (a condition common to most
-children), we have the conversation between Alice and
-the Pigeon:</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Alice</span>: “But little girls eat quite as much as
-serpents do, you know.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Pigeon</span>: “I don't believe it. But if they do, why
-then they're a kind of serpent, that's all I can say.”</p>
-
-<p>Then, as an instance of how a sense of humour
-would prevent too much self-importance:</p>
-
-<p>“‘I have a right to think,’ said Alice sharply.</p>
-
-<p>‘Just about as much right,’ said the Duchess,
-'as pigs have to fly.'”</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_48_48" id="Footnote_48_48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_48_48"><span class="label">[48]</span></a> I do not deny that there can be charming representations of
-this kind. Miss Netta Syrett has given a triplet of plays at
-the Court Theatre which were entirely on the plane of the child;
-but these performances were somewhat exceptional.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_49_49" id="Footnote_49_49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_49_49"><span class="label">[49]</span></a> From “Study of Hans C. Andersen.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_50_50" id="Footnote_50_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> See “Eastern Stories and Fables,” published by Routledge.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_51_51" id="Footnote_51_51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_51_51"><span class="label">[51]</span></a> See <a href="#Page_6">Chapter I</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_52_52" id="Footnote_52_52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_52_52"><span class="label">[52]</span></a> In this matter I have, in England, the support of Dr. Kimmins,
-Chief Inspector of the London County Council, who is strongly
-opposed to immediate reproduction of the stories.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_53_53" id="Footnote_53_53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_53_53"><span class="label">[53]</span></a> Needless to say that these remarks only refer to the illustrations
-of stories told. Whether children should be encouraged to
-self-expression in drawing (quite apart from reproducing in one
-medium what has been conveyed to them in another), is too large a
-question to deal with in this special work on Story-Telling.</p></div></div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">138</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VIII.</h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Stories in Full.</span></p>
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">The</span> following three stories have for so long formed
-a part of my repertory that I have been requested to
-include them in my book, and, in order to associate
-myself more completely with them, I am presenting
-a translation of my own from the original Danish
-version.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Nightingale.</span></h3>
-
-<p>You must know that in China the Emperor is a
-Chinaman, and all those around him are also Chinamen.
-It is many years since all this happened, and
-for that very reason it is worth hearing, before it is
-forgotten.</p>
-
-<p>There was no palace in the world more beautiful
-than the Emperor's; it was very costly, all of fine
-porcelain, but it was so delicate and brittle, that it
-was very difficult to touch, and you had to be very
-careful in doing so. The most wonderful flowers
-could be seen in the garden, and silver tinkling bells
-were tied on to the most beautiful of these, for fear
-people should pass by without noticing them. How
-well everything had been thought out in the Emperor's
-garden&mdash;which was so big, that even the gardener
-himself did not know how big. If you walked on
-and on you came to the most beautiful wood, with tall
-trees and deep lakes. This wood stretched right down
-to the sea, which was blue and deep; great ships could
-pass underneath the branches, and in these branches<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">139</a></span>
-a nightingale had made its home, and its singing was
-so entrancing that the poor fisherman, though he had
-so many other things to do, would lie still and listen
-when he was out at night drawing in his nets.</p>
-
-<p>“Heavens! how lovely that is!” he said: but then
-he was forced to think about his own affairs, and the
-nightingale was forgotten; but the next day, when it
-sang again, the fisherman said the same thing:
-“Heavens! how lovely that is!”</p>
-
-<p>Travellers from all the countries of the world came
-to the Emperor's town, and expressed their admiration
-for the palace and the garden, but when they heard
-the nightingale, they all said in one breath: “That
-is the best of all!”</p>
-
-<p>Now, when these travellers came home, they told of
-what they had seen. The scholars wrote many books
-about the town, the palace and the garden, but
-nobody left the nightingale out: it was always spoken
-of as the most wonderful of all they had seen, and
-those who had the gift of the Poet wrote the most
-delightful poems all about the nightingale in the wood
-near the deep lake.</p>
-
-<p>The books went round the world, and in course of
-time some of them reached the Emperor. He sat in
-his golden chair, and read and read, nodding his head
-every minute; for it pleased him to read the beautiful
-descriptions of the town, the palace and the garden;
-and then he found in the book the following words:
-“But the Nightingale is the best of all.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is this?” said the Emperor.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">140</a></span> “The
-nightingale! I know nothing whatever about it.
-To think of there being such a bird in my Kingdom&mdash;nay,
-in my very garden&mdash;and I have never heard it!
-And one has to learn of such a thing for the first time
-from a book!”</p>
-
-<p>Then he summoned his Lord-in-Waiting, who was
-such a grand creature that if any one inferior in rank
-ventured to speak to him, or ask him about anything,
-he merely uttered the sound “P,” which meant
-nothing whatever.</p>
-
-<p>“There is said to be a most wonderful bird, called
-the Nightingale,” said the Emperor; “they say it is
-the best thing in my great Kingdom. Why have I
-been told nothing about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have never heard it mentioned before,” said the
-Lord-in-Waiting. “It has certainly never been
-presented at court.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is my good pleasure that it shall appear here
-to-night and sing before me!” said the Emperor.
-“The whole world knows what is mine, and I myself
-do not know it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have never heard it mentioned before,” said the
-Lord-in-Waiting. “I will seek it, and I shall find it.”</p>
-
-<p>But where was it to be found? The Lord-in-Waiting
-ran up and down all the stairs, through the
-halls and the passages, but not one of all those whom
-he met had ever heard a word about the Nightingale.
-The Lord-in-Waiting ran back to the Emperor and
-told him that it must certainly be a fable invented by
-writers of books.</p>
-
-<p>“Your Majesty must not believe all that is written
-in books. It is pure invention, besides something
-which is called the Black Art.”</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said the Emperor,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">141</a></span> “the book in which I
-read this was sent to me by His Majesty the Emperor
-of Japan, and therefore this cannot be a falsehood.
-I insist on hearing the Nightingale: it must appear
-this evening. It has my gracious favour, and if it
-fails to appear, the court shall be trampled upon after
-the court has supped.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tsing-pe!” said the Lord-in-Waiting, and again
-he ran up and down all the stairs, through all the halls
-and passages, and half the court ran with him, for
-they had no wish to be trampled upon. And many
-questions were asked about the wonderful Nightingale
-of whom all had heard except those who lived at court.</p>
-
-<p>At last, they met a poor little girl in the kitchen.
-She said: “Heavens! The Nightingale! I know
-it well! Yes, how it can sing! Every evening I
-have permission to take the broken pieces from the
-table to my poor sick mother who lives near the
-seashore, and on my way back, when I feel tired and
-rest a while in the wood, then I hear the Nightingale
-sing, and my eyes are filled with tears: it is just as
-if my mother kissed me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Little kitchen-girl,” said the Lord-in-Waiting,
-“I will get a permanent position for you in the Court
-Kitchen and permission to see the Emperor dine, if
-you can lead us to the Nightingale; for it has received
-orders to appear at Court to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>So they started off all together for the wood where
-the bird was wont to sing: half the court went too.
-They were going along at a good pace when suddenly
-they heard a cow lowing.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said a court-page. “There you have it.
-That is a wonderful power for so small a creature!
-I have certainly heard it before.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, those are the cows lowing,” said the little
-kitchen girl. “We are a long way from the place
-yet.”</p>
-
-<p>And then the frogs began to croak in the pond.</p>
-
-<p>“Beautiful,” said the Court Preacher. “Now, I
-hear it&mdash;it is just like little church bells.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, those are the frogs,” said the little Kitchen
-maid.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">142</a></span> “But now I think that we shall soon hear it.”</p>
-
-<p>And then the Nightingale began to sing.</p>
-
-<p>“There it is,” said the little girl. “Listen, listen&mdash;there
-it sits.” And she pointed to a little grey bird
-in the branches.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it possible!” said the Lord-in-Waiting. “I
-had never supposed it would look like that. How
-very plain it looks! It has certainly lost its colour
-from seeing so many grand folk around it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Little Nightingale,” called out the little Kitchen
-girl, “our gracious Emperor would be so glad if you
-would sing for him.”</p>
-
-<p>“With the greatest pleasure,” said the Nightingale.
-It sang, and it was a joy to hear it.</p>
-
-<p>“Just like little glass bells,” said the Lord-in-Waiting;
-“and just look at the little throat, how
-active it is! It is astonishing to think we have never
-heard it before! It will have a real <i>success</i> at Court.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I sing for the Emperor again?” said the
-Nightingale, who thought that the Emperor was there
-in person.</p>
-
-<p>“Mine excellent little Nightingale,” said the Lord-in-Waiting,
-“I have the great pleasure of bidding
-you to a Court-Festival this night, when you will
-enchant His Imperial Majesty with your delightful
-warbling.”</p>
-
-<p>“My voice sounds better among the green trees,”
-said the Nightingale. But it came willingly when it
-knew that the Emperor wished it.</p>
-
-<p>There was a great deal of furbishing up at the
-Palace. The walls and ceiling, which were of porcelain,
-shone with a light of a thousand golden lamps.
-The most beautiful flowers of the tinkling kind were
-placed in the passages. There was running to and
-fro, and a thorough draught. But that is just what
-made the bells ring: one could not oneself. In the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">143</a></span>
-middle of the large hall where the Emperor sat, a
-golden rod had been set up on which the Nightingale
-was to perch. The whole Court was present, and the
-little Kitchen-maid was allowed to stand behind the
-door, for she had now the actual title of a Court
-Kitchen Maid. All were there in their smartest
-clothes, and they all looked towards the little grey
-bird to which the Emperor nodded.</p>
-
-<p>And the Nightingale sang so delightfully that
-tears sprang into the Emperor's eyes and rolled down
-his cheeks; and then the Nightingale sang even more
-beautifully. The song went straight to the heart, and
-the Emperor was so delighted that he declared that
-the Nightingale should have his golden slipper to
-hang round its neck. But the Nightingale declined.
-It had already had its reward.</p>
-
-<p>“I have seen tears in the Emperor's eyes. That to
-me is the richest tribute. An Emperor's tears have a
-wonderful power. God knows my reward is great
-enough,” and again its sweet, glorious voice was
-heard.</p>
-
-<p>“That is the most delightful coquetting I have
-ever known,” said the ladies sitting round, and they
-took water into their mouths, in order to gurgle when
-anyone spoke to them, and they really thought they
-were like the Nightingale. Even the footmen and the
-chambermaids sent word that they, too, were satisfied,
-and that means a great deal, for these are the people
-whom it is most difficult to please. There was no
-doubt as to the Nightingale's success. It was sure to
-stay at Court, and have its own cage, with liberty to
-go out twice in the daytime, and once at night.
-Twelve servants went out with it, and each held a
-silk ribbon which was tied to the bird's leg, and they
-held it very tightly. There was not much pleasure in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">144</a></span>
-going out under those conditions. The whole town
-was talking of the wonderful bird, and when two
-people met, one said: “Nightin-” and the other said
-“gale,” and they sighed and understood one another.
-Eleven cheese-mongers' children were called after the
-bird, though none of them had a note in his voice.
-One day a large parcel came for the Emperor. Outside
-was written the word: “Nightingale.”</p>
-
-<p>“Here we have a new book about our wonderful
-bird,” said the Emperor. But it was not a book; it
-was a little work of art which lay in a box&mdash;an
-artificial Nightingale, which was supposed to look
-like the real one, but it was set in diamonds, rubies
-and sapphires. As soon as you wound it up, it could
-sing one of the pieces which the real bird sang, and
-its tail moved up and down and glittered with silver
-and gold. Round its neck was a ribbon on which was
-written: “The Emperor of Japan's Nightingale is
-miserable compared with the Emperor of China's.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is delightful,” they all said, and on the
-messenger who had brought the artificial bird they
-bestowed the title of “Imperial Nightingale-Bringer-in-Chief.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let them sing together, and <i>what</i> a duet that will
-be!”</p>
-
-<p>And so they had to sing, but the thing would not
-work, because the real Nightingale could only sing in
-its own way, and the artificial Nightingale could only
-play by clock-work.</p>
-
-<p>“That is not its fault,” said the Band Master.
-“Time is its strong point, and it has quite my
-method.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the artificial Nightingale had to sing alone.
-It had just as much success as the real bird, and then
-it was so much handsomer to look at: it glittered like<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">145</a></span>
-bracelets and breast-pins. It sang the same tune three
-and thirty times, and it was still not tired: the people
-would willingly have listened to the whole performance
-over again from the start. But the Emperor suggested
-that the real Nightingale should sing for a
-while. But where was it? Nobody had noticed that
-it had flown out of the open window back to its green
-woods.</p>
-
-<p>“But what is the meaning of all this?” said the
-Emperor. All the courtiers upbraided the Nightingale
-and said that it was a most ungrateful creature.</p>
-
-<p>“We have the better of the two,” they said, and
-the artificial Nightingale had to sing again, and this
-was the thirty-fourth time they heard the same tune.
-But they did not know it properly even then, because
-it was so difficult, and the bandmaster praised the
-wonderful bird in the highest terms, and even asserted
-that it was superior to the real bird, not only as
-regarded the outside, with the many lovely diamonds,
-but also the inside as well.</p>
-
-<p>“You see, ladies and gentlemen, and above all
-your Imperial Majesty, that with the real Nightingale,
-you can never predict what may happen, but with the
-artificial bird, everything is settled upon beforehand;
-so it remains and it cannot be changed. One can
-account for it. One can rip it open and show the
-human ingenuity, explaining how the cylinders lie,
-how they work, and how one thing is the result of
-another.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is just what we think,” they all exclaimed,
-and the Bandmaster received permission to exhibit
-the bird to the people on the following Sunday. The
-Emperor said they were to hear it sing. They
-listened, and were as much delighted as if they had
-been drunk with tea, which is a thoroughly Chinese<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">146</a></span>
-habit, and they all said “Oh!” and stuck their
-forefingers in the air, and nodded their heads. But
-the poor Fisherman who had heard the real Nightingale,
-said: “It sounds quite well, and a little like it,
-but there is something missing. I do not know what
-it is.”</p>
-
-<p>The real Nightingale was banished from the
-Kingdom. The artificial bird had its place on a
-silken cushion close to the Emperor's bed. All the
-presents it had received, the gold and precious stones,
-lay all round it, and it had been honoured with the
-title of High Imperial Bedroom Singer&mdash;in the first
-rank, on the left side, for even the Emperor considered
-that side the grander on which the heart is placed,
-and even an Emperor has his heart on the left side.
-The Bandmaster wrote twenty-five volumes about the
-wonderful artificial bird. The book was very learned
-and very long, filled with the most difficult words in
-the Chinese language, and everybody said that he had
-read it and understood it, for otherwise he would have
-been considered stupid, and would have been trampled
-upon.</p>
-
-<p>And thus a whole year passed away. The Emperor,
-the Court and all the other Chinese knew every little
-gurgle in the artificial bird's song, and just for this
-reason, they were all the better pleased with it. They
-could sing it themselves&mdash;which they did. The boys
-in the street sang “zizizi” and “cluck, cluck,” and
-even the Emperor sang it. Yes, it was certainly
-beautiful. But one evening, while the bird was singing,
-and the Emperor lay in bed listening to it, there
-was a whirring sound inside the bird, and something
-whizzed; all the wheels ran round, and the music
-stopped. The Emperor sprang out of bed and sent
-for the Court Physician, but what could he do? Then<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">147</a></span>
-they sent for the watch-maker, and after much talk
-and examination, he patched the bird up, but he said
-it must be spared as much as possible, because the
-hammers were so worn out and he could not put new
-ones in so that the music could be counted on. This
-was a great grief. The bird could only be allowed to
-sing once a year, and even that was risky, but on these
-occasions the Bandmaster would make a little speech,
-introducing difficult words, saying the bird was as
-good as it ever had been: and that was true.</p>
-
-<p>Five years passed away, and a great sorrow had
-come over the land. The people all really cared for
-their Emperor: now he was ill and it was said he
-could not live. A new Emperor had been chosen, and
-the people stood about the streets, and questioned the
-Lord-in-Waiting about their Emperor's condition.</p>
-
-<p>“P!” he said, and shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>The Emperor lay pale and cold on his great,
-gorgeous bed: the whole Court believed that he was
-dead, and they all hastened to pay homage to the new
-Emperor. The footmen hurried off to discuss matters,
-and the chambermaids gave a great coffee party.
-Cloth had been laid down in all the rooms and
-passages, so that not a footstep should be heard and it
-was all fearfully quiet. But the Emperor was not yet
-dead. He lay stiff and pale in the sumptuous bed,
-with its long, velvet curtains, and the heavy gold
-tassels: just above was an open window, and the moon
-shone in upon the Emperor and the artificial bird.
-The poor Emperor could hardly breathe: it was as if
-something were weighing him down: he opened his
-eyes and saw it was Death, sitting on his chest,
-wearing his golden crown, holding in one hand the
-golden sword, and in the other the splendid banner:
-and from the folds of the velvet curtains strange faces<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">148</a></span>
-peered forth, some terrible to look on, others mild and
-friendly: these were the Emperor's good and bad
-deeds, which gazed upon him now that Death sat
-upon his heart.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you remember this?” whispered one after
-the other. “Do you remember that?” They told
-him so much that the sweat poured down his face.</p>
-
-<p>“I never knew that,” said the Emperor. “Play
-music! music! Beat the great Chinese drum!” he
-called out, “so that I may not hear what they are
-saying!”</p>
-
-<p>But they kept on, and Death nodded his head, like
-a Chinaman, at everything they said.</p>
-
-<p>“Music, music,” cried the Emperor. “You little
-precious bird! Sing to me, ah! sing to me! I have
-given you gold and costly treasures. I have hung my
-golden slipper about your neck. Sing to me. Sing
-to me!”</p>
-
-<p>But the bird stood still: there was no one to wind
-him up, and therefore he could not sing. But Death
-went on, staring at the Emperor with his great hollow
-sockets, and it was terribly still.</p>
-
-<p>Then, suddenly, close to the window, came the sound
-of a lovely song. It was the little live Nightingale
-which perched on the branches outside. It had heard
-of its Emperor's plight, and had therefore flown hither
-to bring him comfort and hope, and as he sang, the
-faces became paler and the blood coursed more freely
-through the Emperor's weak body, and Death himself
-listened and said: “Go on, little Nightingale. Go
-on.”</p>
-
-<p>“And will you give me the splendid sword, and the
-rich banner and the Emperor's crown?”</p>
-
-<p>And Death gave all these treasures for a song. And
-still the Nightingale sang on. He sang of the quiet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">149</a></span>
-churchyard, where the white roses grow, where the
-Elder flowers bloom, and where the grass is kept moist
-by the tears of the survivors, and there came to Death
-such a longing to see his garden, that he floated out
-of the window, in the form of a white, cold mist.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, thank you,” said the Emperor. “You
-heavenly little bird, I know you well! I banished you
-from the land, and you have charmed away the evil
-spirits from my bed, and you have driven Death from
-my heart. How shall I reward you?”</p>
-
-<p>“You have rewarded me,” said the Nightingale.
-“I received tears from your eyes the first time I sang,
-and I never forget that. These are jewels which touch
-the heart of the singer. But sleep now, that you may
-wake fresh and strong. I will sing to you,” and it
-sang, and the Emperor fell into a sweet sleep. The
-sun shone in upon him through the window, and he
-woke feeling strong and healthy. None of his servants
-had come back, because they thought he was
-dead, but the Nightingale was still singing.</p>
-
-<p>“You will always stay with me,” said the Emperor.
-“You shall only sing when it pleases you, and I will
-break the artificial Nightingale into a thousand
-pieces.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do not do that,” said the Nightingale.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">150</a></span> “It has
-done the best it could. Keep it with you. I cannot
-build my nest in a palace, but let me come just as I
-please. I will sit on the branch near the window, and
-sing to you that you may be joyful and thoughtful too.
-I will sing to you of the happy folk, and of those that
-suffer; I will sing of the evil and of the good, which
-is being hidden from you. The little singing bird
-flies hither and thither, to the poor fisherman, to the
-peasant's hut, to many who live far from you and the
-Court. Your heart is dearer to me than your crown,
-and yet the crown has a breath of sanctity too. I will
-come; I will sing to you, but one thing you must
-promise.”</p>
-
-<p>“All that you ask,” said the Emperor and stood
-there in his imperial robes which he had put on
-himself, and held the heavy golden sword on his heart.</p>
-
-<p>“I beg you, let no one know that you have a little
-bird who tells you everything. It will be far better
-thus,” and the Nightingale flew away.</p>
-
-<p>The servants came to look upon their dead Emperor:
-they stood there and the Emperor said “Good
-morning.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-(<i>From Hans. C. Andersen, translated from the
-Danish by Marie L. Shedlock.</i>)
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Swineherd.</span></h3>
-
-<p>There was once upon a time a needy prince. He
-owned a Kingdom&mdash;a very small one, but it was large
-enough to support a wife, and he made up his mind
-to marry. Now, it was really very bold on his part
-to say of the King's daughter: “Will you marry
-me?” But he dared to do so, for his name was
-known far and wide, and there were hundreds of
-princesses who would willingly have said: “Yes,
-with thanks.” But, whether she would say so, was
-another matter. We shall hear what happened.</p>
-
-<p>On the grave of the Prince's father there grew a
-rose-tree&mdash;such a wonderful rose-tree! It only
-bloomed once in five years, and then it only bore one
-rose&mdash;but what a rose! Its perfume was so sweet that
-whoever smelt it forgot all his cares and sorrows. The
-Prince had also a Nightingale which could sing as if
-all the delicious melodies in the world were contained
-in its little throat. The rose and the Nightingale were
-both to be given to the Princess and were therefore<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">151</a></span>
-placed in two silver cases and sent to her. The
-Emperor had them carried before him into the great
-hall where the Princess was playing at “visiting”
-with her ladies-in-waiting. This was their chief
-occupation; and when she saw the great cases with
-the presents in them, she clapped her hands with joy.</p>
-
-<p>“If it were only a little pussy-cat,” she cried. But
-out came the beautiful rose.</p>
-
-<p>“How elegantly it is made,” said all the ladies of
-the Court.</p>
-
-<p>“It is more than elegant,” said the Emperor; “it
-is nice.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fie, papa,” she said, “it is not made at all; it is
-a natural rose.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fie,” said all the ladies of the court; “it is a
-natural rose.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let us see what the other case contains before we
-lose our temper,” said the Emperor, and then out
-came the little Nightingale and sang so sweetly that
-nobody right off could think of any bad thing to say
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>“Superbe, charmant,” cried the ladies of the Court,
-for they all chattered French, one worse than the
-other.</p>
-
-<p>“How the bird reminds me of the late Empress'
-musical-box!” said an old Lord-in-Waiting. “Ah
-me! The same tone, the same execution&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“The very same,” said the Emperor, and he cried
-like a little child.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope it is not a real bird,” said the Princess.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes; it is a real bird,” said those who had
-brought it.</p>
-
-<p>“Then let the bird fly away,” she said, and she
-would on no account allow the Prince to come in.</p>
-
-<p>But he was not to be discouraged. He smeared his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">152</a></span>
-face with black and brown, drew his cap over his
-forehead, and knocked at the Palace door. The
-Emperor opened it.</p>
-
-<p>“Good day, Emperor,” he said. “Could I not get
-some work at the Palace?”</p>
-
-<p>“There are so many who apply for positions here!”
-said the Emperor. “Now let me see: I am in want
-of a swineherd. I have a good many pigs to keep.”</p>
-
-<p>So the Prince was appointed as Imperial Swineherd.
-He had a wretched little room near the pig-sty
-and here he was obliged to stay. But the whole day
-he sat and worked, and by the evening he had made a
-neat little pipkin, and round it was a set of bells, and
-as soon as the pot began to boil, the bells fell to
-jingling most sweetly and played the old melody:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“Ah, my dear Augustus,</div>
-<div class="i0">All is lost, all is lost;”</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p class="noin">but the most wonderful thing was that when you held
-your finger in the steam of the pipkin, you could
-immediately smell what dinner was cooking on every
-hearth in the town&mdash;that was something very different
-from a rose.</p>
-
-<p>The Princess was walking out with her ladies-in-Waiting,
-and when she heard the melody, she stopped
-short, and looked much rejoiced, for she could play
-“Ah, my dear Augustus.” That was the only tune
-she knew, but she could play it with one finger.
-“Why, that is what I can play,” she said. “What
-a cultivated swineherd he must be. Go down and ask
-him how much his instrument costs.”</p>
-
-<p>So one of the Ladies-in-Waiting was obliged to go
-down, but she put on pattens first.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you charge for your instrument?”
-asked the Lady-in-Waiting.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">153</a></span>
-
-“I will have ten kisses from the Princess,” said
-the Swineherd.</p>
-
-<p>“Good gracious!” said the Lady-in-Waiting.</p>
-
-<p>“I will not take less,” said the Swineherd.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what did he say?” asked the Princess.</p>
-
-<p>“I really cannot tell you,” said the Lady-in-Waiting.
-“It is too dreadful.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you can whisper it,” said the Princess.</p>
-
-<p>So she whispered it.</p>
-
-<p>“He is very rude,” said the Princess, and she
-walked away. But when she had walked a few steps
-the bells sounded so sweetly:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“Ah, my dear Augustus,</div>
-<div class="i0">All is lost, all is lost.”</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>“Listen,” said the Princess, “ask him whether he
-will have his kisses from my Ladies-in-Waiting.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, thank you,” said the Swineherd. “I will
-have ten kisses from the Princess, or I will keep my
-pipkin.”</p>
-
-<p>“How tiresome it is,” said the Princess; “but you
-must stand round me, so that nobody shall see.”</p>
-
-<p>So the Ladies-in-Waiting stood round her, and they
-spread out their dresses. The Swineherd got the
-kisses, and she got the pipkin.</p>
-
-<p>How delighted she was. All the evening, and the
-whole of the next day that pot was made to boil. And
-you might have known what everybody was cooking
-on every hearth in the town from the Chamberlain's
-to the shoemaker's. The court ladies danced and
-clapped their hands.</p>
-
-<p>“We know who is to have fruit, soup and pancakes.
-We know who is going to have porridge, and cutlets.
-How very interesting it is!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">154</a></span>
-“Most, interesting, indeed,” said the first Lady-of-Honour.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but hold your tongues, because I am the
-Emperor's daughter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course we will,” they cried in one breath.</p>
-
-<p>The Swineherd, or rather the Prince, though they
-did not know but that he was a real swineherd, did
-not let the day pass without doing something, and he
-made a rattle which could play all the waltzes and the
-polkas and the hop-dances which had been known
-since the creation of the world.</p>
-
-<p>“But this is superb,” said the Princess, who was
-just passing: “I have never heard more beautiful
-composition. Go and ask him the cost of the instrument.
-But I will give no more kisses.”</p>
-
-<p>“He insists on a hundred kisses from the Princess,”
-said the Ladies-in-Waiting who had been down to ask.</p>
-
-<p>“I think he must be quite mad,” said the Princess,
-and she walked away. But when she had taken a few
-steps, she stopped short, and said: “One must
-encourage the fine arts, and I am the Emperor's
-daughter. Tell him he may have ten kisses, as before,
-and the rest he can take from my Ladies-in-Waiting.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but we object to that,” said the Ladies-in-Waiting.</p>
-
-<p>“That is nonsense,” said the Princess. “If I can
-kiss him, surely you can do the same. Go down at
-once. Don't I pay you board and wages?”</p>
-
-<p>So the Ladies-in-Waiting were obliged to go down
-to the Swineherd again.</p>
-
-<p>“A hundred kisses from the Princess, or each keeps
-his own.”</p>
-
-<p>“Stand round me,” she said. And all the Ladies-in-Waiting
-stood round her, and the Swineherd began
-to kiss her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">155</a></span>
-
-“What can all that crowd be down by the pigsty?”
-said the Emperor, stepping out on to the
-balcony. He rubbed his eyes and put on his spectacles.
-“It is the court-ladies up to some of their tricks.
-I must go down and look after them.” He pulled up
-his slippers (for they were shoes which he had trodden
-down at the heel).</p>
-
-<p>Heavens! How he hurried! As soon as he came
-into the garden he walked very softly, and the Ladies-in-Waiting
-had so much to do counting the kisses, so
-that everything should be done fairly, and that the
-Swineherd should neither get too many nor too few,
-that they never noticed the Emperor at all. He stood
-on tiptoe.</p>
-
-<p>“What is this all about?” he said, when he saw
-the kissing that was going on, and he hit them on the
-head with his slipper, just as the Swineherd was
-getting the eighty-sixth kiss. “Heraus,” said the
-Emperor, for he was angry, and both the Princess and
-the Swineherd were turned out of his Kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>The Princess wept, the Swineherd scolded, and the
-rain streamed down.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! wretched creature that I am,” said the
-Princess. “If I had only taken the handsome Prince!
-Ah me, how unhappy I am!”</p>
-
-<p>Then the Swineherd went behind a tree, washed the
-black and brown off his face, threw off his ragged
-clothes, and stood forth in his royal apparel, looking
-so handsome that she was obliged to curtsey.</p>
-
-<p>“I have learned to despise you,” he said.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">156</a></span> “You
-would not have an honourable Prince. You could
-not appreciate a rose or a Nightingale, but to get a toy,
-you kissed the Swineherd. Now you have your
-reward.”</p>
-
-<p>So he went into his Kingdom, shut the door and
-bolted it, and she had to stand outside singing:</p>
-<div class="center">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“Ah, you dear Augustus,</div>
-<div class="i0">All, all is lost.”</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p class="right">
-(<i>From the Danish of Hans C. Andersen, translated
-by Marie L. Shedlock.</i>)
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Princess and the Pea.</span></h3>
-
-<p>There was once a Prince who wished to marry a
-Princess, but she must be a real Princess. He
-travelled all over the world to find such a one; but
-there was always something the matter. There were
-plenty of Princesses, but whether they were real or
-not, he could not be quite certain. There was always
-something that was not quite right. So he came
-home again, feeling very sad, for he was so anxious
-to have a real Princess.</p>
-
-<p>One evening a terrible storm came on: it lightened,
-and thundered and the rain came down in torrents.
-It was quite terrible. Then there came a knocking at
-the town-gate, and the old King went down to open
-it. There, outside, stood a Princess. But gracious!
-the rain and bad weather had made her look dreadful.
-The water was running out of her hair on to her
-clothes, into the tips of her shoes and out at the heels,
-and yet she said she was a real Princess.</p>
-
-<p>“We shall soon find out about that,” thought the
-old Queen. But she said never a word. She went
-into the bedroom, took off all the bed-clothes and put
-a pea on the bedstead. Then she took twenty
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">157</a></span>
-mattresses and laid them on the pea and twenty eider-down
-quilts upon the mattresses. And the Princess
-was to sleep there at night.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning they came to her and asked her how
-she had slept.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! dreadfully,” said the Princess. “I scarcely
-closed my eyes the whole night long. Heaven knows
-what could have been in the bed. I have lain upon
-something hard, so that my whole body is black and
-blue. It is quite dreadful.”</p>
-
-<p>So they could see now that she was a real Princess,
-because she had felt the pea through twenty mattresses
-and twenty eider-down quilts. Nobody but a real
-Princess could be so sensitive.</p>
-
-<p>So the Prince married her, for now he knew that he
-had found a real Princess, and the pea was sent to an
-Art Museum, where it can still be seen, if nobody has
-taken it away.</p>
-
-<p>Now, mark you: This is a true story.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-(<i>Translated from the Danish of Hans C. Andersen
-by Marie L. Shedlock.</i>)
-</p>
-
-<p class="p2">I give the following story, quoted by Professor Ker
-in his Romanes Lecture, 1906, as an encouragement to
-those who develop the art of story-telling.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Story of Sturla.</span></h3>
-
-<p>Then Sturla got ready to sail away with the king,
-and his name was put on the list. He went on board
-before many men had come; he had a sleeping bag
-and a travelling chest, and took his place on the
-fore-deck. A little later the king came on to the quay,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">158</a></span>
-and a company of men with him. Sturla rose and
-bowed, and bade the king ‘hail,’ but the king
-answered nothing, and went aft along the ship to the
-quarter-deck. They sailed that day to go south along
-the coast. But in the evening when men unpacked
-their provisions Sturla sat still, and no one invited
-him to mess. Then a servant of the king's came and
-asked Sturla if he had any meat and drink. Sturla
-said ‘No.’ Then the king's servant went to the king
-and spoke with him, out of hearing: and then went
-forward to Sturla and said: “You shall go to mess
-with Thorir Mouth and Erlend Maw.” They took
-him into their mess, but rather stiffly. When men
-were turning in to sleep, a sailor of the king's asked
-who should tell them stories. There was little answer.
-Then he said: “Sturla the Icelander, will you tell
-stories?” “As you will,” said Sturla. So he told
-them the story of Huld, better and fuller than any one
-there had ever heard it told before. Then many men
-pushed forward to the fore-deck, wanting to hear as
-clearly as might be, and there was a great crowd. The
-queen asked: “What is that crowd on deck there?”
-A man answered: “The men are listening to the
-story that the Icelander tells.” “What story is that?”
-said she. He answers: “It is about a great troll-wife,
-and it is a good story and well told.” The king
-bade her pay no heed to that, and go to sleep. She
-says: “I think this Icelander must be a good fellow,
-and less to blame than he is reported.” The king
-was silent.</p>
-
-<p>So the night passed, and the next morning there
-was no wind for them, and the king's ship lay in the
-same place. Later in the day, when men sat at their
-drink, the king sent dishes from his table to Sturla.
-Sturla's messmates were pleased with this:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">159</a></span> “You
-bring better luck than we thought, if this sort of thing
-goes on.” After dinner the queen sent for Sturla and
-asked him to come to her and bring the troll-wife story
-along with him. So Sturla went aft to the quarter-deck,
-and greeted the king and queen. The king
-answered little, the queen well and cheerfully. She
-asked him to tell the same story he had told overnight.
-He did so, for a great part of the day. When he had
-finished, the queen thanked him, and many others
-besides, and made him out in their minds to be a
-learned man and sensible. But the king said nothing;
-only he smiled a little. Sturla thought he saw that
-the king's whole frame of mind was brighter than the
-day before. So he said to the king that he had made
-a poem about him, and another about his father: “I
-would gladly get a hearing for them.” The queen
-said: “Let him recite his poem; I am told that he is
-the best of poets, and his poem will be excellent.”
-The king bade him say on, if he would, and repeat
-the poem he professed to have made about him.
-Sturla chanted it to the end. The queen said: “To
-my mind that is a good poem.” The king said to
-her: “Can you follow the poem clearly?” “I
-would be fain to have you think so, Sir,” said the
-queen. The king said: “I have learned that Sturla
-is good at verses.” Sturla took his leave of the king
-and queen and went to his place. There was no
-sailing for the king all that day. In the evening
-before he went to bed he sent for Sturla. And when
-he came he greeted the king and said: “What will
-you have me to do, Sir?” The king called for a
-silver goblet full of wine, and drank some and gave
-it to Sturla and said: “A health to a friend in wine!”
-(<i>Vin skal til vinar drekka.</i>) Sturla said: “God be
-praised for it!” “Even so,” says the king,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">160</a></span> “and
-now I wish you to say the poem you have made about
-my father.” Sturla repeated it: and when it was
-finished men praised it much, and most of all the
-queen. The king said: “To my thinking, you are
-a better reciter than the Pope.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<i>Sturlunga Saga</i>, vol. ii, pp. 269 <i>sqq.</i>
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">A Saga.</span></h3>
-
-<p>In the grey beginnings of the world, or ever the
-flower of justice had rooted in the heart, there lived
-among the daughters of men two children, sisters, of
-one house.</p>
-
-<p>In childhood did they leap and climb and swim
-with the men children of their race, and were nurtured
-on the same stories of gods and heroes.</p>
-
-<p>In maidenhood they could do all that a maiden
-might and more&mdash;delve could they no less than spin,
-hunt no less than weave, brew pottage and helm ships,
-wake the harp and tell the stars, face all danger and
-laugh at all pain.</p>
-
-<p>Joyous in toil-time and rest-time were they as the
-days and years of their youth came and went. Death
-had spared their house, and unhappiness knew they
-none. Yet often as at falling day they sat before
-sleep round the hearth of red fire, listening with the
-household to the brave songs of gods and heroes,
-there would surely creep into their hearts a shadow&mdash;the
-thought that whatever the years of their lives, and
-whatever the generous deeds, there would for them, as
-women, be no escape at the last from the dire mists
-of Hela, the fogland beyond the grave for all such as
-die not in battle; no escape for them from Hela, and
-no place for ever for them or for their kind among
-the glory-crowned, sword-shriven heroes of echoing
-Valhalla.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">161</a></span>
-
-That shadow had first fallen in their lusty childhood,
-had slowly gathered darkness through the
-overflowing days of maidenhood, and now, in the
-strong tide of full womanhood, often lay upon their
-future as the moon in Odin's wrath lies upon the sun.</p>
-
-<p>But stout were they to face danger and laugh at
-pain, and for all the shadow upon their hope they
-lived brave and songful days&mdash;the one a homekeeper
-and in her turn a mother of men; the other unhusbanded,
-but gentle to ignorance and sickness and
-sorrow through the width and length of the land.</p>
-
-<p>And thus, facing life fearlessly and ever with a
-smile, those two women lived even unto extreme old
-age, unto the one's children's children's children,
-labouring truly unto the end and keeping strong
-hearts against the dread day of Hela, and the fate-locked
-gates of Valhalla.</p>
-
-<p>But at the end a wonder.</p>
-
-<p>As these sisters looked their last upon the sun, the
-one in the ancestral homestead under the eyes of love,
-the other in a distant land among strange faces,
-behold the wind of Thor, and out of the deep of
-heaven the white horses of Odin, All-Father, bearing
-Valkyrie, shining messengers of Valhalla. And those
-two world-worn women, faithful in all their lives, were
-caught up in death in divine arms and borne far from
-the fogs of Hela to golden thrones among the battle
-heroes, upon which the Nornir, sitting at the loom of
-life, had from all eternity graven their names.</p>
-
-<p>And from that hour have the gates of Valhalla
-been thrown wide to all faithful endeavour whether of
-man or of women.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<span class="smcap">John Russell</span>,<br />
-Headmaster of the King Alfred School.
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">162</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Legend of St. Christopher.</span></h3>
-
-<p>Christopher was of the lineage of the Canaaneans
-and he was of a right great stature, and had a terrible
-and fearful cheer and countenance. And he was
-twelve cubits of length. And, as it is read in some
-histories, when he served and dwelled with the king
-of Canaaneans, it came in his mind that he would
-seek the greatest prince that was in the world and him
-he would serve and obey.</p>
-
-<p>And so far he went that he came to a right great
-king, of whom the renown generally was that he was
-the greatest of the world. And when the king saw
-him he received him into his service and made him
-to dwell in his court.</p>
-
-<p>Upon a time a minstrel sang before him a song in
-which he named oft the devil. And the king which
-was a Christian man, when he heard him name the
-devil, made anon the sign of the cross in his visage.
-And when Christopher saw that, he had great marvel
-what sign it was and wherefore the king made it.
-And he demanded it of him. And because the king
-would not say, he said, “If thou tell me not, I shall
-no longer dwell with thee.” And then the king told
-to him saying, “Alway when I hear the devil named,
-I fear that he should have power over me, and I
-garnish me with this sign that he grieve not nor annoy
-me.” Then Christopher said to him, “Thou doubtest
-the devil that he hurt thee not? Then is the devil
-more mighty and greater than thou art. I am then
-deceived of my hope and purpose; for I supposed that
-I had found the most mighty and the most greatest
-lord of the world. But I commend thee to God, for I
-will go seek him to be my lord and I his servant.”</p>
-
-<p>And then he departed from this king and hasted
-him to seek the devil. And as he went by a great<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">163</a></span>
-desert he saw a great company of knights. Of which
-a knight cruel and horrible came to him and demanded
-whither he went. And Christopher answered to him
-and said, “I go to seek the devil for to be my master.”
-And he said, “I am he that thou seekest.” And then
-Christopher was glad and bound himself to be his
-servant perpetual, and took him for his master and
-lord.</p>
-
-<p>And as they went together by a common way, they
-found there a cross erect and standing. And anon
-as the devil saw the cross, he was afeard and fled, and
-left the right way and brought Christopher about by
-a sharp desert, and after, when they were past the
-cross, he brought him to the highway that they had
-left. And when Christopher saw that, he marvelled
-and demanded whereof he doubted that he had left
-high and fair way and had gone so far about by so
-hard desert. And the devil would not tell to him in
-no wise. Then Christopher said to him, “If thou
-wilt not tell me I shall anon depart from thee and
-shall serve thee no more.” Therefore the devil was
-constrained to tell him, and said, “There was a man
-called Christ which was hanged on the cross, and
-when I see his sign, I am sore afeard and flee from it
-wheresomever I find it.” To whom Christopher said,
-“Then he is greater and more mightier than thou,
-when thou art afraid of his sign. And I see well that
-I have laboured in vain since I have not founden the
-greatest lord of all the earth. And I will serve thee
-no longer. Go thy way then: for I will go seek Jesus
-Christ.”</p>
-
-<p>And when he had long sought and demanded where
-he should find Christ, at the last he came into a great
-desert to an hermit that dwelled there. And this
-hermit preached to him of Jesus Christ and informed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">164</a></span>
-him in the faith diligently. And he said to him,
-“This king whom thou desirest to serve, requireth
-this service that thou must oft fast.” And Christopher
-said to him, “Require of me some other thing and I
-shall do it. For that which thou requirest I may not
-do.” And the hermit said, “Thou must then wake
-and make many prayers.” And Christopher said to
-him, “I wot not what it is. I may do no such thing.”
-And then the hermit said unto him, “Knowest thou
-such a river in which many be perished and lost?”
-To whom Christopher said, “I know it well.” Then
-said the hermit, “Because thou art noble and high of
-stature and strong in thy members, thou shalt be
-resident by that river and shalt bear over all them that
-shall pass there. Which shall be a thing right
-convenable to Our Lord Jesus Christ, whom thou
-desirest to serve, and I hope He shall shew Himself
-to thee.” Then said Christopher, “Certes, this service
-may I well do, and I promise to Him for to do it.”</p>
-
-<p>Then went Christopher to this river, and made
-there his habitation for him. And he bare a great
-pole in his hand instead of a staff, by which he
-sustained him in the water; and bare over all manner
-of people without ceasing. And there he abode, thus
-doing many days.</p>
-
-<p>And on a time, as he slept in his lodge, he heard
-the voice of a child which called him and said,
-“Christopher, come out and bear me over.” Then
-he awoke and went out; but he found no man. And
-when he was again in his house, he heard the same
-voice, and he ran out and found nobody. The third
-time he was called, and came thither, and found a
-child beside the rivage of the river: which prayed
-him goodly to bear him over the water. And then
-Christopher lift up the child on his shoulders and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">165</a></span>
-took his staff and entered into the river for to pass.
-And the water of the river arose and swelled more and
-more. And the child was heavy as lead. And always
-as he went further the water increased and grew more,
-and the child more and more waxed heavy: in so
-much that Christopher had great anguish and feared
-to be drowned. And when he was escaped with great
-pain and passed the water, and set the child aground,
-he said to the child, “Child, thou hast put me in
-great peril. Thou weighest almost as I had had all
-the world upon me. I might bear no greater burden.”
-And the child answered, “Christopher, marvel thou
-no thing. For thou hast not only borne all the world
-upon thee; but thou hast borne Him that created and
-made all the world upon thy shoulders. I am Jesus
-Christ, the King to whom thou servest in this work.
-And that thou mayest know that I say to thee truth,
-set thy staff in the earth by the house, and thou shalt
-see to-morrow that it shall bear flowers and fruit.”
-And anon he vanished from his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>And then Christopher set his staff in the earth and
-when he arose on the morrow, he found his staff like
-a palm-tree bearing flowers, leaves and dates.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Arthur in the Cave.</span></h3>
-
-<p>Once upon a time a Welshman was walking on
-London Bridge, staring at the traffic and wondering
-why there were so many kites hovering about. He
-had come to London, after many adventures with
-thieves and highwaymen, which need not be related
-here, in charge of a herd of black Welsh cattle. He
-had sold them with much profit, and with jingling
-gold in his pocket he was going about to see the
-sights of the city.</p>
-
-<p>He was carrying a hazel staff in his hand, for you<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">166</a></span>
-must know that a good staff is as necessary to a drover
-as teeth are to his dogs. He stood still to gaze at
-some wares in a shop (for at that time London Bridge
-was shops from beginning to end), when he noticed
-that a man was looking at his stick with a long fixed
-look. The man after a while came to him and asked
-him where he came from.</p>
-
-<p>“I come from my own country,” said the Welshman,
-rather surlily, for he could not see what business
-the man had to ask such a question.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not take it amiss,” said the stranger: “if you
-will only answer my questions, and take my advice, it
-will be greater benefit to you than you imagine. Do
-you remember where you cut that stick?”</p>
-
-<p>The Welshman was still suspicious, and said:
-“What does it matter where I cut it?”</p>
-
-<p>“It matters,” said the questioner, “because there
-is a treasure hidden near the spot where you cut that
-stick. If you can remember the place and conduct
-me to it, I will put you in possession of great riches.”</p>
-
-<p>The Welshman now understood he had to deal with
-a sorcerer, and he was greatly perplexed as to what
-to do. On the one hand, he was tempted by the
-prospect of wealth; on the other hand, he knew that
-the sorcerer must have derived his knowledge from
-devils, and he feared to have anything to do with the
-powers of darkness. The cunning man strove hard
-to persuade him, and at length made him promise to
-shew the place where he cut his hazel staff.</p>
-
-<p>The Welshman and the magician journeyed together
-to Wales. They went to Craig y Dinas, the Rock of
-the Fortress, at the head of the Neath valley, near
-Pont Nedd Fechan, and the Welshman, pointing to
-the stock or root of an old hazel, said:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">167</a></span> “This is where
-I cut my stick.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let us dig,” said the sorcerer. They digged until
-they came to a broad, flat stone. Prising this up,
-they found some steps leading downwards. They
-went down the steps and along a narrow passage until
-they came to a door. “Are you brave?” asked the
-sorcerer, “will you come in with me?”</p>
-
-<p>“I will,” said the Welshman, his curiosity getting
-the better of his fear.</p>
-
-<p>They opened the door, and a great cave opened out
-before them. There was a faint red light in the cave,
-and they could see everything. The first thing they
-came to was a bell.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not touch that bell,” said the sorcerer, “or it
-will be all over with us both.”</p>
-
-<p>As they went further in, the Welshman saw that
-the place was not empty. There were soldiers lying
-down asleep, thousands of them, as far as ever the
-eye could see. Each one was clad in bright armour,
-the steel helmet of each was on his head, the shining
-shield of each was on his arm, the sword of each was
-near his hand, each had his spear stuck in the ground
-near him, and each and all were asleep.</p>
-
-<p>In the midst of the cave was a great round table at
-which sat warriors whose noble features and richly-dight
-armour proclaimed that they were not as the
-roll of common men.</p>
-
-<p>Each of these, too, had his head bent down in sleep.
-On a golden throne on the further side of the round
-table was a king of gigantic stature and august
-presence. In his hand, held below the hilt, was a
-mighty sword with scabbard and haft of gold studded
-with gleaming gems; on his head was a crown set
-with precious stones which flashed and glinted like
-so many points of fire. Sleep had set its seal on his
-eyelids also.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">168</a></span>
-
-“Are they asleep?” asked the Welshman, hardly
-believing his own eyes. “Yes, each and all of
-them,” answered the sorcerer. “But, if you touch
-yonder bell, they will all awake.”</p>
-
-<p>“How long have they been asleep?”</p>
-
-<p>“For over a thousand years.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who are they?”</p>
-
-<p>“Arthur's warriors, waiting for the time to come
-when they shall destroy all the enemy of the Cymry
-and repossess the strand of Britain, establishing their
-own king once more at Caer Lleon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who are these sitting at the round table?”</p>
-
-<p>“These are Arthur's knights&mdash;Owain, the son of
-Urien; Cai, the son of Cynyr; Gnalchmai, the son of
-Gwyar; Peredir, the son of Efrawe; Geraint, the son
-of Erbin; Trystan, the son of March; Bedwyr, the
-son of Bedrawd; Ciernay, the son of Celyddon;
-Edeyrn, the son of Nudd; Cymri, the son of Clydno.”</p>
-
-<p>“And on the golden throne?” broke in the Welshman.</p>
-
-<p>“Is Arthur himself, with his sword Excalibur in
-his hand,” replied the sorcerer.</p>
-
-<p>Impatient by this time at the Welshman's questions,
-the sorcerer hastened to a great heap of yellow gold
-on the floor of the cave. He took up as much as he
-could carry, and bade his companion do the same.
-“It is time for us to go,” he then said, and he led
-the way towards the door by which they had entered.</p>
-
-<p>But the Welshman was fascinated by the sight of
-the countless soldiers in their glittering arms&mdash;all
-asleep.</p>
-
-<p>“How I should like to see them all awaking!” he
-said to himself. “I will touch the bell&mdash;I <i>must</i> see
-them all arising from their sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>When they came to the bell, he struck it until it
-rang through the whole place. As soon as it rang,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">169</a></span>
-lo! the thousands of warriors leapt to their feet and
-the ground beneath them shook with the sound of the
-steel arms. And a great voice came from their midst:
-“Who rang the bell? Has the day come?”</p>
-
-<p>The sorcerer was so much frightened that he shook
-like an aspen leaf. He shouted in answer: “No, the
-day has not come. Sleep on.”</p>
-
-<p>The mighty host was all in motion, and the Welshman's
-eyes were dazzled as he looked at the bright
-steel arms which illumined the cave as with the light
-of myriad flames of fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Arthur,” said the voice again, “awake; the bell
-has rung, the day is breaking. Awake, Arthur the
-Great.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” shouted the sorcerer, “it is still night.
-Sleep on, Arthur the Great.”</p>
-
-<p>A sound came from the throne. Arthur was standing,
-and the jewels in his crown shone like bright stars
-above the countless throng. His voice was strong
-and sweet like the sound of many waters, and he said:
-“My warriors, the day has not come when the
-Black Eagle and the Golden Eagle shall go to war.
-It is only a seeker after gold who has rung the bell.
-Sleep on, my warriors; the morn of Wales has not
-yet dawned.”</p>
-
-<p>A peaceful sound like the distant sigh of the sea
-came over the cave, and in a trice the soldiers were all
-asleep again. The sorcerer hurried the Welshman
-out of the cave, moved the stone back to its place and
-vanished.</p>
-
-<p>Many a time did the Welshman try to find his way
-into the cave again, but though he dug over every
-inch of the hill, he has never again found the entrance
-to Arthur's Cave.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-From “The Welsh Fairy Book,” by W. Jenkyn
-Thomas. Fisher Unwin.
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">170</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Hafiz the Stone-cutter.</span>
-</h3>
-<p>There was once a stone-cutter whose name was
-Hafiz, and all day long he chipped, chipped, chipped
-at his block. And often he grew very weary of his
-task and he would say to himself impatiently, “Why
-should I go on chip-chip-chipping at my block? Why
-should I not have pleasure and amusement as other
-folk have?”</p>
-
-<p>One day, when the sun was very hot and when he
-felt specially weary, he suddenly heard the sound of
-many feet, and, looking up from his work, he saw a
-great procession coming his way. It was the King,
-mounted on a splendid charger, all his soldiers to the
-right, in their shining armour, and the servants to the
-left, dressed in gorgeous clothing, ready to do his
-behests.</p>
-
-<p>And Hafiz said: “How splendid to be a King! If
-only I could be a King, if only for ten minutes, so
-that I might know what it feels like!” And then,
-even as he spoke, he seemed to be dreaming, and in
-his dream he sang this little song:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Ah me! Ah me!</div>
-<div class="i0">If Hafiz only the King could be!</div>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<p>And then a voice from the air around seemed to
-answer him and to say:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Be thou the King.<a name="FNanchor_54_54" id="FNanchor_54_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a></div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And Hafiz became the King, and he it was that sat
-on the splendid charger, and they were his soldiers
-to the right and his servants to the left. And Hafiz
-said: “I am King, and there is no one stronger in
-the whole world than I.”</p>
-
-<p>But soon, in spite of the golden canopy over his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">171</a></span>
-head, Hafiz began to feel the terrible heat of the rays
-of the sun, and soon he noticed that the soldiers and
-servants were weary, that his horse drooped, and that
-he, Hafiz, was overcome, and he said angrily:
-“What! Is there something stronger in the world
-than a King?” And, almost without knowing it,
-he again sang his song&mdash;more boldly than the first
-time:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Ah me! Ah me!</div>
-<div class="i0">If Hafiz only the Sun could be!</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And the Voice answered:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Be thou the Sun.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And Hafiz became the Sun, and shone down upon
-the Earth, but, because he did not know how to shine
-very wisely, he shone very fiercely, so that the crops
-dried up, and folk grew sick and died. And then
-there arose from the East a little cloud which slipped
-between Hafiz and the Earth, so that he could no
-longer shine down upon it, and he said: “Is there
-something stronger in the world than the Sun?”</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Ah me! Ah me!</div>
-<div class="i0">If Hafiz only the Cloud could be!</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And the Voice said:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Be thou the cloud.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And Hafiz became the Cloud, and rained down
-water upon the Earth, but, because he did not know
-how to do so wisely, there fell so much rain that all
-the little rivulets became great rivers, and all the great
-rivers overflowed their banks, and carried everything
-before them in swift torrent&mdash;all except one great rock
-which stood unmoved. And Hafiz said: “Is there
-something stronger than the Cloud?”</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Ah me! Ah me!</div>
-<div class="i0">If Hafiz only the Rock could be!</div>
-</div></div></div>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">172</a></span>
-And the Voice said:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Be thou the Rock.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And Hafiz became the Rock, and the Cloud disappeared
-and the waters went down.</p>
-
-<p>And Hafiz the Rock saw coming towards him a
-man&mdash;but he could not see his face. As the man
-approached he suddenly raised a hammer and struck
-Hafiz, so that he felt it through all his stony body.
-And Hafiz said: “Is there something stronger in the
-world than the Rock?”</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Ah me! Ah me!</div>
-<div class="i0">If Hafiz only that man might be!</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And the Voice said:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Be thou&mdash;Thyself.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>And Hafiz seized the hammer and said:</p>
-
-<p>“The Sun was stronger than the King, the Cloud
-was stronger than the Sun, the Rock was stronger
-than the Cloud, but I, Hafiz, was stronger than all.”</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<i>Adapted and arranged for narration by M. C. S.</i>
-</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_54_54" id="Footnote_54_54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_54_54"><span class="label">[54]</span></a> The melody to be crooned at first and to grow louder at each
-incident.</p></div></div>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">To Your Good Health.</span></h3>
-
-<p class="center">(<i>From the Russian.</i>)</p>
-
-<p>Long long ago there lived a King who was such a
-mighty monarch that whenever he sneezed everyone
-in the whole country had to say, “To your good
-health!” Everyone said it except the Shepherd with
-the bright blue eyes, and he would not say it.</p>
-
-<p>The King heard of this and was very angry, and
-sent for the Shepherd to appear before him.</p>
-
-<p>The Shepherd came and stood before the throne,
-where the King sat looking very grand and powerful.
-But, however grand or powerful he might be, the
-Shepherd did not feel a bit afraid of him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">173</a></span>
-
-“Say at once, 'To my good health!'” cried the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“To my good health,” replied the Shepherd.</p>
-
-<p>“To mine&mdash;to <i>mine</i>, you rascal, you vagabond!”
-stormed the King.</p>
-
-<p>“To mine, to mine, Your Majesty,” was the answer.</p>
-
-<p>“But to <i>mine</i>&mdash;to my own!” roared the King, and
-beat on his breast in a rage.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, yes; to mine, of course, to my own,” cried
-the Shepherd, and gently tapped his breast.</p>
-
-<p>The King was beside himself with fury and did
-not know what to do, when the Lord Chamberlain
-interfered:</p>
-
-<p>“Say at once&mdash;say at this very moment, ‘To your
-health, Your Majesty,’ for if you don't say it you
-will lose your life,” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I won't say it till I get the Princess for my
-wife,” was the Shepherd's answer.</p>
-
-<p>Now the Princess was sitting on a little throne beside
-the King her father, and she looked as sweet and
-lovely as a little golden dove. When she heard what
-the Shepherd said, she could not help laughing, for
-there is no denying the fact that this young shepherd
-with the blue eyes pleased her very much; indeed, he
-pleased her better than any king's son she had yet
-seen.</p>
-
-<p>But the King was not as pleasant as his daughter,
-and he gave orders to throw the Shepherd into the
-white bear's pit.</p>
-
-<p>The guards led him away and thrust him into the
-pit with the white bear, who had had nothing to eat
-for two days and was very hungry. The door of the
-pit was hardly closed when the bear rushed at the
-Shepherd; but when it saw his eyes it was so frightened
-that it was ready to eat itself. It shrank away into a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">174</a></span>
-corner and gazed at him from there, and in spite of
-being so famished, did not dare to touch him, but
-sucked its own paws from sheer hunger. The
-Shepherd felt that if he once removed his eyes off
-the beast he was a dead man, and in order to keep
-himself awake he made songs and sang them, and so
-the night went by.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning the Lord Chamberlain came to see
-the Shepherd's bones, and was amazed to find him
-alive and well. He led him to the King, who fell
-into a furious passion, and said:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you have learned what it is to be very near
-death, and now will you say, 'To my very good
-health'?”</p>
-
-<p>But the Shepherd answered:</p>
-
-<p>“I am not afraid of ten deaths! I will only say it
-if I may have the Princess for my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then go to your death,” cried the King, and
-ordered him to be thrown into the den with the wild
-boars.</p>
-
-<p>The wild boars had not been fed for a week, and
-when the Shepherd was thrust into their den they
-rushed at him to tear him to pieces. But the Shepherd
-took a little flute out of the sleeve of his jacket, and
-began to play a merry tune, on which the wild boars
-first of all shrank shyly away, and then got up on
-their hind legs and danced gaily. The Shepherd
-would have given anything to be able to laugh, they
-looked so funny; but he dared not stop playing, for
-he knew well enough that the moment he stopped
-they would fall upon him and tear him to pieces.
-His eyes were of no use to him here, for he could not
-have stared ten wild boars in the face at once; so he
-kept on playing, and the wild boars danced very
-slowly, as if in a minuet; then by degrees he played<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">175</a></span>
-faster and faster, till they could hardly twist and turn
-quickly enough, and ended by all falling over each
-other in a heap, quite exhausted and out of breath.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Shepherd ventured to laugh at last; and
-he laughed so long and so loud that when the Lord
-Chamberlain came early in the morning, expecting to
-find only his bones, the tears were still running down
-his cheeks from laughter.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the King was dressed the Shepherd was
-again brought before him; but he was more angry
-than ever to think the wild boars had not torn the
-man to bits, and he said:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you have learned what it feels to be near
-ten deaths, <i>now</i> say 'To my good health!'”</p>
-
-<p>But the Shepherd broke in with:</p>
-
-<p>“I do not fear a hundred deaths; and I will only
-say it if I may have the Princess for my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then go to a hundred deaths!” roared the King,
-and ordered the Shepherd to be thrown down the deep
-vault of scythes.</p>
-
-<p>The guards dragged him away to a dark dungeon,
-in the middle of which was a deep well with sharp
-scythes all round it. At the bottom of the well was
-a little light by which one could see, if anyone was
-thrown in, whether he had fallen to the bottom.</p>
-
-<p>When the Shepherd was dragged to the dungeon
-he begged the guards to leave him alone a little while
-that he might look down into the pit of scythes;
-perhaps he might after all make up his mind to say,
-“To your good health” to the King.</p>
-
-<p>So the guards left him alone, and he stuck up his
-long stick near the wall, hung his cloak round the
-stick and put his hat on the top. He also hung his
-knapsack up beside the cloak, so that it might seem
-to have some body within it. When this was done,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">176</a></span>
-he called out to the guards and said that he had
-considered the matter, but after all he could not make
-up his mind to say what the King wished.</p>
-
-<p>The guards came in, threw the hat and cloak,
-knapsack and stick all down in the well together,
-watched to see how they put out the light at the
-bottom, and came away, thinking that now there was
-really an end of the Shepherd. But he had hidden in
-a dark corner, and was now laughing to himself all
-the time.</p>
-
-<p>Quite early next morning came the Lord Chamberlain
-with a lamp, and he nearly fell backwards with
-surprise when he saw the Shepherd alive and well.
-He brought him to the King, whose fury was greater
-than ever, but who cried:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, now you have been near a hundred deaths;
-will you say, 'To your good health'?”</p>
-
-<p>But the Shepherd only gave the same answer:</p>
-
-<p>“I won't say it till the Princess is my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps after all you may do it for less,” said the
-King, who saw that there was no chance of making
-away with the Shepherd; and he ordered the state
-coach to be got ready; then he made the Shepherd
-get in with him and sit beside him, and ordered the
-coachman to drive to the silver wood.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached it, he said:</p>
-
-<p>“Do you see this silver wood? Well, if you will
-say, ‘To your good health,’ I will give it to you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shepherd turned hot and cold by turns, but he
-still persisted:</p>
-
-<p>“I will not say it till the Princess is my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>The King was much vexed; he drove further on
-till they came to a splendid castle, all of gold, and
-then he said:</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">177</a></span></p>
-<p>“Do you see this golden castle? Well, I will give
-you that too, the silver wood and the golden castle,
-if only you will say that one thing to me: 'To your
-good health.'”</p>
-
-<p>The Shepherd gaped and wondered, and was quite
-dazzled, but he still said:</p>
-
-<p>“No, I will not say it till I have the Princess for my
-wife.”</p>
-
-<p>This time the King was overwhelmed with grief,
-and gave orders to drive on to the diamond pond, and
-there he tried once more:</p>
-
-<p>“You shall have them all&mdash;all, if you will but say,
-'To your good health.'”</p>
-
-<p>The Shepherd had to shut his staring eyes tight not
-to be dazzled with the brilliant pond, but still he said:</p>
-
-<p>“No, no; I will not say it till I have the Princess
-for my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the King saw that all his efforts were useless,
-and that he might as well give in; so he said:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, well, it is all the same to me&mdash;I will give
-you my daughter to wife; but then you really and
-truly must say to me, 'To your good health.'”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course I'll say it; why should I not say it?
-It stands to reason that I shall say it then.”</p>
-
-<p>At this the King was more delighted than anyone
-could have believed. He made it known to all
-through the country that there were going to be great
-rejoicings, as the Princess was going to be married.
-And everyone rejoiced to think that the Princess who
-had refused so many royal suitors, should have ended
-by falling in love with the staring-eyed Shepherd.</p>
-
-<p>There was such a wedding as had never been seen.
-Everyone ate and drank and danced. Even the sick
-were feasted, and quite tiny new-born children had
-presents given them. But the greatest merry-making
-was in the King's palace; there the best bands played<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">178</a></span>
-and the best food was cooked. A crowd of people sat
-down to table, and all was fun and merry-making.</p>
-
-<p>And when the groomsman, according to custom,
-brought in the great boar's head on a big dish and
-placed it before the King, so that he might carve it
-and give everyone a share, the savoury smell was so
-strong that the King began to sneeze with all his
-might.</p>
-
-<p>“To your very good health!” cried the Shepherd
-before anyone else, and the King was so delighted
-that he did not regret having given him his daughter.</p>
-
-<p>In time, when the old King died, the Shepherd
-succeeded him. He made a very good king, and
-never expected his people to wish him well against
-their wills: but, all the same, everyone did wish him
-well, because they loved him.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Proud Cock.</span></h3>
-
-<p class="noin">There was once a cock who grew so dreadfully proud
-that he would have nothing to say to anybody. He
-left his house, it being far beneath his dignity to have
-any trammel of that sort in his life, and as for his
-former acquaintances, he cut them all.</p>
-
-<p>One day, whilst walking about, he came to a few
-little sparks of fire which were nearly dead.</p>
-
-<p>They cried out to him: “Please fan us with your
-wings, and we shall come to the full vigour of life
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>But he did not deign to answer, and as he was going
-away, one of the sparks said: “Ah well! we shall die,
-but our big brother the Fire will pay you out for this
-one day.”</p>
-
-<p>On another day he was airing himself in a meadow,
-showing himself off in a very superb set of clothes.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">179</a></span>
-A voice calling from somewhere said: “Please be so
-good as to drop us into the water again.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked about and saw a few drops of water:
-they had got separated from their friends in the river,
-and were pining away with grief. “Oh! please be
-so good as to drop us into the water again,” they
-said; but, without any answer, he drank up the drops.
-He was too proud and a great deal too big to talk
-to a poor little puddle of water; but the drops said:
-“Our big brother the Water will one day take you
-in hand, you proud and senseless creature.”</p>
-
-<p>Some days afterwards, during a great storm of rain,
-thunder and lightning, the cock took shelter in a little
-empty cottage, and shut to the door; and he thought:
-“I am clever; I am in comfort. What fools people
-are to stop out in a storm like this! What's that?”
-thought he. “I never heard a sound like that before.”</p>
-
-<p>In a little while it grew much louder, and when a
-few minutes had passed, it was a perfect howl.
-“Oh!” thought he, “this will never do. I must
-stop it somehow. But what is it I have to stop?”</p>
-
-<p>He soon found it was the wind, shouting through
-the keyhole, so he plugged up the keyhole with a bit
-of clay, and then the wind was able to rest. He was
-very tired with whistling so long through the keyhole,
-and he said: “Now, if ever I have at any time a
-chance of doing a good turn to that princely domestic
-fowl, I will do it.”</p>
-
-<p>Weeks afterwards, the cock looked in at a house
-door: he seldom went there, because the miser to
-whom the house belonged almost starved himself, and
-so, of course, there was nothing over for anybody else.</p>
-
-<p>To his amazement the cock saw the miser bending
-over a pot on the fire. At last the old fellow turned<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">180</a></span>
-round to get a spoon with which to stir his pot, and
-then the cock, walking up, looked in and saw that the
-miser was making oyster-soup, for he had found some
-oyster-shells in an ash-pit, and to give the mixture a
-colour he had put in a few halfpence in the pot.</p>
-
-<p>The miser chanced to turn quickly round, whilst
-the cock was peering into the saucepan, and, chuckling
-to himself, he said: “I shall have some chicken broth
-after all.”</p>
-
-<p>He tripped up the cock into the pot and shut the
-lid on. The bird, feeling warm, said: “Water,
-water, don't boil!” But the water only said: “You
-drank up my young brothers once: don't ask a favour
-of <i>me</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he called out to the Fire: “Oh! kind Fire,
-don't boil the water.” But the Fire replied: “You
-once let my young sisters die: you cannot expect any
-mercy from me.” So he flared up and boiled the
-water all the faster.</p>
-
-<p>At last, when the cock got unpleasantly warm, he
-thought of the wind, and called out: “Oh, Wind,
-come to my help!” and the Wind said: “Why,
-there is that noble domestic bird in trouble. I will
-help him.” So he came down the chimney, blew out
-the fire, blew the lid off the pot, and blew the cock far
-away into the air, and at last settled him on a steeple,
-where the cock has remained ever since. And people
-say that the halfpence which were in the pot when it
-was boiling have given him the queer brown colour
-he still wears.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<i>From the Spanish.</i>
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Snegourka.</span></h3>
-
-<p>There lived once, in Russia, a peasant and his wife
-who would have been as happy as the day is long, if
-only God had given them a little child.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">181</a></span>
-
-One day, as they were watching the children
-playing in the snow, the man said to the woman:</p>
-
-<p>“Wife, shall we go out and help the children to
-make a snowball?”</p>
-
-<p>But the wife answered, smiling:</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, husband, but since God has given us no
-little child, let us go and fashion one from the snow.”</p>
-
-<p>And she put on her long blue cloak, and he put on
-his long brown coat, and they went out onto the crisp
-snow, and began to fashion the little child.</p>
-
-<p>First they made the feet and the legs and the little
-body, and then they took a ball of snow for the head.
-And at that moment a stranger in a long cloak, with
-his hat well drawn over his face, passed that way, and
-said: “Heaven help your undertaking!”</p>
-
-<p>And the peasants crossed themselves and said: “It
-is well to ask help from Heaven in all we do.”</p>
-
-<p>Then they went on fashioning the little child. And
-they made two holes for the eyes and formed the nose
-and the mouth. And then&mdash;wonder of wonders&mdash;the
-little child came alive, and breath came into its nostrils
-and parted lips.</p>
-
-<p>And the man was afeared, and said to his wife:
-“What have we done?”</p>
-
-<p>And the wife said: “This is the little girl child
-God has sent us.” And she gathered it into her arms,
-and the loose snow fell away from the little creature.
-Her hair became golden and her eyes were as blue
-as forget-me-nots&mdash;but there was no colour in her
-cheeks, because there was no blood in her veins.</p>
-
-<p>In a few days she was like a child of three or four,
-and in a few weeks she seemed to be the age of nine
-or ten, and ran about gaily and prattled with the other
-children, who loved her so dearly, though she was so
-different from them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">182</a></span>
-
-Only, happy as she was, and dearly as her parents
-loved her, there was one terror in her life, and that
-was the sun. And during the day she would run and
-hide herself in cool, damp places away from the
-sunshine, and this the other children could not understand.</p>
-
-<p>As the Spring advanced and the days grew longer
-and warmer, little Snegourka (for this was the name
-by which she was known) grew paler and thinner, and
-her mother would often ask her: “What ails you,
-my darling?” and Snegourka would say: “Nothing
-Mother, but I wish the sun were not so bright.”</p>
-
-<p>One day, on St. John's Day, the children of the
-village came to fetch her for a day in the woods, and
-they gathered flowers for her and did all they could
-to make her happy, but it was only when the great red
-sun went down that Snegourka drew a deep breath of
-relief and spread her little hands out to the cool
-evening air. And the boys, glad at her gladness,
-said: “Let us do something for Snegourka. Let us
-light a bonfire.” And Snegourka, not knowing what
-a bonfire was, she clapped her hands and was as merry
-and eager as they. And she helped them gather the
-sticks, and then they all stood round the pile and the
-boys set fire to the wood.</p>
-
-<p>Snegourka stood watching the flames and listening
-to the crackle of the wood; and then suddenly they
-heard a tiny sound&mdash;and looking at the place where
-Snegourka had been standing, they saw nothing but
-a little snowdrift fast melting. And they called and
-called, “Snegourka! Snegourka!” thinking she had
-run into the forest. But there was no answer.
-Snegourka had disappeared from this life as mysteriously
-as she had come into it.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<i>From the Russian, adapted for narration by M.T.S.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">183</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Water Nixie.</span></h3>
-
-<p>The river was so clear because it was the home of
-a very beautiful Water Nixie who lived in it, and who
-sometimes could emerge from her home and sit in
-woman's form upon the bank. She had a dark green
-smock upon her, the colour of the water-weed that
-waves as the water wills it, deep, deep down. And in
-her long wet hair were the white flowers of the water-violet,
-and she held a reed mace in her hand. Her
-face was very sad, because she had lived a long life,
-and known so many adventures, ever since she was a
-baby, which was nearly a hundred years ago. For
-creatures of the streams and trees live a long, long
-time, and when they die they lose themselves in
-Nature. That means that they are forever clouds, or
-trees, or rivers, and never have the form of men and
-women again.</p>
-
-<p>All water creatures would live, if they might choose
-it, in the sea, where they are born. It is in the sea
-they float hand-in-hand upon the crested billows, and
-sink deep in the great troughs of the strong waves,
-that are green as jade. They follow the foam and lose
-themselves in the wide ocean:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">Where great whales come sailing by,</div>
-<div class="i0">Sail and sail with unshut eye;</div>
-<div class="i0">And they store in the Sea King's palace</div>
-<div class="i0">The golden phosphor of the sea.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>But this Water Nixie had lost her happiness
-through not being good. She had forgotten many
-things that had been told her, and she had done
-many things that grieved others. She had stolen
-somebody else's property&mdash;quite a large bundle of
-happiness&mdash;which belonged elsewhere and not to her.
-Happiness is generally made to fit the person who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">184</a></span>
-owns it, just as do your shoes, or clothes; so that
-when you take some one else's it's very little good to
-you, for it fits badly, and you can never forget it isn't
-yours.</p>
-
-<p>So what with one thing and another, this Water
-Nixie had to be punished, and the Queen of the Sea
-had banished her from the waves. The punishment
-that can most affect merfolk is to restrict their
-freedom. And this is how the Queen of the Sea
-punished the Nixie of our tale.</p>
-
-<p>“You shall live for a long time in little places,
-where you will weary of yourself. You will learn to
-know yourself so well that everything you want will
-seem too good for you, and you will cease to claim it.
-And so, in time, you shall get free.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the Nixie had to rise up and go away, and be
-shut into the fastness of a very small space, according
-to the words of the Queen. And this small space
-was&mdash;a tear.</p>
-
-<p>At first she could hardly express her misery, and by
-thinking so continuously of the wideness and savour
-of the sea, she brought a dash of the brine with her,
-that makes the saltness of our tears. She became
-many times smaller than her own stature; even then,
-by standing upright and spreading wide her arms,
-she touched with her finger-tips the walls of her tiny
-crystal home. How she longed that this tear might
-be wept, and the walls of her prison shattered. But
-the owner of this tear was of a very proud nature, and
-she was so sad that tears seemed to her in no wise
-to express her grief.</p>
-
-<p>She was a Princess who lived in a country that was
-not her home. What were tears to her? If she could
-have stood on the top of the very highest hill and with
-both hands caught the great winds of heaven, strong<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">185</a></span>
-as they, and striven with them, perhaps she might
-have felt as if she expressed all she knew. Or, if she
-could have torn down the stars from the heavens, or
-cast her mantle over the sun. But tears! Would
-they have helped to tell her sorrow? You cry if you
-soil your copy-book, don't you? or pinch your hand?
-So you may imagine the Nixie's home was a safe one,
-and she turned round and round in the captivity of
-that tear.</p>
-
-<p>For twenty years she dwelt in that strong heart,
-till she grew to be accustomed to her cell. At last, in
-this wise came her release.</p>
-
-<p>An old gipsy came one morning to the Castle and
-begged to see the Princess. She must see her, she
-cried. And the Princess came down the steps to meet
-her, and the gipsy gave her a small roll of paper in
-her hand. And the roll of paper smelt like honey as
-she took it, and it adhered to her palm as she opened
-it. There was little sign of writing on the paper, but
-in the midst of the page was a picture, small as the
-picture reflected in the iris of an eye. The picture
-shewed a hill, with one tree on the sky-line, and a long
-road wound round the hill.</p>
-
-<p>And suddenly in the Princess' memory a voice
-spoke to her. Many sounds she heard, gathered up
-into one great silence, like the quiet there is in forest
-spaces, when it is Summer and the green is deep:</p>
-
-<p>Then the Princess gave the gipsy two golden pieces,
-and went up to her chamber, and long that night she
-sat, looking out upon the sky.</p>
-
-<p>She had no need to look upon the honeyed scroll,
-though she held it closely. Clearly before her did
-she see that small picture: the hill, and the tree, and
-the winding road, imaged as if mirrored in the iris of
-an eye. And in her memory she was upon that road,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">186</a></span>
-and the hill rose beside her, and the little tree was
-outlined every twig of it against the sky.</p>
-
-<p>And as she saw all this, an overwhelming love of
-the place arose in her, a love of that certain bit of
-country that was so sharp and strong, that it stung
-and swayed her, as she leaned on the window-sill.</p>
-
-<p>And because the love of a country is one of the
-deepest loves you may feel, the band of her control
-was loosened, and the tears came welling to her eyes.
-Up they brimmed and over, in salty rush and follow,
-dimming her eyes, magnifying everything, speared for
-a moment on her eyelashes, then shimmering to their
-fall. And at last came the tear that held the disobedient
-Nixie.</p>
-
-<p>Splish! it fell. And she was free.</p>
-
-<p>If you could have seen how pretty she looked
-standing there, about the height of a grass-blade,
-wringing out her long wet hair. Every bit of moisture
-she wrung out of it, she was so glad to be quit of that
-tear. Then she raised her two arms above her in one
-delicious stretch, and if you had been the size of a
-mustard-seed perhaps you might have heard her
-laughing. Then she grew a little, and grew and grew,
-till she was about the height of a bluebell, and as
-slender to see.</p>
-
-<p>She stood looking at the splash on the window-sill
-that had been her prison so long, and then, with three
-steps of her bare feet, she reached the jessamine that
-was growing by the window, and by this she swung
-herself to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>Away she sped over the dew-drenched meadows till
-she came to the running brook, and with all her
-longing in her outstretched hands, she kneeled down
-by the crooked willows among all the comfrey and the
-loosestrife, and the yellow irises and the reeds.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">187</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then she slid into the wide, cool stream.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<span class="smcap">Pamela Tennant</span> (Lady Glenconner).<br />
-
-<i>From “The Children and the Pictures”</i>
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Blue Rose.</span></h3>
-
-<p>There lived once upon a time in China a wise
-Emperor who had one daughter. His daughter was
-remarkable for her perfect beauty. Her feet were the
-smallest in the world; her eyes were long and slanting
-and bright as brown onyxes, and when you heard her
-laugh it was like listening to a tinkling stream or to
-the chimes of a silver bell. Moreover, the Emperor's
-daughter was as wise as she was beautiful, and she
-chanted the verse of the great poets better than anyone
-in the land. The Emperor was old in years; his son
-was married and had begotten a son; he was, therefore,
-quite happy with regard to the succession to the
-throne, but he wished before he died to see his
-daughter wedded to someone who should be worthy
-of her.</p>
-
-<p>Many suitors presented themselves to the palace as
-soon as it became known that the Emperor desired a
-son-in-law, but when they reached the palace they were
-met by the Lord Chamberlain, who told them that the
-Emperor had decided that only the man who found
-and brought back the blue rose should marry his
-daughter. The suitors were much puzzled by this
-order. What was the blue rose and where was it to
-be found? In all a hundred and fifty suitors had
-presented themselves, and out of these fifty at once put
-away from them all thought of winning the hand of
-the Emperor's daughter, since they considered the
-condition imposed to be absurd.</p>
-
-<p>The other hundred set about trying to find the blue
-rose. One of them, whose name was Ti-Fun-Ti, was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">188</a></span>
-a merchant, and immensely rich: he at once went to
-the largest shop in the town and said to the shopkeeper,
-“I want a blue rose, the best you have.”</p>
-
-<p>The shopkeeper with many apologies, explained
-that he did not stock blue roses. He had red roses in
-profusion, white, pink, and yellow roses, but no blue
-roses. There had hitherto been no demand for the
-article.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Ti-Fun-Ti, “you must get one for
-me. I do not mind how much money it costs, but I
-must have a blue rose.”</p>
-
-<p>The shopkeeper said he would do his best, but he
-feared it would be an expensive article and difficult to
-procure. Another of the suitors, whose name I have
-forgotten, was a warrior, and extremely brave; he
-mounted his horse, and taking with him a hundred
-archers and a thousand horsemen, he marched into the
-territory of the King of the Five Rivers, whom he
-knew to be the richest king in the world and the
-possessor of the rarest treasures, and demanded of
-him the blue rose, threatening him with a terrible doom
-should he be reluctant to give it up.</p>
-
-<p>The King of the Five Rivers, who disliked soldiers,
-and had a horror of noise, physical violence, and every
-kind of fuss (his bodyguard was armed solely with
-fans and sunshades), rose from the cushions on which
-he was lying when the demand was made, and,
-tinkling a small bell, said to the servant who straightway
-appeared, “Fetch me the blue rose.”</p>
-
-<p>The servant retired and returned presently bearing
-on a silken cushion a large sapphire which was carved
-so as to imitate a full-blown rose with all its petals.</p>
-
-<p>“This,” said the King of the Five Rivers, “is the
-blue rose. You are welcome to it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">189</a></span>
-The warrior took it, and after making brief, soldier-like
-thanks, he went straight back to the Emperor's
-palace, saying that he had lost no time in finding the
-blue rose. He was ushered into the presence of the
-Emperor, who as soon as he heard the warrior's story
-and saw the blue rose which had been brought sent
-for his daughter and said to her: “This intrepid
-warrior has brought you what he claims to be the blue
-rose. Has he accomplished the quest?”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess took the precious object in her hands,
-and after examining it for a moment, said: “This is
-not a rose at all. It is a sapphire; I have no need
-of precious stones.” And she returned the stone to
-the warrior with many elegantly expressed thanks.
-And the warrior went away in discomfiture.</p>
-
-<p>The merchant, hearing of the warrior's failure, was
-all the more anxious to win the prize. He sought the
-shopkeeper and said to him: “Have you got me the
-blue rose? I trust you have; because, if not, I shall
-most assuredly be the means of your death. My
-brother-in-law is chief magistrate, and I am allied by
-marriage to all the chief officials in the kingdom.”</p>
-
-<p>The shopkeeper turned pale and said: “Sir, give
-me three days and I will procure you the rose without
-fail.” The merchant granted him the three days and
-went away. Now the shopkeeper was at his wit's end
-as to what to do, for he knew well there was no such
-thing as a blue rose. For two days he did nothing
-but moan and wring his hands, and on the third day
-he went to his wife and said: “Wife, we are ruined.”</p>
-
-<p>But his wife, who was a sensible woman, said:
-“Nonsense. If there is no such thing as a blue rose
-we must make one. Go to the chemist and ask him
-for a strong dye which will change a white rose into
-a blue one.”</p>
-
-<p>So the shopkeeper went to the chemist and asked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">190</a></span>
-him for a dye, and the chemist gave him a bottle of
-red liquid, telling him to pick a white rose and to dip
-its stalk into the liquid and the rose would turn blue.
-The shopkeeper did as he was told; the rose turned
-into a beautiful blue and the shopkeeper took it to the
-merchant, who at once went with it to the palace
-saying that he had found the blue rose.</p>
-
-<p>He was ushered into the presence of the Emperor,
-who as soon as he saw the blue rose sent for his
-daughter and said to her: “This wealthy merchant
-has brought you what he claims to be the blue rose.
-Has he accomplished the quest?”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess took the flower in her hands and after
-examining it for a moment said: “This is a white
-rose; its stalk has been dipped in a poisonous dye and
-it has turned blue. Were a butterfly to settle upon it
-it would die of the potent fume. Take it back. I
-have no need of a dyed rose.” And she returned it
-to the merchant with many elegantly expressed thanks.</p>
-
-<p>The other ninety-eight suitors all sought in various
-ways for the blue rose. Some of them travelled all
-over the world seeking it; some of them sought the
-aid of wizards and astrologers, and one did not
-hesitate to invoke the help of the dwarfs that live
-underground; but all of them, whether they travelled
-in far countries or took counsel with wizards and
-demons or sat pondering in lonely places, failed to
-find the blue rose.</p>
-
-<p>At last they all abandoned the quest except the
-Lord Chief Justice, who was the most skilful lawyer
-and statesman in the country. After thinking over
-the matter for several months he sent for the most
-famous artist in the country and said to him:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">191</a></span> “Make
-me a china cup. Let it be milk-white in colour and
-perfect in shape, and paint on it a rose, a blue rose.”</p>
-
-<p>The artist made obeisance and withdrew, and worked
-for two months at the Lord Chief Justice's cup. In
-two months' time it was finished, and the world has
-never seen such a beautiful cup, so perfect in symmetry,
-so delicate in texture, and the rose on it, the
-blue rose, was a living flower, picked in fairyland and
-floating on the rare milky surface of the porcelain.
-When the Lord Chief Justice saw it he gasped with
-surprise and pleasure, for he was a great lover of
-porcelain, and never in his life had he seen such a
-piece. He said to himself, “Without doubt the blue
-rose is here on this cup and nowhere else.”</p>
-
-<p>So, after handsomely rewarding the artist, he went
-to the Emperor's palace and said that he had brought
-the blue rose. He was ushered into the Emperor's
-presence, who as he saw the cup sent for his daughter
-and said to her: “This eminent lawyer has brought
-you what he claims to be the blue rose. Has he
-accomplished the quest?”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess took the bowl in her hands, and after
-examining it for a moment said: “This bowl is the
-most beautiful piece of china I have ever seen. If you
-are kind enough to let me keep it I will put it aside
-until I receive the blue rose. For so beautiful is it
-that no other flower is worthy to be put in it except
-the blue rose.”</p>
-
-<p>The Lord Chief Justice thanked the Princess for
-accepting the bowl with many elegantly turned
-phrases, and he went away in discomfiture.</p>
-
-<p>After this there was no one in the whole country
-who ventured on the quest of the blue rose. It
-happened that not long after the Lord Chief Justice's
-attempt a strolling minstrel visited the kingdom of
-the Emperor. One evening he was playing his one-stringed
-instrument outside a dark wall. It was a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">192</a></span>
-summer's evening, and the sun had sunk in a glory
-of dusty gold, and in the violet twilight one or two
-stars were twinkling like spear-heads. There was an
-incessant noise made by the croaking of frogs and
-the chatter of grasshoppers. The minstrel was
-singing a short song over and over again to a
-monotonous tune. The sense of it was something
-like this:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">I watched beside the willow trees</div>
-<div class="i2">The river, as the evening fell,</div>
-<div class="i0">The twilight came and brought no breeze,</div>
-<div class="i2">Nor dew, nor water for the well.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">When from the tangled banks of grass</div>
-<div class="i2">A bird across the water flew,</div>
-<div class="i0">And in the river's hard grey glass</div>
-<div class="i2">I saw a flash of azure blue.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>As he sang he heard a rustle on the wall, and
-looking up he saw a slight figure white against the
-twilight, beckoning to him. He walked along the
-wall until he came to a gate, and there someone was
-waiting for him, and he was gently led into the
-shadow of a dark cedar tree. In the dim twilight he
-saw two bright eyes looking at him, and he understood
-their message. In the twilight a thousand
-meaningless nothings were whispered in the light of
-the stars, and the hours fled swiftly. When the East
-began to grow light, the Princess (for it was she) said
-it was time to go.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said the minstrel, “to-morrow I shall come
-to the palace and ask for your hand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Alas!” said the Princess,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">193</a></span> “I would that were
-possible, but my father has made a foolish condition
-that only he may wed me who finds the blue rose.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is simple,” said the minstrel. “I will find
-it.” And they said good-night to each other.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning the minstrel went to the palace,
-and on his way he picked a common white rose from
-a wayside garden. He was ushered into the Emperor's
-presence, who sent for his daughter and said to her:
-“This penniless minstrel has brought you what he
-claims to be the blue rose. Has he accomplished the
-quest?”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess took the rose in her hands and said:
-“Yes, this is without doubt the blue rose.”</p>
-
-<p>But the Lord Chief Justice and all who were present
-respectfully pointed out that the rose was a common
-white rose and not a blue one, and the objection was
-with many forms and phrases conveyed to the
-Princess.</p>
-
-<p>“I think the rose is blue,” said the Princess.
-“Perhaps you are all colour blind.”</p>
-
-<p>The Emperor, with whom the decision rested,
-decided that if the Princess thought the rose was blue
-it was blue, for it was well known that her perception
-was more acute than that of any one else in the
-kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>So the minstrel married the Princess, and they
-settled on the sea coast in a little seen house with a
-garden full of white roses, and they lived happily for
-ever afterwards. And the Emperor, knowing that his
-daughter had made a good match, died in peace.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<span class="smcap">Maurice Baring.</span>
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Two Frogs.</span></h3>
-
-<p>Once upon a time in the country of Japan there
-lived two frogs, one of whom made his home in a
-ditch near the town of Osaka, on the sea coast, while<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">194</a></span>
-the other dwelt in a clear little stream which ran
-through the city of Kioto. At such a great distance
-apart; they had never even heard of each other; but,
-funnily enough, the idea came into both their heads
-at once that they should like to see a little of the
-world, and the frog who lived at Kioto wanted to
-visit Osaka, and the frog who lived at Osaka wished
-to go to Kioto, where the great Mikado had his palace.</p>
-
-<p>So one fine morning, in the spring, they both set
-out along the road that led from Kioto to Osaka, one
-from one end and the other from the other.</p>
-
-<p>The journey was more tiring than they expected,
-for they did not know much about travelling, and
-half-way between the two towns there rose a mountain
-which had to be climbed. It took them a long time
-and a great many hops to reach the top, but there they
-were at last, and what was the surprise of each to see
-another frog before him! They looked at each other
-for a moment without speaking, and then fell into
-conversation, and explained the cause of their meeting
-so far from their homes. It was delightful to find
-that they both felt the same wish&mdash;to learn a little
-more of their native country&mdash;and as there was no sort
-of hurry they stretched themselves out in a cool, damp
-place, and agreed that they would have a good rest
-before they parted to go their ways.</p>
-
-<p>“What a pity we are not bigger,” said the Osaka
-frog, “and then we could see both towns from here
-and tell if it is worth our while going on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that is easily managed,” returned the Kioto
-frog. “We have only got to stand up on our hind
-legs, and hold on to each other, and then we can each
-look at the town he is travelling to.”</p>
-
-<p>This idea pleased the Osaka frog so much that he
-at once jumped up and put his front paws on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">195</a></span>
-shoulder of his friend, who had risen also. There
-they both stood, stretching themselves as high as
-they could, and holding each other tightly, so that
-they might not fall down. The Kioto frog turned
-his nose towards Osaka, and the Osaka frog turned
-his nose towards Kioto; but the foolish things forgot
-that when they stood up their great eyes lay in the
-backs of their heads, and that though their noses
-might point to the places to which they wanted to go,
-their eyes beheld the places from which they had
-come.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear me!” cried the Osaka frog, “Kioto is
-exactly like Osaka. It is certainly not worth such a
-long journey. I shall go home.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I had had any idea that Osaka was only a copy
-of Kioto I should never have travelled all this way,”
-exclaimed the frog from Kioto, and as he spoke, he
-took his hands from his friend's shoulders and they
-both fell down on the grass.</p>
-
-<p>Then they took a polite farewell of each other, and
-set off for home again, and to the end of their lives
-they believed that Osaka and Kioto, which are as
-different to look at as two towns can be, were as like
-as two peas.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The Wise Old Shepherd.</span></h3>
-
-<p>Once upon a time, a Snake went out of his hole to
-take an airing. He crawled about, greatly enjoying
-the scenery and the fresh whiff of the breeze, until,
-seeing an open door, he went in. Now this door was
-the door of the palace of the King, and inside was
-the King himself, with all his courtiers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">196</a></span>
-Imagine their horror at seeing a huge Snake crawling
-in at the door. They all ran away except the
-King, who felt that his rank forbade him to be a
-coward, and the King's son. The King called out for
-somebody to come and kill the Snake; but this
-horrified them still more, because in that country the
-people believed it to be wicked to kill any living
-thing, even snakes and scorpions and wasps. So the
-courtiers did nothing, but the young Prince obeyed
-his father, and killed the Snake with his stick.</p>
-
-<p>After a while the Snake's wife became anxious and
-set out in search of her husband. She too saw the
-open door of the palace, and in she went. O horror!
-there on the floor lay the body of her husband, all
-covered with blood and quite dead. No one saw the
-Snake's Wife crawl in; she inquired of a white ant
-what had happened, and when she found that the
-young Prince had killed her husband, she made a
-vow that, as he had made her a widow, so she would
-make his wife a widow.</p>
-
-<p>That night, when all the world was asleep, the
-Snake crept into the Prince's bedroom, and coiled
-round his neck. The Prince slept on, and when he
-awoke in the morning, he was surprised to find his
-neck encircled with the coils of a snake. He was
-afraid to stir, so there he remained, until the Prince's
-mother became anxious and went to see what was the
-matter. When she entered his room, and saw him in
-this plight, she gave a loud shriek, and ran off to tell
-the King.</p>
-
-<p>“Call the archers,” said the King.</p>
-
-<p>The archers came, and the King told them to go to
-the Prince's room, and shoot the Snake that was coiled
-about his neck. They were so clever, that they could
-easily do this without hurting the Prince at all.</p>
-
-<p>In came the archers in a row, fitted the arrows to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">197</a></span>
-the bows, the bows were raised and ready to shoot,
-when, on a sudden, from the Snake there issued a
-voice which spoke as follows:</p>
-
-<p>“O archers, wait, wait and hear me before you
-shoot. It is not fair to carry out the sentence before
-you have heard the case. Is not this a good law: an
-eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth? Is it not so,
-O King?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” replied the King, “that is our law.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then,” said the Snake, “I plead the law. Your
-son has made me a widow, so it is fair and right that
-I should make his wife a widow.”</p>
-
-<p>“That sounds right enough,” said the King, “but
-right and law are not always the same thing. We
-had better ask somebody who knows.”</p>
-
-<p>They asked all the judges, but none of them could
-tell the law of the matter. They shook their heads,
-and said they would look up all their law-books, and
-see whether anything of the sort had ever happened
-before, and if so, how it had been decided. That is
-the way judges used to decide cases in that country,
-though I daresay it sounds to you a very funny way.
-It looked as if they had not much sense in their own
-heads, and perhaps that was true. The upshot of it
-all was that not a judge would give an opinion; so
-the King sent messengers all over the countryside, to
-see if they could find somebody who knew something.</p>
-
-<p>One of these messengers found a party of five
-shepherds, who were sitting upon a hill and trying to
-decide a quarrel of their own. They gave their
-opinions so freely, and in language so very strong,
-that the King's messenger said to himself, “Here are
-the men for us. Here are five men, each with an
-opinion of his own, and all different.” Post-haste he
-scurried back to the King, and told him that he had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">198</a></span>
-found at last some one ready to judge the knotty point.</p>
-
-<p>So the King and the Queen, and the Prince and
-Princess, and all the courtiers, got on horseback, and
-away they galloped to the hill whereupon the five
-shepherds were sitting, and the Snake too went with
-them, coiled round the neck of the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>When they got to the shepherds' hill, the shepherds
-were dreadfully frightened. At first they thought
-that the strangers were a gang of robbers, and when
-they saw it was the King their next thought was that
-one of their misdeeds had been found out; and each
-of them began thinking what was the last thing he
-had done, and wondering, was it that?</p>
-
-<p>But the King and the courtiers got off their horses,
-and said good day in the most civil way. So the
-shepherds felt their minds set at ease again. Then
-the King said:</p>
-
-<p>“Worthy shepherds, we have a question to put to
-you, which not all the judges in all the courts of my
-city have been able to solve. Here is my son, and
-here, as you see, is a snake coiled round his neck.
-Now, the husband of this Snake came creeping into
-my palace hall, and my son the Prince killed him;
-so this Snake, who is the wife of the other, says that,
-as my son has made her a widow, so she has a right
-to widow my son's wife. What do you think about
-it?”</p>
-
-<p>The first shepherd said: “I think she is quite
-right, my Lord the King. If anyone made my wife
-a widow, I would pretty soon do the same to him.”</p>
-
-<p>This was brave language, and the other shepherds
-shook their heads and looked fierce. But the King
-was puzzled, and could not quite understand it. You
-see, in the first place, if the man's wife were a widow,
-the man would be dead; and then it is hard to see that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">199</a></span>
-he could do anything. So, to make sure, the King
-asked the second shepherd whether that was his
-opinion too.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said the second shepherd; “now the Prince
-has killed the Snake, the Snake has a right to kill the
-Prince if he can.” But that was not of much use
-either, as the Snake was as dead as a door-nail. So
-the King passed on to the third.</p>
-
-<p>“I agree with my mates,” said the third shepherd.
-“Because, you see, a Prince is a Prince, but then a
-Snake is a Snake.” That was quite true, they all
-admitted, but it did not seem to help the matter much.
-Then the King asked the fourth shepherd to say what
-he thought.</p>
-
-<p>The fourth shepherd said: “An eye for an eye, and
-a tooth for a tooth; so I think a widow should be a
-widow, if so be she don't marry again.”</p>
-
-<p>By this time the poor King was so puzzled that he
-hardly knew whether he stood on his head or his heels.
-But there was still the fifth shepherd left; the oldest
-and wisest of them all; and the fifth shepherd said:</p>
-
-<p>“King, I should like to ask two questions.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ask twenty, if you like,” said the King. He did
-not promise to answer them, so he could afford to be
-generous.</p>
-
-<p>“First, I ask the Princess how many sons she has?”</p>
-
-<p>“Four,” said the Princess.</p>
-
-<p>“And how many sons has Mistress Snake here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Seven,” said the Snake.</p>
-
-<p>“Then,” said the old shepherd, “it will be quite
-fair for Mistress Snake to kill his Highness the Prince
-when her Highness the Princess has had three sons
-more.”</p>
-
-<p>“I never thought of that,” said the Snake.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">200</a></span> “Good-bye,
-King, and all you good people. Send a message
-when the Princess has had three more sons, and you
-may count upon me&mdash;I will not fail you.”</p>
-
-<p>So saying, she uncoiled from the Prince's neck and
-slid away among the grass.</p>
-
-<p>The King and the Prince and everybody shook
-hands with the wise old shepherd, and went home
-again. And the Princess never had any more sons
-at all. She and the Prince lived happily for many
-years; and if they are not dead they are living still.</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<i>From “The Talking Thrush.”</i>
-</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">The True Spirit of a Festival Day.</span></h3>
-
-<p>And it came to pass that the Buddha was born a
-Hare and lived in a wood; on one side was the foot
-of a mountain, on another a river, on the third side
-a border village.</p>
-
-<p>And with him lived three friends: a Monkey, a
-Jackal and an Otter; each of these creatures got food
-on his own hunting ground. In the evening they
-met together, and the Hare taught his companions
-many wise things: that the moral laws should be
-observed, that alms should be given to the poor, and
-that holy days should be kept.</p>
-
-<p>One day the Buddha said: “To-morrow is a fast
-day. Feed any beggars that come to you by giving
-food from your own table.” They all consented.</p>
-
-<p>The next day the Otter went down to the bank of
-the Ganges to seek his prey. Now a fisherman had
-landed seven red fish and had buried them in the sand
-on the river's bank while he went down the stream
-catching more fish. The Otter scented the buried
-fish, dug up the sand till he came upon them, and he
-called aloud: “Does any one own these fish?” And<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">201</a></span>
-not seeing the owner, he laid the fish in the jungle
-where he dwelt, intending to eat them at a fitting time.
-Then he lay down, thinking how virtuous he was.</p>
-
-<p>The Jackal also went off in search of food, and
-found in the hut of a field watcher a lizard, two spits,
-and a pot of milk-curd.</p>
-
-<p>And, after thrice crying aloud, “To whom do these
-belong?” and not finding an owner, he put on his
-neck the rope for lifting the pot, and grasping the
-spits and lizard with his teeth, he laid them in his own
-lair, thinking, “In due season I will devour them,”
-and then he lay down, thinking how virtuous he had
-been.</p>
-
-<p>The Monkey entered the clump of trees, and gathering
-a bunch of mangoes, laid them up in his part of
-the jungle, meaning to eat them in due season. He
-then lay down and thought how virtuous he had been.</p>
-
-<p>But the Hare (who was the Buddha-to-be) in due
-time came out, thinking to lie (in contemplation) on
-the Kuca grass. “It is impossible for me to offer
-grass to any beggars who may chance to come by,
-and I have no oil or rice or fish. If any beggar come
-to me, I will give him (of) my own flesh to eat.”</p>
-
-<p>Now when Sakka, the King of the Gods, heard this
-thing, he determined to put the Royal Hare to the
-test. So he came in disguise of a Brahmin to the
-Otter and said: “Wise Sir, if I could get something
-to eat, I would perform all my priestly duties.”</p>
-
-<p>The Otter said: “I will give you food. Seven red
-fish have I safely brought to land from the sacred river
-of the Ganges. Eat thy fill, O Brahmin, and stay in
-this wood.”</p>
-
-<p>And the Brahmin said: “Let it be until to-morrow,
-and I will see to it then.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he went to the Jackal, who confessed that he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">202</a></span>
-had stolen the food, but he begged the Brahmin to
-accept it and remain in the wood; but the Brahmin
-said: “Let it be until the morrow, and then I will
-see to it.”</p>
-
-<p>And he came to the Monkey, who offered him the
-mangoes, and the Brahmin answered in the same way.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Brahmin went to the wise Hare, and the
-Hare said: “Behold, I will give you of my flesh to
-eat. But you must not take life on this holy day.
-When you have piled up the logs I will sacrifice
-myself by falling into the midst of the flames, and
-when my body is roasted you shall eat my flesh and
-perform all your priestly duties.”</p>
-
-<p>Now when Sakka heard these words he caused a
-heap of burning coals to appear, and the Wisdom
-Being, rising from the grass, came to the place, but
-before casting himself into the flames he shook
-himself, lest perchance there should be any insects in
-his coat who might suffer death. Then, offering his
-body as a free gift, he sprang up, and like a royal
-swan, lighting on a bed of lotus in an ecstasy of joy,
-he fell on the heap of live coals. But the flame failed
-even to heat the pores or the hair on the body of the
-Wisdom Being, and it was as if he had entered a
-region of frost. Then he addressed the Brahmin in
-these words: “Brahmin, the fire that you have
-kindled is icy cold; it fails to heat the pores or the
-hair on my body. What is the meaning of this?”</p>
-
-<p>“O most wise Hare! I am Sakka, and have come
-to put your virtue to the test.”</p>
-
-<p>And the Buddha in a sweet voice said: “No god
-or man could find in me an unwillingness to die.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Sakka said: “O wise Hare, be thy virtue
-known to all the ages to come.”</p>
-
-<p>And seizing the mountain he squeezed out the juice<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">203</a></span>
-and daubed on the moon the signs of the young hare.</p>
-
-<p>Then he placed him back on the grass that he
-might continue his Sabbath meditation, and returned
-to Heaven.</p>
-
-<p>And the four creatures lived together and kept the
-moral law.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Filial Piety.</span></h3>
-
-<p>Now it came to pass that the Buddha was re-born
-in the shape of a Parrot, and he greatly excelled all
-other parrots in his strength and beauty. And when
-he was full grown his father, who had long been the
-leader of the flock in their flights to other climes, said
-to him: “My son, behold my strength is spent! Do
-thou lead the flock, for I am no longer able.” And
-the Buddha said: “Behold, thou shalt rest. I will
-lead the birds.” And the parrots rejoiced in the
-strength of their new leader, and willingly did they
-follow him. Now from that day on, the Buddha
-undertook to feed his parents, and would not consent
-that they should do any more work. Each day he led
-his flock to the Himalaya Hills, and when he had
-eaten his fill of the clumps of rice that grew there, he
-filled his beak with food for the dear parents who
-were waiting his return.</p>
-
-<p>Now there was a man appointed to watch the rice-fields,
-and he did his best to drive the parrots away,
-but there seemed to be some secret power in the leader
-of this flock which the Keeper could not overcome.</p>
-
-<p>He noticed that the Parrots ate their fill and then
-flew away, but that the Parrot-King not only satisfied
-his hunger, but carried away rice in his beak.</p>
-
-<p>Now he feared there would be no rice left, and he
-went to his master the Brahmin to tell him what had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">204</a></span>
-happened; and even as the master listened there came
-to him the thought that the Parrot-King was something
-higher than he seemed, and he loved him even
-before he saw him. But he said nothing of this, and
-only warned the Keeper that he should set a snare
-and catch the dangerous bird. So the man did as he
-was bidden: he made a small cage and set the snare,
-and sat down in his hut waiting for the birds to come.
-And soon he saw the Parrot-King amidst his flock,
-who, because he had no greed, sought no richer spot,
-but flew down to the same place in which he had fed
-the day before.</p>
-
-<p>Now, no sooner had he touched the ground that he
-felt his feet caught in the noose. Then fear crept into
-his bird-heart, but a stronger feeling was there to
-crush it down, for he thought: “If I cry out the Cry
-of the Captured, my Kinsfolk will be terrified, and
-they will fly away foodless. But if I lie still, then
-their hunger will be satisfied, and they may safely
-come to my aid.” Thus was the Parrot both brave
-and prudent.</p>
-
-<p>But alas! he did not know that his Kinsfolk had
-nought of his brave spirit. When <i>they</i> had eaten
-their fill, though they heard the thrice-uttered cry of
-the captured, they flew away, nor heeded the sad
-plight of their leader.</p>
-
-<p>Then was the heart of the Parrot-King sore within
-him, and he said: “All these my kith and kin, and
-not one to look back on me. Alas! what sin have
-I done?”</p>
-
-<p>The Watchman now heard the cry of the Parrot-King,
-and the sound of the other Parrots flying
-through the air. “What is that?” he cried, and
-leaving his hut he came to the place where he had
-laid the snare. There he found the captive Parrot;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">205</a></span>
-he tied his feet together and brought him to the
-Brahmin, his master. Now, when the Brahmin saw
-the Parrot-King, he felt his strong power, and his
-heart was full of love to him, but he hid his feelings,
-and said in a voice of anger: “Is thy greed greater
-than that of all other birds? They eat their fill, but
-thou takest away each day more food than thou canst
-eat. Doest thou this out of hatred for me, or dost
-thou store up the food in some granary for selfish
-greed?”</p>
-
-<p>And the Great Being made answer in a sweet
-human voice: “I hate thee not, O Brahmin. Nor
-do I store the rice in a granary for selfish greed. But
-this thing I do. Each day I pay a debt which is
-due&mdash;each day I grant a loan, and each day I store
-up a treasure.”</p>
-
-<p>Now the Brahmin could not understand the words
-of the Buddha (because true wisdom had not entered
-his heart), and he said: “I pray thee, O Wondrous
-Bird, to make these words clear unto me.”</p>
-
-<p>And then the Parrot-King made answer: “I carry
-food to my ancient parents who can no longer seek
-that food for themselves: thus I pay my daily debt.
-I carry food to my callow chicks whose wings are yet
-ungrown. When I am old they will care for me&mdash;this
-my loan to them. And for other birds, weak and
-helpless of wing, who need the aid of the strong, for
-them I lay up a store; to these I give in charity.”</p>
-
-<p>Then was the Brahmin much moved, and showed
-the love that was in his heart. “Eat thy fill, O
-Righteous Bird, and let thy Kinsfolk eat too, for thy
-sake.” And he wished to bestow a thousand acres
-of land upon him, but the Great Being would only
-take a tiny portion round which were set boundary
-stones.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">206</a></span>
-
-And the Parrot returned with a head of rice, and
-said: “Arise, dear Parents, that I may take you to a
-place of plenty.” And he told them the story of his
-deliverance.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="noin"><span class="smcap">My</span> thanks are due to:</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Josephine Dodge Darkam Bacon, for permission
-to use an extract from “The Madness of Philip,”
-and to her publishers, Charles Scrivener.</p>
-
-<p>To Messrs. Houghton Mifflin, for permission to use
-extract from “Thou Shalt Not Preach,” by Mr. John
-Burroughs.</p>
-
-<p>To Messrs. Macmillan &amp; Co., for permission to use
-“Milking Time” of Miss Rossetti.</p>
-
-<p>To Messrs. William Sharp, for permission to use
-passage from “The Divine Adventure,” by “Fiona
-MacLeod.”</p>
-
-<p>To Miss Ethel Clifford, for permission to use the
-poem of “The Child.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. James Whitcomb Riley and the Robbs
-Merrill Co., for permission to use “The Treasure of
-the Wise Man.”</p>
-
-<p>To Rev. R. L. Gales, for permission to use the
-article on “Nursery Rhymes” from the <i>Nation</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. Edmund Gosse, for permission to use
-extracts from “Father and Son.”</p>
-
-<p>To Messrs. Chatto and Windus, for permission to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">207</a></span>
-use “Essay on Child's Play” (from <i>Virginibus
-Puerisque</i>) and other papers.</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. George Allen &amp; Co., for permission to use
-“Ballad for a Boy,” by W. Cory, from “Ionica.”</p>
-
-<p>To Professor Bradley, for permission to quote from
-his essay on “Poetry and Life.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. P. A. Barnett, for permission to quote from
-“The Commonsense of Education.”</p>
-
-<p>To Professor Ker, for permission to quote from
-“Sturla the Historian.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. John Russell, for permission to print in
-full, “A Saga.”</p>
-
-<p>To Messrs. Longmans Green &amp; Co., for permission
-to use “The Two Frogs,” from the Violet Fairy
-Book, and “To Your Good Health,” from the
-Crimson Fairy Book.</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. Heinemann and Lady Glenconner, for permission
-to reprint “The Water Nixie,” by Pamela
-Tennant, from “The Children and the Pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. Maurice Baring and the Editor of <i>The
-Morning Post</i>, for permission to reprint “The Blue
-Rose” from <i>The Morning Post</i>.</p>
-
-<p>To Dr. Walter Rouse and Mr. J. M. Dent, for
-permission to reprint from “The Talking Thrush”
-the story of “The Wise Old Shepherd.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. James Stephens, for permission to reprint<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">208</a></span>
-“The Man and the Boy.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. Harold Barnes, for permission to use version
-of “The Proud Cock.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mrs. Arnold Glover, for permission to print
-two of her stories.</p>
-
-<p>To Miss Emilie Poulson, for permission to use her
-translation of Björnsen's poem.</p>
-
-<p>To George Routledge &amp; Son, for permission to use
-stories from “Eastern Stories and Fables.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mrs. W. K. Clifford, for permission to quote
-from “Very Short Stories.”</p>
-
-<p>To Mr. W. Jenkyn Thomas and Mr. Fisher Unwin,
-for permission to use “Arthur in the Cave” from the
-Welsh Fairy Book.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The following stories are not a representative list:
-this I have endeavoured to give with the story-list
-preceding. These stories are mostly taken from my
-own <i>répertoire</i>, and have so constantly been asked
-for by teachers that I am glad of an opportunity of
-presenting them in full.</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>Episode from “Sturla the Historian,” to illustrate
-the value of the art of story-telling.</li>
-
-<li>Saga, by John Russell.</li>
-
-<li>St. Christopher, in the version taken from the
-“<i>Legenda Aurea</i>.”</li>
-
-<li>“Arthur in the Cave,” from the “Welsh Fairy
-Book.”</li>
-
-<li>“Hafiz the Stone-cutter” (adapted from the Oriental).</li>
-
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">209</a></span>
-
-“To Your Good Health,” from The Crimson Fairy
-Book.</li>
-
-<li>“The Proud Cock,” from the Spanish.</li>
-
-<li>“Snegourka,” from the Russian.</li>
-
-<li>“The Water Nixie,” by Pamela Tennant.</li>
-
-<li>“The Blue Rose,” by Maurice Baring.</li>
-
-<li>“The Wise old Shepherd,” from “The Talking
-Thrush.”</li></ul>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>I had intended, in this section, to offer an appendix
-of titles of stories and books which would cover all
-the ground of possible narrative in schools; but I
-have found, since taking up the question, so many
-lists containing standard books and stories, that I
-have decided that this original plan would be a work
-of supererogation, since it would be almost impossible
-to prepare such a list without the certainty of over-lapping.
-What is really needed is a supplementary
-list to those already published&mdash;a specialized list
-which has been gathered together by private research
-and personal experience. I have for many years
-spent considerable time in the British Museum, and
-some of the principal Libraries in the United States,
-and I now offer the fruit of that labour in the miscellaneous
-collection contained in this chapter. Before
-giving my own selection, I should like to say that for
-general lists one can use with great profit the
-following:</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">210</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>LIST OF BOOKS</h2>
-<h3><span class="smcap">Sources of Norse Stories for Story-tellers.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Cycles of Stories from the Norse. Part I: Historical Tales.
-Part II: Norse Myths. Part III: Völsunga Saga.
-Part IV: Frithiof Saga.</li>
-
-<li>Snorro Sturluson. Stories of the Kings of Norway; done
-into English by William Morris. Page 83-117.</li>
-
-<li>Snorro Sturluson. A History of the Norse Kings; done
-into English by Samuel Laing. Pages 11-35.</li>
-
-<li>Snorro Sturluson. Younger Edda. Pages 72, 73, 114-127,
-128-130, 131-139, 160-164, 184-187,
-189-192.</li>
-
-<li>Morris. Story of Sigurd the Volsung.</li>
-
-<li>Völsunga Saga. By Eirikr and William Morris.</li>
-</ul>
-<p>Other sources from modern books can be found in
-Mabie, Wilmot Buxton, Keans Tappah, Cartwright
-Pole, Johonnut Anderson. Some of these are suitable
-for children themselves, and contain excellent reading
-matter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>&mdash;I most gratefully acknowledge these sources
-supplied by the courtesy of Pittsburg Carnegie
-Library.</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>List of stories in compilation by Anna C. Tyler (Supervisor
-of Story-telling in New York).</li>
-
-<li>Heroism. A reading list for boys and girls.</li></ul>
-
-<p>Both these lists are published by the New York
-Library, and I have had permission to quote both, by
-the courtesy of the Library.</p>
-
-<p>In that admirable work, “Story-Telling in School
-and Home,” by Evelyn Newcomb Partridge and
-George Everett Partridge, published by William
-Heinemann, besides a valuable analysis of the Art of
-Story-Telling, there is an excellent list of books and
-stories.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">211</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">List of Books containing Stories or Reading
-Matter for Children.</span></h3>
-
-<p>The following list is not of my own making. I
-have taken it on the recommendation of Marion E.
-Potter, Bertha Tannehill and Emma L. Teich, who
-have compiled the list from twenty-three other lists.
-I again have made a shorter list of the titles, and
-acknowledge most gratefully the kind permission of
-the H. W. Wilson Company (Minneapolis) to quote
-from their book. The original work, which contains
-3,000 titles, is well known in the United States under
-the title of “Children's Catalogue.” It is a book
-which ought to be in every School and Training College
-Library, and I hope my fragmentary selection may
-make it better known in my own country. I regret
-that I am unable to give publishers or reference marks
-for this American list.</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>About Old Story-tellers. Mitchell, D. G.</li>
-<li>Boys' Iliad. Perry.</li>
-<li>Jack among the Indians, and Other Stories. G. B. Grinnell.</li>
-<li>Adventure Stories. Hale, E.</li>
-<li>Young Alaskans. Hough, E.</li>
-<li>Aztec Treasure House. Janvier.</li>
-<li>Last Three Soldiers. Skelton, W.</li>
-<li>Under the Lilacs. Alcott, Louisa.</li>
-<li>Moral Pirates. Livingstone, A. W.</li>
-<li>Classics Old and New. Alderman, E. A.</li>
-<li>Boy of a Thousand Years Ago. Comstock, H. R.</li>
-<li>All About Japan. Brane, B. M.</li>
-<li>All About the Russians. Lockes, E. C.</li>
-<li>Children of the Palm Lands. Allen, A. E.</li>
-<li>Italian Child Life. Ambrose, Marietta.</li>
-<li>American Hero Stories. Tappan, E. M.</li>
-<li>Chinese Boy and Girl, Headland, Y. T.</li>
-<li>Viking Tales of the North. Anderson, R. B.</li>
-<li>Animal Stories Re-told from St. Nicholas. Carter, M. H.</li>
-<li>Short Stories of Shy Neighbours. Kelly, M. H.</li>
-<li>Hundred Anecdotes of Animals. Billingham, P. T.</li>
-<li>Books of Saints and Friendly Beasts. Brown, A. F.</li>
-
-<li>Stories of Animal Life. Holden, C. F.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">212</a></span>
-Story of a Donkey (Abridged). Segur, S.</li>
-<li>Children of the Cold. Schnatka, F.</li>
-<li>Stories from Plato and other Classic Writers. Burt, M. E.</li>
-<li>Tenting on the Plains. Custer, E.</li>
-<li>To the Front. King, C.</li>
-<li>Stories of Persian Heroes. Firdansi.</li>
-<li>Nelson and his Captains. Fitchett, William H.</li>
-<li>Danish Fairy and Folk Tales. Bay, J. C.</li>
-<li>Evening Tales. Ortoli, F.</li>
-<li>Legends of King Arthur and his Court. Greene, F. N.</li>
-<li>Story of King Arthur. Pyle, H.</li>
-<li>New World Fairy Book. Kenedy, H. A.</li>
-<li>Myths of the Red Children. Wilson, G. L.</li>
-<li>Old Indian Legends. Zitkala, Sa.</li>
-<li>Folk Tales from the Russian. Blumenthal, V. K.</li>
-<li>Wagner Opera Stories. Barker, Grace.</li>
-<li>Lolanu, the Little Cliff-dweller. Bayliss (Mrs. Clara Kern).</li>
-<li>Big People and Little People of Other Lands. Shaw, E. R.</li>
-<li>Children's Stories of the Great Scientists. Wright, H. C.</li>
-<li>Fairy Tales. Lansing, M. F.</li>
-<li>Light Princess, and Other Stories. Macdonald, George.</li>
-<li>Classic Stories for the Little Ones. Mace, J., and McClurey, L. B.</li>
-<li>Old World Wonder Stories. O'Shea, M. V.</li>
-<li>Japanese Fairy Tales Re-told. Williston, T. P.</li>
-<li>Famous Indian Chiefs I Have Known. Hovard, O. O.</li>
-<li>Fanciful Tales. Stockton, F. R.</li>
-<li>Boys' Book of Famous Rulers, from Agamemnon to Napoleon. Farmer, Mrs.
-Lydia Hoyt.</li>
-<li>Favourite Greek Myths, Hyde, T. S.</li>
-<li>Children's Life in the Western Mountains. Foote, Mary (Hallock).</li>
-<li>Gods and Heroes. Francillon, Robert Edward.</li>
-<li>Sa-Zada Tales. Fraser, William Alexander.</li>
-<li>Story of Gretta the Strong. French, Allen.</li>
-<li>Lance of Kanana (Story of Arabia). French, Henry Willard.</li>
-<li>Home Life in all Lands. Morris, C.</li>
-<li>Held Fast for England. Henty.</li>
-<li>Plutarch's Lives. Ginn, Edwin.</li>
-<li>King's Story Book. Gomme, Lawrence.</li>
-<li>Little Journeys to Balkans, European Turkey and Greece. George, M. M.</li>
-<li>Herodotus. White, J. S.</li>
-<li>Classic Myths in English Literature. Gayley, C. M.</li>
-<li>Favourite Greek Myths. Hyde, L. S.</li>
-<li>Stories from the East. Church, A. T.</li>
-<li>Herodotus. Church, A. T.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">213</a></span>
-Men of Iron. Pyle, H.</li>
-<li>Boys' Heroes. Hale, Edward Everett.</li>
-<li>Strange Stories from History. Eggleston.</li>
-<li>Stories of Other Lands. Johannot, J.</li>
-<li>Book of Nature Myths. Holbrook, Florence.</li>
-<li>Stories of Great Artists. Home, Olive Brown, and Lois, K.</li>
-<li>Russian Grandmother's Wonder Tales. Houghton, Mrs. Louise (Seymour).</li>
-<li>Stories of Famous Children. Hunter, Mary van Brunt.</li>
-<li>Stories of Indian Chieftains. Husted, Mary Hall.</li>
-<li>Stories of Indian Children. Husted, Mary Hall.</li>
-<li>Golden Porch: A Book of Greek Fairy Tales. Hutchinson, W. M. L.</li>
-<li>Indian Boyhood. Eastman, C. H.</li>
-<li>Indian History for Young Folk. Drake, F. S.</li>
-<li>Indian Stories Re-told from St Nicholas. Drake, F. S.</li>
-<li>One Thousand Poems for Children. Ingpen, Roger.</li>
-<li>My Lady Pokahontas. Cooke, J. E.</li>
-<li>In the Sargasso Sea. Janvier, T. A.</li>
-<li>Childhood of Ji-Shib. Jenks, Albert Ernest.</li>
-<li>Stories from Chaucer told to the Children. Kelman, Janet Harvey.</li>
-<li>Stories from the Crusades. Kelman, Janet Harvey.</li>
-<li>New World Fairy Book. Kenedy, Howard Angus.</li>
-<li>Stories of Ancient People. Arnold E. T.</li>
-<li>Stories of Art and Artists. Clement, C.</li>
-<li>Mabinogion (Legends of Wales). Knightley.</li>
-<li>Heroes of Chivalry. Maitland, L.</li>
-<li>Cadet Days: Story of West Point. King, Charles.</li>
-<li>Household Stories for Little Readers. Klingensmith, Annie.</li>
-<li>Boy Travellers in the Russian Empire. Knox, Thomas Wallace.</li>
-<li>Boy Travellers on the Congo. Knox, Thomas Wallace.</li>
-<li>Fairy Book. Laboulaye, Eduard Réné Lefebre.</li>
-<li>Fairy Tales of All Nations. Translated by M. I. Booth. Laboulaye,
-Eduard Réné Lefebre.</li>
-<li>Middle Five (Life of Five Indian Boys at School). La Flesche, Francis.</li>
-<li>Wonderful Adventures of Nils. Lagerlöf, Selma.</li>
-<li>Land of Pluck. Dodge, M. M.</li>
-<li>Land of the Long Night. Du Chaillu, P. B.</li>
-<li>Schoolboy Days in France. Laurie, André.</li>
-<li>Schoolboy Days in Japan. Laurie, André.</li>
-<li>Schoolboy Days in Russia. Laurie, André.</li>
-<li>When I was a Boy in China. Lee, Yan Phon.</li>
-<li>Fifty Famous Stories Re-told. Baldwin.</li>
-<li>Stories from Famous Ballads. Lippincott.</li>
-
-<li>Wreck of the Golden Fleece. Leighton, Robert.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">214</a></span>
-Children's Letters, Written to Children by Famous Men and Women.
-Colson, E., and Chittenden, A. G.</li>
-<li>A Story of Abraham Lincoln. Hamilton, M.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Little Cousin Series.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Our Little Swedish Cousin. Coburn, C. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little Chinese Cousin. Headland, I. T.</li>
-<li>Our Little Arabian Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little Dutch Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little Egyptian Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little English Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little French Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little Hindu Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little Scotch Cousin. Mansfield, B. M.</li>
-<li>Our Little Alaskan Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.</li>
-<li>Our Little Australian Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.</li>
-<li>Our Little Brazilian Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.</li>
-<li>Our Little Grecian Cousin. Nixon, Roulet M. F.</li>
-<li>Our Little Spanish Cousin. Nixon, Roulet, M. F.</li>
-<li>Our Little Korean Cousin. Pike, H. L.</li>
-<li>Our Little Panama Cousin. Pike, H. L.</li>
-<li>Our Little African Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Armenian Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Brown Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Cuban Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Eskimo Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Hawaiian Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Indian Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Irish Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Italian Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Japanese Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Jewish Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Norwegian Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Philippine Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Porto Rican Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Siamese Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Turkish Cousin. Wade, M. H.</li>
-<li>Our Little Canadian Cousin. Macdonald, E. Roberts.</li>
-
-</ul>
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Little Folk in Brittany. Haines, A. C.</li>
-<li>Little Folks of Many Lands. Chance, L. M.</li>
-<li>Little Lives of Great Men. Hathaway, E. V.</li>
-<li>Little Men. Alcott, L. M.</li>
-<li>Little Royalties. McDougall, I.</li>
-<li>Little Stories of France. Dutton, M. B.</li>
-<li>Little Stories of Germany. Dutton, M. B.</li>
-<li>Lives of Girls who Became Famous. Bolton, S. K.</li>
-<li>Beasts of the Field. Long, William Joseph.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">215</a></span>
-Wood-Folk at School. Long, William Joseph.</li>
-<li>Long Ago in Greece. Carpenter, E. J.</li>
-<li>Peasant and Prince. Martineau, H.</li>
-<li>Boy Courier of Napoleon. Sprague, W. C.</li>
-<li>Wonder Stories from the Mabinogion. Brooks, E.</li>
-<li>Old Farm Fairies.<a name="FNanchor_55_55" id="FNanchor_55_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a> McConk, Henry Christopher.
-</li>
-<li>Tenants of an Old Farm.<a name="FNanchor_55a_55a" id="FNanchor_55a_55a"></a><a href="#Footnote_55_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a> McConk, Henry Christopher.
-</li>
-<li>At the Back of the North Wind. MacDonald, George.</li>
-<li>Princess and the Goblin. MacDonald, George.</li>
-<li>Cave Boy of the Age of Stone. McIntyre, Margaret A.</li>
-<li>Magna Carta Stories. Gilman, A.</li>
-<li>Early Cave Men. Dopp, K. E.</li>
-<li>Later Cave Men. Dopp, K. E.</li>
-<li>Stories of Roland. Marshall, H. E.</li>
-<li>Crofton Boys. Martineau, Harriet.</li>
-<li>Peats on the Fiord. Martineau, Harriet.</li>
-<li>Peasant and Prince. Martineau, Harriet.</li>
-<li>Child Stories from the Masters. Menafee, Maud.</li>
-<li>Miss Muffet's Christmas Party. Crotchers, S. M.</li>
-<li>Historical Tales: Greek. Morris, Charles.</li>
-<li>Historical Tales: Russian. Morris, Charles.</li>
-<li>Bed-Time Stories. Moulton, Louise Chandler.</li>
-<li>New Bed-Time Stories. Moulton, Louise Chandler.</li>
-<li>Modern Reader's Bible (Children Series). Moulton, F. R. G.</li>
-<li>My Air-Ships. Santos-Dumont.</li>
-<li>Old Norse Stories. Bradish, S. P.</li>
-<li>Through Russian Snows. Henty, G.</li>
-<li>Nine Worlds: Stories from Norse Mythology. Lichfield, M. E.</li>
-<li>Fairy Tales, Narratives and Poems. Norton, George Eliot.</li>
-<li>Modern Vikings. Boyeson, H. H.</li>
-<li>Boyhood in Norway. Boyeson, H. H.</li>
-<li>Old Greek Stories Told Anew. Peabody, J. B.</li>
-<li>Arabian Nights Re-told. Peary, Mrs. Josephine (Diebitsh).</li>
-<li>Heroic Ballads. Montgomery, D. H.</li>
-<li>English Ballads. Perkins, Mrs. Lucy Fitch.</li>
-<li>Boys' Iliad. Perry, Walter Copland.</li>
-<li>Boys' Odyssey. Perry, Walter Copland.</li>
-<li>Tale of Peter Rabbit. Potter, B.</li>
-<li>Tale of Squirrel Nutkin. Potter, B.</li>
-<li>Stories of Old France. Pitman, Leila Webster.</li>
-<li>Boys' and Girls' Plutarch. White, J. S.</li>
-<li>Greek Lives from Plutarch. Byles, C. E.</li>
-<li>My Lady Pokahontas. Cooke, J. E.</li>
-<li>Poems for Children. Rossetti, C. G.</li>
-<li>Children's Book. Scudder, H. E.</li>
-<li>Scottish Chiefs. Porter, Jane.</li>
-<li>
-Legends of the Red Children. Pratt, Mara Louise.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">216</a></span>
-Little Nature Studies for Little Folk. Burroughs, John.</li>
-<li>Giant Sun and His Family. Proctor, Mary.</li>
-<li>Stories of Starland. Proctor, Mary.</li>
-<li>Revolutionary Stories Re-told from St. Nicholas. Pyle, Howard.</li>
-<li>Old Tales from Rome. Zimmern, A.</li>
-<li>Stories of the Saints. Chenoweth, C. V. D.</li>
-<li>Sandman: His Farm Stories. Hopkins, W. T.</li>
-<li>Sandman: His Sea Stories. Hopkins, W. T.</li>
-<li>Sandman: His Ship Stories. Hopkins, W. T.</li>
-<li>Schooldays in France. Laurie, A.</li>
-<li>Schooldays in Italy. Laurie, A.</li>
-<li>Schooldays in Japan. Laurie, A.</li>
-<li>Schooldays in Russia. Laurie, A.</li>
-<li>William of Orange (Life Stories for Young People). Schupp, Otto Kar.</li>
-<li>Sea Yarns for Boys. Henderson, W. T.</li>
-<li>Story of Lord Roberts. Sellar, Edmund Francis.</li>
-<li>Story of Nelson. Sellar, Edmund Francis.</li>
-<li>Tent Life in Siberia. Kenman, G.</li>
-<li>Stories from English History. Skae, Hilda I.</li>
-<li>Boys who Became Famous Men (Giotto, Bach, Byron, Gainsborough, Handel,
-Coleridge, Canova, Chopin). Skinner, Harriet Pearl.</li>
-
-<li>Eskimo Stories. Smith, Mary Emily Estella.</li>
-<li>Some Curious Flyers, Creepers and Swimmers. Johannot, J.</li>
-<li>Bush Boys. Reid, M.</li>
-<li>New Mexico David, and Other Stories. Lummis, C. F.</li>
-<li>Child's History of Spain. Bonner, J.</li>
-<li>Historical Tales: Spanish. Morris, C.</li>
-<li>Story of the Cid. Wilson, C. D.</li>
-<li>Life of Lincoln for Boys. Sparhawk, Frances Campbell.</li>
-<li>Pieces for Every Occasion. Le Rou, C. B.</li>
-<li>Stories from Dante. Chester, N.</li>
-<li>Stories from Old English Poetry. Richardson, A. S.</li>
-<li>Stories from Plato and Other Classic Writers. Burt, M. E.</li>
-<li>Stories in Stone from the Roman Forum. Lovell, I.</li>
-<li>Stories of Brave Days. Carter, M. H.</li>
-<li>Stories of Early England. Buxton, E. M. Wilmot.</li>
-<li>Stories of Heroic Deeds. Johannot, J.</li>
-<li>Stories of Indian Chieftains. Husted, M. H.</li>
-<li>Stories of Insect Life. Weed, C. M., and Mustfeldt, M. E.</li>
-<li>Stories of the Gorilla Country. Du Chaillu, P. B.</li>
-<li>Stories of the Sea told by Sailors. Hale, E. E.</li>
-<li>Stories of War. Hale, E. E.</li>
-<li>Story of Lewis Caroll. Bowman, I.</li>
-<li>Story of Sir Launcelot and his Companions. Pyle, H.</li>
-<li>Queer Little People. Stowe, Harriet Beecher.</li>
-<li>In Clive's Command. Strang, Herbert.</li>
-
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">217</a></span>
-George Washington Jones (Christmas of a Little Coloured Boy). Stuart,
-Ruth McEnery. </li>
-<li>Story of Babette. Stuart, Ruth McEnery.</li>
-<li>Old Ballads in Prose. Tappan, Eva.</li>
-<li>Lion and Tiger Stories. Carter, M. H.</li>
-<li>True Tales of Birds and Beasts. Jordan, D. S.</li>
-<li>Typical Tales of Fancy, Romance and History from Shakespeare's Plays.
-Raymond, E.</li>
-<li>Young People's Story of Art. Whitcomb, Ida Prentice.</li>
-<li>Young People's Story of Music. Whitcomb, Ida Prentice.</li>
-<li>Tales of Laughter. Wiggin, K. Douglas.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>The following miscellaneous list of books and
-stories is my own. I do not mean that none of them
-have appeared in other lists, but the greater number
-have been sifted from larger lists which I have made
-during the last ten years, more or less.</p>
-
-<p>For English readers I have given the press-marks
-in the British Museum, which will be an economy of
-time to busy students and teachers. I have supplied,
-in every case where it has been possible, the source of
-the story and the name of the publisher for American
-readers, but my experience as a reader in the libraries
-of the States brings me to the conclusion that all the
-books of educational value will either be found in the
-main libraries or procured on application even in the
-small towns.</p>
-
-<p>In many cases the stories would have to be shortened
-and re-arranged. The difficulty of finding the sources
-and obtaining permission has deterred me from offering
-for the present these stories in full.</p>
-
-<p>This being a supplementary list to more general
-ones, there will naturally be absent a large number of
-standard books which I take for granted are known.
-Nevertheless, I have included the titles of some well-known
-works which ought not to be left out of any list.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">218</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Titles of Books containing Translations and
-Adaptations of Classical Stories.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>The Children of the Dawn. Old Tales of Greece. E.
-Fennemore Buckley. 12403 f. 41. Wells, Gardner,
-Darton &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Kingsley's Heroes. 012208. e. 22/26. Blackie and Son.
-(See List of Stories.)</li>
-
-<li>Wonder Stories from Herodotus. (Excellent as a preparation
-for the real old stories.) N. Barrington d'Almeida.
-9026.66. S. Harper Brothers.</li></ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Titles of Books containing Classical Stories
-from History Re-told.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>Plutarch's Lives for Boys and Girls. Re-told by W. H.
-Weston. 10606. d. 4. T. C. and E. C. Jack.</li>
-
-<li>Tales from Plutarch. By Jameson Rawbotham. 10606. bb.
-3. Fisher Unwin.</li></ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Sources of Indian Stories and Myths.</span></h3>
-
-<p>For an understanding of the inner meaning of these
-stories, and as a preparation for telling them, I should
-recommend as a useful book of reference:</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>Indian Myths and Legends. By Mackenzie. 04503. f. 26.
-Gresham Publishing House.</li></ul>
-
-<p>The following titles are of books containing stories
-for narration:</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Jacob's Indian Tales. 12411. h. 9. David Nutt.</li>
-<li>Old Deccan Days. Mary Frere. 12411. e.e. 14. John Murray.</li>
-<li>The Talking Thrush. W. H. D. Rouse. 12411. e.e.e. 17. J. M. Dent.</li>
-<li>Wide Awake Stories. 12411. b.b.b. 2. Steel and Temple.</li>
-<li>Indian Nights' Entertainment. Synnerton. 14162. f. 16. Eliot Stock.</li>
-
-<li>Myths of the Hindus and Buddhists. By Sister Nevedita and Amanda
-
-Coomara. K.T.C. Swamy. A. I. George Harrap Company. (This volume is
-mainly for reference.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">219</a></span>
-Buddhist Birth Stories. T. W. Rhys Davids. 14098. d. 23. Trubner Co.</li>
-<li>Stories of the Buddha Birth. Cowell, Rouse, Neil, Francis. 14098. dd.
-8. University Press, Cambridge.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>As selections of this extensive work:</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Eastern Stories and Fables. M. I. Shedlock. George Routledge.</li>
-<li>The Jatakas, Tales of India. Re-told by Ellen C. Babbitt. 012809. d. 8.
-The Century Co.</li>
-<li>Folk-Tales of Kashmir. Knowles. 2318. g. 18. Trübner
-&amp; Co.</li>
-<li>The Jungle-Book. Rudyard Kipling. 012807. ff. 47. Macmillan.</li>
-<li>The Second Jungle-Book. Rudyard Kipling. 012807. k. 57. Macmillan.</li>
-<li>Tibetian Tales. F. A. Shieffner. 2318. g. 7. Trübner &amp; Co.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Legends, Myths and Fairy-Tales.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Classic Myths and Legends. A. H. Hope Moncrieff. 12403. ee. 6. The
-Gresham Publishing House.</li>
-
-<li>Myths and Folk-Tales of the Russians. Curtin. 2346. e. 6. Sampson Low.</li>
-
-<li>North-West Slav Legends and Fairy Stories. Erben. (Translated by W. W.
-Strickland.) 12430. i. 44.</li>
-
-<li>Russian Fairy-Tales. Nisbet Pain. 12431. ee. 18. Lawrence and Bullen.</li>
-
-<li>Sixty Folk-Tales from Slavonic Sources. Wratislau. 12431. dd. 29.
-Elliot Stock.</li>
-
-<li>Slavonic Fairy-Tales. F. Naake. 2348. b. 4. Henry S. King.</li>
-
-<li>Slav Tales. Chodsho. (Translated by Emily J. Harding.) 12411. eee. 2.
-George Allen.</li>
-
-<li>Chinese Stories. Pitman. 12410. dd. 25. George Harrap &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Chinese Fairy Tales. Professor Giles. 012201. de. 8. Govans
-International Library.</li>
-
-<li>Chinese Nights' Entertainment. Adèle Fielde. 12411. h. 4. G. P. Putnam.</li>
-
-<li>Maori Tales. K. M. Clark. 12411. h. 15. Macmillan &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Papuan Fairy Tales. Annie Ker. 12410. eee. 25. Macmillan &amp; Co.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">220</a></span>
-Cornwall's Wonderland. Mabel Quiller Couch. 12431. r. 13. J. M. Dent.</li>
-
-<li>Perrault's Fairy Tales. 012200. e. 8. “The Temple Classics.” J. M. Dent.</li>
-
-<li>Gesta Romanorum. 12411. e. 15. Swan Sonnenschein.
-</li>
-<li>Myths and Legends of Japan. F. H. Davis. 1241. de. 8. G. Harrap &amp; Co.
-</li>
-<li>Old World Japan. Frank Rinder. 12411. eee. 3. George Allen.
-</li>
-<li>Legendary Lore of All Nations. Swinton and Cathcart. 1241. f. 13.
-Ivison, Taylor &amp; Co.
-</li>
-<li>Popular Tales from the Norse. Sir George Webbe Dasent. 12207. pp.
-George Routledge and Son.
-</li>
-<li>Fairy Tales from Finland. Zopelius. 12431. df. 2. J. M. Dent.
-</li>
-<li>Fairy Gold. A Book of Old English Fairy Tales, chosen by Ernest Rhys.
-12411. dd. 22. J. M. Dent.
-</li>
-<li>Contes Populaires du Vallon. Aug. Gittée. 12430. h. 44. (Written in
-very simple style and easy of translation.) Wanderpooten Gand.
-</li>
-<li>Tales of Old Lusitania. Coelho. 12431. e. 34. Swan Sonnenschein.
-</li>
-<li>Tales from the Land of Nuts and Grapes. Charles Sellers. 12431. c. 38.
-Simpkin, Marshall &amp; Co.
-</li>
-<li>The English Fairy Book. Ernest Rhys. 12410. dd. 29. Fisher Unwin.
-</li>
-<li>Zuni Folk Tales. F. H. Cushing. 12411. g. 30. Putnam.
-</li>
-<li>Manx Fairy Tales. Sophia Morrison. 12410. df. 10. David Nutt.
-</li>
-<li>Legend of the Iroquois. W. V. Canfield. 12410. ff. 23. A Wessels
-Company.
-</li>
-<li>The Indian's Book. Natalie Curtis. 2346. i. 2. Harper Brothers.
-</li>
-<li>Hansa Folk Lore. Rattray. 12431. tt. 2. Clarendon Press.
-</li>
-<li>Japanese Folk Stories and Fairy Tales. Mary F. Nixon-Roulet. 12450. ec.
-18. Swan Sonnenschein.
-</li>
-<li>Kaffir Folk Tales. G. M. Theal. 2348. e. 15. Swan Sonnenschein.
-</li>
-<li>Old Hungarian Tales. Baroness Orczy and Montagu Barstow. 12411. f. 33.
-Dean and Son.
-</li>
-<li>Evening with the Old Story-tellers. G.B. 1155. e. I (1). James Burns.
-</li>
-<li>Myths and Legends of Flowers. C. Skinner. 07029. h. 50. Lippincott.
-</li>
-<li>The Book of Legends Told Over Again. Horace Scudder. 12430. e. 32. Gay
-and Bird.
-</li>
-<li>Indian Folk Tales (American Indian). Mary F. Nixon-Roulet. 12411. cc.
-14. D. Appleton Company.</li>
-
-</ul>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">221</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Romance.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>Epic and Romance. Professor W. P. Ker. 2310. c. 20. Macmillan.
-(As preparation for the selection of Romance
-Stories.)</li>
-
-<li>Old Celtic Romances. P. W. Joyce. 12430. cc. 34. David
-Nutt.</li>
-
-<li>Heroes of Asgard. Keary. 012273. de. 6. Macmillan &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Early British Heroes. Hartley. 12411. d. 5. J. M. Dent
-&amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>A Child's Book of Saints. W. Canton. 12206. r. 11. J. M.
-Dent.</li>
-
-<li>A Child's Book of Warriors. W. Canton. 04413. g. 49.
-J. M. Dent.</li>
-
-<li>History of Ballads. Professor W. P. Ker. From “Proceedings
-of British Academy.” 11852. Vol. 6 (9).</li>
-
-<li>History of English Balladry. Egbert Briant. 011853. aaa.
-16. Richard G. Badger, Gorham Press.</li>
-
-<li>Book of Ballads for Boys and Girls. Selected by Smith and
-Soutar. 11622. bbb. 3. 7. The Clarendon Press.</li>
-
-<li>A Book of Ballad Stories. Mary Macleod. 12431. p. 3.
-Wells, Gardner &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Captive Royal Children. G. T. Whitham. 10806. eee. 2.
-Wells, Gardner, Darton &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Tales and Talks from History. 9007. h. 24. Blackie &amp; Son.</li>
-
-<li>Stories from Froissart. Henry Newbolt. 9510. cc. 9. Wells,
-Gardner, Darton &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Pilgrim Tales from Chaucer. F. J. Harvey Darton. 12410.
-eee. 14. Wells, Gardner &amp; Darton.</li>
-
-<li>Wonder Book of Romances. F. J. Harvey Darton. 12410.
-eee. 18. Wells, Gardner &amp; Darton.</li>
-
-<li>Red Romance Book. Andrew Lang. 12411. bbb. 10. Longmans,
-Green &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>The Garden of Romance. Edited by Ernest Rhys. 12411.
-h. 17. Kegan Paul.</li>
-
-<li>The Kiltartan Wonderbook. Lady Gregory. 12450. g. 32.
-Maunsel &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>The Story of Drake. L. Elton. 10601. p. (From “The
-Children's Heroes” Series.)</li>
-
-<li>Tales from Arabian Nights. 012201. ff. 7/1. Blackie &amp;
-Sons.</li>
-
-<li>King Peter. Dion Calthrop, 012632. ccc. 37. Duckworth
-&amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Tales of the Heroic Ages: Siegfried, Beowulf, Frithjof,
-Roland. Zenaide Ragozin. 12411. eee. G. P. Putnam.</li></ul>
-
-<h3><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">222</a></span>
-
-<span class="smcap">Titles of Miscellaneous Books containing
-Material for Narration.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>Strange Adventures in Dicky Birdland. Kearton. 12809.
-ff. 45. Cassell &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Then and Now Stories: Life in England Then and Now;
-Children Then and Now; Story-Tellers Then and Now.
-W.P. 2221. Macmillan &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>A Book of Bad Children. Trego Webb. 012808. ee. Methuen
-&amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Land of Play. Ada Wallas. 12813. r. 8. (The story of a
-Doll-Historian, much appreciated by children.)
-Edward Arnold.</li>
-
-<li>Tell It Again Stories (For very young children). Elizabeth
-Thompson Dillingham and Adèle Pomers Emerson.
-012808. cc. 15. Ginn and Co.</li>
-
-<li>The Basket Woman. Mrs. Mary Austin. Houghton Mifflin
-Co.</li>
-
-<li>The Queen Bee, and Other Stories. Evald. (Translated
-by C. C. Moore Smith.) P.P. 6064 c. Nelson and Sons.</li>
-
-<li>The Children and the Pictures. Pamela Tennant. 12804. tt.
-10. William Heinemann.</li>
-
-<li>Stories from the History of Ceylon for Children. Marie
-Musaus Higgins. Capper &amp; Sons.</li>
-
-<li>Nonsense for Somebody by A. Nobody. 12809. n. 82.
-Wells, Gardner &amp; Co.</li>
-
-<li>Graphic Stories for Boys and Girls. Selected from 3, 4, 5, 6
-of the Graphic Readers. 012866. f. Collins.</li>
-
-<li>Child Lore. 1451. a. 54. Nimmo.</li>
-
-<li>Windlestraw (Legends in Rhyme of Plants and Animals).
-Pamela Glenconner. 011651. e. 76. Chiswick Press.</li>
-
-<li>Deccan Nursery Tales. Kinaid. Macmillan.</li>
-
-<li>The Indian's Story Book. Richard Wilson. Macmillan.</li>
-
-<li>Told in Gallant Deeds. A Child's History of the War.
-Mrs. Belloc Lowndes. Nisbet.</li></ul>
-
-<p>I much regret that I have been unable to find a good
-collection of stories from history for Narrative
-purposes. I have made a careful and lengthy search,
-but apart from the few I have quoted the stories are
-all written from the <i>reading</i> point of view, rather than
-the <i>telling</i>. There is a large scope for such a book,
-but the dramatic presentation is the first and chief
-essential of such a work. These stories could be used
-as supplementary to the readings of the great<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">223</a></span>
-historians. It would be much easier to interest boys
-and girls in the more leisurely account of the historian
-when they have once been caught in the fire of
-enthusiasm on the dramatic side.</p>
-
-<p>The following is a list of single stories chosen for
-the dramatic qualities which make them suitable for
-narration. For the Press-marks and the publishers
-it will be necessary to refer back to the list containing
-the book-titles.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Classical Stories Re-told.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Story of Theseus (To be told in six parts for a series).</li>
-<li class="isub1">How Theseus Lifted the Stone.</li>
-<li class="isub1">How Theseus Slew the Corynetes.</li>
-<li class="isub1">How Theseus Slew Sinis.</li>
-<li class="isub1">How Theseus Slew Kerkyon and Procrustes.</li>
-<li class="isub1">How Theseus Slew Medea and was acknowledged as the Son of Ægeus.</li>
-<li class="isub1">How Theseus Slew the Minotaur.</li>
-<li class="isub2">(From Kingsley's Heroes. 012208. e. 22/26. Blackie &amp; Son.)</li>
-<li>The Story of Crœsus.</li>
-<li>The Conspiracy of the Magi.</li>
-<li>Arion and the Dolphin.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Wonder Tales from Herodotus. These are
-intended for reading, but could be shortened for
-effective narration.)</li>
-
-<li>Coriolanus.</li>
-<li>Julius Cæsar.</li>
-<li>Aristides.</li>
-<li>Alexander.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Plutarch's Lives for Boys and Girls. These
-stories must be shortened and adapted for narration.)
-</li>
-<li>The God of the Spears: The Story of Romulus.</li>
-<li>His Father's Crown: The story of Alcibiades. </li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Tales from Plutarch. F. J. Rowbotham. Both
-these stories to be shortened and told in sections.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Indian Stories.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Wise Old Shepherd.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Talking Thrush. Rouse.)</li>
-
-<li>The Religious Camel.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From the same source.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">224</a></span>
-Less Inequality than Men Deem.</li>
-<li>The Brahman, the Tiger and the Six Judges.</li>
-<li>Tit for Tat.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Old Deccan Days. Mary Frere.)</li>
-<li>Pride Goeth Before a Fall. </li>
-<li>Harisarman. </li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Jacob's Indian Fairy Tales.)</li>
-
-<li>The Bear's Bad Bargain.</li>
-<li>Little Anklebone.</li>
-<li>Peasie and Beansie.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Wide Awake Stories. Flora Annie Steel.)</li>
-
-<li>The Weaver and the Water Melon.</li>
-<li>The Tiger and the Hare.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Indian Nights' Entertainment. Synnerton.)</li>
-
-<li>The Virtuous Animals.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(This story should be abridged and somewhat altered
-for narration.)</li>
-
-<li>The Ass as Singer.</li>
-<li>The Wolf and the Sheep.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Tibetian Tales. F. A. Schieffur.)</li>
-<li>A Story about Robbers.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Out of the Far East. Page. 131. Lafcadio
-Hearn. 10058. de. g. Houghton and Mifflin.)</li>
-<li>Dripping.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Indian Fairy Tales. Mark Thornhill. 12431.
-bbb. 38. Hatchard.)</li>
-
-<li>The Buddha as Tree-Spirit.</li>
-<li>The Buddha as Parrot.</li>
-<li>The Buddha as King.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Eastern Stories and Fables. George Routledge.)</li>
-<li>Raksas and Bakshas.</li>
-<li>The Bread of Discontent.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Legendary Lore of All Nations. Cathcart and
-Swinton.)</li>
-
-<li>A Germ-Destroyer.</li>
-<li>Namgay Doola (A good story for boys, to be given in shortened form).</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Kipling Reader. 1227. t. 7. Macmillan.)</li>
-
-<li>A Stupid Boy.</li>
-<li>The Clever Jackal (One of the few stories wherein the Jackal shows
-skill combined with gratitude).</li>
-
-<li>Why the Fish Laughed.
-
-(From Folk Tales of Kashmir. Knowles.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Common Sense and Resourcefulness and Humour.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Thief and the Cocoanut Tree.</li>
-
-<li>The Woman and the Lizard.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">225</a></span>
-Sada Sada.</li>
-<li>The Shopkeeper and the Robber.</li>
-<li>The Reciter.</li>
-<li>Rich Man's Potsherd.</li>
-<li>Singer and the Donkey.</li>
-<li>Child and Milk.</li>
-<li>Rich Man Giving a Feast.</li>
-<li>King Solomon and the Mosquitoes.</li>
-<li>The King who Promised to Look After Tennel Ranan's Family.</li>
-<li>Vikadakavi.</li>
-<li>Horse and Complainant.</li>
-<li>The Woman and the Stolen Fruit.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From An Indian Tale or Two. Swinton. 14171. A. 20.
-Reprinted from Blackheath Local Guide.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Titles of Books containing Stories from History.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>British Sailor Heroes. </li>
-<li>British Soldier Heroes. </li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From the Hero Reader. W.P. 53 ⅓. William Heinemann.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of Alfred the Great. A. E. McKillan.</li>
-<li>Alexander the Great. Ada Russell: W.P. 66/5.</li>
-<li>The Story of Jean d'Arc. Wilmot Buxton. W.P. 66/1.</li>
-<li>Marie Antoinette. Alice Birkhead. W.P. 66/2.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(All these are published by George Harrap.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Stories from the Lives of Saints.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Children's Library of the Saints. Edited by Rev. W. Guy Pearse.
-Printed by Richard Jackson.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(This is an illustrated penny edition.)</li>
-
-<li>From the Legenda Aurea. 012200. de.</li>
-<li class="isub1">The Story of St. Brandon (The Episode of the Birds). Vol 7, page 52.</li>
-<li class="isub1">The Story of St. Francis. Vol. 6, page 125.</li>
-<li class="isub1">The Story of Santa Clara and the Roses.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Saint Elisabeth of Hungary. Vol. 6, page 213.</li>
-<li class="isub1">St. Martin and the Cloak. Vol. 6, page 142.</li>
-<li>The Legend of St. Marjory.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(<i>Tales Facetiæ.</i> 12350. b. 39.)</li>
-
-<li>Melangell's Lambs.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Welsh Fairy Book. W. Jenkyn Thomas.
-Fisher Unwin.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">226</a></span>
-Our Lady's Tumbler. (Twelfth Century Legend told by Philip Wicksteed.
-012356. e. 59.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(J. M. Dent. This story could be shortened and adapted
-without sacrificing too much of the beauty of the style.)</li>
-
-<li>The Song of the Minster.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From William Canton's Book of Saints. K.T.C. a/4.
-J. M. Dent. This should be shortened and somewhat
-simplified for narration, especially in the
-technical ecclesiastical terms.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of St. Kenelm the Little King.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Old English History for Children.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of King Alfred and St. Cuthbert.</li>
-<li>The Story of Ædburg, the Daughter of Edward.</li>
-<li>The Story of King Harold's Sickness and Recovery.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>I commend all those who tell these stories to read
-the comments made on them by E. A. Freeman
-himself.</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>(From Old English History for Children. 012206. ppp.
-7. J. M. Dent. Everyman Series.)</li></ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Stories Dealing with the Success of the
-Youngest Child.</span></h3>
-
-<p class="hang">(This is sometimes due to a kind action shown to
-some humble person or to an animal.)</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Three Sons.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Kiltartan Wonderbook. By Lady Gregory.)</li>
-
-<li>The Flying Ship.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Russian Fairy Tales. Nisbet Pain.)</li>
-
-<li>How Jesper Herded the Hares.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From The Violet Fairy Book. 12411. ccc. 6.)</li>
-
-<li>Youth, Life and Death.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Myths and Folk Tales of Russians and Slavs.
-By Curtin.)</li>
-
-<li>Jack the Dullard. Hans Christian Andersen.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(See list of <a href="#C_Andersen">Andersen Stories</a>.)</li>
-
-<li>The Enchanted Whistle.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Golden Fairy Book. 12411. c. 36.)</li>
-
-<li>The King's Three Sons.</li>
-
-<li>Hunchback and Brothers.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Legends of the French Provinces. 1241. c. 2.)</li>
-
-<li>The Little Humpbacked Horse. (This story is more suitable
-for reading than telling.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Russian Wonder Tales. By Post Wheeler.
-12410. dd. 30. Adam and Charles Black.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">227</a></span>
-The Queen Bee. By Grimm. (See full list.)</li>
-
-<li>The Wonderful Bird.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Roumanian Fairy Tales. Adapted by J. M.
-Percival. 12431. dd. 23. Henry Holt.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Legends, Myths, Fairy Tales and Miscellaneous
-Stories.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>How the Herring became King.</li>
-<li>Joe Moore's Story.</li>
-<li>The Mermaid of Gob Ny Ooyl.</li>
-<li>King Magnus Barefoot.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Manx Tales. By Sophia Morrison.)
-</li>
-<li>The Greedy Man.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Contes Populaires Malgaches. By G. Ferrand.
-2348. aaa. 19. Ernest Leroux.)</li>
-
-<li>Arbutus.</li>
-<li>Basil.</li>
-<li>Briony.</li>
-<li>Dandelion.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Legends of Myths and Flowers. C. Skinner.)
-</li>
-<li>The Magic Picture.</li>
-<li>The Stone Monkey.</li>
-<li>Stealing Peaches.</li>
-<li>The Country of Gentlemen.</li>
-<li>Football on a Lake.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Chinese Fairy Tales. Professor Giles.)</li>
-
-<li>The Lime Tree.</li>
-<li>Intelligence and Luck.</li>
-<li>The Frost, the Sun and Wind.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Sixty Folk Tales. Wratislaw.)</li>
-
-<li>The Boy who Slept.</li>
-<li>The Gods Know. (This story must be shortened and adapted for narration.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Chinese Fairy Stories. By Pitman.)</li>
-<li>The Imp Tree.</li>
-<li>The Pixy Flower.</li>
-<li>Tom-Tit Tot.</li>
-<li>The Princess of Colchester.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Fairy Gold. Ernest Rhys.)</li>
-
-<li>The Origin of the Mole.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Cossack Fairy Tales. Selected by Nisbet Bain.
-12431. f. 51. Lawrence and Bullen.)</li>
-
-<li>Dolls and Butterflies.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Myths and Legends of Japan. Chapter VI.)</li>
-
-<li>The Child of the Forest.</li>
-<li>The Sparrow's Wedding.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">228</a></span>
-The Moon Maiden.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Old World Japan. By Frank Binder.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of Merlin. (For Young People.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(Told in Early British Heroes. Harkey.)</li>
-
-<li>The Isle of the Mystic Lake.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Voyage of Maildun, “Old Celtic Romances.”
-P. W. Joice.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of Baldur. (In Three Parts, for Young Children.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Heroes of Asgard. M. R. Earle. Macmillan.)</li>
-
-<li>Adalhero.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Evenings with the Old Story-Tellers. See
-“Titles of Books.”)</li>
-
-<li>Martin, the Peasant's Son.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(This is more suitable for reading. From Russian
-Wonder Tales. Post Wheeler.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Miscellaneous Stories.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Versions of the Legend of Rip Van Winkle.</li>
-<li>Urashima.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Myths and Legends of Japan. Hadland Davis.)</li>
-
-<li>The Monk and the Bird.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From the Book of Legends-Told Over Again. Horace
-Scudder.)</li>
-
-<li>Carob. (Talmud Legend.)</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Myths and Legends of Flowers. C. Skinner.)</li>
-<li>The Land of Eternal Youth.</li> <li class="isub1">(From Child-Lore.)</li>
-
-<li>Catskin.</li>
-<li>Guy of Gisborne.</li>
-<li>King Henry and the Miller.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Stories from Ballads. M. Macleod.)</li>
-
-<li>The Legend of the Black Prince.</li>
-
-<li>Why the Wolves no Longer Devour the Lambs on Xmas Night.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Au Pays des Legendes. E. Herpin. 12430.
-bbb. 30. Hyacinthe Calliere.)</li>
-
-<li>The Coyote and the Locust.</li>
-<li>The Coyote and the Raven.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Zuni Folk Tales. Cushing.)</li>
-<li>The Peacemaker.
-
-(From Legends of the Iroquois. W. V. Canfield.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of the Great Chief of the Animals.</li>
-<li>The Story of Lion and Little Jackal.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Kaffir Folk Tales. G. M. Theal.)</li>
-
-<li>The Legend of the Great St. Nicholas.</li>
-<li>The Three Counsels.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Bulletin de Folk Lore. Liege. Academies,
-987 ½.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">229</a></span>
-The Tale of the Peasant Demyar.</li>
-
-<li>Monkey and the Pomegranate Tree.</li>
-<li>The Ant and the Snow.</li>
-<li>The Value of an Egg.</li>
-<li>The Padre and the Negro.</li>
-<li>Papranka.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Tales of Old Lusitania. Coelho.)</li>
-
-<li>Kojata.</li>
-<li>The Lost Spear. (To be shortened.)</li>
-<li>The Hermit. By Voltaire.</li>
-<li>The Blue Cat. (From the French.)</li>
-<li>The Silver Penny.</li>
-<li>The Three Sisters.</li>
-<li>The Slippers of Abou-Karem.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Golden Fairy Book. 12411. e. 36. Hutchinson.)</li>
-
-<li>The Fairy Baby.
-
-(From Uncle Remus in Hansaland. By Mary and
-Newman Tremearne.)</li>
-
-<li>Why the Sole of a Man's Foot is Uneven.</li>
-<li>The Wonderful Hair.</li>
-<li>The Emperor Trojan's Goat Ears.</li>
-<li>The Language of Animals.</li>
-<li>Handicraft above Everything.</li>
-<li>Just Earnings are Never Lost.</li>
-<li>The Maiden who was Swifter than a Horse.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Servian Stories and Legends.)</li>
-
-<li>Le Couple Silencieux.</li>
-<li>Le Mort Parlant.</li>
-<li>La Sotte Fiancee.</li>
-<li>Le Cornacon.</li>
-<li>Persin au Pot.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Contes Populaires du Vallon. Aug. Gittée.
-12430. h. 44.)</li>
-
-<li>The Rat and the Cat.</li>
-<li>The Two Thieves.</li>
-<li>The Two Rats.</li>
-<li>The Dog and the Rat.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Contes Populaires Malgaches. 2348. aaa. 19.
-Gab. Ferrand.)</li>
-<li>Rua and Toka.
-(From The Maori Tales. Clark.)</li>
-
-<li>John and the Pig. (Old Hungarian Tales.)
-
-(This story is given for the same purpose as “Long
-Bow Story.” See Andrew Lang's Books.)</li>
-
-<li>Lady Clare.</li>
-<li>The Wolf-Child.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Land of Grapes and Nuts.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">230</a></span>
-The Ungrateful Man.</li>
-<li>The Faithful Servant. (In part.)</li>
-<li>Jovinian the Proud Emperor.</li>
-<li>The Knight and the King of Hungary.</li>
-<li>The Wicked Priest.</li>
-<li>The Emperor Conrad and the Count's Son.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">
-
-(From the Gesta Romanorum. 1155. e. I.)</li>
-
-<li>Virgil, the Emperor and the Truffles.
-
-(From Unpublished Legends of Virgil. Collected by
-C. G. Leland. 12411. eee. 15. Elliot Stock.)</li>
-
-<li>Seeing that All was Right. (A good story for boys.)</li>
-<li>La Fortuna.</li>
-<li>The Lanterns of the Strozzi Palace.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Legends of Florence. Re-told by C. G. Leland.
-12411. c.cc. 2. David Nutt.)</li>
-
-<li>The Three Kingdoms.</li>
-<li>Yelena the Wise.</li>
-<li>Seven Simeons.</li>
-<li>Ivan, the Bird and the Wolf.</li>
-<li>The Pig, the Deer and the Steed.</li>
-<li>Waters of Youth.</li>
-<li>The Useless Wagoner.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(These stories need shortening and adapting. From
-Myths and Folk Tales of the Russian. Curtin.) </li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Miscellaneous Stories taken from the Andrew
-<a id="Lang_Books"></a>Lang Books.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Serpent's Gifts.</li>
-<li>Unlucky John.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From All Sorts of Story Books. 012704. aaa. 35.)</li>
-
-<li>Makoma. (A story for boys.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Orange Fairy Book. 12411. c. 36.)</li>
-
-<li>The Lady of Solace.</li>
-<li>How the Ass Became a Man Again.</li>
-<li>Amys and Amile.</li>
-<li>The Burning of Njal.</li>
-<li>Ogier the Dane.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Red Book of Romance. 12411. bbb. 10.)</li>
-
-<li>The Heart of a Donkey.</li>
-<li>The Wonderful Tune.</li>
-<li>A French Puck.</li>
-<li>A Fish Story.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Lilac Fairy Book. 12411. de. 17.)</li>
-
-<li>East of the Sun and West of the Moon. (As a preparation for Cupid and
-Psyche.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Blue Fairy Book. 12411. I. 3.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">231</a></span>
-The Half Chick.</li>
-<li>The Story of Hok Lee and the Dwarfs.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Green Fairy Book. 12411.1. 6.)</li>
-
-<li>How to Find a True Friend. (To be given in shorter form.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Crimson Fairy Book. 12411. c. 20.)
-</li>
-<li>The Long Bow Story. (This story makes children learn to distinguish
-between falsehood and romance.)</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From The Olive Fairy Book. 12410. dd. 18.)</li>
-
-<li>Kanny, the Kangaroo.</li>
-<li>Story of Tom the Bear.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From The Animal Story Book.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of the Fisherman.</li>
-<li>Aladdin and the Lamp. (This story should be divided and told in two
-sections.)</li>
-<li>The Story of Ali Cogia.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From the Arabian Nights Stories of Andrew Lang.
-All these stories are published by Longmans,
-Green &amp; Co.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="noin">The following titles are taken from the “Story-telling
-Magazine,” published 27 West 23rd Street,
-New York.</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>March and the Shepherd. </li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(Folk Lore from Foreign Lands. January, 1914.)</li>
-
-<li>The Two Young Lions.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Fénélon's Fables and Fairy Tales. Translated
-by Marc T. Valette. March, 1914.)</li>
-
-<li>Why the Cat Spits at the Dog. (November, 1913.)</li>
-<li>The Story of Persephone. By R. T. Wyche. (September, 1913.)</li>
-<li>The Story of England's First Poet. By G. P. Krapp.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From In Oldest England, July, 1913.)</li>
-<li>The Three Goats. By Jessica Child. (For very young children. July,
-1913.)</li>
-<li>The Comical History of the Cobbler and the King. (Chap. Book. 12331. i.
-4.)</li>
-<li class="isub1">(This story should be shortened to add to the dramatic<br />
-power.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="noin">The two following stories, which are great favourites,
-should be told one after the other, one to illustrate the
-patient wife, and the other the patient husband.</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-
-<li>The Fisherman and his Wife. Hans. C. Andersen.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(See Publishers of Andersen's Stories.)</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">232</a></span>
-Hereafter This.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From More English Fairy Tales. By Jacobs. 12411.
-h. 23. David Nutt.)</li>
-
-<li>How a Man Found his Wife in the Land of the Dead. (This is a very
-dramatic and pagan story, to be used with discretion.)</li>
-<li>The Man without Hands and Feet.</li>
-<li>The Cockerel.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Papuan Fairy Tales. Annie Ker.)</li>
-
-<li>The Story of Sir Tristram and La Belle Iseult. (To be told in shortened
-form.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Cornwall's Wonderland. Mabel Quiller Couch.)</li>
-
-<li>The Cat that Went to the Doctor.</li>
-<li>The Wood Anemone.</li>
-<li>Sweeter than Sugar.</li>
-<li>The Raspberry Caterpillar.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Fairy Tales from Finland. Zopelius.)</li>
-
-<li>Dinevan the Emu.</li>
-<li>Goomble Gubbon the Bustard.</li>
-<li class="isub1">(From Australian Legendary Lore. By Mrs. Langloh
-Parker. 12411. h. 13.)</li>
-
-<li>The Tulip Bed.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From English Fairy Book. Ernest Rhys.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>I have been asked so often for this particular story:
-I am glad to be able to provide it in very poetical
-language.</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Fisherman and his Wife.</li>
-<li>The Wolf and the Kids.</li>
-<li>The Adventures of Chanticleer and Partlet.</li>
-<li>The Old Man and his Grandson.</li>
-<li>Rumpelstiltskin.</li>
-<li>The Queen Bee.</li>
-<li>The Wolf and the Man.</li>
-<li>The Golden Goose.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Grimm's Fairy Tales. By Mrs. Edgar Lucas.
-12410. dd. 33. Constable.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Stories from Hans <a id="C_Andersen"></a>C. Andersen.</span></h3>
-
-<p class="center">(For young children.)</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Ole-Luk-Oie. (Series of seven.)</li>
-<li>What the Old Man Does is Always Right.</li>
-<li>The Princess and the Pea.</li>
-<li>Thumbelina.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">233</a></span>(For older children.)</p>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>It's Quite True.</li>
-<li>Five Out of One Pod.</li>
-<li>Great Claus and Little Claus.</li>
-<li>Jack the Dullard.</li>
-<li>The Buckwheat.</li>
-<li>The Fir-Tree.</li>
-<li>The Little Tin Soldier.</li>
-<li>The Nightingale.</li>
-<li>The Ugly Duckling.</li>
-<li>The Swineherd.</li>
-<li>The Sea Serpent.</li>
-<li>The Little Match-Girl.</li>
-<li>The Gardener and the Family.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>The two best editions of Hans C. Andersen's Fairy Tales
-are the translation by Mrs. Lucas, published by Dent, and
-the only complete English edition, published by W. A. and
-J. K. Craigie (Humphrey Milford, 1914).</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Miscellaneous Modern Stories.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>The Summer Princess.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Enchanted Garden. Mrs. Molesworth.
-012803. d. f. T. Fisher Unwin. This could be
-shortened and arranged for narration.)</li>
-
-<li>Thomas and the Princess. (A Fairy Tale for Grown-Ups, for pure
-relaxation.) By Joseph Conrad.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Twenty-six Ideal Stories for Girls. 012809. e. 1.
-Hutchinson &amp; Co.)</li>
-
-<li>The Truce of God.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From All-Fellowes Seven Legends of Lower Redemption.
-Laurence Housman. 012630. 1. 25. Kegan
-Paul.)</li>
-
-<li>The Selfish Giant. By Oscar Wilde. 012356. e. 59. David Nutt.</li>
-<li>The Legend of the Tortoise.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From the Provençal. From Windestraw. Pamela
-Glenconner.) Chiswick Press.</li>
-
-<li>Fairy Grumblesnooks.</li>
-<li>A Bit of Laughter's Smile. By Maud Symonds.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Tales for Little People. Nos. 323 and 318.
-Aldine Publishing Company.)</li>
-
-<li>The Fairy who Judged her Neighbours.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Little Wonder Box. By Jean Ingelow.
-12806. r. 21. Griffiths, Farren &amp; Co.)</li>
-
-</ul>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">234</a></span></p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">For Teachers of Young Children.</span></h3>
-
-<ul class="hang">
-<li>Le Courage.</li>
-<li>L'Ecole.</li>
-<li>Le Jour de Catherine.</li>
-<li>Jacqueline et Mirant.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Nos Enfants. Anatole France. 12810. dd. 72.
-Hachette.)</li>
-
-<li>The Giant and the Jackstraw. By David Starr Jordan.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From Una and the Knights. For very small children.)</li>
-
-<li>The Musician.</li>
-<li>Legend of the Christmas Rose.</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">(From The Girl from the Marsh Croft. Selma <span class="err" title="original: Lagelöf">Lagerlöf</span>.
-12581. p. 99.)</li>
-
-<li class="isub1">Both these should be shortened and adapted for narration.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>I trust that the titles of my stories in this Section
-may not be misleading. Under the titles of “Myths,
-Legends and Fairy Tales,” I have included many
-which contain valuable ethical teaching, deep philosophy
-and stimulating examples for conduct in life.
-I regret that I have not been able to furnish in my
-own list many of the stories I consider good for
-narration, but the difficulty of obtaining permission
-has deterred me from further efforts in this direction.
-I hope, however, that teachers and students will look
-up the book containing these stories.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_55_55" id="Footnote_55_55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_55_55"><span class="label">[55]</span></a> Both books dealing with insect life.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">235</a></span></p>
-<h2>INDEX</h2>
-
-<ul class="index">
-<li>Adler, Felix, on animal stories, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li>Adventures of a Beetle, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li>Alice in Wonderland, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a></li>
-
-<li>Analysis of motive and feeling, to be avoided, <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-
-<li>Andersen, Hans C., <a href="#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>,
-<a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>,
-<a href="#Page_62">62</a>, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>,
-<a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
-<li>Animal Play, Psychology of, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li>Art, true purpose of, <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
-<li>Arthur in the Cave, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>-<a href="#Page_169">9</a></li>
-
-<li>Artifices of story telling, <a href="#Page_32">32</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Bacon, J. D. D., <a href="#Page_12">12</a></li>
-
-<li>Ballad for a boy, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li>Baring, M., <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li>Barnes, Earl, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li>Barnett, P. A., <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li>Barnett, Mrs. P. A., <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li>Barrow, E., <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
-<li>Beautiful things need appropriate language, <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li>
-
-<li>Beetle, the, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li>Beginning, should be striking, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-
-<li>Belloc's Cautionary Tales, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li>Béranger, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li>Bible Stories, <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
-<li>Björnson's tribute to Andersen, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li>Blazing Mansion, the, <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
-<li>Bluebeard, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li>Blue Rose, the, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li>‘Blugginess,’ the thirst for, <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li>
-
-<li>Books, choice of, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li>Bradley, Professor, <a href="#Page_119">119</a></li>
-
-<li>Brown, T. E., <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li>Buddha, stories of, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_203">203</a></li>
-
-<li>Buffoonery, to be discouraged, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-
-<li>Burroughs, John, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li>Buster Brown, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li>Butterfly, Story of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Call of the Homeland, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Calypso, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
-<li>Calthrop, Dion, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li>Carlyle, T., <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
-<li>Chap books, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li>Chesterton, G. K., on sentimentality, <a href="#Page_46">46</a></li>
-
-<li>Child, the, <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
-
-<li>Child Play, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li>Children's Catalogue, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
-<li>Choice of books, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li>Christopher, St., legend of, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>-<a href="#Page_165">5</a></li>
-
-<li>Cid, the, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li>Cinderella, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li>Classical Stories, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
-<li>Class teaching, use of story-telling in, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
-<li>Clifford, Ethel, <a href="#Page_88">88</a></li>
-
-<li>Clifford, Mrs. W. K., <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
-<li>Commonplace, to be avoided, <a href="#Page_99">99</a></li>
-
-<li>Common sense of Education, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li>Common sense, illustrated in stories, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
-<li>Concealment of emotion by children, <a href="#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
-<li>Confucius, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li>Co-operation of audience, how to enlist, <a href="#Page_37">37</a></li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">236</a></span>
-Cory, W., <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li>Coquelin, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li>Crazy Jane, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-
-<li>Creative work, value of, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li>
-
-<li>Curious Girl, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li>Curtin, Russian Myths, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li>Cymbeline, <a href="#Page_94">94</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Danger of side issues, <a href="#Page_6">6</a></li>
-
-<li>Danger of altering the story for the occasion, <a href="#Page_8">8</a></li>
-
-<li>Darning Needle, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li>Death, stories dealing with, <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
-
-<li>Death-bed scenes, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li>Defence of Poesy, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li>
-
-<li>Detail, excess of, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li>Dick Whittington, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li>Didactic fiction, a low type of art, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
-
-<li>Dido and Aeneas, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li>Difficulties of the story, <a href="#Page_6">6</a></li>
-
-<li>Dinkey Bird, the, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
-<li>Direct appeal, danger of, <a href="#Page_111">111</a></li>
-
-<li>Divine Adventure, the, <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
-
-<li>Dobson, Austin, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li>Don Quixote, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li>Dramatic and poetic elements, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li>Dramatic Excitement, <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li>
-
-<li>Dramatic joy, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
-<li>Dramatic presentation, of moral value, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— indispensable, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li>
-
-<li>Dramatisation, danger of, <a href="#Page_111">111</a></li>
-
-<li>Drudgery, essential for success, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Educational uses of story telling, <a href="#Page_4">4</a></li>
-
-<li>Effect of story, difficult to gauge, <a href="#Page_14">14</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— how to obtain and maintain, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li>
-
-<li>Elements, desirable, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— to be avoided, <a href="#Page_42">42</a></li>
-
-<li>Eliot, George, <a href="#Page_83">83</a></li>
-
-<li>Emotions, unable to find expression, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li>Emphasis, danger of, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li>Endings, dramatic, <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
-<li>Enfant Prodigue, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li>Environment, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-
-<li>Essentials of the story, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li>Ewing, Mrs., <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li>Examples for Youth, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li>Experience, the appeal to, <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Fact and make-believe, <a href="#Page_119">119</a></li>
-
-<li>Fairchild Family, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li>Fairy tales, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— do not appeal to some, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— mixed with science, to be avoided, <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— poor material of, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— potential truth in, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— right age for, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-
-<li>Father and Son, <a href="#Page_102">102</a></li>
-
-<li>Fear, appeals to, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li>Fénélon's Telemachus, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li>Festival Day, true spirit of, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>-<a href="#Page_203">3</a></li>
-
-<li>Fiction, should be used, <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
-<li>Field, Eugene, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li>Filial Piety, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>-<a href="#Page_206">6</a></li>
-
-<li>Fleming, Marjorie, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li>Folk lore, tampering with, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li>Freeman, P., poems of, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">237</a></span>
-Froebel, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
-
-<li>Fun, coarse and exaggerated, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Gales, R. L., <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-
-<li>Geography, dramatic possibilities of, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li>Gesture, use and abuse of, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
-<li>Glenconner, Lady, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li>Glover, Mrs. Arnold, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-
-<li>Golden Numbers, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Goschen, G., <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a></li>
-
-<li>Gosse, E., <a href="#Page_102">102</a></li>
-
-<li>Gregory, Lady, <a href="#Page_24">24</a></li>
-
-<li>Grimm, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Groos, Karl, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li>Grotesque stories, an antidote to sentimentality, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li>Gunnar, Death of, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Hafiz the Stone-cutter, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>-<a href="#Page_172">2</a></li>
-
-<li>Harris, Muriel, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li>Harrison, Frederic, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li>Hearn, Lafcadio, <a href="#Page_31">31</a></li>
-
-<li>Hector and Andromache, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li>Helen and Paris, <a href="#Page_8">8</a></li>
-
-<li>Heroes of Asgaard, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li>History and fiction, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li>Honey Bee and other Stories, <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li>Human interest, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
-<li>Humour, development slow, <a href="#Page_136">136</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— educational value of, <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— to encourage the sense of, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
-<li>Hushaby Lady, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li>Hysteria, how encouraged, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Ice Maiden, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li>Ideal, translated into action, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li>
-
-<li>Illustration of stories, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li>Imagination, appeal by, <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— cultivation of, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— Queyrat on, <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— Ribot on, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li>Indian Stories, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li>Infant piety, tales of, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li>Irish peasants as an audience, <a href="#Page_10">10</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Jack and the Beanstalk, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li>Jacob, More English tales, <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li>
-
-<li>James, Henry, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
-<li>James, William, <a href="#Page_84">84</a></li>
-
-<li>Janeway, Mrs., <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li>Jesper and the Hares, <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li>
-
-<li>John and the Pig, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Keatinge, on Suggestion, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li>Kimmins, Dr., <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
-<li>Kinematograph, dramatic value of, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li>King Peter, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li>Kinship with animals, to be encouraged, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li>Ker, Professor, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
-
-<li>Kipling, Rudyard, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Ladd's Psychology, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li>Lang, Andrew, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_230">230</a></li>
-
-<li>Laocoon group, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li>Lear's Book of Nonsense, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li>Legends, Myths and Fairy tales, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
-<li>Life, stories of saving, <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
-
-<li>Little Citizens of other Lands, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li>Little Cousin Series, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-
-<li>Little Red Riding Hood, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">238</a></span>
-Lion and Hare, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
-<li>Loti, <a href="#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Magnanimity, to be encouraged, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li>Mahomet, advice to teachers, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li>McKracken, Mrs. E., <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
-<li>Macleod, Fiona, <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
-
-<li>Marsh King's Daughter, <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
-
-<li>Mechanical devices for attracting attention, <a href="#Page_32">32</a></li>
-
-<li>Memory or improvisation, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li>Memory, the effect of, <a href="#Page_63">63</a></li>
-
-<li>Mentius, Chinese philosopher, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-
-<li>Metempsychosis, <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
-
-<li>Milking time, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li>Mill on the Floss, <a href="#Page_83">83</a></li>
-
-<li>Milton, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li>Mimicry, use of, <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li>
-
-<li>Ministering Children, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li>Miscellaneous Stories, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li>Modern Stories, List of, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li>
-
-<li>Montessori, on Silence, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li>Moore Smith, C. G., <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li>Moral Instruction of Children, <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
-
-<li>Moral tales, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li>Morley, Henry, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li>Morley, Lord, on direct moral teaching, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li>Mother Play, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
-
-<li>Moulton, Professor, <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Napoleon, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li>Nebuchadnezzar's golden image, <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
-<li>Necker de Saussure, Mme., <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li>Nightingale, the, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>-<a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li>Njal, Burning of, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li>Nonsense, a plea for, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li>Norse Stories, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li>Nursery Rhymes, <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Old people, as an audience, <a href="#Page_24">24</a></li>
-
-<li>Openings, vivid, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
-<li>Orpheus and Eurydice, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li>Our Lady's Tumbler, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li>Over dramatic stimulation, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li>Over-elaboration, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li>Over explanation, danger of, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-
-<li>Over-illustration, danger of, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Pandora, story of, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li>Pantomime, stories in, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li>Paris and Helen, <a href="#Page_8">8</a></li>
-
-<li>Pausing, the art of, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li>Piety Promoted, <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li>Planting for Eternity, <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
-<li>Plato, on the End of Education, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li>Poetic element, children's unexpressed need, <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
-<li>Poetry and Life, <a href="#Page_119">119</a></li>
-
-<li>Poetry, effect of, <a href="#Page_119">119</a></li>
-
-<li>Poetry, value of, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li>Polish, importance of, <a href="#Page_31">31</a></li>
-
-<li>Poor Robin, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li>Priggishness, how to avoid, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li>Preparation for a story, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li>Princess and the Pea, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>-<a href="#Page_157">7</a></li>
-
-<li>Proud Cock, the, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>-<a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
-
-<li>Psyche, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li>Psychology, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li>Psychological novelist, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li>Pueblo tribe of Indians, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li>Puss in Boots, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Quebec and Téméraire, story of, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li>Questions, danger of, <a href="#Page_13">13</a></li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">239</a></span>
-Questions of teachers, <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
-<li>Questioning the audience, futility of, <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
-<li>Queyrat, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li>
-
-<li>Quintilian, on the use of the hands, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Reading matter for children, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
-<li>Realism, excessive, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
-<li>Repetition of story (by children) inadvisable, <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
-<li>Repetition of stories (by lecturers) recommended, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
-
-<li>Reproduction of stories, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
-<li>Resourcefulness, stories of, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
-<li>Ribot, on the imagination, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li>Riley, Whitcomb, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li>Romance, Books of, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a></li>
-
-<li>Romance, good for children, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— in the streets, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li>Rossetti, Christina, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li>Russell, J., <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li>Russian myths and folk tales, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Saga, a, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li>Saints, lives of, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li>St. Christopher, Legend of, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>-<a href="#Page_165">5</a></li>
-
-<li>St. Francis and St. Clare, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li>Santa Claus, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li>Sarcasm, excess to be avoided, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li>Satire, excessive, to be deprecated, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li>Saturation, necessity of, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
-<li>Scott, Dr., <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Scudder, H., <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li>Sensationalism, danger of, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-
-<li>Sentimentality, <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
-<li>Shakespeare, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-
-<li>Shepherd, the Obstinate, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>-<a href="#Page_178">8</a></li>
-
-<li>Sherwood, Mrs., <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li>Side issues, danger of, <a href="#Page_6">6</a></li>
-
-<li>Sidney, Sir Philip, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li>
-
-<li>Siegfried and Brunhild, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li>Silence, Montessori on, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li>Simplicity, the keynote of story-telling, <a href="#Page_2">2</a></li>
-
-<li>Smith, Mrs. R. B., <a href="#Page_14">14</a></li>
-
-<li>Smith, N. A., <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Snake story, a, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>-<a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li>Snegourka, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>-<a href="#Page_182">2</a></li>
-
-<li>Snow Child, the, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>-<a href="#Page_182">2</a></li>
-
-<li>Somerset, Lady H., <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li>
-
-<li>Song and Story, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li>Song of Roland, <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li>
-
-<li>Souvenirs du Peuple, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li>Standard, must be high, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-
-<li>Sterne, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li>Stephens, James, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-
-<li>Stevenson, R. L., <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li>Stories, in full, <a href="#Page_138">138</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— to counteract influence of the streets, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
-<li class="isub1">—— outside children's experience, futility of, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li>Story telling in school and home, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li>Story Telling Magazine, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
-
-<li>Sturla, story of, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>-<a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li>Suggestion, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
-
-<li>Sully, on children, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li>Sunday books, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li>Swineherd, the, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>-<a href="#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
-<li>Sympathy for foreigners, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li>Syrett, N., <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Talking over a story, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-
-<li>Talking Thrush, the, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">240</a></span>
-Talks to teachers, <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li>
-
-<li>Teachers of Young Children, books for, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li>Telemachus, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li>Tell, Wilhelm, <a href="#Page_30">30</a></li>
-
-<li>Tennant, Pamela, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li>Thackeray, <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
-<li>Thomas, W. Jenkyn, <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-
-<li>Three Bears, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li>Through the Looking Glass, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li>Tiger, Jackal and Brahman, <a href="#Page_11">11</a></li>
-
-<li>Time, spent on story telling, <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
-<li>Tin Soldier, the, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-
-<li>Top and Ball, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li>To your good health, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>-<a href="#Page_178">8</a></li>
-
-<li>Treasure of the Wise Man, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li>Troy, tale of, <a href="#Page_8">8</a></li>
-
-<li>Truth, many-sided, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li>Truth of Stories, <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li>
-
-<li>Truth and Falsehood, how to distinguish, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li>Two Frogs, the, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>-<a href="#Page_195">5</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Ulysses, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
-<li>Unfamiliar words, danger of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a></li>
-
-<li>United States, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
-<li>Unsuitable material for stories, <a href="#Page_42">42</a></li>
-
-<li>Unusual element, desirable, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
-<li>Unwholesome Extravagance, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li>Utilitarian stories, danger of, <a href="#Page_99">99</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Very Short Stories, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
-<li>Virginibus Puerisque, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
-<li>Voice, dramatic power of, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Wallas, K., <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Warlike Excitement, not essential, <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
-
-<li>Water Nixie, the, <a href="#Page_183">183</a>-<a href="#Page_187">7</a></li>
-
-<li>Wide, Wide World, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li>Wiggin, Kate Douglas, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li>Wise Old Shepherd, the, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>-<a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li>Wolf and Kids, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li class="p2">Yonge, Miss, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-
-<li>Youngest Child, success of, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-</ul>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p class="p6 center"><i>Sherratt and Hughes, Printers, London and Manchester.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p class="center"><big><b>MURRAY'S <br />SHILLING LIBRARY</b></big></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>In Red Cloth, crown 8vo., 1/-net each.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE SCHOOLMASTER.</b> A Commentary upon the
-Aims and Methods of an Assistant Master in a Public School.
-By <span class="smcap">A. C. Benson</span>, C.V.O., President of Magdalene College,
-Cambridge.</p>
-
-<p>This book is the fruits of the experience of one who has gained
-distinction both as a schoolmaster and as a man of letters. It is
-not a scientific educational treatise, but an attempt to consider the
-life of the schoolmaster from within.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>GOLDEN STRING.</b> A Day Book for Busy Men and
-Women. Arranged by <span class="smcap">Susan, Countess of Malmesbury</span>,
-and Miss <span class="smcap">Violet Brooke-Hunt</span>.</p>
-
-<p>“An admirable selection of noble and inspiring thoughts.”&mdash;<i>Westminster
-Gazette</i>.</p>
-
-<p>“Delightful little volume, one can find nothing but praise for
-a happy idea so admirably carried out.”&mdash;<i>Ladies' Field</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>RUNNING THE BLOCKADE.</b> A Personal Narrative of Adventures, Risks, and Escapes during the American Civil
-War. By <span class="smcap">Thomas E. Taylor</span>. Frontispiece and Map.</p>
-
-<p>An absorbing record of personal adventure, and a real contribution
-to history, for it presents to us, from the pen of a principal
-actor, the most complete account we have of a great blockade in
-the early days of steam. As a picture of exciting escapes, of
-coolness and resource at moments of danger, of well-calculated
-risks, boldly accepted and carried through, it has few rivals in sea
-story.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>HISTORICAL MEMORIALS OF CANTERBURY.</b>
-By the late <span class="smcap">Dean Stanley</span>. With Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>“No pilgrim to Canterbury need now content himself with the
-meagre historical information of the guide-books when he can get
-Dean Stanley's fascinating work for one shilling.”&mdash;<i>The Church
-Times</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>LIVINGSTONE'S FIRST EXPEDITION TO AFRICA</b>.
-A popular account of Missionary Travels and Researches in
-South Africa. By <span class="smcap">David Livingstone</span>, M.D. With Map and
-numerous Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>This is the great missionary-explorer's own narrative of his first
-travel experiences in Africa, and consists chiefly of a full account
-of his wonderful journeys in the years 1849-1856, in the course of
-which he discovered the Victoria Falls, and crossed the continent
-from west to east.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE GATHERING OF BROTHER HILARIUS.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">Michael Fairless</span>.</p>
-
-<p>Through this little book runs the road of life, the common road
-of men, the white highway that Hilarius watched from the monastery
-gate and Brother Ambrose saw nearing its end in the Jerusalem
-of his heart. The book is a romance. It may be read as a romance
-of the Black Death and a monk with an artist's eye; but for the
-author it is a romance of the Image of God.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>AN ENGLISHWOMAN'S LOVE LETTERS.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Laurence Housman</span>.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. T. P. O'Connor in the <i>Daily Mail</i> said:&mdash;“I turned over the
-leaves rapidly, almost greedily, and had read almost all its story
-before I could allow myself to sleep.... It is a loud cry, not
-merely of one intoxicated and torn heart, but of the claim of inner
-and true emotion to be still the greatest force of life; the one thing
-worth having&mdash;worth living for, longing for, dying for.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>ÆSOP'S FABLES.</b> A New Version, chiefly from the
-original sources. By the Rev. <span class="smcap">Thomas James</span>, M.A. With
-more than 100 Woodcuts designed by <span class="smcap">Tenniel</span> and <span class="smcap">Wolfe</span>.</p>
-
-<p>Sir John Tenniel's beautiful illustrations are a notable feature of
-this edition of “the most popular moral and political class-book
-of more than two thousand years.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE LION HUNTER IN SOUTH AFRICA.</b>
-Five Years' Adventures in the Far Interior of South Africa,
-with Notices of the Native Tribes and Savage Animals. By
-<span class="smcap">Roualeyn Gordon Cumming</span>, of Altyre. With Woodcuts.</p>
-
-<p>This sporting classic is a fascinating first-hand narrative of
-hunting expeditions in pursuit of big game and adventures with
-native tribes. A special interest now attaches to it by reason of
-the great changes which have come over the “scene of the lion
-hunter's” exploits.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>UNBEATEN TRACKS IN JAPAN.</b> An Account of
-Travels in the Interior, including visits to the Aborigines of
-Yezo and the Shrine of Nikkô. By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Bishop</span> (<span class="smcap">Isabella
-L. Bird</span>). With Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>This book gives practically Mrs. <span class="smcap">Bishop's</span> day to day experiences
-during journeys of over one hundred and four thousand miles in
-Japan. As a faithful and realistic description of Old Japan by
-one of the most remarkable Englishwomen of her day, this book
-has an abiding interest.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>NOTES FROM A DIARY.</b> First Series. By <span class="smcap">Sir
-Mountstuart E. Grant Duff</span>.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Mountstuart Grant Duff, besides being a distinguished public-servant,
-was a popular member of society with a genius for gathering
-and recording good stories. In his series of “Notes from a Diary”
-he jotted down the best things he heard, and thereby made some
-enjoyable volumes.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>LAVENGRO: The Scholar, the Gypsy, the Priest.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">George Borrow</span>. With 6 Pen and Ink Sketches by
-<span class="smcap">Percy Wadham</span>.</p>
-
-<p>This edition contains the unaltered text of the original issue:
-with the addition of some Suppressed Episodes printed only in the
-Editions issued by Mr. Murray; MS. Variorum, Vocabulary, and
-Notes by the late Professor <span class="smcap">W. I. Knapp</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>OUR ENGLISH BIBLE.</b> The Story of its Origin and
-Growth. By <span class="smcap">H. W. Hamilton Hoare</span>, late of Balliol College,
-Oxford, now an Assistant Secretary to the Board of Education,
-Whitehall. With Specimen Pages of Old Bibles.</p>
-
-<p>An historical sketch of the lineage of our Authorised Version,
-which was published in 1901 under the title of “The Evolution of
-the English Bible.”</p>
-
-<p>The aim of the sketch is to give, in a continuous and narrative
-form, a history of our English translations, and to exhibit them in
-close connection with the story of the national life.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE LETTERS OF QUEEN VICTORIA. A Selection
-from her Majesty's correspondence between the years
-1837 and 1861.</b> Edited by <span class="smcap">A. C. Benson</span>, M.A., C.V.O., and
-<span class="smcap">Viscount Esher</span>, G.C.V.O., K.C.B. With 16 Portraits.
-3 vols. 1<i>s.</i> net each volume.</p>
-
-<p>Published by authority of his Majesty King Edward VII. This
-edition is not abridged, but is the complete and revised text of the
-original.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>ORIGIN OF SPECIES BY MEANS OF NATURAL
-SELECTION.</b> By <span class="smcap">Charles Darwin</span>. Popular impression
-of the Corrected Copyright Edition. Issued with the approval
-of the author's executors.</p>
-
-<p>The first edition of Darwin's “Origin of Species” has now passed
-out of copyright.</p>
-
-<p>It should, however, be clearly understood that the edition which
-thus loses its legal protection is the imperfect edition which the
-author subsequently revised and which was accordingly superseded.
-This, the complete and authorised edition of the work, will not
-lose copyright for some years.</p>
-
-<p>The only complete editions authorised by Mr. Darwin and his
-representatives are those published by Mr. Murray.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>ROUND THE HORN BEFORE THE MAST.</b> An
-Account of a Voyage from San Francisco round Cape Horn to
-Liverpool, in a Fourmasted “Windjammer,” with experiences
-of the life of an Ordinary Seaman. By <span class="smcap">Basil Lubbock</span>.
-With Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p><i>The Sheffield Independent</i> says:&mdash;“If you care to read what
-life at sea in a sailing vessel really is like, this is the book that tells
-the story.... Mr. Lubbock has a fine power of telling a tale
-realistically. I have never read any work about the sea that is as
-vivid and actual as this.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>ENGLISH BATTLES AND SIEGES IN THE
-PENINSULA.</b> By <span class="smcap">Lieut.-Gen. Sir William Napier</span>,
-K.C.B. With Portrait.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the countless books which have appeared on the
-Peninsular War, this great work has preserved its popularity as a
-standard book on the subject for over half a century and still holds
-its own when most rivals, which have appeared since, have become
-forgotten.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>STUDIES IN THE ART OF RAT-CATCHING.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">H. C. Barkley</span>.</p>
-
-<p>“Should the reader know of a schoolboy fond of ratting, the
-proud possessor possibly of a sharp terrier, and, maybe, a few
-ferrets, and wish to bestow a present upon him, the memory of which
-would last throughout his life, we could not do better than advise
-him to purchase this most pleasantly-written book and bestow it
-upon him.”&mdash;<i>Field.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE SERMON ON THE MOUNT.</b> By the Right
-Rev. <span class="smcap">Charles Gore</span>, D.D., LL.D., Bishop of Oxford.</p>
-
-<p>Cultured and scholarly, and yet simple and luminous, eloquent
-in tone and graceful in diction, practical and stimulating, it is far
-and away the best exposition of the Sermon on the Mount that has
-yet appeared.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE HOUSE OF QUIET. An Autobiography.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">A. C. Benson</span>.</p>
-
-<p>“The House of Quiet” is an autobiography, and something more&mdash;a
-series of very charming essays on people and life. The writer
-has placed himself in the chair of an invalid, an individual possessed
-of full mental vigour and free from bodily pain, but compelled by
-physical weakness to shirk the rough and tumble of a careless,
-unheeding, work-a-day world. He writes with a pen dipped in
-the milk of human kindness, and the result is a book to read time
-and again.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE THREAD OF GOLD.</b> By <span class="smcap">A. C. Benson</span>.</p>
-
-<p><i>The Guardian</i> says:&mdash;“The style of the writing is equally simple
-and yet dignified; from beginning to end an ease of movement
-charms the reader. The book is abundantly suggestive....
-The work is that of a scholar and a thinker, quick to catch a vagrant
-emotion, and should be read, as it was evidently written, in leisure
-and solitude. It covers a wide range&mdash;art, nature, country life,
-human character, poetry and the drama, morals and religion.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE PAINTERS OF FLORENCE. From the 13th
-to the 16th Centuries.</b> By <span class="smcap">Julia Cartwright</span> (Mrs. <span class="smcap">Ady</span>).
-With Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Ady is a competent and gifted writer on Italian painting,
-and presents in these 350 pages an excellent history of the splendid
-art and artists of Florence during the golden period from Cimabue
-and Giotto to Andrea del Sarto and Michelangelo.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>A LADY'S LIFE IN THE ROCKY MOUNTAINS.</b>
-By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Bishop</span> (<span class="smcap">Isabella L. Bird</span>). With Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p><i>The Irish Times</i> says:&mdash;“‘A Lady's Life in the Rocky Mountains’
-needs no introduction to a public who have known and admired
-Mrs. Bishop (Isabella L. Bird) as a fearless traveller in the days
-when it was something of an achievement for a woman to undertake
-long and remote journeys.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE LIFE OF DAVID LIVINGSTONE.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">William Garden Blaikie</span>. With Portrait.</p>
-
-<p>This is the standard biography of the great missionary who will
-for ever stand pre-eminent among African travellers.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>DEEDS OF NAVAL DARING; or, Anecdotes of
-the British Navy.</b> By <span class="smcap">Edward Giffard</span>.</p>
-
-<p>This work contains ninety-three anecdotes, told in everyday
-language, of such traits of courage and feats of individual daring
-as may best serve to illustrate the generally received idea of the
-British sailor's character for “courage verging on temerity.”</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>SINAI AND PALESTINE in connection with their
-History.</b> By the late <span class="smcap">Dean Stanley</span>. With Maps.</p>
-
-<p>“There is no need, at this time of day, to praise the late Dean
-Stanley's fascinating story of his travels in Palestine. It is enough
-to say that here Mr. Murray has given us, for the sum of one shilling
-net, a delightful reprint of that charming book, with maps and
-plans and the author's original advertisement and prefaces. We
-would especially commend this cheap storehouse of history, tradition,
-and observation to Bible students.”&mdash;<i>Dundee Courier.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>THE NATURALIST ON THE RIVER AMAZONS.</b>
-A Record of Adventures, Habits of Animals, Sketches of
-Brazilian and Indian Life, and Aspects of Nature under the
-Equator, during Eleven Years of Travel. By <span class="smcap">H. W. Bates</span>,
-F.R.S. Numerous Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>A most readable record of adventures, sketches of Brazilian and
-Indian life, habits of animals, and aspects of nature under the
-Equator during eleven years of travel.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center"><b><big>WORKS OF SAMUEL SMILES.</big></b></p>
-
-<p>Few books in the whole history of literature have had such wide
-popularity or such healthy and stimulating effect as the works of
-Samuel Smiles during the last half-century. How great men have
-attained to greatness and successful men achieved success is the
-subject of these enthralling volumes, which are now brought within
-the reach of all.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>SELF-HELP. With Illustrations of Conduct and
-Perseverance.</b> With Portrait.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>LIFE AND LABOUR; or, Characteristics of Men
-of Industry, Culture, and Genius.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>CHARACTER. A Book of Noble Characteristics.</b>
-With Frontispiece.</p>
-
-<p class="hang"><b>JAMES NASMYTH, Engineer and Inventor of the
-Steam Hammer.</b> An Autobiography. Portrait and Illustrations.</p>
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/i_back.jpg" width="400" height="612" alt="back cover" />
-</div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="transnote">
-<h3><a id="Transcribers_Note"></a>Transcriber's Note:</h3>
-
-<p>Variable spelling and hyphenation have been retained. Minor punctuation
-inconsistencies have been silently repaired.</p>
-
-<h4>Corrections.</h4>
-
-<p>The first line indicates the original, the second the correction.</p>
-
-<p>p. <a href="#Page_72">72:</a></p>
-
-<ul><li>is “What the Old Man
-does is alway Right.”</li>
-
-<li>is “What the Old Man
-does is <span class="u ">always</span> Right.”</li></ul>
-
-<p>p. <a href="#Page_91">91:</a></p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>I remember the surprise
-which which, when I had grown somewhat older</li>
-<li>I remember the surprise
-<span class="u ">which, when</span> I had grown somewhat older</li>
-
-</ul>
-
-<p>p. <a href="#Page_126">126</a>:</p>
-<ul><li>and practice will
-make make you more and more critical</li>
-
-<li>and practice <span class="u">will
-make</span> you more and more critical</li></ul>
-
-<p>p. <a href="#Page_234">234:</a></p>
-
-<ul><li>(From The Girl from the Marsh Croft. Selma Lagelöf.
-12581. p. 99.)</li>
-
-<li>(From The Girl from the Marsh Croft. Selma <span class="u ">Lagerlöf</span>.
-12581. p. 99.)</li></ul>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Art of Story-Telling, by Marie L. Shedlock
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ART OF STORY-TELLING ***
-
-***** This file should be named 61340-h.htm or 61340-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/1/3/4/61340/
-
-Produced by MFR, Eleni Christofaki and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/61340-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/61340-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index dfaf9ec..0000000
--- a/old/61340-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61340-h/images/i_back.jpg b/old/61340-h/images/i_back.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c3fd310..0000000
--- a/old/61340-h/images/i_back.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61340-h/images/i_cover.jpg b/old/61340-h/images/i_cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2b87afb..0000000
--- a/old/61340-h/images/i_cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/61340-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/61340-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a2f77af..0000000
--- a/old/61340-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ